THE LIBRARY
THE UNIVERSITY
OF CAL IFORNIA
LOS ANGELES
>, ^
1
*+
I
"x-
hit.
c
<" t^
/
/
/
^ *T.
Wl
'<~ X ,,
/ y-X-
<-
^
^'-!
CHARLES KINGS LEY:
HIS LETTERS AND MEMORIES OF HIS LIFE.
CHARLES KINGS LEY
HIS LETTERS
MEMORIES OF HIS LIFE.
EDITED BY HIS WIFE.
ABRIDGED FROM THE LONDON EDITION.
Sleep after toyle, port after stormie seas,
Ease after warre, death after life, does greatly please."
SPENSER'S " FAERIE QUEEN," Book I., Canto ix.
NEW YORK :
SCRIBNER, ARMSTRONG & COMPANY.
1877.
COPYRIGHT BY
SCRIBNER, ARMSTRONG & CO.,
1877.
JOHN t. TROW & SON,
PRINTERS AND BOOKBINDERS,
205-213 Kast \2f/r Sf.,
NEW YORK.
College
Library
TO THE BELOVED MEMORY
OF
A RIGHTEOUS MAN
WHO LOVED GOD AND TRUTH ABOVE ALL THINGS.
A MAN OF UNTARNISHED HONOUR
LOYAL AND CHIVALROUS GENTLE AND STRONG
MODEST AND HUMBLE TENDER AND TRUE
PITIFUL TO THE WEAK YEARNING AFTER THE ERRING
STERN TO ALL FOKMS OF WRONG AND OPPRESSION,
YET MOST STERN TOWARDS HIMFELF
WHO BEING ANGRY, YET SINNED NOT.
WHOSE HIGHEST VIRTUES WERE KNOWN ONLY
TO HIS WIFE, HIS CHILDREN, HIS SERVANTS, AND THE POOR.
WHO LIVED IN THE PRESENCE OF GOD HERE,
AND PASSING THROUGH THE GRAVE AND GATE OF DEATH
NOW LIVETH UNTO GOD FOR EVERMORE.
1115646
INTRODUCTORY NOTE TO THE
ABRIDGMENT.
As published in London, these Memoirs of CHARLES
KlNGSLEY extended to two octavo volumes of five hundred
pages each. These volumes are here abridged in the hope
that to the American reader the interest of the Memoirs
may be increased. In the English edition, long and fre-
quent extracts were made from MR. KlNGSLEY'S published
works. These have been dropped from this volume, while
the references to them have been retained. The Mem-
ories of MR. KlNGSLEY supplied by intimate friends, at
the request of his widow, have been reduced where the
different writers dwelt upon the same characteristics ;
others which lacked point and partook more of the nature
of personal panegyric, have been omitted altogether. Last
of all, the abridgment has necessarily fallen upon MR.
KlNGSLEY'S letters, but pains have been taken to preserve
his own record of the conclusions at which he arrived upon
the many important problems that occupied his incessantly
active mind, although it has been impossible, as indeed it
has seemed unnecessary, to reproduce his record of all the
phases through which he passed in arriving at these conclu-
sions. The narrative in which MRS. KlNGSLEY has supplied
viii Introductory Note to the Abridgment.
the biographical details necessary to connect these letters
has been left intact, and an advantage may justly be
claimed for the abridgment in the fact that the modesty,
the excellent taste, and the intense affection and sincere
reverence for her lamented husband which mark this part
of these Memoirs are here brought into greater promi-
nence than it was possible for them to have in the original
work.
EDITOR OF THE ABRIDGMENT.
PREFACE TO THE LONDON EDITION.
IN bringing out these Volumes, thanks are due and
gratefully offered to all who have generously given their
help to the work ; to the many known and unknown
Correspondents who have treasured and lent the letters
now first made public; to the Publishers, who have
allowed quotations to be made from Mr. Kingsley's
published works ; to the Artists, especially Sheldon
Williams, Esq., and Francis Goode, Esq., of Hartley
Wintney, &c., whose sketches and photographs have been
kindly given for the Illustrations of the book ; but above
all to the friends who have so eloquently borne witness
to his character and genius. These written testimonies to
their father's worth are a rich inheritance to his children,
and God only knows the countless unwritten ones, of
souls rescued from doubt, darkness, error, and sin, of work
done, the worth of which can never be calculated upon
earth, of seed sown which has borne, and will still bear
fruit for years, perhaps for generations to come, when
the name of CHARLES KINGSLEY is forgotten, while his
unconscious influence will endure treasured up in the
eternal world, where nothing really good or great can be
x Preface.
lost or pass away, to be revealed at that Day when
God's Book shall be opened and the thoughts of all
hearts be made known.
For the feeble thread, imperfect and unworthy of its
great subject, with which these precious records are tied
together, the Editor can only ask a merciful judgment
from the public.
F. E. K.
BYFLEET, October, 1876.
CONTENTS.
CHAPTER I.
PAGE
Birth and Parentage Inherited Talents Removal from Devonshire to Bur-
ton-on-Trent Clifton Barnack and its Traditions First Sermon and
Poems Childish Character Effect of Fen Scenery on his Mind. 21
CHAPTER II.
18301838.
AGED 11-19.
Life at Clovelly School Life at Clifton Bristol Riots Their Effect on his
Mind Helston Early Friendships Letters from Rev. Derwent Cole-
ridge and Rev. R. C. Powles Move to Chelsea Enters King's College,
London 30
CHAPTER III.
18381842.
AGED 19-23.
Life at Cambridge Visit to Oxfordshire Undergraduate Days Decides to
take Orders Takes his Degree Correspondence Letters from Cam-
bridge Friends 41
CHAPTER IV.
1842 1843.
AGED 23-24.
Reads for Holy Orders Correspondence Ordained Deacon Settles at
Eversley Parish Work Letters 54
1 2 Contents.
CHAPTER V.
18421843.
AGED 23-24.
PAGE
Curate Life Letter from Colonel W. Brighter Prospects Correspondence
Renewed Promise of Preferment Leaves Eversley 67
CHAPTER VI.
1844 1847.
AGED 25-28.
Marriage Curacy of Pimperne Rectory of Eversley Correspondence .... 74
CHAPTER VII.
1848.
AGED 29.
Publication of " Saint's Tragedy "Chartist Riots Tenth of April Politics
for the People Professorship at Queen's College " Yeast " Illness 92
CHAPTER VIII.
1849.
AGED 30.
Winter in Devonshire Ilfracombe Decides on taking Pupils Correspon-
dence Visit to London Social Questions Fever at Eversley Renewed
Illness Returns to Devonshire Cholera in England Sanitary Work
Bermondsey Letter from Mr. C. K. Paul : in
CHAPTER IX.
1850 1851.
AGED 31-32.
Resigns the Office of Clerk in Orders at Chelsea Pupil Life at Eversley
Publication of " Alton Locke" Letters from Mr. Carlyle Writes for
"Christian Socialist "Troubled State of the Country Burglaries
The Rectory Attacked 127
Contents. 1 3
CHAPTER X.
1851.
AGED 32.
PAGE
Opening of the Great Exhibition Attack on " Yeast " in the " Guardian " and
Reply Occurrence in a London Church Goes to Germany Letter from
Mr. John Martineau 135
CHAPTER XI.
1852.
AGED 33.
Strike in the Iron-Trade Correspondence on Social and Metaphysical Ques-
tions Mr. Erskine comes to Fir Grove Parson Lot's last Words Birth
of his youngest Daughter Letter from Frederika Bremer 160
CHAPTER XII.
1853-
AGED 34.
The Rector in his Church " Hypatia" Letters from Chevalier Btitisen Mr.
Maurice's Theological Essays Correspondence with Thomas Cooper... 174
CHAPTER XIII,
1854.
AGKD 35,
Torquay Seaside Studies Lectures in Edinburgh Detitsclle Thcologic
Letter from Baron Bunsen Crimean War Settles in North Devon
Writes " Wonders of the Shore " and " Westward Ho."... ..201
14 Contents.
CHAPTER XIV.
1855-
AGED 36.
TAGS
Bideford Crimean War Death of his friend Charles Blachford Mansfield
"Westward Ho" Letters from Mr. Henry Drummond and Rajah
Brooke Drawing Class for Mechanics at Bideford Leaves Devonshire
Lectures to Ladies in London Correspondence Winter at Farley
Court The " Heroes " Written 215
CHAPTER XV.
1856.
AGED 37.
Winter at Farley Court Letter from a Sailor at Hong Kong Union Strikes
Fishing Poem and Fishing Flies The Sabbath Question Invitation
to Snowdonia Visit to North Wales American Visitors Preface to
Tauler's Sermons 233
CHAPTER XVI.
The Father in his Home An Atmosphere of Joy The Out-door Nursery
Life on the Mount Fear and Falsehood The Training of Love Favor-
ites and Friends in the House, in the Stable, and on the Lawn 257
CHAPTER XVII.
1857-
AGED 38.
41 Two Years Ago "The Crowded Church Unquiet Sundays LetUrs to
Mr. Bullar Dr. Rigg Mr. Tom Hughes' Pietists and Ov/iBs Letter from
a Naval Chaplain Indian Mutiny The Romance of Real Life 265
Contents. 1 5
CHAPTER XVIII.
1858.
AGED 39.
PAGE
Eversley Work Diphtheria Lectures and Sermons at Aldershot Blessing
the Colors of the 22nd Regiment Staff College Advanced Thinkers
Poems and Santa Maura Letter from Dr. Monsell Letters to Dr. Mon-
sell, Dean Stanley, &c. Letter from Captain Congreve Birth of his Son
Grenville Second Visit to Yorkshire 278
CHAPTER XIX.
1859.
AGED 40.
Sanitary Work First Sermon at Buckingham Palace Queen's Chaplaincy
First Visit to Windsor Letter to an Atheist Correspondence with
Artists Charles Bennett Ladies' Sanitary Association Letter from
John Stuart Mill 286
CHAPTER XX.
1860.
AGED 41.
Professorship of Modern History Death of his Father and of Mrs. Anthony
Froude Planting the Churchyard Visit to Ireland First Salmon killed
Wet Summer Sermon on Weather Letter from Sir Charles Lyell
Correspondence Residence in Cambridge Inaugural Lecture in the
Senate House Visits to Barton Hall Letter from Sir Charles Bunbury. 303
CHAPTER XXI.
18611862.
AGED 42-43.
Cambridge Lectures to the Price of Wales Essays and Reviews Letters
to Dr. Stanley Bishop of Winchester Tracts for Priests and People
Death of the Prince Consort Letter to Sir C. Bunbury The Water-
babies Installation Ode at Cambridge Visit to Scotland British Asso-
ciation Lord Dundreary 314
1 6 Contents.
CHAPTER XXII.
1863.
AGED 44.
PACK
Fellow of the Geological Society Work at Cambridge Prince of Wales's
Wedding Wellington College Chapel and Museum Letter from Dr.
Benson Lecture at Wellington Letters to Sir Charles Lyell, Prof.
Huxley, Charles Darwin, James A. Froude, &c. Whitchurch Still-life
Toads in Holes D.C.L. Degree at Oxford Bishop Colenso Sermons
on the Pentateuch The Water-babies Failing Health 326
CHAPTER XXIII.
18641865.
AGED 45-46.
Illness Controversy with Dr. Newman Apologia Journey to the South of
France Biarritz Pau An Earthquake Narbonne Sermons in London
and at Windsor Enclosure of Eversley Common University Sermons
at Cambridge Mr. John Stuart Mill's London Committee Letter on
the Trinity Letter on Subscription Luther and Demonology Visit of
Queen Emma of the Sandwich Islands to Eversley Rectory and Welling-
ton College The Mammoth on Ivory Death of King Leopold Lines
written at Windsor Castle 346
CHAPTER XXIV.
18661867.
AGED 47-48.
Cambridge Death of Dr. Whewell The American Professorship Monoto-
nous Life of the Country Laboring Class Penny Readings Strange
Correspondents Life of Bewick Letters to Max Muller The Jews in
Cornwall The Meteor Shower- -Letter to Brofessor Adams The House
of Lords A Father's Education of his Son " Fraser's Magazine" Bird
Life, Wood Wrens Names and Places Darwinism Beauty of Color,
its Influence and Attractions Fiat-Fish Ice Problems St. Andrews
and British Association Abergeldie Castle Rules for Stammerers 363
Contents. 1 7
CHAPTER XXV.
1868.
AGED 49.
PAGE
Attacks of the Press Lectures on Sixteenth Century Mr. Longfellow Sir
Henry Taylor on Crime and its Punishment Letter from Mr. Dunn
Letter from Rev. William Harrison 386
CHAPTER XXVI.
1869 1870.
AGED 50-51.
Resignation of Professorship Women's Suffrage Question Letters to Mr.
Maurice, John Stuart Mill Canonry of Chester Social Science Meeting
at Bristol Letter from Dr. E. Blackwell Medical Education for Women
West Indian Voyage Letters from Trinidad Return Home Eversley
a Changed Place Flying Columns Heath Fires First Residence at
Chester Botanical Class Field Lectures Women's Suffrage Franco-
Prussian War Wallace on Natural Selection Matthew Arnold and
Hellenism 398
CHAPTER XXVII.
1871.
AGED 52.
Lecture on " The Theology of the Future " at Sion College Expeditions ot
the Chester Natural Scie.nce Society Lectures on Town Geology Race
Week at Chester Letters on Betting Camp at Bramshill The Prince
of Wales in Eversley Prince of Wales's Illness Lecture to Royal Artil
lery O fficers at Woolwich 421
CHAPTER XXVIII.
1872.
AGED' 53.
Opening of Chester Cathedral Nave Deaths of Mr. Maurice and Norman
McLeod Letters to Max Miiller Mrs. Luard Lecture at Birmingham
and its Results Lecture on Heroism at Chester A Poem The Athana-
sian Creed 434
2
1 8 Contents.
CHAPTER XXIX.
18731874.
AGED 54-55-
PACE
Harrow-on-the-Hill Canonry of Westminster His Son's Return His
Mother's Death Parting from Chester Congratulations Sermon and
Letters on Temperance Preaching in Westminster Abbey Voyage to
America Eastern Cities and Western Plains Canada Niagara The
Prairie Salt Lake City Yo Semite Valley and Big Trees San Fran-
cisco Illness Rocky Mountains and Colorado Springs Last Poem
Return Home Letter from John G. Whittier 441
CHAPTER XXX.
1874-5.
AGED 55.
Return from America Work at Eversley Illness at Westminster New
Anxiety Last Sermons in the Abbey Leaves the Cloisters for ever
Last Return to Eversley The Valley of the Shadow of Death Last
Illness and Departure The Victory of Life over Death and Time 474
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS.
PORTRAIT OF CHARLES KINGSLEY Frontispiece.
PAGE
FAC-SIMILE OF THE ORIGINAL MANUSCRIPT OF THE THREE FISHERS... 156
EVERSLEY CHURCH 17^
THE GREAT FIR-TREES ON THE RECTORY LAWN AT EVERSLEY 256
THE RECTORY AT EVKRSLKY 263
THE STUDY WINDOW, EVERSLEY RECTORY 396
CHARLES KINGSLEY'S GRAVE, EVERSLEY CHURCHYARD 488
CHARLES KINGSLEY:
HIS LETTERS AND MEMORIES OF HIS LIEE.
CHAPTER I.
Birth and Parentage Inherited Talents Removal from Devonshire to Burton-
on-Trent Clifton Barnack and its Traditions First Sermon and Poems
Childish Character Effect of Fen Scenery on his Mind.
CHARLES KINGSLEY, son of Charles Kingsley, of Battramsley in
the New Forest, was born on the i2th of June, 1819, at Holne
Vicarage, under the brow of Dartmoor, Devonshire. His family
claimed descent from the Kingsleys of Kingsley or Vale Royal, in
Delamere Forest, and from Rannulph de Kingsley, whose name in
an old family pedigree stands as " Grantee of the Forest of Mara
and Mondrem from Randall Meschines, ante 1128." Charles's
father was a man of cultivation and refinement, a good linguist, an
artist, a keen sportsman and natural historian. He was educated
at Harrow and Oxford, and brought up with good expectations as
a country gentleman, but having been early in life left an orphan,
and his fortune squandered for him during his minority, he soon
spent what was left, and at the age of thirty found himself almost
penniless, and obliged, for the first time, to think of a profession.
Being too old for the army, and having many friends who were
owners of Church property, he decided on the Church, sold his
hunters and land, and with a young wife, went for a second time
to college, entering his name at Trinity Hall, Cambridge, to read
for Holy Orders. While there he became acquainted with Dr.
Herbert Marsh, then Margaret Professor of Divinity, afterwards
Bishop of Peterborough, a fine classic and first-rate German
scholar. This last taste, combined with their mutual love of
22 Charles Kings ley.
literature, attracted the two men to each other, and when Dr.
Marsh was raised to a bishopric he took an early opportunity of
getting Mr. Kingsley into his diocese, and making him his Examin-
ing Chaplain. His first cure was in the Fens, from which he
removed to Holne, in Devonshire.
Charles's mother, a remarkable woman, full of poetry and
enthusiasm, was born in the West Indies, being the daughter of
Nathan Lucas, of Farley Hall, Barbadoes, and Rushford Lodge,
Norfolk. Keenly alive to the charms of scenery, and highly
imaginative in her younger days, as she was eminently practical in
maturer life, she believed that impressions made on her own mind,
before the birth of this child for whose coming she longed, by the
romantic surroundings of her Devonshire home, would be mysteri-
ously transmitted to him ; and in this faith, and for his sake as
well as for her own, she luxuriated in the exquisite scenery of
Holne and Dartmoor, the Chase, the hills, and the lovely Dart,
which flowed below the grounds of the little parsonage, and gave
herself up to the enjoyment of every sight and sound which she
hoped would be dear to her child in after life. These hopes were
realized, and though her little son left Holne when he was six
weeks old, and never saw his birthplace till he was a man of thirty,
it and every Devonshire scene and association had a mysterious
charm for him through life. " I am," he was proud to say, " a
West Country man born and bred."
" We know, through the admirable labors of Mr. Galton," savs
Mr. Darwin in his "Descent of Man," " that genius which implies
a wonderfully complex combination of high faculties tends to be
inherited," and to prove this in the case of Charles Kingsley may
not be altogether unimportant. " We are," he said himself, in
1865, when writing to Mr. Galton on his book on Hereditary
Talent, where the Kingsley family are referred to,
"We are but the disjecta membra of a most remarkable pair of
parents. Our talent, such as it is, is altogether hereditary. My
father was a magnificent man in body and mind, and was said to
possess every talent except that of using his talents. My mother,
on the contrary, had a quite extraordinary practical and adminis-
trative power ; and she combines with it, even at her advanced
age (79), my father's passion for knowledge, and the sentiment and
fancy of a young girl." ....
Inherited Tastes. 23
From his father's side he inherited his love of art, his sporting
tastes, his fighting blood the men of his family having been
soldiers for generations, some of them having led troops to battle
at Naseby, Minden, and elsewhere. And from the mother's side
came, not only his love of travel, science and literature, and the
romance of his nature, but his keen sense of humor, and a
force and originality which characterized, the women of her
family of a still older generation.
His maternal grandfather, sometime a Judge in Barbadoes, was
a man of books and science, the intimate friend of Sir Joseph
Banks and the distinguished John Hunter. He was also a great
traveller, and had often crossed the Atlantic, in those days a
more difficult work than it is now. He knew the West Indies
intimately, and Demerara, where also he had estates, and had
been with his friend Lord Rodney, on board H.M.S. "Formi-
dable," in his great naval engagement off St. Lucia in 1782, "on
the glorious i2th of April, when he broke Count de Grasse's line,
destroying seven French ships of war and taking their com-
mander prisoner." ("At Last," Vol. I. p. 69). In 1812, at the
great eruption of the Souffriere of St. Vincent, when resident on
his estate in Barbadoes, eighty miles distant, Judge Lucas gave
proof of his powers of observation and of scientific induction, by
at once detecting the cause of the great earthquake wave which
struck the island, and of the sudden darkness which spread terror
among its inhabitants. " I have a letter," says his grandson, " writ-
ten by one long since dead, who had powers of description of no
common order," detailing the events of that awful day and night,
and who, while the negroes were shrieking in the streets, and
even the white folks caught the panic, and were praying at home
and in the churches as they had never prayed before, thinking the
last day had come, was above the dismay and superstitious panic
which prevailed ; " he opened his window, found it stick, and felt
upon the sill a coat of soft powder. 'The volcano at St. Vin-
cent has broken out at last,' said the wise man, 'and this is the
dust of it.' So he quieted his household and his negroes, lighted
his candles, and went to his scientific books in that delight, mingled
with awe not the less deep because it is rational and self-possessed,
with which he, like other men of science, looked at the wonders
of this wondrous world." ("At Last," Vol. I. p, 89).
24 Charles Kingsley.
His grandfather's reminiscences of the old war times, and stories
of tropical scenes, were the delight of Charles's boyhood, and gave
a coloring to his life. They woke up in him that longing to see the
West Indies, which was at last accomplished ; and as he sailed the
same seas under more peaceful circumstances, his enjoyment was
enhanced by family associations and memories of the Past.
But to return, Mr. Kingsley's next curacy on leaving Holne was
at Burton-on-Trent, from whence he moved to Clifton, in Notting-
hamshire, where he and his wife formed the acquaintance of the
Penrose family. To this fact Miss Martineau alludes in her cor-
respondence with his son 35 years later.
" This evening I have heard of you in your infancy ! Ts that
not odd ? The Arnolds have just returned after a two months'
absence, and I went to Fox How to welcome them home. They
have been into Lincolnshire, at the Penroses'. They say your
parents were friends of the last generation of the Penroses, and
they have been looking over some old letters, in one of which
there is an account of a stormy passage of a river (the Trent in
flood), when your mother's chief anxiety was about her ' little deli-
cate Charles,' whom she wrapped in her shawl, going without it
herself. So now, perhaps we know something about you that you
did not know yourself."
While curate of Clifton, the Bishop of Peterborough offered his
friend the living of Barnack, one of the best in the diocese, to
hold for his own son Herbert, then only 17. Such transactions
were common in the church in those days, and Mr. Kingsley,
thankfully, accepted the offer, and held the living for 6 years.
Barnack Rectory was a fine old house, built in the fourteenth cen-
tury, and thither the family removed. It contained a celebrated
haunted 'room called Button Cap's, into which little Charles on
one occasion was moved when ill of brain fever, which he had
more than once, as a child. This naturally excited his imagina-
tion, which was haunted years afterwards with the weird sights and
sounds connected with that time in his memory. To this he traced
his own strong disbelief in the existence of ghosts. For, as he
used to say to his children in later years, he had heard too many
ghosts in old Button Cap's room at Barnack, to have much respect
for them, when he had once satisfied himself as to what they really
were. On being questioned about having been born there by
Barnack and its Ghost Chamber. 25
Mrs. Francis Pelham, lie gave her his matured opinion of Button
Cap in the following letter :
EVERSLEY RECTORY,
" Mv DEAR ALICE, June 2, 1864.
" Of Button Cap he lived in the Great North Room at Bar-
nack (where I was not born). I knew him well. He used to
walk across the room in flopping slippers, and turn over the leaves
of books to find the missing deed, whereof he had defrauded the
orphan and the widow. He was an old Rector of Barnack.
Everybody heard him who chose. Nobody ever saw him ; but in
spite of that, he wore a flowered dressing-gown, and a cap with a
button on it. I never heard of any skeleton being found ; and
Button Cap's history had nothing to do with murder, only with
avarice and cheating.
" Sometimes he turned cross and played Polter-geist, as the
Germans say, rolling the barrels in the cellar about with surprising
noise, which was undignified. So he was always ashamed of him-
self, and put them all back in their places before morning.
" I suppose he is gone now. Ghosts hate mortally a certificated
National Schoolmaster, and (being a vain and peevish generation)
as soon as people give up believing in them, go away in a huff or
perhaps some one had been laying phosphoric paste about, and he
ate thereof and ran down to the pond ; and drank till he burst.
He was rats. " Your affect. Uncle,
" C. KlNGSLEY."
Charles was a -precocious child, and his poems and sermons date
from four years old. His delight was to make a little pulpit in his
nursery, arranging the chairs for an imaginary congregation, and
putting on his pinafore as a surplice, gave little addresses of a
rather severe tone of theology. His mother, unknown to him,
took them down at the time, and showed them to the Bishop of
Peterborough, who thought them so remarkable for such a young
child, that he begged they might be preserved : predicting that the
boy would grow up to be no common man. These are among the
specimens his mother kept.
FIRST SERMON.
[Four years old.]
" It is not right to fight. Honesty has no chance against steal-
ing. Christ has shown us true religion. We must follow God,
and not follow the Devil, for if we follow the Devil we shall go
into that everlasting fire, and if we follow God, we shall go to
Heaven. When the tempter carne to Christ in the Wilderness,
26 Charles Kings ley.
and told him to make the stones into bread, he said, Get thee
behind me, Satan. He has given us a sign and an example how
we should overcome the Devil. It is written in the Bible that we
should love our neighbor, and not covet his house, nor his ox, nor
his ass, nor his wife, nor anything that is his. It is to a certainty
that we cannot describe how thousands and ten thousands have
been wicked ; and nobody can tell how the Devil can be chained
in Hell. Nor can we describe how many men and women and
children have been good. And if we go to Heaven we shall find
them all singing to God in the highest. And if we go to hell, we
shall find all the wicked ones gnashing and wailing their teeth, as
God describes in the Bible. If humanity, honesty, and good
religion fade, we can to a certainty get them back, by being good
again. Religion is reading good books, doing good actions, and
not telling lies and speaking evil, and not calling their brother Fool
and Raca. And if we rebel against God, He will to a certainty
cast us into hell. And one day, when a great generation of people
came to Christ in the Wilderness, he said, Yea ye generation of
vipers ! "
FIRST POEMS.
[Four years and eight months old.]
MORNING.
When morning's beam first lights us,
And the cock's shrill voice is undone,
The owl flies from her retreat,
And the bat does fly away,
And morning's beam lightens every spray,
The sun shows forth his splendid train.
Everybody is rising ;
Boys and girls go to school ;
Everybody is at work ;
Everybody is busy.
The bee wakes from her sleep to gather honey,
But the drone and the queen bee lie still
In the hive,
And a bee guards them.
Be busy when thou canst !
NIGHT.
When the dark forest glides along,
When midnight's gloom makes everybody still,
The owl flies out,
And the bat stretches his wing ;
The lion roars ;
The wolf and the tiger prowl about,
And the hyena cries.
Early Letters. 27
Little can be gleaned of the nursery life at Barnack,. except
from an old nurse who lived in his father's family, and who remem-
bers Charles as a very delicate child between six and seven years
old, subject to dangerous attacks of croup, and remarkable for his
thirst for knowledge and conscientiousness of feeling.
" I have never forgotten one day," she says, " when he and his
little brothers were playing together, and had a difference, which
seldom happened. His mother, coming into the room, took the
brothers' part, which he resented, and he said he wished she was
not his mother. His grief afterwards was great, and he came cry-
ing bitterly to the kitchen door to ask me to take him up to his
room. The housemaid enquired what was the matter, and said
his mamma would be sure to forgive him. ' She has forgiven me,
but don't cant, Elizabeth (I saw you blush). It isn't mamma's for-
giveness I want, but God's.' Poor little fellow, he was soon upon
his knees when he got into his mother's room where he slept."
A boy friend, now a clergyman in Essex, recalls him about
this time, repeating his Latin lesson to his father in the study at
Barnack, with his eyes fixed all the time on the fire in the grate.
At last he could stand it no longer ; there was a pause in the Latin,
and Charles cried out, "I do declare, papa, there is pyrites in the
coal."
Among the few relics of the Barnack days is a little love letter
written when he was five or six years old, which has latelv come to
light, having been carefully treasured for fifty years by a lady who
was often staying with his parents at that time, and who captivated
the child by her kindness and great beauty.
Barnack.
" MY DEAR Miss DADE.
" I hope you are well is fanny well ? The house is com-
pletly changed since you went. I think it is nearly 3 months
since you went. Mamma sends her love to you and sally brcnvne
Herbert and geraled (his brothers) but I must stop here, because I
have more letters of consequence to write & here I must pause.
" Believe me always,
" Your sincere friend,
To Miss DADE. "CHARLES KI\GSI.I:V."
The subject of his childish affection recalled herself to him thirty
years later, and the answer contains the only other mention of Bac-
nack in his own hand.
28 Charles Kings ley.
FARLEY COURT,
November 25, 1855.
" MY DEAR MADAM,
" Many thanks for your most kind letter, which awoke in my
mind a hundred sleeping recollections. Those old Barnack years
seem now like a dream perhaps because having lost the two
brothers who were there with me, anecdotes of the place have not
been kept up. Yet I remember every stone and brick of it, and
you, too, as one of the first persons of whom I have a clear remem-
brance, though your face has faded, I am ashamed to say, from
my memory.
" But I am delighted to hear that my books have pleased, and
still more that they have comforted you. They have been written
from my heart in the hope of doing good ; and now and then I
have (as I have now from you) testimony that my life as yet has
not been altogether useless
" I am just bringing out a Christmas book for my children with
illustrations of my own. Will you accept a copy, and allow me
to renew our old friendship ? . You speak of sorrows,
and I have heard you have past through many. God grant that a
quiet evening may succeed, for you, a stormy day. I am shocked
at the amount of misery in a world which has, as yet, treated me
so kindly. I Yet it is but a sign that others are nearer to God than
I, and therefore more chastened./
J "Yours ever truly,
" C. KlNGSLEY."
In 1830, when Charles was eleven years old, his father had to
give up Barnack to his successor. Mr. and Mrs. Kingsley's parish
work is still remembered there with affectionate respect, and they
and their parishioners parted with mutual regret. In after years
Professor Hall speaks of " Charles's excellent father as a type of
the old English clergyman where the country gentleman forms the
basis of the character which the minister of the gospel completes.
Of such a class," he says, " were the Bishop (Otter) of Chiches-
ter, Mr. Pen-rose, and Mr. Kingsley." Having caught ague in the
Fens, Mr. Kingsley was advised to try the climate of Devonshire,
and moved his family to Ilfracombe. But the Fen scenery was
never obliterated from Charles's mind. It was connected, too, with
his earliest sporting recollections, for his father, while an excellent
parish priest, was a keen sportsman, and as soon as the boy was
old enough, he was mounted on his father's horse in front of the
keeper on shooting days to bring back the game bag.
Wild duck, and even bittern and bustard, were to be found in
Hereward the Wake. 29
those days before the draining of the Fen, and butterflies of species
now extinct, were not uncommon, and used to delight the eyes of
the young naturalist. The sunsets of the Great Fen, all the more
striking from the wide sweep of horizon, were never forgotten, and
the low flat scenery had always a charm for him in after life from
the memory of those days.
Thus the seeds were sown of the story of Hereward the Wake,
written in after years, produced by the scenes and traditions of
this period of boyhood.
CHAPTER II.
1830-1838.
AGED 11-19.
Life at Clovelly School Life at Clifton Bristol Riots Their Effect on his Mind
Helston Early Friendships Letters from Rev. Derwent Coleridge and
Rev. R. C. Powles Move to Chelsea Enters King's College, London.
WHILE the late rector of Barnack was staying at Ilfracombe, Sir
James Hanilyn Williams, of Clovelly Court, presented him to the
living of Clovelly, which he' held till he removed to the rectory of
St. Luke's, Chelsea, in 1836.
Here a fresh life opened for Charles, whose impressions of nature
had hitherto been gathered from the Eastern Counties and the
scenery of the Fens. A new education began for him, a new world
was revealed to him. The contrast between the sturdy Fen men
and the sailors and fishermen of Clovelly between the flat Eastern
Counties and the rocky Devonshire coast, with its rich vegetation,
its new fauna and flora, and the blue sea with its long Atlantic
swell, filled him with delight and wonder. The boys had their boat
and their ponies, and Charles at once plunged into the study of
conchology, under the kind and scientific teaching of Dr. Turton,
who lived in the neighborhood.
His parents, both people of excitable natures and poetic feeling,
shared in the boy's enthusiasm. The new elements of their life at
tClovelly, the unique scenery, the impressionable character of the
people and their singular beauty, the courage of the men and boys,
and the passionate sympathy of the women in the wild life of their
husbands and sons, threw the new charm of romance over their
parish work. The people sprang to touch the more readily under
the influence of a man, who, physically their equal, feared no danger;
and could steer a boat, hoist and lower a sail, ' shoot ' a herring net,
and haul a seine as one of themselves.
His ministrations in church and in the cottages were acceptable
Studying at Home. 3 1
to dissenters as well as church people. And when the herring fleet
put to sea, whatever the weather might be, the Rector, accom-
panied by his wife and boys, would start off " down street," for
the Quay, to give a short parting service, at which "men who
worked," and " women who wept," would join in singing out of
the old Prayer Book version the i2ist Psalm as those only can,
who have death and danger staring them in the face ; and who,
" though storms be sudden, and waters deep," can say,
" Then thou, my soul, in safety rest,
Thy Guardian will not sleep ;
Shelter'd beneath th' Almighty wings
Thou shalt securely rest." *
Such were the scenes which colored his boyhood, were reflected
in his after life, and produced "The Song of the Three Fishers," a
song not the mere creation of his imagination, but the literal
transcript of what he had seen again and again in Devonshire.
" Now that you have seen Clovelly," he said to his wife, in
1854, "you know what was the inspiration of my life before I met
you."
The boys had a private tutor at home, till, in 1831, Charles and
his brother Herbert were sent to Clifton to a preparatory school
under the Rev. John Knight, who describes him as "affectionate,
gentle, and fond of quiet," which often made him leave the boys'
school-room and take refuge with his tutor's daughters and their
governess ; capable of making remarkable translations of Latin
verse into English ; a passionate lover of natural history ; and
only excited to vehement anger when the housemaid swept away
as rubbish some of the treasures collected in his walks on the
Downs.
The Bristol Riots, which took place in the autumn of 1831, were
the marked event in his life at Clifton. He had been a timid boy
previous to this time, but the horror of the scenes which he wit-
nessed seemed to wake up a new courage in him. When giving a
* Brady and Tate's Version of the Psalms.
32 Charles Kings ley.
lecture at Bristol in 1858, he described the effect of all this on his
mind.*
While Charles was at Clifton, his parents were still undecided
whether to send him to a public school. There was some talk of
both Eton and Rugby. Dr. Hawtrey, who had heard through
mutual friends of the boy's talent, wished to have him at Eton,
where doubtless he would have distinguished himself. Dr.
Arnold was at that time head-master of Rugby, but the strong Tory
principles and evangelical views of his parents (in the former,
Charles at that time sympathized) decided them against Rugby a
decision which their son deeply regretted for many reasons, when
he grew up. It was his own conviction that nothing but a public
school education would have overcome his constitutional shyness,
a shyness which he never lost, and which was naturally increased by
the hesitation in his speech. This hesitation was so sore a trial to
him that he seldom entered a room, or spoke in private or public
without a feeling, at moments amounting to terror, when he said he
could have wished the earth would open and swallow him up there
and then.
At that time the Grammar School at Helston was under the
head-mastership of the Rev. Derwent Coleridge, son of Samuel
Taylor Coleridge ; and Mr. Kingsley decided to send his son there.
There Charles formed the dearest and most lasting friendship of his
life, with Richard Cowley Powles, afterwards Fellow and Tutor of
Exeter College, Oxford, and who in 1869, to the great joy and com-
fort of his old schoolfellow, became one of his parishioners at
Wixenford, in Eversley. At Helston, too, he found as second-
master the Rev. Charles A. Johns, afterwards himself head-master,
who made himself the companion of his young pupil, encouraging
his taste, or rather passion for botany, going long rambles with him
on the neighboring moors and on the sea coast, in search of wild
flowers, and helping him in the study which each loved so well. In
later years, when both were living in Hampshire, Mr. Johns labored
successfully for the cause of physical science in the diocese of Win-
chester, where his name will long be remembered in conjunction
once more with his former pupil and distinguished friend.
* Miscellanies, Vol. II., p. 319, Great Cities, and their influence for good
and evil.
School Life at Helston. 33
Of Charles's school life both Mr. Coleridge and Mr. Powles have
contributed their recollections, which shall be given in their own
words.
REV. D. COLERIDGE TO MRS. KINGSLEY.
HANWELL RECTORY,
October 7, 1875.
" . . . . Charles and Herbert Kingsley were brought to
Helston Grammar School, in Cornwall, in the year 1832, by their
father the Rev. Charles Kingsley, then Rector of Clovelly, in Devon.
Herbert died of heart-disease, brought on by a severe attack of
rheumatism in 1834 Charles was a tall, slight boy, of
keen visage, and of great bodily activity, high-spirited, earnest, and
energetic, giving full promise of the intellectual powers, and moral
qualities, by which he was afterwards distinguished. Though not
a close student, he was an eager reader and enquirer, sometimes in
very out of the way quarters. I once found him busily engaged
with an old copy of ' Porphyry and lamblichus,' which he had fer-
reted out of my library.
"Truly a remarkable boy, original to the verge of eccentricity,
and yet a thorough boy, fond of sport, and up to any enterprise
a genuine out-of-doors English boy.
" His account of a walk or run would often display considerable
eloquence the impediment in his speech, already noticeable,
though not, I think, so marked as it afterwards became, rather
adding to the effect. We well remember his description of a hunt
after some pigs, from which he returned (not an uncommon occur-
rence) with his head torn with brambles, and his face beaming with
fun and frolic. In manner he was strikingly courteous, and thus,
with his wide and ready sympathies, and bright intelligence, was
popular alike with tutor, schoolfellows, and servants.
" His health was generally very good, but in the summer of 1834
he had a violent attack of English cholera, which occasioned the
more alarm as the Asiatic form of that malady had reached Helston.
He bore it bravely, and recovered from it, but I believe that the
apprehension this occasioned led to his removal earlier than was
intended, the distance from London to the extreme west of Corn-
wall being felt by his parents to be too great.
" After he left Cambridge he sent me the manuscript of his
tragedy of ' Elizabeth of Hungary 1 for my criticism and approval.
This was the last occasion in which I stood to him in any degree in
the relation of a tutor or adviser. From this time I saw him only
at intervals ; but when I paid him, as Canon of Westminster, my
first, and, as it proved, alas ! my last visit, on the 1 7th of November,
1874, he rlung his arms about my neck, exclaiming, ' Oh ! my dear
3
34 Charles Kings ley.
old master ! my dear old master ! ' nor was he less affected at the
sight of Mrs. Coleridge Valeat in ceternum
" DERWENT COLERIDGE."
REV. R. C. POWLES TO MRS. KINGSLEY.
WlXENFORD, Oct. 30, 1875.
" It was at Helston, in January, 1833, when we were each in our
fourteenth year, that Charles and I first became acquainted. He
and his brother Herbert had been spending the Christmas holidays
at school, and I was introduced to them, on my arrival from Lon-
don, before any of our schoolfellows had returned. I remember
the long, low room, dimly lighted by a candle on a table at the
further end, where the brothers were sitting, engaged at the mo-
ment of my entrance in a course of (not uncharacteristic) experi-
ments with gunpowder.
" Almost from the time of our first introduction Charles and I
became friends, and subsequently we shared a study, so that we
were a good deal together. Looking back on those schoolboy days,
one can trace without difficulty the elements of character that made
his rnaturer life remarkable. Of him more than of most men who
have become famous it may be said, ' the boy was father of the man.'
The vehement spirit, the adventurous courage, the love of truth,
the impatience of injustice, the quick and tender sympathy, that
distinguished the man's entrance on public life, were all in the boy,
as any of those who knew him then and are still living will remem-
ber'; and there was, besides, the same eagerness in the pursuit of
physical knowledge, the same keen observation of the world around
him, and the same thoughtful temper of tracing facts to principles,
which all who are familiar with his writings recognize as among his
most notable characteristics.
" For all his good qualities. Charles was not popular as a school-
boy. He knew too much, and his mind was generally on a higher
level than ours. He did not consciously snub those who knew less,
but a good deal of unconscious snubbing went on ; all the more
resented, perhaps, because it was unconscious. Then, too, though
strong and active, Charles was not expert at games. He never
made " a score " at cricket. In mere feats of agility and adven-
ture he was among the foremost ; and on one of the very last times
I ever saw him he was recalling an old exploit in which he had
only two competitors. Our play-ground was separated by a lane,
not very narrow, and very deep, from a field on the opposite side.
To jump from the play-ground wall to the wall opposite, and to
jump back, was a considerable trial of nerve and muscle. The
walls, which were not quite on a level, were rounded at the top,
and a fall into the deep lane must have involved broken bones.
This jump was one of Charles's favorite performances. Again, [
School Life at Helston. 35
remember his climbing a tall tree to take an egg from a hawk's
nest. For three or four days he had done this with impunity. There
came an afternoon, however, when the hawk was on her nest, and
on the intruder's putting in his hand as usual the results were disas-
trous. To most boys the surprise of the hawk's attack, apart from
the pain inflicted by her claws, would have been fatal. They
would have loosed their hold of the tree, and tumbled down. But
Charles did not flinch. He came down as steadily as if nothing
had happened, though his wounded hand was streaming with blood.
It was wonderful how well he bore pain. On one occasion, having
a sore finger, he determined to cure it by cautery. He heated the
poker red-hot in the school room fire, and calmly applied it two or
three times till he was satisfied that his object was attained.
" His own endurance of pain did not, however, make him care-
less of suffering in others. He was very tender-hearted often more
so than his schoolfellows could understand ; and what they did not
understand they were apt to ridicule. And this leads me to notice
what, after all, 1 should fix on as the moral quality that pre-
eminently distinguished him as a boy, the generosity with which he
forgave offence. He was keenly sensitive to ridicule ; nothing
irritated him more ; and he had often excessive provocation from
those who could not enter into his feelings, or appreciate the work-
ings of his mind. But with the moment of offence the memory of
it passed away. He had no place for vindictiveness in his heart.
Again and again I have seen him chafed to the intensest exaspera-
tion by boys with whom half an hour afterwards he has mixed with
the frankest good humor.
" How keen his feelings were none of his surviving schoolfellows
will forget, who were with us at the time his brother Herbert died.
Herbert had had an attack of rheumatic fever, but was supposed to
be recovering and nearly convalescent, when one afternoon he
suddenly passed away. Charles was summoned from the room
where we were all sitting in ignorance of what had just taken place.
All at once a cry of anguish burst upon us, such as, after more than
forty years, I remember as if it were yesterday. There was no need
to tell the awe-struck listeners what had happened.
" Thus far I have spoken rather of Charles's moral than of his
intellectual qualities. I must add something of these latter. His chief
taste was, as I have hinted, for physical science. He was fond of
studying all objects of the natural world, but for botany and geology
he had an absolute enthusiasm. Whatever time he could spare
from less congenial studies, and from ordinary play-ground games,
which never specially attracted him, he gave to these. He liked
nothing better than to sally out, hammer in hand and his botanical
tin slung round his neck, on some long expedition in quest of new
plants, and to investigate the cliffs within a few miles of Helston,
dear to every geologist.
36 Charles Kings ley.
" For the study of language he had no great liking. Later on,
Greek and Latin interested him, because of their subject-matter ;
but for classics, in the school-boy sense of the term, he had no turn.
He would work hard at them by fits and starts on the eve of an
examination, for instance ; but his industry was intermittent and
against the grain. Nor do I think he had any such turn for mathe-
matics as led him to make the most of the opportunities we had for
that branch of study. His passion was for natural science, and for
art. With regard to the former I think his zeal was led by a strong
religious feeling a sense of the nearness of God in His works.
" R. COWLEY POWLES."
To his mother he writes during the early days of his school-
life :
" I am now quite settled and very happy. I read my Bible
every night, and try to profit by what I read, and I am sure I do.
I am more happy now than I have been for a long time ; but I do
not like to talk about it, but to prove it by my conduct.
" I am keeping a journal of my actions and thoughts, and I hope
it will be useful to me."
His poetical compositions, which were many at this time, were
all given to his friend Mr. Powles, who has carefully preserved
them. Charles kept no note of them himself, and would not have
thought them worth keeping. But one more must be added, as it
shows the working of the boy's mind at fifteen. He called it him-
self
HYPOTHESES HYPOCHONDRIACS.
And should she die, her grave should be
Upon the bare top of a sunny hill,
Among the moorlands of her own fair land,
Amid a ring of old and moss-grown stones
In gorse and heather all embosomed.
There should be no tall stone, no marbled tomb
Above her gentle corse ; the ponderous pile
Would press too rudely on those fairy limbs.
The turf should lightly lie, that marked her home,
A sacred spot it would -be every bird
That came to watch her lone grave should be holy.
The deer should browse around her undisturbed ;
The whin bird by, her lonely nest should build
All fearless ; for in life she loved to see
Hypotheses Hypochondriacs. 37
Happiness in all things
And we would come on summer days
When all around was bright, and set us down
And think of all that lay beneath that turf
On which the heedless moor-bird sits, and whistles
His long, shrill, painful song, as though he plained
For her that loved him and his pleasant hills,
And we would dream again of bygone days
Until our eyes should swell with natural tears
For brilliant hopes all faded into air !
As, on the sands of Irak, near approach
Destroys the traveller's vision of still lakes,
And goodly streams reed-clad, and meadows green ;
And leaves behind the drear reality
Of shadeless, same, yet everchanging sand !
And when the sullen clouds rose thick on high
Mountains on mountains rolling and dark mist
Wrapped itself round the hill tops like a shroud,
When on her grave swept by the moaning wind
Bending the heather-bells then would I come
And watch by her, in silent loneliness,
And smile upon the storm as knowing well
The lightning's flash would surely turn aside,
Nor mar the lowly mound, where peaceful sleeps
All that gave life and love to one fond heart !
I talk of things that are not ; and if prayers
By night and day availeth from my weak lips,
Then should they never be ! till I was gone,
Before the friends I loved, to my long home.
O pardon me, if aught I say too much ; my mind
Too often strangely turns to ribald mirth,
As though I had no doubt nor hope beyond
Or brooding melancholy cloys my soul
With thoughts of days misspent, of wasted time
And bitter feelings swallowed up in jests.
Then strange and fearful thoughts flit o'er my brain
By indistinctness made more terrible,
And incubi mock at me with fierce eyes
Upon my couch : and visions, crude and dire,
Of planets, suns, millions of miles, infinity,
Space, time, thought, being, blank nonentity,
Things incorporeal, fancies of the brain,
Seen, heard, as though they were material,
All mixed in sickening mazes, trouble me,
And lead my soul away from earth and heaven
Until I doubt whether I be or not !
38 Charles Kings ley.
And then I see all frightful shapes lank ghosts,
Hydras, chimeras, krakens, wastes of sand,
Herbless and void of living voice tall mountains
Cleaving the skies with height immeasurable,
On which perchance I climb for infinite years, broad seas,
Studded with islands numberless, that stretch
Beyond the regions of the sun, and fade
Away in distance vast, or dreary clouds,
Cold, dark, and watery, where wander I for ever !
Or space of ether, where I hang for aye !
A speck, an atom inconsumable
Immortal, hopeless, voiceless, powerless !
And oft I fancy I am weak and old,
And all who loved me, one by one, are dead,
And I am left alone and cannot die !
Surely there is no rest on earth for souls
Whose dreams are like a madman's ! I am young
And much is yet before me after years
May bring peace with them to my weary heart !
C. K.
In 1836 the happy free country life of Clovelly was exchanged
for London work and the rectory of St. Luke's, Chelsea, to which
Lord Cadogan had presented Mr. Kingsley. There the family
settled, and Charles was entered, as a day student, at King's Col-
lege, London, where, says Dr. Barry, the present principal, in a
recent letter :
" He became a member of the General Literature Department
of the College that is, the department for those who are simply
pursuing a liberal education (with a much larger admixture of
mathematics, modes, languages, and physical science, than was then
usual), after leaving school before settling to a profession or going
to the university. ... It was a great pleasure to me, he adds,
to have been able to invite one to whose writings I owe so much,
to preach for us at the College in 1873, and to allow us to add his
name to our list of Honorary fellows. . . ."
It was a great grief to Charles to leave the West Country and
the society of those who were all ready to help him in his botani-
cal and geological studies, and in picking up the old traditions
of the neighborhood. The parting with his dear friend Cowley
Powles, the loss of the intellectual atmosphere of Mr. Coleridge's
house and his valuable library, and, above all, of the beautiful nat-
Removal to Chelsea. 39
ural surroundings of both Helston and Clovelly, was bitterly felt.
The change to a London rectory, with its ceaseless parish work,
the discussion of which is so wearisome to the young, the middle-
class society of a suburban district as Chelsea then was, the polem-
ical conversation all seemingly so narrow and conventional in its
tone, chafed the boy's spirit, and had anything but a happy effect
on his mind. His parents were busy from morning till night, the
house full of district visitors and parish committees. In short,
Chelsea was a prison from which he thankfully escaped two years
later to the freer life of Cambridge.
To his dear friend and schoolfellow at Helston he thus pours
out his heart :
CHELSEA RECTORY.
" I find a doleful difference in the society here and at Helston,
paradoxical as it may appear. . . . We have nothing but cler-
gymen (very good and sensible men, but), talking of nothing but
parochial schools, and duties, and vestries, and curates, &c., &c.,
&c. And as for women, there is not a woman in all Chelsea, leav-
ing out my own mother, to be compared to Mrs. C., or ; and
the girls here have got their heads crammed full of schools, and
district visiting, and baby linen, and penny clubs. Confound ! ! !
and going about among the most abominable scenes of filth, wretch-
edness, and indecency, to visit the poor and read the Bible to them.
My own mother says the places they go into are fit for no girl to
see, and that- they should not know such things exist.
I regret here, then, as you may suppose, Mrs. D., and ; but,
alas ! here are nothing but ugly splay-footed beings, three-fourths
of whom can't sing, and the other quarter sing mites out of tune,
with voices like love-sick parrots. Confound ! ! ! I have got here
two or three good male acquaintances who kill the time ; one is
Sub Secretary to the Geological Society.
"As you may suppose all this clerical conversation (to which I
am obliged to listen) has had a slight effect in settling my opinion
on these subjects, and I begin to hate these dapper young-ladies-
preachers like the devil, for I am sickened and enraged to see
'silly women blown about by every wind,' falling in love with the
preacher instead of his sermon, and with his sermon instead of the
JBible. I could say volumes on this subject that should raise both
your contempt and indignation. I am sickened with its day-by-day
occurrence.* As you may suppose, this hatred is rrarpoOtx 1 , here-
* These early experiences made him most careful in after life, when in a par-
ish of his own, to confine all talk of parish business to its own hours, and never,
40 Charles Kingsley.
ditary, and the governor is never more rich than when he unbends
on these points."
For the next two years he had what he called hard grinding
work at King's College, walking up there every day from Chelsea,
reading all the way, and walking home late, to study all the even-
ing. In his spare hours, which were few and far between, he com-
forted himself for the lack of all amusement by devouring every
book he could lay hands on. His parents were absorbed in their
parish work, and their religious views precluded all public amuse-
ments for their children : so that the only variety in Charles's life
was during the summer holidays, when his father took him to Dur-
ham to stay at his friend Dr. Wellesley's, or to Clovelly.
as lie called it, " talk shop " before his children, or lower the tone of conversa-
tion, by letting it degenerate into mere parochial and clerical gossip.
CHAPTER III.
183842.
AGED 19-23.
Life at Cambridge Visit to Oxfordshire Undergraduate Days Decides to take
Orders Takes his Degree Correspondence Letters from Cambridge
Friends.
IN the autumn of 1838 Charles Kingsley left King's College,
London, and went up to Magdalene College, Cambridge, where
he soon gained a scholarship, being first in his year in the May
Examinations, and in the joy of his heart he writes home :
MAGDALENE COLLEGE,
May 31, 1839.
"You will be delighted to hear that I am first in classics and
mathematics also, at the examinations, which has not happened in
the College for several years. I shall bring home prizes, and a
decent portion of honor the King's College men (K.C. London)
are all delighted. I am going to stay up here a few days longer if
you will let me. Mr. Wand has offered to help me with my second
year's subjects, so I shall read conic sections and the spherical
trigonometry very hard while I am here. I know you and mamma
will be glad to hear of my success, so you must pardon the wild-
ness of my letter, for I am so happy I hardly know what to say.
You know I am not accustomed to be successful. 1 am going
to-day to a great fishing party at Sir Charles Wale's, at Shelford."
The prize he refers to was a fine edition of Plato in eleven
volumes. " His selection of such a book," says Mr. Mynors
Bright, an undergraduate friend, afterwards senior tutor of Mag-
dalene, in a recent letter to the Editor,
" Speaks well for his judgment and taste. I recollect one of the
examiners, a Fellow of the College, telling me, that whatever
papers Kingsley sent up to any examination always showed marks
of talent. As you must know, he was always of an excitable
42 Charles Kingsley.
temperament. I recollect his telling me that he first began to
smoke at Cambridge, and that it had a wonderful effect on his
nervous system, and enabled him to work. He did not get a
Fellowship, because there was no vacancy for him, till he obtained
one which, no doubt, was more pleasing to him. When he was
about to return as Professor to Cambridge, I was very much
amused one morning, on saying to the College cook, ' We have a
great man coming to us again, Mr. Kingsley ; do you recollect
anything of him?' He thought a minute, and then answered:
' Mr. Kingsley Mr. Kingsley. Yes, I recollect him. I used to
feed a dog of his, and he used to come and say' (trying to imitate
Kingsley' s voice), 'You con founded beast, why can't you earn
your own living, and not oblige me to pay for you ! ' '
In the summer of 1839 the Rector of Chelsea took duty, for the
sake of country air and change, near some intimate friends, at the
village of Checkenden, in Oxfordshire, and settled in the little
parsonage house for two months with his wife and his family,
Charles, then an undergraduate of Cambridge, Gerald in the
Royal Navy (since dead), a daughter, and two schoolboys. On
the 6th of July, Charles and his future wife met for the first time,
" That was my real wedding day," he said, some fifteen years after-
wards.
He was then full of religious doubts ; and his face, with its
unsatisfied hungering look, bore witness to the state of his mind.
It had a sad longing expression, too, as if he had all his life been
looking for a sympathy he had never found a rest which he never
would attain in this world. His peculiar character had not been
understood hitherto, and his heart had been half asleep. It woke
up now, and never slept again. For the first time he could speak
with perfect freedom, and be met with answering sympathy. And
gradually as the new friendship (which yet seemed old from the
first more of a recognition than an acquaintance) deepened into
intimacy, every doubt, every thought, every failing, every sin, as
he would call it, was laid bare. Counsel was asked and given, all
things in heaven and earth discussed ; and a's new hopes dawned,
the look of hard defiance gave way to a wonderful humility and
tenderness, * which were his characteristics, with those who under-
stood him, to his dying day.
He was just like his own Lancelot in Yeast, in that summer of
^839 a bld thinker, a bold rider, a most chivalrous gentleman
Visit to Oxfordshire. 43
sad, shy, and serious habitually ; in conversation at one moment
brilliant and impassioned ; the next reserved and unapproachable ;
by turns attracting and repelling, but pouring forth to the friend
whom he could trust, stores of thought and feeling and information
on every sort of unexpected subject which seemed boundless. It
was a feast to the imagination and intellect to hold communion
with Charles Kingsley even at the age of twenty ; the originality
with which he treated a subject was startling, and his genius illumi-
nated every object it approached, whether he spoke of " the
delicious shiver of those aspen leaves," on the nearest tree, or of
the deepest laws of humanity and the controversies of the day.
Of that intercourse truly might these friends each say with Goethe
" For. the first time, I may well say. I carried on a conversation ;
for the first time, was the inmost sense of my words returned to
me, more rich, more full, more comprehensive from another's
mouth. What I had been groping for, was rendered clear to me ;
what I had been thinking, I was taught to see. . . ."
The Oxford Tracts had lately appeared, and, though he dis-
cussed them from the merely human and not the religious point of
view, he fiercely denounced the ascetic view of sacred human ties
which he foresaw would result from them. Even then he detected
in them principles which, as he expressed years afterwards in his
preface to Hypatia, must, if once adopted, sapj:he very foundation
of the two divine roots of the Church, the ideas of family and
national life.
Two months of such intercourse passed away only too quickly,
and though from this time for the next four years and a half, the
friends met but seldom, and corresponded at rare intervals, a new
life had dawned for both, which neither absence nor sorrow, differ-
ence of religious opinions, opposition of friends, or adverse cir-
cumstances, could extinguish. Before he left Oxfordshire he was
so far shaken in his doubts, that he promised to read his Bible once
more to pray to open his heart to the Light, if the Light would
but come. All, however, was dark for a time, and the conflict
between hopes and fears for the future, and between faith and un-
belief, was so fierce and bitter, that when he re turner! to Cam-
bridge, he became reckless, and nearly gave up all for lost : he
read little, went in for excitement of every kind boating, hunting,
driving, fencing, boxing, duck-shooting in the Fens, anything to
44 Charles Kingsley.
deaden the remembrance of the happy past, which just then
promised no future. More than once he had nearly resolved to
leave Cambridge and go out to the Far West and live as a wild
prairie hunter; to this he refers when for the first time he found
himself on the prairies of America in 1874. But through all, God
kept him in those dark days for a work he little dreamed of.
He had many friends in the University who took delight in his
society, some for his wit and humor, others for his sympathy on art,
and deeper matters, but they knew nothing of the real state of his
mind. "He was very popular," writes an intimate undergraduate
friend, " amongst all classes of his companions, he mixed freely
with all, the studious, the idle, the clever, and the reverse, a most
agreeable companion, full of information of all kinds, and abound-
ing in conversation. Whatever he engaged in, he threw his whole
energy into ; he read hard at times, but enjoyed sports of all
kinds, fishing, shooting, riding, and cards." A letter from the Rev.
E. Pitcairn Campbell, gives a graphic account of their under-
graduate life just then.
ASTON LODGE, November, 1875.
" My first acquaintance with your husband was formed sometime
in 1840.
" We happened to be sitting together one night on the top of
one of those coaches which in our time were subscribed for by a
number of men los. or i each for various expeditions into the
Fens for instance, when Whittlesea lay broadly under water Sir
Colman Rashleigh, the Dykes of Cornwall, or other driving men
taking the management, wearing wonderful coats and hats, and
providing the horses. I remember the drive very well. The
moon was high, and the air was frosty, and we talked about sport
and natural history, while the cornopean professor astonished the
natives with what he called Mr. Straw's (!) walzes.
" At last we got upon fishing, and I invited your husband to
come to my rooms to view some very superior tackle which had
been left me by a relative. He came at once, inviting me to join
him in some of his haunts up the Granta and the Cam, where he
had friends dwelling, and hospitable houses open to him.
" I never shall forget our first expedition. I was to call him,
and for this purpose I had to climb over the wall of Magdalene
College. This I did at two A.M., and about three we were both
climbing back into the stonemason's yard, and off through Trump-
ington, in pouring rain all the way, nine miles to Duxford.
" We reached about 6.30. The water was clouded by rain, and
Personal Traits. 45
I in courtesy to your husband yielded my heavier rod in order that
he might try the lower water with the minnow.
" He was, however, scarcely out of sight, before I spied, under
the alders, some glorious trout rising to caterpillars dropping from
the bushes. In ten minutes I had three of these fine fellows on
the bank one of them weighed three pounds, others two pounds
each. We caught nothing after the rain had ceased.
" This performance set me up in your husband's opinion, and
he took me with him to Shelford, where dwelt Sir Charles Wale.
It was at Shelford that I executed the feat to which he refers in his
Miscellanies.*
" The Times coach used to take us up to breakfast, and many a
good trout rewarded our labors. Then we dined with Sir Charles
at five P.M., and walked back to Cambridge in the evening. Oh !
what pleasant talk was his, so full of poetry and beauty ! and, what
I admired most, such boundless information.
" Besides these expeditions we made others on horseback, and
I think at times we followed the great Professor Sedgwick in his
adventurous rides, which the livery stable-keepers called jolly-
gizing ! f The old professor was generally mounted on a bony
giant, whose trot kept most of us at a hand gallop. Gaunt and
grim, the brave old Northern man seemed to enjoy the fun as
much as we did his was not a hunting seat neither his hands
nor his feet ever seemed exactly in the right place. But when we
surrounded him at the try sting-place, even the silliest among us
acknowledged that his lectures were glorious. It is too true that
our method of reaching those trysting-places was not legitimate,
the greater number preferring the field to the road, so that the un-
happy owners of the horses found it necessary to charge more for
a day's jolly-gizing than they did for a day's hunting.
" There was another professor whose lectures we attended to-
gether, but he was of a different type and character one who
taught the gentle art of self defence a negro of pure blood, who
appeared to have more joints in his back than are usually allotted
to humanity. In carrying out the science which he taught, we
occasionally discolored each other's countenances, but we thought
that we benefited by these lectures in more senses than one. We
had our tempers braced, yea, even our Christian charity ; for in-
stance, when we learnt to feel as we knew we ought for those who
had just punished us.
"To crown our sports, we have now only to add the all-absorb-
ing boating, and, dear Mrs. Kingsley, you will have reason to think
that we have so filled up our time, as to have little left for legiti-
* Chalk Stream Studies, Prose Idylls, p. 83.
j- Professor Sedgwick gave Geological Field Lectures on horseback to a class
in the neighborhood of Cambridge.
46 Charles Kingsley.
mate study ; and so, alack, it was with me, but not so, I fancy,
with your husband. However idle we both were at first, he took
to reading in sufficient time to enable him to realize the degree he
wanted After his examination, I altogether lost sight of
your husband until, about the year 1865, I wrote to him and en-
quired if the passage in the Chalk Stream studies did not refer to
me. I long to find his reply it was a charming letter."
Now began his difficulties in theology about the Trinity, and
other important doctrines. He revolted from what seemed to
him then, the " bigotry, cruelty, and quibbling," of the Athanasian
Creed, that very Creed which in after years was his stronghold ;
and he could get no clergyman to help him with advice he could
rely on, on these points. Speaking of the clergy with whom he
came in contact, and of his religious doubts, he writes,
" This is not so much beyond reason, as it is beyond the proper
bounds of induction. From very insufficient and ambiguous
grounds in the Bible, they seem unjustifiably to have built up a
huge superstructure, whose details they have filled in according to
their own fancies, or alas ! too often according to their own in-
terest Do not be angry. I know I cannot shake you,
and I think you will find nothing flippant or bitter no vein of
noisy and shallow blasphemy in my doubts. I feel solemn and sad
on the subject. If the philosophers of old were right, and if I am
right in my religion, alas ! for Christendom ! and if I am wrong,
alas ! for myself! It is a subject on which I cannot jest
I will write soon and tell you some of my temptations."
CAMBRIDGE, November, 1840.
" I have struggled to alter lately, and my alteration has been
remarked with pleasure by some, with sheers by others. ' Kings-
ley, they say, is not half as reckless as he used to be.' ....
There is another benefit you have conferred upon me careless-
ness for the opinion of the 'unworthy. Formerly, by a strange
paradox, which I see in too many minds, I was servile to the
opinions of the very persons I despised. I had no rule of morality
felt and believed. My morals were only theoretical, and public
opinion even more than self-interest, my only God. But now
. . . . that I have found a centralizing point connecting my theo-
retical notions of morality with my affections and my emotions, I
begin to find that there is an object to be attained in morality be-
yond public esteem and self-interest namely, the love and the
esteem of the good, and, consequently, of God himself. The love
and the esteem of the Deity, which I conceive is almost the same
Doubts and Difficulties. 47
thing as loving good for its own sake, I cannot fully appreciate yet,
or rather my natural feelings of the just and the beautiful, have, as
you say, been dimmed by neglect." ....
January, 1841.
" .... I have an instinctive, perhaps a foolish fear, of any-
thing like the use of religious phraseology, because I am sure that
if these expressions were used by any one placed as I now am to
me, I should doubt the writer's sincerity. I find that if I allow
myself ever to use, even to my own heart, those vague and trite
expressions, which are generally used as the watchwords of religion,
their familiarity makes me careless, or rather dull to their sense,
while their specious glibness makes me prove myself alternately
fiend or angel, hurrying me on in a mass f language, of whose
precise import I have no vital knowledge. This is their effect on
me. We know too well what it often is on others. Believe, then,
every word I write as the painful expression of new ideas and
feelings in a mind unprejudiced by conventionality in language,
or (I hope) in thought. ... I ask this because I am afraid of
the very suspicion of talking myself into a fancied conversion. I
see people do this often, and I see them fall back again. And
this, perhaps, keeps me in terror lest I should have merely mis-
taken the emotions of a few passionate moments for the calm
convictions which are to guide me through eternity I
have, therefore, in order to prevent myself mistaking words and
feelings for thoughts, never made use of technicalities.
" I have not much time for poetry,* as 1 am reading steadily.
How I envy, as a boy, a woman's life at the corresponding age
so free from mental control, as to the subjects of thought and
reading so subjected to it, as to the manner and the tone. We,
on the other hand, are forced to drudge at the acquirement of
confessedly obsolete and useless knosvledge, of worn-out philoso-
phies, and scientific theories long exploded while our finer senses
and our conscience are either scared by sensuality or suffered to
run riot in imagination and excitement, and at last to find every
woman who has made even a moderate use of her time, far beyond
us in true philosophy.
"I wish I were free from this university system, and free to fol-
fow such a course of education as Socrates, and Bacon, and More,
and Milton have sketched out." ....
CAMBRIDGE, February, 1841.
" I strive daily and hourly to be calm. Every few minutes to
stop myself forcibly, and recall my mind to a sense of where 1 am
* During these years of trial and suspense he wrote little poetry. " Twin
Stars" and " Palinodia" are all that mark the time.
48 Charles Kingsley.
where 1 am going and whither I ought to be tending. This is
most painful discipline, but wholesome, and much as I dread to
look inward, I force myself to it continually I am read-
ing seven to eight hours a day. I have refused hunting and driv-
ing, and made a solemn vow against cards. My trial of this new
mode of life has been short, but to have begun it is the greatest
difficulty. There is still much more to be done, and there are
more pure and unworldly motives of improvement, but actions
will pave the way for motives, almost as much as motives do for
actions. \. .
" You cannot understand the excitement of animal exercise
from the mere act of cutting wood or playing cricket to the
manias of hunting or shooting or fishing. On these things more
or less most young men live. Every moment which is taken from
them for duty or for reading is felt to be lost to be so much time
sacrificed to hard circumstance. And even those who have calmed
from age, or from the necessity of attention to a profession, which
has become custom, have the same feelings flowing as an under-
current in their minds ; and, if they had not, they would neither
think nor act like men. They might be pure and good and kind,
but they would need that stern and determined activity, without
which a man cannot act in an extended sphere either for his own
good, or for that of his fellow-creatures. When I talk, then, of
excitement, 1 do not wish to destroy excitability, but to direct it
into the proper channel, and to bring it under subjection. I have
been reading Plato on this very subject, and you-would be charmed
with his ideas
"Of the existence of this quality (excitability) there can be no
doubt, and you must remember the peculiar trial which this "
(alluding to the necessity for hard reading and giving up all amuse-
ment for the time being) " proves to a young man whose super-
fluous excitement has to be broken in like that of a dog or a horse
for it is utterly animal.
At this time his physical strength was great. He walked one
day from Cambridge to London, fifty-two miles, starting early and
arriving in London at 9 P.M., with ease; and for many years
afterwards a walk of twenty or twenty-five miles in a fresh country
was a real refreshment to him.
Speaking of "renewed violent struggles to curb " himself, which
made him " feel more agonizingly weak than ever," he says :
CAMBRIDGE, February, 1841.
" As for my degree, I can yet take high honors in the Univer
sity, and ought to get my fellowship : but I was very idle and
very sinful my first year.
Reading and Resolutions. 49
" I attend morning chapel at eight ; read from nine to one or
two ; attend chapel generally again at live. I read for some hours
in the evening. As to my studies interesting me, if you knew the
system and the subjects of study, you would feel that to be impos-
sible. ... I wish to make duty the only reason for working,
but my heart is in very different studies." ....
May, 1841.
" My only reasons for working for a degree are that I may enter
the world with a certain prestige which may get me a living sooner.
. . . . Several of my intimate friends here, strange to say, are
going into the Church, so that our rooms, when we are not read-
ing, are full of clerical conversation. One of my friends, the son
of the English Minister at Turin, goes up for ordination next week.
How I envy him his change of life. I feel as if, once in the
Church, I could cling so much closer to God. I feel more and
more daily that a clergyman's life is the one for which both my
physique and morale were intended that the profession will check
and guide the faulty parts of my mind, while it gives full room for
my energy that energy which had so nearly ruined me ; but will
now be devoted utterly, I hope, to the service of Clod. My views
of theoretical- religion are getting more clear daily, as I see more
completely the necessity of faith. What a noble mind Novalis's
must have been. Do you know his works ? or have you read the
review of them in Carlyle ? If not, pray do To publish
a translation of them will be one of the first results of my German
studies, after my degree
" I forgot to thank you for the books. I am utterly delighted
with them."
The books referred to were Carlyle's works, and Coleridge's
"Aids to Reflection." Carlyle's "French Revolution," sent by
the same friend, had had a remarkable effect on his mind before
he decided upon taking holy orders, in establishing and intensifying
his belief in God's righteous government of the world. The " Mis-
cellanies," and "Past and Present," followed it up, and were most
useful to him, as was Maurice's " Kingdom of Christ," which she
sent at a later period.
SULLY, June 12, 1841.
"My birth-night. I have been for the last hour on the sea shore,
not dreaming, but thinking deeply and strongly, and forming deter-
minations which are to affect my destiny through time and through
eternity. Before the sleeping earth and the sleepless sea and stars
I have devoted myself to God ; a vow never (if He gives me the
faith I pray for) to be recalled." ....
4
50 Charles Kingsley.
A great change had long been coming over him, to which in a
previous letter he points when he speaks of himself as
"Saved saved from the wild pride and darkling tempests of
scepticism, and from the sensuality and dissipation into which my
own rashness and vanity had hurried me before I knew you. Saved
from a hunter's life on the Prairies, from becoming a savage, and
perhaps worse. Saved from all this, and restored to my country
and my God, and able to believe. And I do believe, firmly and
practically, as a subject of prayer, and a rule of every action of my
life." ....
The Rev. James Montagu, Rector of Hawkwell, an old College
friend, writing to the editor in 1876, refers to this period thus :
" Our old Cambridge intercourse was to me very pleasant. There
was something in dear Charles's young days then, which drew me
(his senior by some six or eight years) very much to him. There
was growing up in his brain, then indistinct and shadowy, much of
that which came out in riper manhood. There was a dreaminess
about him at times which caused remarks to be made about him.
1 have had it said to me, ' You seem to be much with Kingsley, is
he not a little odd and cracky ? ' and I can remember my answer
'It would take two or three of our heads to mend the crack.'
He would come up to my room with, 'Are you busy, Monty?'
' Not too busy for a chat with you, Kingsley.' And then I must
tell you how artfully and cunningly I used to slip paper and pen-
cils within his reach ; for I knew his wont to go on sketching all
sorts of fanciful things, while we worried our young heads over
other dreams as fanciful. Many of those pleasant memories come
cropping out at times, though long years have passed and long
years make memory weak. Since those days, from his busy life,
our intercourse was but slight. I have not forgotten the few pleas-
ant days spent at Eversley ; nor shall I ever lose the pride I feel
in being called Charles Kingsley' s friend."
His every-day college life, his love of art and drawing powers
are recalled by another friend, now distinguished himself, as archi-
tect of St. Paul's Cathedral, Frank Penrose, Esq., F.S.A., &c., &c.
" My first acquaintance with Charles Kingsley was at South Clif-
ton, Lincolnshire, when I must have had some romps with him as
a little boy, say in 1823 ; but I saw nothing of him from that time
till he came up to Magdalene College, Cambridge, as a freshman,
in October, 1838, with me, and I welcomed him as something more
Undergraduate Days. 51
than a casual acquaintance. We began duly attending the Col-
lege lectures, and I saw at once that he was a man of no ordinary
talents. I was ultimately the best of my years in mathematics ;
but, if I remember rightly, he at first held his own on those sub-
jects, and it was by his own vacating the ground that the tortoise
gave him the go-by in that department I was always
interested in your husband's conversation, and he was, I think; the
only man in Cambridge with whom I ever got any art talk.
. . In the boating department he was under my command, as
captain of the Magdalene Boat Club, in 1840-41 ; he never, to
the best of my belief, rowed in the races of our first boat. In those
of the second boat he did constantly, and was regular on practis-
ing days What I remember best are his sketches of
figure subjects his showing me his Cambridge English verse prize
poem, the Crusades. It was unsuccessful, but it showed the latent
poetic genius.
" I must add his dog Muzzie, a clever, sedate-looking grey
Scotch terrier, of whom he was very fond. My last shall be a
negative point, and you will not think it unacceptable. I never
saw him do anything that I should have any objection to tell you."
" ' We were both very idle, 1 said Mr. J. Barstow, ; in those days
he idler than I apparently, for he often asked me to finish his
papers for him, that he might have something to present to our
common tutor. He lived very much alone. I think he was fonder
of the saddle than the boats ; and I saw but little of him, but I
liked and admired much what I saw.' "
During the spring of this year he decided on the Church as his
profession instead of the law. His name had been down at Lin-
coln's-inn, but circumstances and his own convictions altered his
plan of life, a change which he never regretted for a moment.
TO HIS MOTHER.
SHELFORD, CAMBRIDGE, June 23, 1841.
" I have been reading the Edinburgh Review (April, 1841), on
No. 90 of the Tracts for the Times, and I wish I could transcribe
every word, and send it to . Whether wilful or self-deceived,
these men are Jesuits, taking the oath to the Articles with moral
reservations which allow them to explain them away in senses
utterly different from those of their authors. All the worst doctri-
nal features of Popery Mr. Newman professes to believe in."
Dr. Bateson, Master of St. John's College, Cambridge, his tutor
much beloved, whose kindly reception of him when he returned
52 Charles Kingsley.
as Regius Professor of Modern History in 1860, was a source of
grateful joy to him, thus recalls the undergraduate, to whom his
help was so important :
ST. JOHN'S, December, 1875.
" Charles Kingsley came to Cambridge sufficiently well pre
pared. He was almost immediately made a scholar of Magdalene,
and he was prizeman at the college examination of freshmen in
June, 1839.
" I look back with much satisfaction, and shall always reflect
with pride on my engagement to serve him in the capacity of clas-
sical private tutor. He was my pupil for his three first terms, from
October, 1838, to Midsummer, 1839, and again from October,
1840, to the end of the Long Vacation, 1841. Being appointed
in the Michaelmas term of that year an examiner for the classical
tripos for the following year, for which he was to be a candidate, I
was unable to continue my engagement for a longer time.
" It is too true, as no one lamented more than himself, that
from various causes he made but an indifferent use of the opportu-
nities which his residence in Cambridge afforded him, at all events
for the greater part of the time. In this respect he differs little
from many of the men of poetic genius who have been under-
graduates at our universities. Whether it is that our system of
training and of frequent examinations, has something in it which
is repulsive and uncongenial, or that their fervid and impulsive na-
tures are unable to brook the restraint of our discipline, certain it
is that many youths of most brilliant promise, who have lived to
achieve great things in after years, have left our colleges with but
little cause to congratulate themselves on time well spent or
talents well employed. My own relations with Charles Kingsley
in those early days were always agreeable, although I was unable
to induce him to apply himself with any energy to his classical
work, until quite the close of his undergraduate career. Then,
indeed, he seemed an altered man. With wonderful ability and
surprising quickness during the last few months he made rapid
strides, and J can well remember admiring his papers, more espe-
cially those of Latin prose and verse, which he sent up for the
classical tripos. They exhibited excellence and power, due far
more to native talent than to industry or study, and raised him to
a place in the first class of the classical tripos. For after all his
degree was a good one, as senior optime in mathematics, and a
first class in classics ; but I must add that it was nothing compared
to what might have been attained by a man of 'his powers. If he
had worked as an undergraduate with only a small portion of the
industry and energy which he exhibited after he left Cambridge,
there was no academic distinction that would not have been within
his reach."
Incident of the Examination. 53
An incident occurred during the examination which was much
talked of at the time, and is recalled by the Rev. Rigby Kew-
ley, now Rector of Baldock, and Honorary Canon of Rochester :
" On one morning but one question remained of a paper on
mechanics, ' Describe a Common Pump.' Of the internal ma-
chinery of a pump Kingsley was unable to render a scientific ac-
count, but of the outside his vivid imagination supplied a picture
which his facile pencil soon transferred to paper. Under the head-
ing, ' Describe a Pump,' he drew a grand village pump in the
midst of a broad green, and opposite the porch of an ancient
church. By the side of the pump stood, in all pomposity of his
office, the village beadle, with uniform and baton. Around were
women and children of all ages, shapes, dress, and sizes, each car-
rying a crock, a jug, a bucket, or some vessel large or small.
These were drawn with considerable power, and the whole was
lighted up with his deep vein of humor ; while around the pump
itself was a huge chain, padlocked, and surrounded by a notice,
' This pump locked during Divine service.' This, Kingsley sent
up to the examiner as his answer to the question. I know not
whether he got any marks for it ; but it was so clever that the
moderator of the year had it framed and hung up on the wall of
his room."
He left Cambridge in February, much exhausted in body and
mind, from having, by six months' desperate reading, done work
which should have been spread over his three years of University
life. He came out in honors, first-class in classics, and senior opt.
in mathematics.
CHAPTER IV.
1842 1843.
AGED 23-24.
Reads for Holy Orders Correspondence Ordained Deacon Settles at Eversley
Parish Work Letters.
DURING the spring, while slowly recovering the exhaustion of his
degree and reading for Holy Orders, he had the offer of two cura-
cies in Hampshire, at Kingsley and Eversley. He chose the
latter.
CHELSEA, April, 1842.
" . . .1 hope to be ordained in July to the Curacy of Evers-
ley in Hampshire. In the midst of lovely scenery rich but not
exciting. And you will be with me in your thoughts, in my village
visits, and my moorland walks, when I am drinking in from man,
and nature, the good and the beautiful, while I purge in my voca-
tion the evil, and raise up the falling and the faint. Can I not do
it ? for have I not fainted and fallen ? And do I not know too
well the bitterness that is from without, as well as the more dire
one, from within .... My reading at present must be exclu-
sively confined to divinity not so yours. You may still range
freely among the meadows of the beautiful, while I am mining in
the deep mountains of the true. And so it should be through life.
The woman's part should be to cultivate the affections and the
imagination ; the man's the intellect of their common soul. She
must teach him how to apply his knowledge to men's hearts. He
must teach her how to arrange that knowledge into practical and
theoretical forms. In this the woman has the nobler task. But
there is one more noble still to find out from the notices of
the universe, and the revelation of God, and the uninspired truth
which he has made his creatures to declare even in heathen lands,
to find out from all these the pure mind of God, and the eternal
laws whereby He made us and governs us. This is true science ;
and this, as we discover it, will replace phantoms by reality, and
that darkling taper of ' common sense,' by the glorious light of cer-
The Man and the Woman. 55
tainty. For this the man must bring his philosophy, and the
woman her exquisite sense of the beautiful and the just, and all
hearts and all lands shall lie open before them, as they gradually
know them one by one ! That glorious word know it is God's
attribute, and includes in itself all others. Love truth all are
parts of that awful power of knowing, at a single glance, from and
to all eternity, what a thing is in its essence, its properties, and its
relations to the whole universe through all time ! I feel awe-
struck whenever I see that word used rightly, and I never, if I can
remember, use it myself of myself. But to us, as to dying Schiller,
hereafter many things will become plain and clear. And this is no
dream of romance. It is what many have approximated to before
us, with less intellectual, and no greater spiritual advantages, and
strange to say, some of them alone buried in cloisters seldom
in studies often some, worst of all, worn down by the hourly
misery of a wife who neither loved them nor felt for them : but to
those who, through love, have once caught a glimpse of ' the great
secret,' what may they not do by it in years of love and thought ?
For this heavenly knowledge is not, as boyish enthusiasts fancy,
the work of a day or a year. Youth will pass before we shall have
made anything but a slight approximation to it, and having handed
down to our children the little wisdom we shall have amassed
while here, we shall commend them to God, and enter eternity
very little wiser in proportion to the universal knowledge than we
were when we left it at our birth.
" But still if our plans are not for time, but for eternity, our
knowledge, and therefore our love to God, to each other, to our-
selves, to everything, will progress for ever.
" And this scheme is practical too for the attainment of this
heavenly wisdom requires neither ecstasy nor revelation, but prayer,
and watchfulness, and observation, and deep and solemn thought.
And two great rules for its attainment are simple enough ' Never
forget what and where you are ;' and, 'Grieve not the Holy Spirit.'
And it is not only compatible with our duties as priests of the
Eternal, but includes them as one of the means to its attainment,
for 'if a man will do God's will, he shall know of the doctrine,
whether it be of God.' They do not speak without scriptural as
well as theoretical foundation, who think that we may hereafter bii
called upon to preach God to other worlds beside our own ; and
if this be so, does not the acquirement of this knowledge become
a duty? Knowledge and love are reciprocal. He who loves
knows. He who knows loves. Saint John is the example of the
first, Saint Paul of the second."
In the interval between Cambridge and his curacy he began to
write the life of St. Elizabeth of Hungary, his ideal saint, not
56 Charles Kings ley.
intending it for publication, but as a gift book to his wife on his
marriage day, if that day should ever come.
May, 1842.
"When it is finished," he says, "I have another work of the
same kind to begin a life of St. Theresa as a specimen of the
dreamy mystic, in contrast with the working ascetic, St. Elizabeth,
and to contrast the celibate saint with the married one.
" For this we must read Tersteegen, Jacob Behmen, Madame
Guyon, Alban Butler, Fenelon, some of Origen and Clemens Alex-
andtinus, and Coleridge's 'Aids,' &c., also some of Kant, and a
German history of mysticism. In order to understand puritanism
and evangelicalism, we must thoroughly understand asceticism and
mysticism, which have to be eradicated from them in preaching our
* Message.' "
June 8, 1842.
"Amuse yourself get poetry and read it I have a book called
'Tennyson's Poems/ the most beautiful poetry of the last fifteen
years .... Shall I send it you ? .
" Tell me if I am ever obscure in my expressions, and do not
fancy that if I am obscure I am therefore deep. If I were really
deep, all the world would understand, though they might not appre-
ciate. The perfectly popular style is the perfectly scientific one.
Tell me then when I am obscure, for to me an obscurity is a rea-
son for suspecting a fallacy .... Pray simply, ' O God lead
us into all Truth, and make us like little children.' Do not repine
when you feel no pleasure in the offices of religion, the change is
in you, and not in God, and the fact of your being sensible of, and
sorry for this change, shows that it is caused by no cessation of
your love to God or his grace to you but by physical weakness."
Early in July he went to Farnham for his ordination. From
whence he writes :
July 7, 1842.
\ " I have finished the first day's examination better than I ex-
pected, and though I was so nervous at first that I could hardly
stand, I recovered myself tolerably afterwards. . . ."
" I shall hope to do tolerably to-morrow, and the greater part ot
Saturday I shall give up to prayer and meditation, and fasting."
FARNHAM, July 10, 1842.
". . . God's mercies are new every morning. Here I am
waiting to be admitted in a few hours to His holy ministry, and
take refuge for ever in His Temple ! .... Yet it is an awful
thing ! for we promise, virtually at least, to renounce this day not
Preparation for Ordination. 57
only the devil and the flesh, but the world ; to do nothing, know
nothing, which shall not tend to the furtherance of God's Kingdom,
or the assimilation of ourselves to the Great Ideal, and to our
proper place and rank in the great system whose harmony we are
to labor to restore. And can we restore harmony to the Church,
unless we have restored it to ourselves ? If our own souls are dis-
cords to the celestial key, the immutable symphonies which revela-
tion gives us to hear, can we restore the concord of the perplexed
vibrations round us? .... We must be holy ! and to be holy
we must believe rightly as well as pray earnestly. We must bring
to the well of truth a spirit purified from all previous fancies, all
medicines of our own which may adulterate the water of life ! We
must take of that and not of our own, and show it to mankind. It
is that glory in the beauty of truth, which was my idol, even when
I did not practise or even know truth. But now that I know it, I
can practise it, and carry it out into the details of life ; now I am
happy ; now I am safe !
" But back ! back to the thought that in a few hours my whole
soul will be waiting silently for the seals of admission to God's ser-
vice, of which honor I dare hardly think myself worthy, while I
dare not think that God would allow me to enter on them unwor-
thily .... Night and morning, for months, my prayer has
been : ' O God if I am not worthy ; if my sin in leading souls
from Thee is still unpardoned ; if I am desiring to be a deacon not
wholly for the sake of serving Thee ; if it be necessary to show me
my weakness and the holiness of Thy office still more strongly, O
God reject me ! ' and while I shuddered for your sake at the idea
of a repulse, I prayed to be repulsed if it were necessary, ami in-
cluded that in the meaning of my petition ' Thy will be done.'
After this what can I consider my acceptance but as a proof that I
have not sinned too deeply for escape ! as an earnest that God has
heard my prayer and will bless my ministry, and enable me not
only to raise myself, but to lift others with me ! Oh ! my soul, my
body, my intellect, my very love, I dedicate you all to God ! And
not mine only .... to be an example and an instrument
of holiness before the Lord for ever, to dwell in His courts, to
purge His Temple, to feed His sheep, to carry the lambs and bear
them to that foster-mother whose love never fails, whose eye never
sleeps, the Bride of God, the Church of Christ !....!
would have written when I knew of my success yesterday, but
there was no town post.
"Direct to me next at Eversley ! . . . ."
And now Charles Kingsley settled down, at the age of twenty-
three, in Eversley ; little thinking it would be his home for thirty-
three years.
58 Charles Kings ley.
The parish of Eversley (Aper's lea) was mostly common land
when he became curate, divided into three hamlets, each standing
on its own little green, surrounded by the moorland, with young
forests of self-sown fir trees cropping up in every direction. The
population was very scattered "heth croppers" from time imme-
morial and poachers by instinct and heritage. It was on the
borders of Old Windsor Forest, the boundaries of which reached
the adjoining parish of Finchampstead ; and the old men could
remember the time when many a royal deer used to stray into
Eversley parish. Every man in those days could snare his hare,
and catch a good dinner of fish in waters not then strictly pre-
served ; and the old women would tell of the handsome muffs and
tippets, made of pheasants' feathers, not bought with silver, which
they wore in their young days.
Eversley Manor, it is said, was granted to the monks of West-
minster by a charter from Edward the Confessor. We know from
the charter that there was then a church at Eversley. William the
Conqueror renewed the grant of the manor.
It appears still to have belonged to the church of Westminster,
in 1280 ; but it must ere long have passed from its possession, for
Bishop Woodlock of Winchester, in the early years of the four-
teenth century, instituted a priest to Eversley, on the presentation
of Nicholas Heigheman. The chancel of the church dates from
about the time of Henry VII.
The great peculiarity of the parish are the fir trees, of which
there are three fine specimens on the rectory lawn.
For the first six weeks of his curate life he lived in the rectory
house, and the following letter contained a sketch of the lawn and
glebe from the drawing-room windows and a plan of the room.
EVERSLEY RECTORY, July 14, 1842.
" Can you understand my sketch ? I am no drawer of trees,
but the view is beautiful. The ground slopes upward from the
windows to a sunk fence and road, without banks or hedges, and
rises in the furze hill in the drawing, which hill is perfectly beauti-
ful in light and shade, and color .... Behind the acacia on
the lawn you get the first glimpse of the fir-forests and moors, of
which five-sixths of my parish consist. Those delicious self-sown
firs ! Every step I wander they whisper to me of you, the delicious
past melting into the more delicious future. ' What has been, shall
be,' they say ! I went the other day to Bramshill Park, the home
Daily Duties. 59
of the seigneur du pays here, Sir John Cope. And there I saw the
very tree where an ancestor of mine, Archbishop Abbot, in James
the First's time, shot the keeper by accident ! I sat under the
tree, and it all seemed to me like a present reality. I could fancy
the noble old man, very different then from his picture as it hangs
in the dining room at Chelsea. I could fancy the deer sweeping
by, and the rattle of the cross-bow, and the white splinters spark-
ling off the fated tree as the bolt glanced and turned and then
the death shriek, and the stagger, and the heavy fall of the sturdy
forester and the bow dropping from the old man's hands, and the
blood sinking to his heart in one chilling rush, and his glorious
features collapsing into that look of changeless and rigid sorrow,
which haunted me in the portrait upon the wall in childhood. He
never smiled again ! And that solemn form always spoke to me,
though I did not then know what it meant. It is strange that this
is almost the only portrait saved in the wreck of our family.* As
I sat under the tree, there seemed to be a solemn and remorseful
moan in the long branches, mixed with the airy whisper of the
lighter leaves that told of present as well as past !
" I go to the school every day. and teach as long as I can stand
the heat and smell. The few children are in a room ten feet
square and seven feet high. I am going after dinner to read to an
old woman of 87; so you see I have begun. This is a plan of
my room. It is a large, low, front room, with a light paper and
drab curtains, and a large bow window, where I sit, poor me,
solitary in one corner."
Before his coming, the church services had been utterly neg-
lected. It sometimes happened that when the rector had a cold,
or some trifling ailment, he would send the clerk to the church
door at eleven, to inform the few who attended that there would be
no service. In consequence the ale-houses were full on Sunday
and the church empty, and it was up-hill work getting a congrega-
tion together.
July 1 7th was the young curate's first day of public ministration
in Eversley Church, and he felt it deeply.
* This picture of Archbishop Abbot, by Vandyke, came into the family
through William Kingsley, born 1626, Gentleman of the Privy Chamber to
Charles II. son of William Kingsley, Archdeacon of Canterbury, and Damaris
his wife, who was niece to Robertas Abbot, Archbishop of Canterbury. The
archbishop was a great friend of Lord Zouche, then owner of Bramshill Park,
and while on a visit to him killed the keeper by accident with a bolt from his
cross-bow aimed at a stag. He was suspended for a time, and, it is said, never
smiled again.
60 Charles Kings ley.
"I was not nervous," he says, "for I had prayed before going
into the desk that I might remember that I was not speaking on
my own authority, but on God's, and the feeling that the responsi-
bility (if I may so speak) was on God and not on me quieted the
weak terror I have of offending people."
EVERSLEY, Aug., 1842.
" My views of poverty are very strange. Had I been a Haroun
Alraschid, with every sense ' lapped in Elysium,' I could have en-
joyed all. The man who cannot, enjoy, cannot be healthy, and
cannot be self-denying. But had L been a prairie hunter, cold and
nakedness and toil would have been no evils to me. I could have
enjoyed that which was given me, and never, I believe firmly, re-
membered that there were greater sensual pleasures in life."
" Never depreciate, according to the foolish way of sentimental-
ists, the brotherly love of men Remember the sanc-
tity attached to it in Scripture, and believe that in this, as in other
things, the man is the stronger vessel. There is something awful !
spiritual, in men's love for each other ! It requires not even the
presence of the beloved brother or friend it requires no expres-
sion 1 it is too deep for emotion. It goes on its way like a mighty
unconscious stream, that brother's love, and sacrifices itself often
for a man with whom it never exchanges a word. I could tell you
a thousand stories I will some day to prove the mysterious
abysses of a man's heart God's image ! Here is one. There
were two Dover coachmen twins. One drove the up coach the
other the down for thirty years, so that they never saw each other
night or day, but when they whirled past once a day, each on his
box, on their restless homeless errand. They never noticed
each other in passing but by the jerk of the wrist, which is the cant
sign of recognition among horse-driving men. Brutes ! the senti-
mentalist will say for they were both fat, jolly men 1 And when
one of them died, the other took to his bed in a few days, in per-
fect health, and pined away and died also ! His words were ' Now
Tom is gone, I can't stay.' Was not that spirit love? That story
always makes me ready to cry. And cases as strong are common."
EVERSLEY, 1842.
" . . . The body the temple of the Living God
There has always seemed to me something impious in the neglect
of personal health, strength, and beauty, which the religious and
sometimes clergymen of this day affect. It is very often a mere
form of laziness and untidiness !....! should be ashamed
of being weak. I could not do half the little good I do do here, if
Physical Exercise. 61
it were not for that strength and activity which some consider
coarse and degrading. Many clergymen would half kill themselves
if they did what I do. And though they might walk about as
much, they would neglect exercise of the arms and chest, and be-
come dyspeptic or consumptive. Do not be afraid of my over-
working myself. If I stop, I go down. I must work. ....
How merciful God has been in turning all the strength and hardi-
hood I gained in snipe shooting and hunting, and rowing and jack-
fishing in those magnificent fens to His work ! While I was follow-
ing my own fancies He was preparing me for His work. I could
wish I were an Apollo for His sake ! Strange idea, yet it seems
so harmonious to me ! ... Is it not an awful proof that mat-
ter is not necessarily evil, that we shall be clothed in bodies even
in our perfect state? Think of that! ... It seems all so
harmonious to me. It is all so full of God, that I see no inconsis-
tency in making my sermons while I am cutting wood, and no
' bizarrerie ' in talking one moment to one man about the points of
a horse, and the next moment to another about the mercy of God to
sinners. I try to catch men by their leading ideas, and so draw them
off insensibly to my leading idea. And so I find shall I tell you?
you know it is not vanity, but the wish to make you happy in the
thought that God is really permitting me to do His work 1 find
that dissent is decreasing ; people are coming to church who never
went anywhere before ; that I am loved and respected or rather
that God's ministry, which has been here deservedly despised, alas!
is beginning to be respected ; and above all, that the young wild
fellows who are considered as hopeless by most men, because most
men are what they call 'spoony Methodists,' i. e., effeminate ascet-
ics, dare not gainsay, but rather look up to a man who they see
is their superior, if he chose to exert his power in physical as well
as intellectual skill.
" So 1 am trying to become (harmoniously and consistently) all
things to all men, and I thank God for the versatile mind He has
given me. But I am becoming egotistical."
This was one secret of his influence in Eversley : he could swing
a flj.il with the threshers in the barn, turn his swathe with the mow-
ers in the meadow, pitch hay with the hay-makers in the pasture.
From knowing every fox earth on the moor, the " reedy hover" of
the pike, the still hole where the chub lay, he had always a word
in sympathy for the huntsman or the old poacher. With the far-
mer he discussed the rotation of crops, and with the laborer the
science of hedging and ditching. And yet while he seemed to ask
for information, he unconsciously gave more than he received.
At this time Mr. Maurice's "Kingdom of Christ" vvaf put into
62 Charles Kings ley.
his hands. It was in a great crisis of his life, and he always said
that he owed more to that book than to any he had ever read, for
by it his views were cleared and his faith established.
It may seem strange to some that Carlyle's works should have
laid the foundation to which Coleridge's " Aids " and Maurice's
works were the superstructure : but so it was. The friend who
gave them all to him little thought that Chevalier Bunsen, in his
"Hyppolytus" at a later period would strike the point of contact
between these three authors which explains their effect on Charles
Kingsley's mind.
Circumstances now caused a long break in this correspondence,
but the faith and patience with which the trial was met may be
seen in these parting words, or perhaps still more in some rules,
intended for one eye only, but from which extracts have been
made, in the hope they may help others who have the same thorny
road to travel, without such a friend and guide.
EVERSLEY, August, 1842.
" . . . Though there may be clouds between us now, yet
they are safe and dry, free from storm and rains our parted state
now is quiet grey weather, under which all tender things will spring
up and grow, beneath the warm damp air, till they are ready for
the next burst of sunshine to hurry them into blossom and fruit.
Let us plant and rear all tender thoughts, knowing surely that
those who sow in tears shall reap in joy. ... I can under-
stand people's losing by trusting too little to God, but I cannot un-
derstand any one's losing by trusting too much to Him ! ."
" There are two ways of looking at every occurrence a bright
and a dark side. Two modes of action Which is most worthy of
a rational being, a Christian and a friend? It is absurd, as a
rational being, to torture one's self unnecessarily. It is inconsis-
tent in a Christian to see God's wrath, rather than His mercy in
everything How to avoid this morbidity of mind
by prayer. ' Resist the devil and he will flee from you.' By turn-
ing your mind from the dark view. Never begin to look darkly at
a subject, without checking yourself and saying, ' Is there not a
bright side to this ? Has not God promised the bright side to me ?
Is not my happiness in my own power ? Do I not know that I am
ruining my mind and endangering the happiness of those dear to
me -by looking at the wrong side ? ' Make this your habit.
Every gift of God is good, and given for our happiness ; and we
sin if we abuse it. To use our fancy to our own misery is to abuse
it and to sin the realm of the possible was given to man to hope,
Parting Words. 63
and not to fear in If (in sorrow) the thought strikes
you that we are punished for our sins mourn for them, and not for
the happiness which they have prevented. Rather thank God that
He has stopped us in time, and remember His promises of restor-
ing us if we profit by his chastisement.
"In cases of love to God and working to His glory in the first
and second intention read Taylor's ' Holy Living.' But eschew
his Popish fallacy about duties as different from perfections. Every
step in love and to God, and devotion to Him is a duty ! That^
doctrine was invented to allow mankind to exist, while a few self-
conceited shut themselves up in a state of unnatural celibacy and
morbid excitement, in order to avoid their duty, instead of doing
it. Avoid the Fathers, after Origen (including him), on this ac-
count their theories are not universal ....
"... We may think too much ! There is such a thing as
mystifying one's self! Mystifying one's self is thinking a dozen
thoughts in order to get to a conclusion, to which one might arrive
by thinking one ; getting at ideas by an unnecessarily subtle and
circuitous path : then, because one has been through many steps,
one fancies one has gone deep. This is one form of want of sim-
plicity. This is not being like a little child, any more than analys-
ing one's own feelings. A child goes straight to its point, and it
hardly knows why. When you have done a thing, leave it alone.
You mystify yourself after the idea, not before. Second thoughts
may be best before action they are folly after action, unless we
find we have sinned. The consistent Christian should have no
second thoughts,- but do good by the first impulse. How few at-
tain to this. I do not object to subtlety of thought : but it is dan-
gerous for one who has no scientific guide of logic, &c.
" Aim at depth. A thought is deep in proportion as it is near
God. You may be subtle, and only perceive a trifling property of
the subject, which others do not. To be deep, you must see the
subject in its relation to God yourself and the universe; and
the more harmonious and simple it seems, the nearer God and the
deeper it is. All the deep things of God are bright for God is
light. The religion of terror is the most superficial of all religions.
God's arbitrary will, and almighty power, may seem dark by them-
selves, though deep, as they do to the Calvinists ; but that is
because they do not involve His moral character. Join them witli
the fact that He is a God of mercy as well as justice ; remember
that His essence is love ; and the thunder-cloud will blaze with
dewy gold, full of soft rain, and pure light !
" Again : remember that habit, more than reason, will cure one
both of mystifying subtlety and morbid fear ; and remember that
habits are a series of individual voluntary actions, continued till
they become involuntary. One would not wish to become good
by habit, as the Aristotle-loving Tractarians do; but one must ac-
64 Charles Kings ley.
quire tones of inind by habit, in cases in which intellectual, not
moral obliquity, or constitutional ill-health is the cause of failure.
"Some minds are too 'subjective.' What I mean is, that they
may devote themselves too much to the subject of self and man-
kind. Now man is not 'the noblest study of man.' (What lies
the trashy poets of Pope and Johnson's age tell, which are taken
as gospel, and acted upon, because the idol said so !) God is the
noblest study of man. He is the only study fit for a woman de-
voted to Him. And Him you can study in three ways.
" i st. From His dealings in History. This is th^real Philosophy
of History. Read Arnold's 'Lectures on Modern History.' (Oh!
why did that noblest of men die ? God have mercy upon England !
He takes the shining lights from us, for our National sins !) And
read as he tells us to read, not to-study man a la Rochefoucauld,
but God a la David !
" 2nd. From His image as developed in Christ the ideal, and in all
good men great good men David, Moses, St. Paul, Hooker, the
four Oxford martyrs, Luther, Taylor, Howard. Read about that
glorious Luther ! and like him strive all your life to free men from
the bondage of custom and self, the two great elements of the
world that lieth in wickedness ! Read Maurice for this purpose,
and Carlyle.
"3rd. From His works. Study nature not scientifically that
would take eternity, to do it so as to reap much moral good from
it. Superficial physical science is the devil's spade, with which he
loosens the roots of the trees prepared for the burning ! Do not
study matter for its own sake, but as the countenance of God !
Try to extract every line of beauty, every association, every moral
reflection, every inexpressible feeling from it. Study the forms
and colors of leaves and flowers, and the growth and habits of
plants ; not to classify them, but to admire them and adore God.
Study the sky ! Study water ! Study trees ! Study the sounds
and scents of nature ! Study all these, as beautiful in themselves,
in order to re-combine the elements of beauty ; next, as allegories
and examples from whence moral reflections may be drawn ; next,
as types of certain tones of feeling, &c. ; but remain (yourself) in
God-dependence, superior to them. Learn what feelings they ex-
press, but do not let them mould the tone of your mind ; else by
allowing a melancholy day to make you melancholy, you worship
the creature more than the Creator. No sight but has some beauty
and harmony !
"Read geology Buckland's ' Bridgewater Treatise' and you
will rise up awe-struck and cling to God !
" Study the human figure, both as intrinsically beautiful and as
expressing mind. It only expresses the broad natural childish
emotions, which are just what you want to return to. Study ' natural
language' I mean the 'language of attitude.' It is an inexhaust-
Parting Words. 65
ible source of knowledge and delight, and enables one human being
to understand another so perfectly. Draw, -learn to draw and
paint figures. No one with such freedom of touch in landscape
and perception of physical beauty requires anything but a few sim-
ple rules, and some common attention to attitudes, to draw ex-
quisitely. If you can command your hand in drawing a tree, you
can in drawing a face. Perfect your coloring .... It will keep
your mind employed on objective studies, and save you from morbid
introversion of mind brooding over fallen man. It will increase
your perception of beauty, and thereby your own harmony of soul
and love to God !
"Practise music I am going to learn myself, merely to be able
to look after my singers .... Music is such a vent for the
feelings
"Study medicine .... I am studying it .... Make
yourself thoroughly acquainted with the wages, wants, and habits,
and prevalent diseases of the poor, wherever you go.
"Let your mind freely forth. Only turn it inwards at prayer
time, to recollect sins of which you were conscious at the time,
not to look for fresh ones. They are provided against by prayer
for pardon of unintentional sins. What wisdom in our Church !
She knew that if she allowed sin hunting, people would fancy, like
some Dissenters, that pretending everything they had done was sin-
ful, was a sign of holiness !
" Let your studies, then, be objective entirely. Look forward
to the future with hope. Build castles, if you will, but only bright
ones, and not too many better to live in the Past. We cannot
help thanking God for that ! Blessed Past ! Has not God led us
like sheep through the desert ? Think of all He has done for us.
Be happy Weep, but let them be tears of
thankfulness.
" Do not be too solicitous to find deep meanings in men's
words. Most men do, and all. men ought to mean only what is
evident at first sight on their books (unless they be inspired or
write for a private eye). This is the great danger of such men as
. Novalis, that you never know how much he means. Beware of
subtlety again. The quantity of sounding nonsense in the world
is incredible ! If you wish to be like a little child, study what a
little child could understand nature ; and do what a little child
could do love.
" Use your senses much, and your mind little. Feed on Nature,
and do not try to understand it. It will digest itself. It did so
when you were a baby the first time ! Look round you much.
Think little and read less ! Never give way to reveries. Have
always some employment in your hands When you
are doing nothing at night, pray and praise !
" See how much a day can do ! I have since nine this morning,
5
66 Charles Kingsley.
cut wood for an hour; spent an hour and more in prayer and
humiliation, and thereby established a chastened but happy tone,
which lasts till now; written six or seven pages of a difficult part
of my essay ; taught in the school ; thought over many things
while walking ; gone round two-thirds of the parish visiting and
doctoring ; and written all this. Such days are lives and happy
ones. One has no time to be miserable, and one is ashamed to
invent little sorrows for one's self while one is trying to relieve
such grief in others as would kill us, if we gave way or fancied
about them !
" Pray over every truth, for though the renewed heart is not
' desperately wicked,' it is quite ' deceitful ' enough to become so,
if God be forgotten a moment !
" Keep a common-place book, and put into it, not only facts
and thoughts, but observations on form, and color, and nature,
and little sketches, even to the form of beautiful leaves. They
will all have their charm, all do their work in consolidating your
ideas. Put everything into it. ... Strive to put every idea
into a tangible form, and write it down. Distrust every idea which
you cannot put into words ; or rather distrust your own conception
of it. Not so with feelings. Therefore write much. Try to put
everything in its place in the great system . . . seeing the
realities of Heaven and Earth."
CHAPTER V.
18421843.
AGED 23-24.
Curate Life Letter from Colonel W. Brighter Prospects Correspondence
Renewed Promise of Preferment Leaves Eversley.
A YEAR passed by of silence and self-discipline, hard reading and
parish duties. That sorrow was doing its work, his own words to
his parents will testify.
". . . Christianity heightens as well as deepens the human as
well as the divine affections. 1 am happy, for the less hope, the more
faith God knows what is best for us, and very lucky
that He does, for I am sure we do not. Continual resignation, at
last I begin to find, is the secret of continual strength. ' Daily
dying] as Behnien interprets it, is the path of daily living. . . ."
His mother now paid him a visit, and she gives this account of
his surroundings :
EVERSLEY, 1842.
" Here I am, in a humble cottage in the corner of a sunny
green, a little garden, whose flower-beds are surrounded with tall
and aged box, is fenced in from the path with a low white paling.
The green is gay with dogs, and pigs, and geese, some running
frolic races, and others swimming in triumph in a glassy pond, where
they are safe from all intruders. Every object around is either
picturesque or happy, fulfilling in their different natures the end of
their creation Surely it must have been the especial
providence of God that directed us to this place ! and the thought
of this brightens every trial. There is independence in every good
sense of the word, and yet no loneliness. The family at the Brewery
are devoted to Charles, and think they cannot do enough for him.
The dear old man says he has been praying for years for such a
time to come, and that Eversley has not been so blessed for sixty
years. Need I say rejoice with me. Here I sit surrounded by
your books and little things which speak of you."
To his college friend, Peter A. L. H. Wood, Esq. (now Rector
of Copford, Essex), he writes to beg for a visit in his solitude.
68 Charles Kings ley.
"PETER! EVERSLEY, August 5, 1842.
" Whether in the glaring saloons of Almack's, or making love
in the equestrian stateliness of the park, or the luxurious recum-
bency of the ottoman, whether breakfasting at one, or going to bed
at three, thou art still Peter, the beloved of my youth, the staff of
my academic days, the regret of my parochial retirement ! Peter !
I am alone ! Around me are the everlasting hills, and the ever-
lasting bores of the country ! My parish is peculiar for nothing
but want of houses and abundance of peat bogs ; my parishioners
remarkable only for aversion to education, and a predilection for
fat bacon. I am wasting my sweetness on the desert air I say my
sweetness, for I have given up smoking, and smell no more. Oh,
Peter, Peter, come down and see me ! Oh that I could behold
your head towering above the fir-trees that surround my lonely
dwelling. Take pity on me ! I am ' like a kitten in the washhouse
copper with the lid on ! ' And, Peter, prevail on some of your friends
here to give me a day's trout-fishing, for my hand is getting out of
practice. But, Peter, I am, considering the oscillations and perplex
circumgurgitations of this piece-meal world, an improved man. I
am much more happy, much more comfortable, reading, thinking,
and doing my duty much more than ever I did before in my life.
Therefore I am not discontented with my situation, or regretful
that I buried my first-class in a country curacy, like the girl who
shut herself up in a band-box on her wedding night (ride Rogers' s
'Italy.') And my lamentations are not general (for I do not want
an inundation of the froth and tide-wash of Babylon the Great), but
particular, being solely excited by want of thee, oh Peter, who art
very pleasant to me, and wouldst be more so if thou wouldst
come and eat my mutton, and drink my wine, and admire my
sermons, some Sunday at Eversley.
" Your faithful friend,
" BOANERGES ROAR-AT-THE-CLODS."
His friend responded to the call. " I paid him a visit," he says,
" at Eversley, where he lived in a thatched cottage. So roughly was
he lodged that I recollect taking him some game, which was dried
to a cinder in the cooking and quite spoiled ; but he was as happy
as if he were in a palace. . . ."
And now the young curate, who had gained the love and respect
of the parish, was rewarded by brigher prospects. He had little
society, during his first year of curate life, except in the parish and
at Sandhurst, where he had one or two friends in the Senior de-
partment of the Military College. One of these friends thus de-
scribes their intercourse at this time :
Brighter Days. 69
FROM COLONEL W.
"My memory often runs back to the days at Sandhurst, wher. I
used to meet dear Kingsley continually in his little curate ro< 1;,
at the corner of the Green at Eversley ; when he told me of jis
attachment to one whom he feared he should never be able to
marry, and that he supposed that he should live the rest of his life
reading old books, and knocking his head against the ceiling of his
room, like a caged bird. And well I remember a particular Sun-
day, when walking with him to his church in the afternoon, having
dined with him at mid-day. It was a lovely afternoon in the au-
tumn passing through the corn in sheaf, the bells ringing, and
people, young and old, gathering together near the church. He,
looking down on the Rectory house, said to me
" 'Oh ! how hard it is to go through life without wishing for the
goods of others ! Look at the Rectory ! Oh, if I were there with
a wife, how happy,' &c. God seemed to hear the desire of his
creature, for when the next year's corn was in sheaf, you were with
him at the Rectory. And he has told me in after years that his life
with you was one of constantly increasing love. I called at his
cottage one morning, and I found him almost beside himself, stamp-
ing his things into a portmanteau. ' What is the matter, dear
Kingsley ? ' ' 1 am engaged. I am going to see her now to-day?
I was so glad, and left him to his joy.
<( My tears will come to my eyes in writing these lines, for I
loved Kingsley as well as man can love man. I have only one lit-
tle scratch of a drawing of his. I have many pleasant^ reminiscen-
ces, sparks of his large mind, as in friendly chat we would sit and
draw together, or walk by river side and think of Nature, and all
one's strongest desires, for a heart to share every thought and
sight. And now this picture in life is over "
In September, 1843, through the kindness of Lord Sidney Os-
borne, a relation of his future wife, Lord Portman promised to give
Charles Kingsley one of the first small livings that fell to his gift,
and in the mean time advised him to apply for the curacy of Pim-
perne, near Blandford, which with a good house would be vacant
in the follosving spring. This being secured, Bishop Simmer gave
permission for his resigning the curacy of Eversley at Christmas.
The correspondence, which had dropped for a year, was now
resumed.
EVERSLEY CROSS, October, 1843.
" I am getting very strong; and have been threshing wheat a
good deal these last two wet days, which is splendid exercise. I
look forward to working in the garden at Pimperne. What a place
for summer nights ! We will go and sit in the church sometimes
70 Charles Kings ley.
on summer nights, too .... but I am not fond, you know,
of going into churches to pray. We must go up into the chase in
the evenings, and pray there with nothing but God's cloud temple
between us and His heaven ! And His choir of small birds and
night crickets and booming beetles, and all happy things who
praise Him all night long ! And in the still summer noon, too,
with the lazy-paced clouds above, and the distant sheep-bell, and
the bee humming in the beds of thyme, and one bird making the
hollies ring a moment, and then all still hushed awe-bound, as
the great thunderclouds slide up from the far south ! Then, there
to praise God ! Ay, even when the heaven is black with wind, the
thunder crackling over our heads, then to join in the paean of the
storm-spirits to Him whose pageant of power passes over the earth
and harms us not in its mercy !
" I once scandalized a man who had been sentimentalising about
Gothic aisles, by telling him that all agreed that they were built in
imitation of the glades of forest trees, with branches interlacing
overhead ! and that I liked God's work better than man's ! Jn the
Cathedral, we worship alone and the place is dumb, or speaks only
to us, raising a semi-selfish emotion ; that is, having its beginning
and end in us. In the forest, every branch and leaf, with the thou-
sand living things which cluster on them, all worship with us ! "
EVERSLEY, November, 1843.
" . . . As to self-improvement, the true Catholic mode of
learning is,- to ' prove all things,' as far as we can without sin or
the danger of it, and 'hold fast that which is good.' Let us never
be afraid of trying anything, though copied from people of different
opinions to our own. And let us never, never be afraid of changing
our opinions not our knowledge. If we should find fasting unsuc-
cessful, we will simply give it up and so on with all practices and
opinions not expressed in Scripture. That is a form of pride
which haunts the more powerful minds, the unwillingness to go
back from one's declared opinion, but it is not found in great child-
like geniuses. Fools may hold fast to their scanty stock through
life, and we must be very cautious in drawing them from it for
where can they supply its place ? Therefore, there is no more
unloving, heartless man-murderer, than the man who goes about
trying, for the display of his own ' talents ' (a word I dislike), to
shake people in their belief, even when that belief is not quite
sound. Better believe in ghosts 'with no heads and jackboots
on, 1 like my Eversley people, than believe in nothing but self !
Therefore Maurice's loving, Christian rule is, 'Never take away
from a man even the shadow of a spiritual truth, unless you can
give him substance in return.' Therefore, let those less educated
or less holy minds, who have found some truth, hold it in peace
Wandering Minstrels. 71
not tear up all their belief along with their prejudices, tares and
wheat together, as the Tractarians are doing to the poor of England
now ! But those who discover much truth ay, who make perhaps
only one truth really their own, a living integral law of their spirits
must, in developing it, pass through many changes of opinion.
They must rise and fall Back, and rise higher again, and fall and
rise again, till they reach the level table-land of truth, and can look
down on men toiling and stumbling in the misty valleys, where the
rising sunlight has not yet found its way. Or perhaps, their own
minds will oscillate, like a pendulum, between Dualism and Uni-
tarianism, or High Church and Low Church, until the oscillations
become gradually smaller, and subside into the Rest of Truth !
the peace which passes understanding ! I fancy it is a law, that
the greater the mind, the stronger the heart, the larger will ihe
oscillations be, but the less they will be visible to the world, be-
cause the wise man will not act outwardly upon his opinions until
they ha.ve become knowledge, and his mind is in a state of rest.
This 1 think the true, the only doctrine of Reserve reserve of our
own fancies, not of immutable truth.
". . . People smile at the 'enthusiasm of youth ' that
enthusiasm which they themselves secretly look back at with a
sigh, perhaps unconscious that it is partly their own fault that they
ever lost it. Is it not strange, that the only persons who appear
to me to carry to the grave with them the joyousness, simplicity,
and lovingness and trust of children, are the most exalted Chris-
tians ? Think of St. John, carried into the Church at Smyrna, at
the age of ninety-nine, and with his dying breath repeating the
same simple words, ' Little children, love one another.' "
EVERSLEY, October 27.
" . . . I have been making a fool of myself for the last ten
minutes, according to" the world's notion of folly, for there have
been some strolling fiddlers under the window, and I have been
listening and crying like a child. Some quick music is so inex-
pressibly mournful. It seems just like one's own feelings exulta-
tion and action, with the remembrance of past sorrow wailing up,
yet without bitterness, tender in its shrillness, through the mingled
tide of present joy ; and the notes seem thoughts thoughts pure
of words, and a spirit seems to call to me in them and cry, ' Hast
thou not felt all this?' And I start when I find myself answering
unconsciously, ' Yes, yes, I know it all ! ' Surely we are a part of
all we see and hear!' And then the harmony thickens, and all
distinct sound is pressed together and absorbed in a confused
paroxysm of delight, where still the female treble and the male
base are distinct for a moment, and then one again absorbed
into each other's being sweetened and strengthened by each
72 Charles Kings ley.
other's melody .... why should I not cry ? Those men
have unconsciously told me my own tale ! why should 1 not love
them and pray for them ? Are they not my benefactors ? Have
they not given me more than food and drink ? Let us never de-
spise the wandering minstrel. He is an unconscious witness for
God's harmony a preacher of the world-music the power of
sweet sounds, which is a link between every age and race the
language which all can understand, though few can speak. And
who knows what tender thoughts his own sweet music stirs within
him, though he eat in pot-houses, and sleep in barns ! Ay,
thoughts too deep for words are in those simple notes why
should not we feel them ?...."
EVERSLEY, October, 1843.
" . . . I have been thinking of how we are to order our estab-
lishment at Pimperne. The best way will be, while we are in Somer-
setshire (a season of solemn and delightful preparation for our work)
we will hunt out all the texts in the Bible about masters and ser-
vants, to form rules upon them ; and our rules we will alter and
improve upon in time, as we find out more and more of the true
relation in which we ought to stand to those whom God has placed
under us I feel more and more that the new principle
of considering a servant as a trader, who sells you a certain amount
of work for a certain sum of money, is a devil's principle, and that
we must have none of it, but return as far as we can to the patri-
archial and feudal spirit towards them *
"... And religion, that is, truth, shall be the only thing in our
house. All things must be made to tend to it ; and if they cannot
be made to tend to God's glory, the belief in, and knowledge of the
spiritual world, and the duties and ties of 'humanity, they must be
turned out of doors as part of ' the world.' One thing we must
keep up, if we intend to be anything like witnesses for God, in
perhaps the most sensual generation since Alaric destroyed Rome,
I mean the continual open verbal reference of everything, even
to the breaking of a plate, to God and God's providence, as the
Easterns do. The reason why God's name is so seldom in people's
mouths is not that they reverence Him, as they say, too much to
talk of Him (! ! !), but because they do not think of him !
" About our Parish. No clergyman knows less about the working
of a parish than I do ; but one thing I do know, that I have to
preach Jesus Christ and Him crucified, and to be instant in that, in
season and out of season and at all risks And therefore
I pray daily for the Spirit of love to guide us, and the Spirit of
* He carried out this principle in daily life, and at his death all the servants
in his house had lived with him from seventeen to twenty-six years, and most
of those who had left the rectory, left to go to a home of their own.
Order in daily Work. 73
earnestness to keep us at work. P'or our work must be done by
praying for our people, by preaching to them, in church and out of
church (for all instruction is preaching vide Hooker by leading
them to pray and worship in the liturgy, and by setting them an ex-
ample ; an example in every look, word, and motion, in the pay-
ing of a bill, the hiring of a servant, the reproving of a child.
" We will have no innovations in ceremony. But we will not let
public worship become ' dead bones.' We will strive and pray, day
and night, till we put life into it, till our parish feels that God is the
great Idea, and that all things are in Him, and He in all things.
The local means, to which so much importance is attached now-a-
days, by those very sects who pretend to despise outward instru-
ments, I mean the schools, charities, &c., I know nothing of, in
Pimperne. But we must attend to them (not alter them), and make
them tools for our work, which is to teach men that there is a God,
and that nothing done without Him is done at all, but a mere sham
and makeshift. We must attend the schools and superintend the
teaching, going round to the different classes, and not hearing them
the letter, but trying by a few seasonable words to awaken them to the
spirit ; this is the distinction which is so neglected between the duty
of the parson and his wife, and that of the schoolmaster and mis-
tress The Church Catechism must be the main point of
instruction. Of the Bible, the Proverbs and the Gospels, with parts
picked from the leading points of Old Testament history, are all
they need know. They will soon learn the rest, if they can master
the real meaning and spirit of Solomon and St. John. Few have
done that, and therefore the Bible is a sealed book to the very people
who swear by it, i. e., by some twenty texts in it which lay down
their favorite doctrines plainly enough to be patched into a system,
and those not understood skrn dee]). Let us observe the Ember
days, . . praying over the sins of the clergy, one's own especial-
ly. ... entreating God's mercy on the country, as children of
a land fast hurrying to ruin in her mad love of intellectuality, main-
monism, and false liberty ! and to avert some portion of the coming
evil from Church and nation I see the dawn of better
knowledge. Puseyism is a struggle after it. It has failed already
failed, because unsound ; but the answer which it found in ten
thousand hearts shows that men are yearning for better things than
money, or dogmas, and that God's Spirit has not left us. Maurice
is a struggle after it Thomas Carlyle is a struggle This book of
Bosanquet's (' The Perils of the Nation ') is a struggle All more or
less sound, towards true Christianity, and therefore true national
prosperity. But will they hear the voices which warn them ? . . . .
" But now I must bid good- night, and read my psalms and lessons
and pray "
CHAPTER VI.
1844 1847.
AGED 25-28.
Marriage Curacy of Pimperne Rectory of Eversley Correspondence.
EARLY in 1844 Charles Kingsley was married to Fanny, daughter
of Pascoe Grenfell and Georgiana St. Leger his wife. He had
settled to take possession of the curacy of Pimperne, in Dorset-
shire, in the following spring, but the living of Eversley falling
vacant at that time, a strong effort was made by the parishioners
to get the curate who had worked among them so indefatigably
appointed rector. While the matter was pending, he went down
into Dorsetshire for a few weeks alone to do the duty, staying
either at Durweston Rectory or at Blandford, during which inter-
val the following letters were written :
SALISBURY, March 31, 1844.
". . . I spent a delightful day yesterday. Conceive my
pleasure at finding myself in Bemerton, George Herbert's parish,
and seeing his house and church, and fishing in the very meadows
where he, and Dr. Donne, and Izaak Walton, may have fished be-
fore me. I killed several trout and a brace of grayling, about
three-quarters of a pound each a fish quite new to me, smelling
just like cucumbers. The dazzling chalk-wolds sleeping in the
sun, the clear river rushing and boiling down in one ever-sliding
sheet of transparent silver, the birds bursting into song, and mating
and toying in every hedge-row everything stirred with the gleam
of God's eyes, when ' He reneweth the face of the earth ! ' I had
many happy thoughts ; but I am very lonely. No time for more,
as I am going to prayers in the cathedral."
DURWESTON RECTORY, April i, 1844.
"I looked into and read much of ' Henry Martyn's Life' (East
Indian missionary) last night. My mind is in a chaos about him.
Sometimes one feels inclined to take him at his own word, and
believe him, as he says, a mere hypochondriac : then the next
Carlyle and Wordsworth. 75
moment he seems a saint. I cannot fathom it. Of this I am cer-
tain, that he is a much better man than I am."
BLANDFORD, April 17, 1844.
". . . More and more I find that these* writings of Carlyle' s
do not lead to gloomy discontent that 'theirs is not a dark but a
bright view of life : in reality, more evil speaking against the age
and its inhabitants is thundered from the pulpit daily, by both
Evangelical and Tractarian, than Carlyle has been guilty of in all
his works ; but he finds fault in tangible original language they
speak evil of every one except their own party, but in such con-
ventional language that no ear is shocked by the oft-repeated for-
mulae of ' original sin ' and ' unconverted hearts,' and so on ; and
the man who would be furious if Carlyle had classed him among
the ' valets] bears with perfect equanimity the information of Mr.
B * * *, that he is a ' vessel of wrath,' or of Dr. P * * *, that he has
put himself beyond the pale of Christ's atonement by sin after
baptism. Let us in all things take Dr. Johnson's golden rule :
' First clear your mind of cant."
PIMPERXE, April 21, 1844.
"I have been reading Wordsworth's 'Excursion,' with many
tears and prayers too. To me he is not only poet, but preacher
and prophet of God's new and divine philosophy a man raised as
a light in a dark time, and rewarded by an honored age, for the
simple faith in man and God with which he delivered his message ;
whose real nobility is independent of rank, or conventionalities of
language or manner, which is but the fashion of this world and
passes away. I am trying, in my way, to do good ; but what is
the use of talking to hungry paupers about heaven ? ' Sir,' as my
clerk said to me yesterday, ' there is a weight upon their hearts,
and they care for no hope and no change, for they know they can
be no worse off than they are.' And so they have no spirit to
arise and go to their Father ! Those who lounge upon down beds,
and throw away thousands at Crockford's and Almack's they, the
refined of this earth, have crushed it out of them. I have been
very sad lately seeing this, and seeing, too, the horrid effects of
that new Poor Law. You must be behind the scenes to see the
truth, in places which the Malthus's and 'sknow nothing
of." ....
" S. G. O. is deep in statistics and abuses. Heaven knows,
when there are so many abuses, we ought to thank a man who will
hunt them out. I will never believe that a man has a real love for
the good and beautiful, except he attacks the evil and the disgusting
the moment he sees it ! Therefore you must make up your mind
* "The Miscellanies," and "Past and Present."
76 Charles Kings ley.
to see me, with God's help, a hunter out of abuses till the abuses
cease only till then. It is very easy to turn our eyes away from
ugly sights, and so consider ourselves refined. The refined man to
me is he who cannot rest in peace with a coal-mine, or a factory, or
a Dorsetshire peasant's house near him, in the state in which they
are I am deep in ' The Perils of the Nation.' . . . ."
SUNDAY NIGHT.
" You know, I suppose, all that I can tell you. I am to see Sir
John Cope at Arthur's Club House, to-morrow afternoon, and, at
all events, shall return to you Monday, perhaps Rector of Evers-
ley ! Forgive this short letter, as I am worn out ; but a bright
future opens. Blessed be God. . . ."
MONDAY.
" All is settled at last. Sir John has given me the living, and is
going to see the Bishop to-day, and I am to go down to Eversley
to-morrow. He wishes me to settle there as soon as possible.
God never fails those who put their trust in him "
" . . . The presentation is to be ready in a few days. I am
then to be instituted here in town, and then, please God, we shall
get to Eversley on Friday or Saturday. The packing, van, &c.,
and some little comforts before we take possession, I have settled.
Congratulations, as you may suppose, are plentiful ....
and I had the pleasure of Bringing the news myself to Eversley.
. . . . I go to the Bishop of Winchester to-morrow. I
took the whole duty at St. George's Hospital yesterday morning,
and preached a charity sermon at St. Luke's in the afternoon, and
at the old church in the evening ; and am very tired, body and
mind My brain has been in such a whirl that I have
had no time for deep thoughts. I can understand, by the events
of the last few days, how the minds of men of business, at the
very moment they are wielding the vastest commercial or physical
power, may yet be degraded and superficial. One seems to do so
much in ' business,' and yet with how little fruit : we bustle, and
God works. That glorious, silent Providence such a contrast to
physical power, with its blast furnaces and roaring steam engines !
" Farewell till to-morrow "
He now settled as rector, at Eversley, with his wife ; and life
flowed on peacefully, notwithstanding the anxieties of a sorely
neglected parish, and the expenses of an old house which had not
been repaired for more than a hundred years. Owing to the cir-
cumstances under which the living fell vacant, the incoming tenant
got no dilapidation-money, and had arrears of Poor Rates and
' Settled at Eversley. 77
the pay of the curate to meet. The house itself was damp and
unwholesome, surrounded with ponds which overflowed with every
heavy rain, and flooded not only the garden and stables, but all
the rooms on the ground floor, keeping up master and servants
sometimes all night, bailing out the water in buckets for hours
together ; and drainage works had to be done before it was habi-
table. From these causes, and from the charities falling almost
entirely on the incumbent, the living, though a good one, was for
years unremunerative ; but the young rector, happy in his home
and his work, met all difficulties bravely ; and gradually in the
course of years, the land was drained ; the ponds which ran through
the garden and stood above the level of the dwelling rooms were
filled up, and though the house was never healthy, it was habitable.
New clubs for the poor, shoe club, coal club, maternal society,
a loan fund and lending library, were established one after another.
An intelligent young parishioner, who is still school-master, was
sent by the rector to the Winchester Training College ; an adult
school was held in the rectory three nights a week for all the win-
ter months ; a Sunday school met there every Sunday morning and
afternoon ; and weekly cottage lectures were established in all the
out-lying districts for the old and feeble. The fact of there being
no school-house had a good effect in drawing the people within the
humanizing influences of the rectory, which was always open to
them, and will ever be associated in the minds of young and old
of this generation at Eversley, with the kind and courteous sym-
pathy and the living teaching which they all got from their rector.
At the beginning of his ministry there was not a grown-up man
or woman among the laboring class who could read or write for
as boys and girls they had all been glad to escape early to field
work from the parish clerk's little stifling room, ten feet square,
where cobbling shoes, teaching, and caning went on together. As
to religious instruction, they had had none.
The church was nearly empty before the new curate came in
1842. The farmers' sheep, when pasture was scarce, were turned
into the neglected churchyard. Holy Communion was celebrated
only three times a year ; the communicants were few ; the alms
were collected in an old wooden saucer. A cracked kitchen basin
inside the font held the water for Holy Baptism. At the altar,
which was covered by a moth-eaten cloth, stood one old broken
78 Charles Kings ley.
chair; and so averse were the parish authorities to any change
that when the new rector made a proposal for monthly commu-
nions, it was only accepted on his promising himself to supply the
wine for the celebration, the churchwardens refusing to provide
except for the three great festivals. This he continued to do till a
few years since, when Sir William Cope undertook the office of
rector's churchwarden, and at once put this matter on a right
footing.
The evil results of such years of neglect could only be conquered
by incessant labor, and the young rector's whole energies were de
voted to the parish. He had to redeem it from barbarism : but
it was a gentle barbarism, for the people, though not intelligently
responsive, were a kindly people, civil and grateful for notice, and
as yet wholly uninjured by indiscriminate almsgiving. He was
daily with them in their cottages, and made a point of talking to
the men and boys at their field work, till he was personally inti-
mate with every soul in the parish, from the women at their wash-
tubs, to the babies in the cradle, for whom he always had a loving
word or look. Nothing escaped his eye. That hunger for knowl-
edge on every subject, which characterized him through life, and
made him ready to learn from every laboring man what he could
tell him of his own farm work or the traditions of the place, had
put him when he was curate on an easy human footing with the
parishioners and was one secret of his influence ; so that before the
state of his health obliged him, in 1848, to take a curate, he had
got the parish thoroughly in hand.
It was from his regular house to house visiting in the week, still
more than his church services, that he acquired his power. If a
man or woman were suffering or dying, he would go to them five
and six times a day and night as well as day for his own heart's
sake as well as for their soul's sake. Such visiting was very rare
in those clays. For years he seldom dined out ; never during the
winter months, when the adult school and the cottage readings
took up six evenings in the week ; and he seldom left the parish
except for a few days at a time to take his family to the sea-side,
which occurred the more frequently from the constant illness pro-
duced by the damp rectory ; but he was never easy away from his
work.
His only relaxation was a few hours' fishing in some stream close
First Confirmation. 79
by. He never took a gun in hand, because from the poaching
tastes of his people he felt it might bring him into unpleasant col-
lision with them, and for this reason he never wished to be made a
magistrate, lest he should have to sit on the bench in judgment on
his parishioners. He could not afford to hunt, and when in after
years he took a gallop now and then to refresh himself, and to see
his friends in the hunting-field, where he was always welcome, it
was on some old horse which he had picked up cheap for parson's
work. "Another old screw, Mr. Kingsley,'' was said to him often
by middle class men, who were well aware that he could ride, and
that he knew a good horse when he saw it. They perhaps respected
him all the more for his self-denial. At this time there were ken-
nels in the parish ; the fox-hounds (now known as Mr. Garth's)
were kept at Bramshill, Sir John Cope being Master. His stable-
men were a very respectable set of men, and most regular at church ;
and the rector, though he could not afford to ride, had always a
friendly word with the huntsman and whips ; his love of horses and
dogs and knowledge of sport made an intimacy between them, and
he soon won their respect and affection. Of this they gave early
proof, for when the first confirmation after his induction was given
out in church, and he invited all who wished to be confirmed to
come down to the rectory for weekly instruction, the stud groom, a
respectable man of five-and-thirty, was among the first to come,
bringing a message from the whips and stablemen to say they had
all been confirmed once, but if Mr. Kingsley wished it they would
all be happy to come again !
It had hitherto been the custom in Eversley and the neighbor-
ing parishes to let the confirmation candidates get over as they
could to some distant church, where the catechumens of four or five
parishes assembled to meet the bishop. Consequently the public-
houses were usually full on confirmation day, which often ended in
a mere drunken holiday for boys and girls, who had many miles to
walk, and had neither superintendence nor refreshment by the \vay
provided for them. When he became rector, matters were ar-
ranged very differently for the Kversley people. Each candidate
was prepared separately as well as in class, for six weeks before-
hand, and for the six Sundays previous to the confirmation, the
catechism, creeds, and office of confirmation explained publicly.
On the day itself the young people assembled early foi; refreshment
8o Charles Kings ley.
at the rectory, whence they started in two vans for Heckfield
church. He himself went with the boys, and his wife or some
trustworthy person with the girls, and never lost sight of them till
they returned, the girls to their homes, the boys and young men,
some of them married men, who, from long years of neglect, had
never been confirmed, to the rectory, where a good dinner awaited
them, and they spent the evening in wandering over the glebe, or
looking at curiosities and picture-books indoors, ending with a few
words on their duty. So henceforth the solemn day was always
associated with pleasant thoughts and an innocent holiday, which
made the young people more inclined to come to him the week
following to be prepared for Holy Communion. The appearance
and manner of the Eversley catechumens were often remarked on
the quiet dresses of the girls, and the neat caps provided for
them. These seem trifling matters to dwell on in days when such
things are done decently and in order in all parishes : but thirty-
two years ago Eversley set the example on Confirmation as well
as on many other days.
His preaching was always remarkable. The only fault which
Bishop Sumner found with the sermons he took up to show him
when he went to Farnham for his Priest's Ordination, was that they
were too colloquial : but it was this very peculiarity which arrested
and attracted his hearers, and helped to fill a very empty church.
His original mind and common sense alike revolted from the use
of an unmeaning phraseology, and as all the facts of life were to
him sacred, he was unfettered as to subject-matter and modes of
expression.
During the summer of 1844 he made acquaintance with Mr. Mau-
rice, to whose writings he owed so much ; and the acquaintance
soon strengthened into a deep and enduring friendship. In the fol-
lowing letter he first ventured to consult him on his difficulties.
"Mv DEAR SIR,
"I must apologise for addressing one so much my superior,
and so slightly acquainted with me, but where shall the young
priest go for advice, but to the elder prophet ? To your works I
am indebted for the foundation of any coherent view of the word of
God, the meaning of the Church of England, and the spiritual
phenomena of the present and past ages. And as through your
thoughts God's spirit has given me catholicity, to whom therefore
can 1 better go for details on any of these points ?
Letter from F. D. Maurice. 8 1
" Two things are very troublesome to me at present. The want
of any philosophical method of reading the Scriptures, without see-
ing in them merely proofs of human systems ; and the great prev-
alence of the Baptist form of dissent in my parish. The latter I
find myself unable to cope with, founded as it is on supra-lapsarian
Calvinistic dogmas, which have been received into the heart as the
deepest counsels of God.
" I therefore beg the favor of your advice upon these two sub-
jects, and feeling that much may be said that would not be written,
I must beg, if I am not guilty of too great an intrusion, that you
would grant me an interview with you in London.
" I know that the request is informal according to the ways of
the world, but I have faith enough in you to be sure that you will
take the request for what it is, an earnest struggle to get wisdom at
all risks from any quarter where it may be found." ....
The reply was as follows, and is given by the kind permission of
Mr. Maurice's executors.
REV. F. D. MAURICE TO REV. CHARLES KINGSLEY.
July 22, 1844.
" . . . I should be sorry not to give you the experience of
any blunders I may have committed in past time, with such expe-
rience as lias been the fruit of them, and it is sometimes easier to
recover the different fragments of this experience, and to piece
them together in writing than in speaking.
" With respect to the study of the Scriptures, my own great error
has been that I have formed and abandoned so many plans, any
one of which, honestly pursued, might have led to good results.
I fancy this is a prevalent temptation, though I have yielded to it
and suffered from it more than any of my acquaintances. As I
would turn diseases to commodity, or, at least, as God is some-
times mercifully pleased to do this for us, I think I may say that
all the deplorable waste of time which these changes have oc-
casioned, has brought with it this compensation, that I have been
solemnly and inwardly impressed with the truth, that- the Bible, as
a means of attaining to the knowledge of the living God, is pre-
cious beyond all expression or conception ; when made a substi-
tute for that knowledge, may become a greater deadener to the
human spirit than all other books.
"The method of the Bible itself, and the means of its being
overlooked, I think become more anil more clear to us, as \ve keep
this consideration before us. If it be a human history, containing
a gradual discovery of God, which discovery awakens the very fac-
ulties and apprehensions which are to receive it, the treatment of
it as a collection of notions, either about the invisible world or oui
6
82 Charles Kings ley.
own duty, must entirely mislead us in all our studies ; and whether
we rate it high or low, whether we extol it as the one rule of faith,
maintain its authority to be concurrent with that of Church tradi-
tion, or look upon it merely as a set of fragments containing the
speculations of a certain nation about religious questions, the re-
sult will be much the same. In each case the end of the book
will be lost, and therefore all the steps to that end will be confused
and incomprehensible. But if once the teachers in our theological
schools would have courage to proclaim theology to be the knowl-
edge of God, and not the teaching of a religion, I am satisfied that
the scientific character of the Bible could be brought out as con-
spicuously as its practical character, one being seen to be involved
in the other. Then it would not be necessary to assert for theol-
ogy its place in the scientia scientiarum, or to bid others fall into
their places in connection with it, and subordination to it ; nor
would it be necessary to be perpetually proclaiming church author-
ity in favor of such and such doctrines. The truths concerning
God would be felt so essential to the elucidation of those concern-
ing man and nature, the relations of one to the other would be so ev-
ident, there would be such a life infused into the features of human
knowledge, and such a beautiful order and unity in the whole of it,
that the opposition to them would be recognized as proceeding
just as much from prejudice and ignorance, sure to disappear when-
ever there were not moral causes to sustain them, as the opposition
to gravitation or any of the most acknowledged physical or mathe-
matical principles. I do not mean that this effect would follow
suddenly, or that the actual impediments to the gospel from human
pride and wickedness would be less felt. I suppose they would be
more felt after it had followed. But we should not then be obliged
to acknowledge that much of the resistance to the most precious
principles may actually proceed from a love to some others, or
even to those same ; we should not hear such a din of voices cry-
ing out for this thing and that ; and nearly forgetting God in their
love for abstractions ; we should not see so much violent straining
and perverting of texts to serve a purpose ; we should have much
less idolatry of the Bible, and much more reverence for it. And
the hard-working clergy of our parishes, having been trained in
such a school before they entered upon practical duty, would feel
a clearness in their minds, a readiness for occasions, a power of
bringing their studies to bear upon life, instead of being obliged, as
is now so much the case, either to shut their eyes against any new
light, or else to destroy and reconstruct their system each time that
any is vouchsafed to them. But since our universities afford us no
teaching of this kind at present, we must try to profit by the helps
which we have. Our actual work is, I think, the best of these
helps. It forces us, whether we will or no, out of the routine of
systems, and leads us to seek for something in scripture which is
Letter from F. D. Maurice. 83
altogether unlike them. And though I would strongly urge every
one not to lose sight of the idea of that system of which I have
spoken, I would by no means recommend any one who was not
working as a professed theologian in the schools, to spend his time
in contriving how he may adjust his own reading to it. The use of
it to him will be far greater if he recollects that it exists when he
is reading a single book, or chapter, or text, than if he determines
doggedly to follow out the traces of it from Genesis to Revelation.
The subject of his studies, I should think, must be always best de-
termined by the wants of his parish. In preaching, I have always
found it best to follow the order of the services, taking my subject
from the epistle, gospel, collect, or first lesson, and 1 think if we
read on a plan, we can hardly find a much better one. The study
of words also is, I think, of immense profit, especially of families
of words, as e.g., StKcu^oj, oxris, w/x,a, OO-JVYJ, through an epistle, or
through many. Schmidt's 'Concordance' is worth much more, it
seems to me, than Schleusner's or Bretschneider's Lexicons ;
though I do not mean to say they are of no value. I think, too,
that it is desirable, cautiously and deliberately to question our-
selves about the leading idea of any Epistle ; I say cautiously and
deliberately, because the mere taking up with customary formulas
on the subject, such as that, the Epistles to the Romans and Gala-
tians are about justification, will, 1 am satisfied, lead us astray.
These Epistles are, I am convinced, strikingly different in their
object and character. With respect to the Romans, the great mis-
chief is, that commentators generally start from the third chapter,
looking upon the first and second as merely an introduction or
prologue, whereas any simple reader must perceive that St. Paul
enters at once on his subject, and that it is really the ^avcpwcns r/;s
8i(caiocrw7j5 TOU deou, and not an abstract theory of justification."
" . . . It is difficult to speak on the second point in your
letter the Baptists in your parish without knowing how far they
are, or are not, practically Antinomian. In many places they are,
and a very vulgar brutal sect of Antinomians. Mr. Hall, who was
a Baptist, describes such a class of men as existing in his body,
and attacks them with a fury which proves that they must have
acquired great influence, and have been very numerous in his life-
time. In that case I should not be inclined to argue with them
against their ultra-Calvinism, or to show them how it strengthens
them in their evil courses ; I would rather admit what they say
when they refer man's goodness and conversion to the will of God,
and press the assertion of the apostle, ' This is the will of God,
even your sauctification,' that all the purposes of God's decrees
must be to make men righteous as He is, and that if the decrees to
which they appeal do not produce this result, they are not His, but
the devil's. And since their complaint of infant baptism must be
on the ground that the children have yet given no sign of faith ill
84 Charles Kings ley.
God, you may, without any personality, or any direct allusion to
themselves, ask how far the facts warrant us in expecting any
better result from the mature conscious baptism. Supposing, how-
ever, they should be honest, earnest men, however outrageous may
be their statements, I should be disposed rather to take advantage
of their doctrine, than to repudiate it. You say that man's fall,
and all other events, were parts of a great scheme of God. Well !
I grant you that the fall did not in the least frustrate the scheme
of God. I grant you that it is very wrong to speak as if He had
merely devised a scheme as a remedy for the consequences of the
fall. Christ was before all things, and by Him all things consist.
In Him He created man, and His incarnation, though it came
later than the fall, was really in God's purpose before it. What
we preach is, that men, being endued with that flesh and blood
which Christ took, are to be looked upon as objects of God's love,
and that they are to be accused of setting at nought that love.
We do not set aside election ; our baptism is the witness for it.
By it we refer all things to God ; we testify that He chooses with-
out reference to their previous merits or holiness, and that all gifts
and graces come from Him. Of course such a statement as this
will be varied according to the capacities of the auditor, and the
nature of his objections ; but it is the kind of language I should
use, and that not from any calculation as to the effects it might
produce, but from believing it to be the truest and honestest. In
supra-lapsarian Calvinism, there lies a deep recognition of God as
a living being, an originating will, which the feeble, frittering
phrases of Arminianism can provide no substitute for. The great
misery of the Calvinist is, his constant substitution of the idea of
sovereignty for that of righteousness, which is the one always
brought before us in Scripture. I would seek to deliver him from
that evil, but as far as possible keeping entire and unhurt that
which he has already." ....
We return to his own letters.
The news of his brother Lieut. Kingsley's death from fever in
Torres Straits, on board H.M.S. "Royalist," now reached Eng-
land, and he writes to his wife from
CHELSEA, February 26, 1845.
" . . . It is sad very sad but what is to be said ? I saw
him twice last night in two different dreams strong and well and
so much grown and I kissed him and wept over him and woke
to the everlasting No !
"As far as externals go, it has been very sad. The sailors say
commonly that there is but a sheet of paper between Torres Straits
Death of Lieut. Kings ley. 85
and Hell. And there he lay, and the wretched crew, in the little
brig, roasting and pining, day after day never heard of, or hearing
of living soul for a year and a half. The commander died half
the crew died and so they died and died on, till in May no officer
was left but Gerald, and on the lyth of September he died too,
and so faded away, and we shall never see him more for ever ?
God that saved me knows. Then one Parkinson, the boatswain,
had to promote himself to keep the pendant flying, all the officers
being dead, and in despair left his post and so brought the brig
home to Singapore, with great difficulty, leaking, with her mast
sprung her crew half dead a doomed vessel. O God, Thou
alone knowest the long bitter withering baptism of fire, wherewith
the poor boy was baptized, day and night alone with his own soul.
And yet Thou wert right as ever perhaps there was no way but
that to bring him to look himself in the face, and know that life
was a reality, and not a game ! And who dare say that in those
weary, weary months of hope deferred, the heart eating at itself,
did not gnaw through the crust of vanities (not of so very long
growth either), and the living water which he did drink in his
childhood find vent and bubble up ! Why not seeing that God
is love?"
Early in 1845 Dean Wood, of the Collegiate Church of Middle-
ham, having two vacant stalls to dispose of, offered one to his son,
the Rev. Peter Wood, now Rector of Copford, and the other to
Charles Kingsley, his son's old college friend. The canonries
were honorary, and had no duties connected with them, but being
of historic interest, the two friends accepted the honor, and
went down together to be inducted, to the stalls of St. Anthony
and St. George. The deanery was abolished in 1856, on the
death of Dean Wood. This was his first visit to Yorkshire,
a county attractive to him, from its people as much as from its
scenery.
The rest of the year was spent quietly at Eversley in parish work
and sermon writing : but the state of parties in Church and State,
especially the former, lay heavy on his heart, and made him very
anxious to join or start some periodical in which the young men of
the day could find a vehicle for free expression of their opinions.
The ' Oxford and Cambridge Review ' was then in existence, and
it was proposed to make that the vehicle, and if not, to start a new
one. On all these points Mr. Maurice was consulted, though he
would not join.
86 Charles Kingsley.
TO THE REV. R. COWLEY POWLES.
CHELSEA, December u, 1845.
"About the 'Oxford and Cambridge Review.' Froude seems
to dread any fresh start, .... and I shall chew the cud and
try to find out my own way a little longer before I begin trying to
lead others.
" God help us all ! for such a distempered tangled juncture
must end in the putting of the Gordian knot, by the higher or
lower powers ; and as the higher have fairly denied their cutting
ability and have given it up, perhaps the lower may try their hands
at it. I would, if I were hovering between nine shillings a week
and the workhouse, as the sum of all attainabilities this side of
heaven. God help us all ! I say again ; for there is no counsel to
be got anywhere from man, and as for God's book, men have
made it mean anything and nothing, with their commenting and
squabbling, and doctrine picking, till one asks with Pilate, ' What is
truth ? : Well, at all events, God knows, and Christ the King
knows, and so all must go right at last, but in the meantime ?
" I am just now a sort of religious Shelley, an Ishmael of catho-
licity, a John the Baptist, minus his spirit and power, alas ! be-
moaning myself in the wilderness. Were I to stop praying, and
remembering my own sins daily, 1 could become a Democritus
Junior, and sitting upon the bench of contemplation, make the
world my cock-pit, wherein main after main of cocklets the
' shell,' alas ! scarce ' off their heads.' come forth to slay and be
slain, mutually, for no quarrel, except ' thou-cock art not me-cock,
therefore fight ! ' But I had as soon be the devil as old Lucretius,
to sit with him in the ' Sapientum templa serena, despicere unde
queas alios, atque, cernere passim errantes.' One must feel for
one's fellows so much better, two out of three of them than one's
self, though they will fill themselves with the east wind, and be
proportionably dyspeptic and sulky.
" Nobody trusts nobody. The clergy are split up into innumer-
able parties, principally nomadic. Every one afraid to speak.
Every one unwilling to listen to his neighbor ; and in the mean-
time vast sums are spent, and vast work undertaken, and yet
nobody is content. Everybody swears we are going backward.
Everybody swears it is not his fault, but the Evangelicals, or the
Puseyites, or the Papists, or the ministry ; or everybody, in short,
who does not agree with him. Pardon this jeremiad, but I am an
owl in the desert, and it is too sad to see a huge and busy body of
clergy, utterly unable to gain the confidence or spiritual guidance
of the nation, and yet never honestly taking the blame each man
upon himself, and saying, ' I, not ye have sinned.'
" Pardon, again, ihis threnodia, but I am sick of matters, and do
earnestly wish for some one to whom to pour out my heart. The
Hiving a Swarm of Bees. 87
principles which the great kings and bishops of the middle ages,
and our reformers of the i6th century felt to be the foundation of
a Church and nation, are now set at nought equally by those
who pretend to worship the middle ages, and those who swear by
the reformers. And Popery and Puritanism seem to be fighting
their battle over again in England, on the foul middle ground of
mammonite infidelity. They are re-appearing in weaker and less
sincere forms, but does that indicate the approach of their individ-
ual death, or our general decay ? He who will tell me this shall be
my prophet : till then 1 must be my own
" . . . . My game is gradually opening before me, and my ideas
getting developed, and ' fixed,' as the Germans would say. But,
alas ! as Hare has it, is not in one sense ' every man a liar ? ' false
to his own idea, again and again, even if, which is rare no\v-a-days,
we have one ? "
TO HIS WIFE.
EVERSLKY, May, 1846.
"... I got home at four this morning after a delicious
walk a poem in itself. I never saw such a sight before as the
mists on the heath and valleys, and never knew what a real bird
chorus was. I am lonely enough, but right glad I came, as there
is plenty to do I shall start to-morrow morning, and
will lose no time waiting for coaches at Ryde, but walk on at once
to Shanklin. St. Elizabeth progresses, and consolidates
I have had a great treat to-day ; saw a swarm of bees hived, for
the first time in my life. Smith was gone to Heckfield, so G.
White sent his cart for old Home ; and I stood in the middle of
the flying army, and saw the whole to my great delight. Certainly
man, even in the lowest grade, is infinitely wonderful, and infinitely
brave give him habit and self-confidence. To see all those little
poisonous insects crawling over Home, wrapt in the one thought
of their new-born sister-queen ! I hate to think that it is vile self-
interest much less mere brute magnetism (called by the ignorant
'instinct'), which takes with them the form of loyalty, prudence,
order, self-sacrifice. How do we know that they have no souls ?
'The beasts which perish ?' Ay, but put against that 'the spirit
of the beast which goeth downward to the earth' and whither
then ? ' Man perisheth,' too, in scripture language, yet not for
ever. But I will not dream.
" I fancy you and baby playing in the morning. Bless you, my
two treasures I had a most busy and interesting day
yesterday in London. Called on * * * and found him under-
going all the horrors of a deep, and as I do think, healthy baptism
-of fire not only a conversion, but a discovery that God and the
devil are living realities, fighting for his body and soul. This,
in a man of vast thought and feeling, who has been for years a
88 Charles Kingsley.
confirmed materialist, is hard work. He entreated me not to
leave him
" God help us all. and save our country not so much from the
fate of France, as from the fate of Rome internal decay, and fall-
ing to pieces by its own weight ; but I will say no more of this
perhaps 1 think too much about it." ....
TO THE REV. R. C. POWLES.
December, 1846.
" Do not, for God's sake, compliment me. If you knew the
mean, inconsistent, desultory being I am in action, in spite of my
fine words, you would be ashamed of me, as I am of myself. But
I cannot stave off the conviction of present danger and radical
disease in our national religion. And though I laugh at myself
sometimes for conceit and uncharitableness tamen usque recurrit
that hand-writing on the wall ; that ' mene, mene ' against Angli-
canism and Evangelicalism at once both of which more and more
daily prove to me their utter impotence to meet our social evils.
Six months in a country parish is enough to prove it. What is to
be done I do not see. A crisis, political and social, seems approach-
ing, and religion, like a rootless plant, may be brushed away in the
struggle. Maurice is full of fear I had almost said despondence
and he, as you know, has said in his last book, that ' The real struggle
of the day will be, not between Popery and Protestantism, but be-
tween Atheism and Christ.' And here we are daubing walls with
untempered mortar quarrelling about how we shall patch the
superstructure, forgetting that the foundation is gone Faith in
anything. As in the days of Noah with the Titans as in the days
of Mahomet with the Christian sects of the East, they were eating,
and drinking, and quarrelling, no doubt, and behold the flood
came and swept them all away. And even such to me seems the
prospect of the English Church.
" People say indignantly, ' Oh ! but look at her piety ; look at
the revival ; her gospel doctrines ; her church-building. She is
beginning to live and not to die.' But we who have read history
know how the candle always flames up at the last with a false gal-
vanic life, when the spirit is gome. Remember the Church in Eng-
la'nd just before the Reformation, how she burst out into new life ;
how she reformed her monasteries; how she filled her pulpits;
how she built more churches and colleges in fifty years than she had
in two hundred before Somersetshire as a single example how
she was in every respect, within as well as without, immeasurably
improved just before the monasteries were dissolved. Bat her
time was come. 'The old order' was to 'change,' 'giving place
to the new' while God 'fulfils Himself in many ways,' as Tennyson
has it. And not even a More and a Fisher could save her from
A Periodical Proposed. 89
her fire-death, and phoenix resurrection. Mene ! Mene ! I say
again for us.
" But we must, in the widest and divinest sense, make friends of
the Mammon of unrighteousness. It is the new commercial aris-
tocracy ; it is the scientific go-ahead-ism of the day which must
save us, and which we must save. We have licked the feet of the
feudal aristocrats for centuries, and see whither they have brought
us, or let us bring ourselves. In plain truth, the English clergy
must Arnold-ise, if they do not wish to go either to Rome or to the
workhouse, before fifty years are out. There is, I do believe, an
Arnoldite spirit rising ; but most ' laudant, non sequuntur.' De-
cent Anglicanism, decent Evangelical Conservatism (or Evangeli-
calism) having become the majority, is now quite Conservative,
and each party playing Canute and the tide, as it can scramble
into the chair of authority. I would devote soul and body to get
together an Arnoldite party of young men. If we could but begin
a periodical in which every one should be responsible by name for
his own article, thereby covering any little differences of opinion,
such as must always exist in a reforming party (though not in a
dead-bone-galvanising one, like the Tractarians). If we could but
start anything daring and earnest as a ' coroccio,' or flag of misery,
round which, as round David in the mountains, the spiritual rag-
tag might rally, and howl harmonious the wrongs of the clergy and
of literary men, it were a great thing gained !
" I have had serious thoughts of what such a thing ought to be.
Its two mottoes should be Anti-Manichreism (and therefore Anti-
Tractarian, and Anti-Evangelical) and Anti-Atheism. To attack
unsparingly those two things in every one, from the bishop to the
peasant ; and to try, on the positive side, to show how all this pro-
gress of society in the present day is really of God, and God's
work, and has potential and latent spiritual elements, which it is
the duty and the glory of the clergy, if they are a clergy, to unfold
and christen. We should require a set of articles on Church Re-
form, a set on the Art of Worship, which should show that the
worshipless state of Evangelicalism is no more necessary than good,
and that Protestantism can just as much inspire itself into a glorious
artistic ritual of its own, as Popery and Anglicanism have into one
of their own. Then we should want a set of Condition-of-the-Poor-
Ballads or articles, or anything ' spicy ' on that point. A set on
the Religion of Science, and a set on Modern Poetry and the
Drama, cursing the opera and praying for the revival of the legiti-
mate.
"This, I think, might keep the game alive, if men would only be
bold and 'ride recklessly across country.' As soon as a man's
blood is cool, the faster he "goes the safer he goes. Try to pick
your way and you tumble down. If men would but believe this
and be bold; we want some of that 'absolutism' which gave
90 Charles Kingslcy.
strength to the Middle Ages ; and it is only the tyranny of fashion
and respectability which keeps us from it ; for put the Englishman
into a new country, break the thrall of habit and the fear of man,
and he becomes great, absolute, Titanic at once."
The Magazine plan came to nothing, and 1846 passed une vent-
less in the routine of parish work and home happiness. Adult
classes, a music class on Hullah's plan to improve the church
music (which had been entirely in the hands of three or four poor
men, with a trombone and two clarionets) brought his people on
several nights in the week up to the rectory, where the long, un-
furnished dining-room served the purpose of schoolroom. He never
cared to leave his quiet home, doubly enriched by the presence of
a little daughter.
The following year his " Life of St. Elizabeth," which was
begun in prose in 1842, and had been gradually growing under his
hand, took the form of a drama. After working at it in this new
form for some months, the thought of publishing it crossed his
mind ; but he was so uncertain as to whether it was worth print-
ing, that he decided nothing till he had consulted four friends on
whose judgment and poetical verdict he could rely the Hon. and
Rev. Gerald Wellesley, then Rector of Strathfieldsaye, now Dean
of Windsor ; Rev. F. D. Maurice ; Rev. Derwent Coleridge, of
St. Mark's ; and the Rev. R. C. Powles. Their opinion was unani-
mous, but the difficulty was to find a publisher who would under-
take the work of a young and unknown author. He took the MSS.
to London, from whence he wrote home.
" I breakfasted with Maurice this morning, and went over a great
deal of St. Elizabeth, and I cannot tell you how thankful I am to
God about it. He has quite changed his mind about scene i of
act ii., Elizabeth's bower. He read it to Powles, who is decidedly
for keeping it in just as it is, and thinks it ought to offend no one.
He is very desirous to show the MSS. to A. G. Scott, Mrs. H.
Coleridge, Tennyson, and Van Artevelde Taylor. He says that
it ought to do great good with those who can take it in, but for
those who cannot, it ought to have a preface : and has more than
hinted that he will help me to one, by writing me something which,
if I like, I can prefix. What more would you have ?...."
"Coleridge's opinion of the poem is far higher than I expected.
He sent me to Pickering with a highly recommendatory note ; which
however, joined with Maurice's preface, was not sufficient to make
him take the risk off my hands.
St. Elizabeth in Press. 91
"I am now going to Parker's, in the Strand. I am at once
very happy, very lonely, and very anxious. How absence in-
creases love ! It is positively good sometimes to be parted, that
one's affection may become conscious of itself, and proud, and
humble, and thankful accordingly "
Messrs. Parker, of 445 West Strand, undertook the publication,
and he writes joyfully to Mr. Powles :
"St. Elizabeth is in the press, having been taken off my hands
by the heroic magnanimity of Mr. J. Parker, West Strand, who,
though a burnt child, does not dread the fire. No one else would
have it.
"Maurice's preface comes out with it, and is inestimably not only
to I myself I, but to all men who shall have the luck to read it,
and the wit to understand it. I had hoped to have shown it to
you before it went, but ' non concessere columnar.' "
His eldest son was born this year, and named after Mr. Maurice,
who with Mr. Powles, stood sponsors to the boy. In the summer
he took his wife and two children for six weeks to Milford, a little
sea-side place near the edge of the New Forest. It was his first
six weeks' holiday since his marriage, which he earned by taking
the Sunday services of Pennington, near Lymington. Here he had
a horse, and the rides in the beautiful scenery of the New Forest,
dear to him from old association with his father's youth and man-
hood, excited his imagination. It was only either at a great crisis
in his life, or in a time when all his surroundings were in perfect
harmony, that he could compose poetry. And now, when in the
forest, and in the saddle once more, or alone with his beloved ones,
with leisure to watch his babies, his heart's spring bubbled up into
song, and he composed several ballads : " Oh she tripped over
Ocknell plain," "The Red King," and "The Outlaw."
He explored the forest day after day, with deep delight, and
laid up a store of impressions which in later years he began to
work up into a New Forest Novel. This, however, was never
completed.
CHAPTER VII.
1848.
AGED 29.
Publication of " Saint's Tragedy "Chartist Riots Tenth of April Politics for
the People Professorship at Queen's College " Yeast " Illness.
THIS year, so marked in the history of Europe, was one of the
most important of Charles Kings-ley's life. " The Saint's Tragedy"
was published soon after Christmas, and, though it made little im-
pression on the literary world in England, yet gave him in one
sense a new position, especially among young men at the universi-
ties. The Drama was eagerly read at Oxford, and fiercely at-
tacked by the high church party, who were to be made still more
bitter against its author by the publication of "Yeast," which came
out later in the year as a serial in " Eraser's Magazine." He was
surprised himself to find the interest "The Saint's Tragedy" had
excited at Oxford. In Germany it was read and appreciated,
and Chevalier Bunsen expressed his opinion in very strong terms
about it. In higher quarters still the genius of the author was
recognized.
The Tragedy was reviewed, not very favorably, by Mr. (after-
wards Professor) Conington at Oxford. This, however, led to an
acquaintance, between author and critic, which soon ripened into
friendship ; and when, in the course of a few months, " Politics for
the People " were published, Mr. Conington became not only a
warm ally in the cause, but a regular contributor, and constant
visitor at Eversley.
During the winter he went to Oxford to stay a few days with his
friend, Mr. Povvles, Fellow of Exeter : and he writes to his
wife :
OXFORD, March 30, 1848.
". . . I may, I suppose, tell you that I am here undergoing
the new process of being made a lion of, at least so Powles tells
me. They got up a meeting for me, and the club was crowded
Parish Work. 93
with men U'.erely to see poor me, so I found out afterwards : very
lucky that I did not know it during the process of being trotted
out. It is very funny and new. 1 dine this afternoon with Con-
ington ; to-morrow with Palgrave ; Monday with Stanley, and so
on. I like Conington very much ; he is a good, hearty piece of
nature ; and I like his review very much. Of course he did not
go to the bottom on the Love and Marriage question ; but there
he showed his sense. Fronde gets more and more interesting.
We had such a conversation this morning the crust is breaking,
and the man coming through that cold polished shell. My darling
babies ! kiss them very much for me. Monday I go to Chalgrove
Field, to see Hampden's martyr place."
His parish work this year was if possible more vigorous than
ever. Every winter's evening was occupied with either night-
school at the rectory, about thirty men attending ; or little services
in the outlying cottages for the infirm and laboring men after their
day's work. During the spring and summer a writing class was
held for girls in the empty coach-house ; a cottage school for in-
fants was also begun on -the common all preparing the way for
the National School that was to be built some years later, and for
which the teacher was in training. The parish made a great step
forward. The number of communicants increased. The daily
services and evening sermons in Passion week seemed to borrow
intenser fervor and interest from the strange events of the great
world outside the small quiet parish, and though poorly attended,
still gathered together a few laboring folk.
The political events which shook all Europe to its very founda-
tions, stirred his blood, and seemed for the time to give him a
supernatural strength, which kept up till the autumn, when he
completely broke down. He wrote an article for " Eraser's Maga-
zine " (the first he ever contributed to a periodical) on Popery :
" Why should we fear the Romish Priests?" following up his
" Saint's Tragedy," which had struck the key note of the after
work of his life ; and "Yeast " now was seething in his mind. Of
his contributions to " Politics for the People " more will be said
hereafter. He preached to his people on emigration, on poaching,
and on the political and social disturbances of the day. In addi-
tion to parish and literary work he accepted the Professorship of
English Literature and Composition at Queen's College, Harley
Street, then in its infancy, of which Mr. Maurice was President,
94 Charles Kings ley.
and he went up to London to give a lecture once a week. He was
also proposed for a professorship at King's College. He was in
constant communication with Mr. Maurice and the knot of re-
markable men who gathered round him. He made acquaintance
with Bishop Stanley, of Norwich, and his distinguished son ; with
Archdeacon Hare, Arthur Helps, John Hullah, James Anthony
Froude, John Malcolm Ludlow, and many other men of mark, but
to none did he become more strongly attached than to Mr. Thomas
Hughes.
On the news of the Chartist rising and petition reaching Evers-
ley, he determined, having closed his evening classes in the parish
for the winter, to go to London for a few days ; and on the morn-
ing of the loth of April, with his friend Mr. John Parker, jun., who
had been spending the Sunday at Eversley, he went up to see
what was going on. Mr. Parker, like many owners of property in
London, was nervous and anxious about the results of the day,
telling Mrs. Kingsley, half in joke as he left the door, that she
might expect to hear of his shop having been broken into, and
himself thrown into the Trafalgar Square fountains by the mob.
On arriving in London, they went to the house of business at
445 West Strand, then on to Mr. Maurice's ; and in the afternoon
he and Mr. Ludlow walked to Kennington Common, where pour-
ing rain damped the spirits of the crowds assembled. By mid-day
post he wrote to Eversley.
LONDON, April 10, MONDAY.
" . . . All is right as yet. Large crowds, but no one expects
any row, as the Chartists will not face Westminster Bridge, but are
gone round by London Bridge and Holborn, and are going to send
up only the legal number of Delegates to the House. I am just
going on to Maurice. The only fear is maurauding in the suburbs
at night ; but do not fear for me, I shall be safe at Chelsea at 5.
I met Colonel Herman, who says there is no danger at all, and
the two Mansfields, who are gone as specials, to get hot, dusty,
and tired nothing else. I will send down a letter by the latest
post."
April n, EVENING.
"The events of a week have been crowded into a few hours. I
was up till 4 this morning, writing posting placards under Maurice's
auspices, one of which is to be got out to-morrow morning, the
rest when we can get money. Could you not beg a few sovereigns
Address to Workmen. 95
somewhere, to help these poor wretches to the truest alms ? to
words texts from the Psalms, anything which may keep one
man from cutting his brother's throat to-morrow or Friday ? Pray,
pray, help us. Maurice has given me the highest proof of confi-
dence. He has taken me into counsel, and we are to have meet-
ngs for prayer and study, when I come up to London, and we are
to bring out a new set of real ' Tracts for the Times,' addressed to
the higher orders. Maurice is d la hauteur des circonstances de-
termined to make a decisive move. He says: 'If the Oxford
tracts did wonders, why should not we ? Pray for us. A glorious
future is opening, and both Maurice and Ludlow seem to have
driven away all my doubts and sorrows, and I see the blue sky
again and my Father's face ! "
On Wednesday, the i2th, all was still quiet, and this placard
which he had written was posted up, in London.
" WORKMEN OF ENGLAND !
" You say that you are wronged. Many of you are wronged ;
and many besides yourselves know it. Almost all men who have
heads and hearts know it above all, the working clergy know it.
They go into your houses, they see the shameful filth and dark-
ness* in which you are forced to live crowded together ; they see
your children growing up in ignorance and temptation, for want
of fit education ; they see intelligent and well-read men among
you, shut out from a Freeman's just right of voting ; and they see
too the noble patience and self-control with which you have as yet
borne these evils. They see it, and God sees it.
" WORKMEN OF ENGLAND ! You have more friends than you
think for. Friends who expect nothing from you, but who love
you, because you are their brothers, and who fear God, and there-
fore dare not neglect you, His children ; men who are drudging
and sacrificing themselves to get you your rights ; men who know
what your rights are, better than you know yourselves, who are
trying to get for you something nobler than charters and dozens of
Acts of Parliament more useful than this ' fifty thousandth share
in a Talker in the National Palaver at Westminster'! can give you.
You may disbelieve them, insult them you cannot stop their
working for you, beseeching you as you love yourselves, to turn
back from the precipice of riot, which ends in the gulf of universal
distnist, stagnation, starvation.
" You think the Charter would make you free would to God it
would ! The Charter is not bad ; if the men who use it are not
bad ! But will the Charter make you free ? Will it free you from
: The Window tax was not then taken off. f Carlyle.
96 Charles Kingsley.
slavery to ten-pound bribes? Slavery to beer and gin ? Slavery
to every spouter who flatters your self-conceit, and stirs up bitter-
ness and headlong rage in you ? That, I guess, is real slavery ;
to be a slave to one's own stomach, one's own pocket, one's own
temper. Will the Charter cure that ? Friends, you want more
than Acts of Parliament can give.
" Englishmen ! Saxons ! Workers of the great, cool-headed,
strong-handed nation of England, the workshop of the world, the
leader of freedom for 700 years, men say you have common-sense !
then do not humbug yourselves into meaning ' licence,' when you
cry for 'liberty;' who would dare refuse you freedom? for the Al-
mighty God, and Jesus Christ, the poor Man, who died for poor
men, will bring it about for you. though all the Mammonites of the
earth were against you. A nobler day is dawning for England, a
day of freedom, science, industry!
" But there will be no true freedom without virtue, no true
science without religion, no true industry without the fear of God,
and love to your fellow-citizens.
" Workers of England, be wise, and then you must be free, for
you will \>tfit to be free. .
" A WORKING PARSON."
On the evening of the i2th, Archdeacon Hare, Mr. Maurice,
and this little group of friends assembled at Mr. John Parker's
rooms, West Strand, whence he writes home,
PARKER'S, STRAND, April 12, 6 P.M.
" . . . I really cannot go home this afternoon. I have spent
it with Archdeacon Hare, and Parker, starting a new periodical
a Penny ' People's Friend,' in which Maurice, Hare, Ludlo\v,
Mansfield, and I, &c. are going to set to work, to supply the place
of the defunct 'Saturday Magazine.' 1 send you my first placard.
Maurice is delighted with it. I cannot tell you the interest which
it has excited with every one who has seen it. It brought the
tears into old Parker's eyes, who was once a working printer's boy.
I have got already 2 los. towards bringing out more, and
Maurice is subscription-hunting for me. He took me to Jelf to-
day, the King's College principal, who received me very kindly,
and expressed himself very anxious to get me the professorship,
and will write to me as soon as the advertisements are out. I will
be down at Winchfield to-morrow. Kiss the babes for me. Parker
begs to remark that he has not been thrown into the Trafalgar
fountain."
On the i3th he returned to Eversley much exhausted, and
preached on the Chartist riots to his own people the following
Mr. Hughes Recollections. 97
Sunday. And now working in his parish, writing for the " Politics,"
pieparing his lecture for Queen's College, and sending in testimo-
nials* for a professorship at King's College, for which Mr. Maurice
had proposed him to the Council, filled up every moment of time.
The various writers for the " Politics," including Mr. Conington,
were continually coming to Eversley to talk over their work and
consult "Parson Lot."
As one of the few survivors of those most intimately associated
with the author of " Alton Locke," his friend, Mr. Tom Hughes,
has written an eloquent preface to a fresh reprint of that work and
of " Cheap Clothes, and Nasty,' 1 from which he has kindly allowed
the following extracts to be used. Mr. Hughes, speaking of the
distinct period of Charles Kingsley's life extending from 1848 to
1856, says :
". . . My first meeting with him was in the autumn of
1847, at the house of Mr. Maurice, who had lately been appointed
Reader of Lincoln's Inn. No parochial work is attached to that
post, so Mr. Maurice had undertaken the charge of a small district
in the parish in which he lived, and had set a number of young
men, chiefly students of the Inns of Court, who had been attracted
by his teaching, to work in it. Once a week, on Monday evenings,
they used to meet at his house for tea, when their own work was
reported upon and talked over. Suggestions were made and plans
considered ; and afterwards a chapter of the Bible was read and
discussed. Friends and old pupils of Mr. Maurice's, residing in
the country, or in distant parts of London, were in the habit of
coming occasionally to these meetings, amongst whom was Charles
Kingsley.
"His poem, f and the high regard and admiration which Mr.
Maurice had for him, made him a notable figure in that small
society, and his presence was always eagerly looked for. What
impressed me most about him when we first met was, his affection-
ate deference to Mr. Maurice, and the vigor and incisiveness of
everything he said and did. He had the power of cutting out what
he meant in a few clear words, beyond any one I have ever met.
The next thing that struck one was, the ease with which he could
turn from playfulness, or even broad humor, to the deepest earnest.
At first I think this startled most persons, until they came to find
* These testimonials were chiefly based on the historic power displayed in the
"Saint's Tragedy," and on his own high personal character, from the Bishop
of his Diocese, Archdeacon Hare, and many other friends.
f " The Saint's Tragedy."
7
98 Charles Kingsley.
out the real deep nature of the man ; and that his broadest humor
had its root in a faith which realized, with extraordinary vividness,
the fact that God's Spirit is actively abroad in the world, and that
Christ is in every man, and made him hold fast, even in his saddest
moments, and sad moments were not infrequent with him, the
assurance that, in spite of all appearances, the world was going
right, and would go right somehow, 'Not your way, or my way, but
God's way.' The contrast of his humility and audacity, of his dis-
trust in himself and confidence in himself, was one of those puzzles
which meet us daily in this world of paradox. But both qualities
gave him a peculiar power for the work he had to do at that time,
with which the name of Parson Lot is associated. It was at one
of these gatherings, towards the end of 1847 or early in 1848, when
Kingsley found himself in a minority of one, that he said jokingly,
he felt much as Lot must have felt in the Cities of the Plain, when
he seemed as one that mocked to his sons-in-law. The name
Parson Lot was then and there suggested, and adopted by him, as
a familiar nom de plume. He used it from 1848 up to 1856 ; at
first constantly, latterly much more rarely. But the name was
chiefly made famous by his writings in 'Politics for the People,'
' The Christian Socialist,' and the ' Journal of Association,' three
periodicals which covered the years from '48 to '52 ; by ' Alton
Locke,' and by tracts and pamphlets, of which the best known,
' Cheap Clothes, and Nasty,' is now republished.
" In order to understand and judge the sayings and writings of
Parson Lot fairly, it is necessary to recall the condition of the
England of that day. Through the winter of 1847-8, amidst wide-
spread distress, the cloud of discontent, of which chartism was the
most violent symptom, had been growing darker and more menac-
ing, while Ireland was only held down by main force. The break-
ing out of the revolution on the Continent in February increased the
danger. In March there were riots in London, Glasgow, Edin-
burgh, Liverpool, and other large towns. On April 7th, 'the Crown
and Government Security Bill,' commonly called ' the Gagging Act,'
was introduced by the Government, the first reading carried by 265
to 24, and the second, a few days later, by 452 to 35. On the loth
of April the Government had to fill London with troops, and put
the Duke of Wellington in command, who barricaded the bridges
and Downing street, garrisoned the Bank and other public buildings,
and closed the Horse Guards. When the momentary crisis had
passed, the old soldier declared in the House of Lords, that no
great society had ever suffered as London had during the preceding
days, while the Home Secretary telegraphed to all the chief magis-
trates of the kingdom the joyful news that the peace had been kept
in London. In April, the Lord Chancellor, in introducing the
Crown and. Government Security Bill in the House of Lords, re-
ferred to the fact, that 'meetings were doily held, not only in
Mr. Hughes Recollections. 99
London, but in most of the manufacturing towns, the avowed object
of which was to array the people against the constituted authority of
these realms.' For months afterwards the Chartist movement,
though plainly subsiding, kept the Government in constant anxiety ;
and again in June, 1848, the Bank, the Mint, the Custom House,
and other public offices were filled with troops, and the Houses
of Parliament were not only garrisoned but provisioned as if for a
siege.
" From that time, all fear of serious danger passed away. The
Chartists were completely discouraged, and their leaders in prison ;
and the upper and middle classes were recovering rapidly from
the alarm which had converted a million of them into special con-
stables, and were beginning to doubt whether the crisis had been so
serious after all, whether the disaffection had ever been more than
skin deejx At this juncture a series of articles appeared in the
Morning Chronicle, on London labor and the London poor, which
startled the well-to-do classes out of their jubilant and scornful
attitude, and disclosed a state of things which made all fair-minded
people wonder, not that there had been violent speaking and some
rioting, but that the metropolis had escaped the scenes which had
lately been enacted in Paris, Vienna, Berlin, and other Continental
capitals.
"It is only by an effort that one can now realize the strain to
which the nation was subjected during that winter and spring, and
which, of course, tried every individual man also, according to the
depth and earnestness of his political and social convictions and
sympathies. The group of men who were working under Mr.
Maurice were no exceptions to the rule. The work of teaching
and visiting was not, indeed, neglected, but the larger questions
which were being so strenuously mooted the points of the people's
charter, the right of public meeting, the attitude of the laboring
class to the other classes, absorbed more* and more of their atten-
tion. Kingsley was very deeply impressed with the gravity and
danger of the crisis more so, I think, than almost any of his
friends ; probably because, as a country parson, he was more
directly in contact with one class of the poor than any of them.
How deeply he felt for the agricultural poor, how faithfully he re-
flected the passionate and restless sadness of the time, may be
read in the pages of ' Yeast,' which came out later in ' Fraser.' As
the winter months went on this sadness increased, and seriously
affected his health."*
On the 6th of May the first number of " Politics for the People "
appeared. Its regular contributors were nearly all university men,
* From Mr. Thomas Hughes's Preface to "Alton Locke," and "Cheap
Clothes, and Nasty," by Parson Lot.
ioo Charles Kingsley.
clergymen of the Church of England, London barristers, men of
science, and among them Archdeacon Hare, Sir Arthur (then Mr.)
Helps, and a distinguished London physician. A few letters from
workingmen, one signed " One of the wicked Chartists of Ken-
nington Common," were readily admitted. Three papers on the
National Gallery and British Museum, three letters to Chartists,
some poetry, and a tale, "The Nun's Pool," which was rejected by
the publisher as too strong, were Mr. Kingsley' s only contribu-
tions. His weekly lecture at Queen's College, with two sermons
every Sunday, and his indefatigable parish work (he had then no
curate), prevented his doing more for the " Politics." It was a
remarkable though short-lived publication, and those whose
opinions of the " Radicals, Socialists, Chartists," who set it on foot,
were formed by the public press, without reading the book itself
would be surprised at the loyal, conservative, serious tone of its
contents, and the gravity, if not severity, with which it attacked
physical force Chartism, monster meetings, and the demand for
universal suffrage by men who had neither education nor moral
self-government to qualify them for a vote.
But to return to Mr. Hughes' s Preface. " But it may be said,
apart from his writings, did not Parson Lot declare himself a
Chartist in a public meeting in London ; and did he not preach in
a London pulpit a political sermon,* which brought up the incum-
bent, who had invited him, to protest from the altar against the
doctrine which had just been delivered ?
"Yes ! both statements are true. Here are the facts as to the
speech. In the early summer of 1848, some of those who felt with
Charles Kingsley that the ' People's Charter' had not had fair play
or courteous treatment, and that those who signed it had real wrongs
to complain of, put themselves into communication with the lead-
ers, and met and talked with them. At last it seemed that the
time was come for some more public meeting, and one was called
at the Cranbourn Tavern, over which Mr. Maurice presided. After
the president's address several very bitter speeches followed, and
a vehement attack was especially directed against the Church and
and clergy. The meeting waxed warm, and seemed likely to come
to no good, when Kingsley arose, folded his arms across his chest,
threw his head back, and began with the stammer which always
came at first when much moved, but which fixed every one's atten-
tion at once ' I am a Church of England Parson ' a long pause
'and a Chartist;' and then he went on to explain how far he
* This incident belongs to a later period, 1851, and will be given in its place.
Mr. Hughes Recollections. 101
thought them right in their claim for a reform of Parliament ; how
deeply he sympathized with their sense of the injustice of the law as
it affected them ; how ready he was to help in all ways to get these
things set right ; and then to denounce their methods in very much
the same terms as I have already quoted from his letters to the
Chartists. Probably no one who was present ever heard a speech
which told more at the time. I had a singular proof that the effect
did not pass away. The most violent speaker on that occasion
was one of the staff of the leading Chartist newspaper. I lost sight
of him entirely for more than twenty years, and saw him again, a
little grey shrivelled man, by Kingsley's side, at the grave of Mr.
Maurice, in the cemetery at Hampstead.
" The experience of this meeting encouraged its promoters to
continue the series of Tracts, which they did with a success which
surprised no one more than themselves.
" The fact is, that Charles Kingsley was born a fighting man,
and believed in bold attack. ' No human power ever beat back a
resolute forlorn hope,' he used to say ; ' to be got rid of, they must
be blown back with grape and canister, because the attacking party
have all the universe behind them, the defence only that small part
which is shut up in their walls.' And he felt most strongly at this
time that hard fighting was needed. ' It is a pity,' he writes to Mr.
Ludlow, ' that telling people what's right won't make them do it ;
but not a new fact, though the world has quite forgotten it, and
assures you that the dear sweet incompris mankind only wants to
be told the way to the millennium to walk willingly into it which
is a lie.
" The memorials of his many controversies lie about in the
periodicals of that time, and any one who cares to hunt them up
\fill be well repaid, and struck with the vigor of the defence, and
still more with the complete change in public opinion which has
brought the PLnglancl of to-day clean round to the side of Parson
Lot. The most complete, perhaps, of his fugitive pieces of this
kind, is the pamphlet ' Who are the Friends of Order? ' published
by J \V. Parker & Son, in answer to a very fair and moderate arti-
cle in ' Fraser's Magazine.' The Parson there points out how he
and his friends were ' cursed by demagogues as aristocrats, and by
tories as democrats, when in reality they were neither,' and urges
that the very fact of the continent being overrun with communist
fanatics, is the best argument for preaching association here." *
To those who cannot look back on the political storms of
1848-49, his contributions on the subject of Art, on the pictures in
* Preface to " Alton Locke," by T. Hughes. 1876.
IO2 Charles Kings ley.
the National Gallery, and on the British Museum will be more con-
genial. This last we give entire :
BRITISH MUSEUM.
" My friend, Will Willow Wren is bringing before our readers the
beauty and meaning of the living natural world the great Green-
book which holds ' the open secret,' as Goethe calls it, seen by all,
but read by, alas ! how few. And I feel as much as he, that nature
is infinitely more wonderful than the highest art ; and in the com-
monest hedgeside leaf lies a mystery and beauty greater than that
of the greatest picture, the noblest statue as infinitely greater
as God's work is infinitely greater than man's. But to those who
have no leisure to study nature in the green fields (and there are
now-a-days too many such, though the time may come when all will
have that blessing), to such I say, go to the British Musem ; there
at least, if you cannot go to nature's wonders, some of nature's
wonders are brought to you.
"The British Museum is my glory and joy ; because it is almost
the only place which is free to English citizens as such where the
poor and the rich may meet together, and before those works of
God's spirit, 'who is no respecter of persons,' feel that 'the Lord
is the maker of them all.' In the British Museum and the Na-
tional Gallery alone the Englishman may say, ' Whatever my coat
or my purse, I am an Englishman, and therefore I have a right
here. I can glory in these noble halls, as if they were my own
house.'
" English commerce, the joint enterprise and industry of the
poor sailor as well as the rich merchant, brought home these treas-
ures from foreign lands, and those glorious statues though it was
the wealth and taste of English noblemen and gentlemen (who ih
that proved themselves truly noble and gentle) which placed them
here, yet it was the genius of English artists men at once above
and below all ranks men who have worked their way up, not by
money or birth, but by worth and genius, which taught the noble
and wealthy the value of those antiques, and which proclaimed
their beauty to the world. The British Museum is a truly equaliz-
ing place, in the deepest and most spiritual sense ; therefore I
love it.
" And it gives the lie, too, to that common slander, ' that the
English are not worthy of free admission to valuable and curious
collections, because they have such a trick of seeing with their fin-
gers ; such a trick of scribbling their names, of defiling and disfigur-
ing works of art. On the Continent it may do, but you cannot
trust the English.'
"This has been, like many other untruths, so often repeated,
that people now take it for granted ; but I believe that it is utterly
Paper on the British Museum. 103
groundless, and I say so on the experience of the British Museum
and the National Gallery. In the only two cases, I believe, in
which injury has been done to anything in either place, the de-
stroyers were neither artisans, nor even poor reckless heathen
street-boys, but persons who had received what is too often mis-
called ' a liberal education.' The truth is, that where people pay
their money (as they do in some great houses) for the empty pleas-
lire of staring at luxuries which they cannot enjoy, vulgar curiosity
too often ends in jealous spite ; and where people consider them-
selves unjustly excluded from works of art, which ought, as far as
possible, to be made as free as the common air, mean minds will
sometimes avenge their fancied wrongs by doing wrong themselves.
But national property will always be respected, because all will be
content, while they feel that they have their rights, and all will be
careful while they feel that they have a share in the treasure.
" Would that the rich, who, not from selfishness so much as from
thoughtlessness, lock up the splendid collections from the eyes of
all but a favored few, would go to the British Museum in Easter
week ! Would that the Deans and Chapters, who persist (in spite
of the struggles of many of their own body) in making penny-peep-
shows of God's houses, built by public piety and benevolence of
St. Paul's and Westminster Abbey, which belongs not to them at
all, but to God and the people of England, would go to the British
Museum in Easter week and see there hundreds of thousands, of
every rank and age, wandering past sculptures and paintings,
which would be ruined by a blow past jewels and curiosities, any
one of which would buy many a poor soul there a month's food and
lodging only protected by a pane of glass, if by that ; and then
see not a thing disfigured much less stolen. Everywhere order,
care, attention, honest pride in their country's wealth and science ;
earnest reverence for the mighty works of God, and of the God-
inspired. 1 say, the people of England prove themselves worthy
of free admission to all works of art, and it is therefore the duty of
those who can to help them to that free admission.
" What a noble, and righteous, and truly brotherly plan it would
be, if all classes would join to form a free National Gallery of Art
and Science, which might combine the advantages of the present
Polytechnic, Society of Arts, and British Institution, gratis. Manu-
facturers and men of science might send thither specimens of their
new inventions. The rich might send, for a few months in the
year as they do now to the British Institution ancient and
modern pictures, and not only pictures, but all sorts of curious
works of art and nature, which are now hidden in their drawing-
rooms and libraries. There might be free liberty to copy any ob-
ject, on the copyist's name and residence being registered. And
surely artists and men of science might be found, with enough of
the spirit of patriotism and love, to explain gratuitously to all com-
104 Charles Kings ley.
ers, whatever their rank or class, the wonders of the Museum. I
really believe that if once the spirit of brotherhood got abroad
among us ; if men once saw that here was a vast means of educat-
ing, and softening and uniting those who have no leisure to study,
and few means of enjoyment, except the gin-shop and Cremorne
Gardens ; if they could but once feel that here was a project,
equally blessed for rich and poor, the money for it would be at
once forthcoming from many a rich man, who is longing to do good,
if he could only be shown the way ; and from many a poor jour-
neyman, who would gladly contribute his mite to a truly national
museum, founded on the principles of spiritual liberty, equality and
fraternity. All that is wanted is the spirit of self-sacrifice, patriot-
ism and brotherly love which God alone can give which 1 be-
lieve He is giving more and more in these very days.
" I never felt this more strongly than some six months ago, as I
was looking in at the windows of a splendid curiosity-shop in
Oxford Street, at a case of humming-birds. I was gloating over
the beauty of those feathered jewels, and then wondering what was
the meaning, what was the use of it all ? why those exquisite
little creatures should have been hidden for ages, in all their splen-
dors of ruby and emerald and gold, in the South American forests,
breeding and fluttering and dying, that some dozen out of all those
millions might be brought over here to astonish the eyes of men.
And as I asked myself, why were all these boundless varieties,
these treasures of unseen beauty, created ? my brain grew dizzy
between pleasure and thought ; and, as always happens when one
is most innocently delighted, ' I turned to share the joy,' as
Wordsworth says ; and next to me stood a huge, brawny coal-
heaver, in his shovel hat, and white stockings and high-lows, gazing
at the humming-birds as earnestly as myself. As I turned he
turned, and 1 saw a bright manly face, with a broad, soot grimed
forehead, from under which a pair of keen flashing eyes gleamed
wondering, smiling sympathy into mine. In that moment we felt
ourselves friends. If we had been Frenchmen, we should, 1 sup-
pose, have rushed into each other's arms and 'fraternised' upon
the spot. As we were a pair of dumb, awkward Phiglishmen, we
only gazed a half-minute, staring into each other's eyes, with a
delightful feeling of understanding each other, and then burst out
both at once with 'Isn't that beautiful ? ' ' Well, that is ! ' And
.then both turned back again, to stare at our humming-birds.
" I never felt more thoroughly than at that minute (though,
thank God, I had often felt it before) that all men were brothers ;
that fraternity and equality were not mere political doctrines, but
blessed God-ordained facts ; that the party-walls of rank and
fashion and money were but a paper prison of our own making,
which we might break through any moment by a single hearty and
kindly feeling ; that the one spirit of God was given without
Devotion to Duty. 105
respect of persons ; that the beautiful things were beautiful alike
to the coal-heaver and the parson ; and that before the wondrous
works of God and of God's inspired genius, the rich and the poor
might meet together, and feel that whatever the coat or the creed
may be, ' A man's a man for a' that,' and one Lord the maker of
them all.
" For believe me, my friends, rich and poor and I beseech you
to think deeply over this great truth that men will never be
joined in true brotherhood by mere plans to give them a self-inter-
est in common, as the Socialists have tried to do. No ; to feel
for each other, they must first feel with each other. To have
their sympathies in common, they must have not one object of
gain, but an object of admiration in common ; to know that they
are brothers, they must feel that they have one Father ; and a way
to feel that they have one common Father, is to see each other
wondering, side by side, at His glorious works !
" PARSON LOT."
He had a sore battle to go through at this time with his own
heart, and with those friends and relations, religious and worldly,
who each and all from their own particular standpoint deprecated
the line he took, and urged him to withdraw from this sympathy
with the people, which was likely to spoil his prospects in life. In
reference to this he writes to his wife :
" . . . I will not be a liar. I will speak in season and out
of season. I will not shun to declare the whole counsel of God.
I will not take counsel with flesh and blood, and flatter myself
into the dream that while every man on earth, from Maurice back
to Abel, who ever tried to testify against the world, has been
laughed at, misunderstood, slandered, and that, bitterest of all, by
the very people he loved best, and understood best, I alone am to
escape. My path is clear, and I will follow in it. He who died
for me, and who gave me you, shall I not trust Him through what-
soever new and strange paths He may lead me ?...."
TO MR. LUDLOW.
EVERSLEY, July, 1848.
" I should have answered yesterday your noble and kind letter,
had not my afternoon been employed in forcing a cruel, lazy farmer
to shoot a miserable horse which was rotting alive in front of my
house, and superintending its death by aid of one of my own
bullets. What an awful wonderful thing a violent death is, even in
a dumb beast ! I would not have lost the sight for a great deal.
But now to business. You take a strange way to frighten a man off
from novel-writing, by telling a man that he may become the greatest
io6 Charles Kingsley.
novelist of the age. If your good opinion of me was true, I should
have less fear for myself, for a man could not become that in this
wonderful era, without having ideas and longings which would force
him to become something far better than a novelist ; but for myself,
chaotic, piecemeal, passionate, ' lachemar ' as I am, I have fears as
great as your own. I know the miserable, peevish, lazy, conceited,
faithless, prayerless wretch I am, but I know this, too, that One is
guiding me, and driving me when I will not be guided, who will
make me, and has made me go His way and do His work, by fair
means or by foul. He set rne on writing this 'novel.' He has'
taught me things about the heart of fast sporting men, and about
the condition of the poor, and our duty to them, which I have no
doubt He has taught many more, but He has not set any one else
to speak about them in the way in which I am speaking. He has
given me a certain artistic knack of utterance (nothing but a
knack), but He has done more. He has made the ' Word of the
Lord like fire within my bones,' giving me no peace till I have
spoken out. I know I may seem presumptuous to myself most
of all, because I know best the 'liar to my own idea' which I am.
I know that He has made me a parish priest, and that that is the
duty which lies nearest me, and that I may seem to be leaving my
calling in novel-writing. But has He not taught me all these very
things by my parish-priest life ? Did He, too, let. me become a
strong, daring, sporting wild-man-of the- woods for nothing ? Surely
the education which He has given me, so different from that which
authors generally receive, points out to me a peculiar calling to
preach on these points, from my own experience, as it did to good
old Isaac Walton, as it has done in our day to that truly noble
man, Captain Marryat. Therefore I must believe ' Se tu segui la
tua Stella ' with Dante, that He who ordained my star will not lead
me into temptation, but through it, as Maurice says. Without
Him all places and methods of life are equally dangerous with
Him, all equally safe. Pray for me, for in myself I am weaker
of purpose than a lost greyhound, lazier than a dog in rainy
weather.
' But I feel intensely the weight of your advice to write no more
novels. Why should I ? I have no more to say. W T hen this is
done I must set to and read. The symbolism of nature and the
meaning of history must be my studies. Believe me I long for
that day the pangs of intellectual labor, the burden of spiritual
pregnancy, are not pleasant things. A man cannot write in the
fear of God without running against the devil at every step. He
cannot sit down to speak the truth without disturbing in his own
soul a hornet swarm of lies. Your hack-writer of no creed, your
bigot Polyphemus, whose one eye just helps him to see to eat men,
they do not understand this ; their pens run on joyful and light of
heart. But no more talk about myself.
Letter to his Daughter. 107
" Read a poem written by an acquaintance of mine, Clough of
Oxford, 'The Bothie of Toper-na-Voirlich,' and tell me if you do
not think it a noble specimen of Pantagruelism, and a hopeful sign
for 'Young Oxford,' of which he is one of the leaders "
Having been appointed Professor of English Literature at
Queen's College, Harley Street, he gave his first introductory lecture
on May ijth, and continued lecturing weekly.
In the summer he made an expedition with Mr. Maurice to
Crowland Abbey, near Peterborough, which deeply impressed him
at the time, and formed one of the strong features in his story of
" Hereward " at a later date. " We spent there a priceless day,''
he says; "these days with Maurice have taught me more than I
can tell. Like all great things, he grows upon one more and
more." He wrote several letters to his little daughter at this time,
full of poetry and natural history, of which one is given.
TO HIS LITTLE GIRL ROSE.
Dux FORD, Cambridge.
"MY DEAR MlSS ROSE,
" I am writing in such a curious place. A mill where they
grind corn and bones, and such a funny little room in it full of
stuffed birds. And there is a flamingo, such a funny red bird, with
long legs and a long neck, as big as Miss Rose, and sharks' jaws,
and an armadillo all over great scales, and now I will tell you about
the stork. He is called Peter, and here is a picture of him. See
what long legs he has, and a white body and black wings, and he
catches all the frogs and snails, and eats them, and when he is
cross, he opens his long bill, and makes such a horrible clattering
like a raHle. And he comes to the window at tea time, to eat
bread and butter, and he is so greedy, and he gobbled down a great
pinch of snuff out of Daddy's box, and he was so sick, and we all
laughed at him, for being so foolish and greedy. And do you know
there are such curious frogs here that people eat, and there were
never any found in England before Mr. Thurnall found them, and
he sent them to the British Museum and the wise men were so
pleased, and sent him leave to go to the British Museum and see
all the wonderful things whenever he liked. And he has got such
beautiful butterflies in boxes, and whole cupboards full of birds' eggs,
and a river full of beautiful fish, and Daddy went fishing yesterday,
and caught an immense trout, very nearly four pounds weight, and
he raged and ran about in the river so long, and Daddy was quite
tired before he could get him out. And to-day Daddy is going
back to Cambridge to get a letter from his dear home. And do
you know when Mr. Thurnall saw me drawing the stork, he gave
io8 Charles Kings ley.
me a real live stork of my own to bring home to Miss Rose, and we
will put him in the kitchen garden to run about what fun ! And
to-morrow Daddy is going to see the beautiful pictures at the Fitz-
william Museum, and the next day he is going to fish at Shelford,
and the next day, perhaps, he is coming home to his darlings at
Eversley Rectory, for he does not know what to do without them.
How happy Miss Rose must be with her dear mother.
She must say, 'thank God for giving me such a darling mother ! '
" Kiss her for me and Maurice, and now good-bye, and I will
bring home the stork.
" Your own DADDY."
His acquaintance with Mr. Thomas Cooper, Chartist, was made
this year, and out of it grew a long correspondence, of which this
is the first letter. The rest will come at a later period.
EVERSLEY, June 19, 1848.
" Ever since I read your brilliant poem, ' The Purgatory of Sui-
cides,' and its most affecting preface, I have been possessed by a
desire to thrust myself, at all risks, into your acquaintance. The
risk which I felt keenly, was the fear that you might distrust me.
as a clergyman ; having, I am afraid, no great reason to love that
body of men. Still, I thought, the poetic spirit ought to be a bond
of communion between us. Shall God make us brother poets, as
well as brother men, and we refuse to fraternise ? I thought also
that you, if you have a poet's heart, as well as the poet's brain
which you have manifested, ought to be more able than other men
to appreciate and sympathise with my feelings towards ' the work-
ing classes.'
"You can understand why I held back from shame a false
shame, perhaps, lest you should fancy me a hypocrite. But my
mind was made up when I found an attack in the ' Common-
wealth,' on certain papers which I had published in the 'Politics
of the People,' under the name of Parson Lot. Now I had hailed
\vkh cordial pleasure the appearance of the ' Commonwealth,' and
sympathised thoroughly with it and here was this very ' Common-
. wealth' attacking me on some of the very points on which I most
agreed with it. It seemed to me intolerable to be so misunder-
stood. It had been long intolerable to me, to be regarded as an
object of distrust and aversion by thousands of my countrymen,
my equals in privilege, and too often, alas ! far my superiors in
worth, just because I was a clergyman, the very office which ought
to have testified above all others, for liberty, equality, brotherhood,
for time and eternity. I felt myself bound, then, to write to you,
to see if among the nobler spirits of the working classes I could
not make one friend who would understand me. My ancestors
Prostration. 109
fought in Cromwell's army, and left all for the sake of God and
liberty, among the pilgrim fathers, and here were men accusing me
of 'mediaeval tyranny.' 1 would shed the last drop of my life
blood for the social and political emancipation of the people of
England, as God is my witness ; and here are the very men for
whom I would die, fancying me an ' aristocrat.' It is not enough
for me that they are mistaken in me. I want to work with them.
I want to realize my brotherhood with them. I want some one
like yourself, intimately acquainted with the mind of the working
classes, to give me such an insight into their life and thoughts, as
may enable me to consecrate my powers effectually to their ser-
vice. For them I have lived for several years. 1 come to you to
ask you if you can tell me how to live more completely for them.
If you distrust and reject my overtures, I shall not be astonished
pained I shall be and you must know as well as I, that there is
no bitterer pain than to be called a rogue because you are honester
than your neighbors, and a time-server, because you have intellect
enough to see both sides of a question. "
In the autumn he quite broke down, while writing " Yeast," as
a series of papers in " Fraser's Magazine." He had not recovered
the excitement of the Chartist movement, and having at that time
no curate, every hour was occupied with sermon writing, cottage
visiting, and he was forced to write "Yeast" at night when the
day's work was over, and the house still. This was too much for
brain and nerves, and one Sunday evening, after his two services
had been got through with difficulty, he fell asleep, slept late into
the next day, and awoke so exhausted that his medical man was
alarmed at his weakness, ordered complete rest and change to
Bournemouth. From thence, after a month's rest, he returned to
Eversley only to sink again.
TO AN OXFORD FRIEND.
EVERSLEY, December, 1848.
" I have delayed answering your letter because I did not wish
to speak in a hurry on a subject so important to you. I am afraid
that 's report of my opinion has pained you really it ought not :
I spoke only as a friend and in sincerity. I cannot advise you to
publish the poems of yours which I have seen at least for some
year?, and I will give you my reasons
" First, you write too easily ; that same imp 'facility' must not
be let to ruin you, as it helped to ruin Theodore Hook. You
must never put two words or lines where one will do ; the age is
too busy and hurried to stand it. Again, you want to see a great
I io Charles Kings ley.
deal more, and study more that is the only way to have materi-
als. Poets cannot create till they have learnt to recombine. The
study of man and nature ; the study of poets and fiction writers of
all schools is necessary. And, believe me, you can never write
like Byron, or anybody else worth hearing, unless by reading and
using poetry of a very different school from his. The early dramat-
ists, Shakespeare above all ; and not less the two schools which made
Shakespeare ; the Northern ballad literature ; nay even, I find the
Norse myths. And, on the other hand, the Romance literature
must be known, to acquire that objective power of embodying
thoughts, without which poetry degenerates into the mere intellec-
tual reflective, and thence into the metrical-prose didactic. Read,
mark, and learn, and do not write. I never wrote five hundred
lines in my life before the 'Saint's Tragedy,' but from my childhood
I had worked at poetry from Southey's ' Thalaba,' Ariosto, Spen-
ser, and the ' Old Ballads,' through almost every school, classic
and modern, except the Spanish, and, alas ! a very little German,
and that by translations. And I have not read half enough. I
have been studying all physical sciences which deal with phe-
nomena ; I have been watching nature in every mood ; I have
been poring over sculptures and paintings since I was a little boy
and all I can say is, I do not know half enough to be a poet in
the nineteenth century, and have cut the IVluse/n? tempore.
" Again, you have an infinity to learn about rhythm and metre,
and about the coloring and chiaroscuro of poetry ; how to break
up your masses, and how to make masses ; high lights and shad-
ows; major and minor keys of metre ; rich coloring alternating
with delicate. All these things have to be learnt, if you wish to
avoid monotony, to arrest the interest, to gain the cardinal secret
of giving ' continual surprise in expectation,' and ' expectation in
surprise.'
"Now don't be angry with me. I think you have a poetic
faculty in you, from the mere fact of your having been always
lusting to get your thoughts into poetry ; and because I think
you have one, therefore I don't want you to publish, or even
write, till you have learnt enough really to enable you to embody
your thoughts. They are good and vigorous, and profitable to
the age ; but they are as yet too bare-backed you must go clothes-
hunting for the poor naked babbies.
Let me hear from you again, for I am very much interested in
all you do, and your true friend and well wisher."
After a second prostration of strength, he was advised to give
up all work entirely, and the winter and spring were spent in
North Devon, at llfracombe and Lynmouth.
CHAPTER VIII.
1849.
AGED 30.
Winter in Devonshire Ilfracombe Decides on taking Pupils Correspondence
Visit to London Social Questions Fever at Eversley Renewed Illness
Returns to Devonshire Cholera in England Sanitary Work Bermondsey
Letter from Mr. C. K. Paul.
THIS year began in ill-health at Ilfracombe, where Mr. Maurice
with other friends came to visit him, and went away depressed at
seeing the utter exhaustion, mental and bodily, of one who had been
the life and soul of their band of workers in 1848. He was able to
do nothing for months riding, walking, and even conversation were
too much for him ; and wandering on the sea-shore, collecting shells
and zoophytes, with his wife and children, was all the exertion
that he could bear, while dreaming over " The Autobiography of a
Cockney Poet," which in the autumn was to develop into "Alton
Locke." With much difficulty he got through an article on Mrs.
Jamieson's Sacred and Legendary Art" for " Fraser's Magazine,"
which he had promised.* Mr. Fronde came to him from Oxford in
February, and then and there made acquaintance with his future
wife, Mrs. Kingsley's sister, who was also at Ilfracombe. There
are few letters to mark the winter and spring of 1849, anc ' f ewer
poems.
During a solitary ride on Morte Sands, he composed some
elegiacs, of which he speaks in the following letter :
TO J. MALCOLM LUDLOW, ESQ.
Il.FRACOMBE, February, 1849.
" .... I send you the enclosed lines as some proof that
the exquisite elegiac metre suits our English language (as indeed
everything beautiful does). They are but a fragment. You were
the cause of their not being finished ; for your kindness swept away
* Since published in his Miscellanies.
112 Charles Kingsley.
the evil spirit of despondency, and I hold it a sin to turn on the
Werterian tap, of malice prepense. If they are worth finishing, I
shall have sorrows enough ere I die, no doubt, to put me in the
proper vein for them again. I send them off to escape the torment
of continually fidgeting and polishing at them ; for whatever I may
say in defence of my own case, I dare not let anything go forth,
except as highly finished as I can make it. Show them to the 'oak
of the mountain,' the Master (Mr. Maurice), he will recognize the
place, and the feeling of much of them, and ask him whether,
with a palinode, setting forth how out of winter must come spring,
out of death life, they would not be tolerably true
Wearily stretches the land to the surge, and the surge to the cloudland ;
Wearily onward I ride, watching the water alone.
Not as of old, like Homeric Achilles, /cyrfe'i ya/wv,
Joyous knight errant of God, thirsting for labor and strife.
No more on magical steed borne free through the regions of ether,
But, like the hack which I ride, selling my sinew for gold.
Fruit-bearing autumn is gone ; let the sad, quiet winter hang o'er me
What were the spring to a soul laden with sorrow and shame ?
Blossoms would fret me with beauty ; my heart has no time to be -praise them ;
Grey rock, bough, surge, cloud, waken no yearning within.
Sing not, thou skylark above ! Even angels pass hushed by the weeper.
Scream on, ye sea fowl ! my heart echoes your desolate cry.
Sweep the dry sand on, thou wild wind, to drift o'er the shell and the sea-weed ;
Sea-weed and shell, like my dreams, swept down the pitiless tide.
Just is the wave which uptore us; 'tis Nature's own law which condemns us ;
Woe to the weak who, in pride, build on the faith of the sand !
Joy to the oak of the mountain ; he trusts to the might of the rock-clefts;
Deeply he mines, and in peace feeds on the wealth of the stone.
" .... I have hope also of the book which I am writing,
the Autobiography of a Cockney Poet, which has revealed itself to
me so rapidly and methodically, that I feel it comes down from
above, and that only my folly can spoil it which I pray against
daily.
" .... I never felt the reality and blessing of that church
confession and absolution' more than I did in this morning's ser-
vice. Thank you for all and every hint
"Tell Charles Mansfield I have found to-day another huge
comatula, and bottled him with his legs, by great dodging. I am
always finding something fresh
" Best love to all our friends. Poor Maurice ! But a little per-
secution is a blessing to any man. Still it does make one sick to
hear these quill-driving cowards and bigots attacking him."
Taking Pupils. 113
The expenses of illness, and his inability to meet them by writing,
obliged him now to think of some other means, and he consulted
Mr. Maurice about taking pupils. Mr. Maurice wrote at once to
Professor Thompson, now Master of Trinity, Cambridge :
" Kingsley, who, 1 think, is known to you, has been disabled for
some time, and has been obliged to leave his living. He is much
better, and wishes very much for a pupil to prepare for orders or
even for college. He is now at Ilfracombe. At Eversley he would
have accommodation in a very pleasant house. I do not know a
man more fitted for the work scarcely any one equally fitted. He is
a good, accurate, and enthusiastic scholar, full of knowledge of all
things about him, and delight in them ; and more likely to give a
young man of the day a good direction in divinity, meeting his
difficulties and dealing honestly with them, than any person I have
fallen in with. His conversation is full of interest even when he is
ill ; when he is well he is the freshest, freest hearted man in England.
. . . His home is altogether most pleasant, and those who
dwell in it. If you can give him help, I shall be most grateful to
you.
" Yours ever truly,
" K D. MAURICE."
He gives his own plan of teaching, or rather training a pupil, in
a characteristic letter to Mrs. Scott, wife of Rev. A. J. Scott, after-
wards Principal of Owens College, Manchester :
" Will you excuse my burdening you with another word about
pupils? .... I am not going to talk of what I can teach ;
but what I should try to teach, would be principally physical
science, history, English literature, and modern languages. In my
eyes the question is not what to teach, but how to educate ; how
to train not scholars, but men ; bold, energetic, methodic, liberal-
minded, magnanimous. If 1 can succeed in doing that, I shall do
what no salary can repay and what is not generally done, or ex-
pected to be done, by private tutors "
On the receipt of this letter, Mr. Scott remarked, "That is what
is wanted, and it is what Charles Kingsley will do." Notwith-
standing the efforts of his friends, the pupils were not forthcoming.
His writings had caused a strong prejudice against him ; and it was
not till the following year that he succeeded. The long waiting
was repaid when the pupil came, and the labor, which throughout
was a labor of love, was more than repaid, being spent on one who
8
H4 Charles Kingsley.
realised the tutor's ideal in after life. That pupil will speak for him-
self in another chapter.
It had been a great sorrow to him to give up his work at Queen's
College, and he was never able to resume it. Besides two intro-
ductory lectures on literature and composition, instinct with genius.
now out of print, he only delivered one course on Early English
Literature. The Rev. Alfred Strettell took his place.
From Clovelly, where he went with his wife's sister and Mr.
Froude, he writes home :
"Only a few lines, for the post starts before breakfast. We got
here all safe. C. enjoyed herself by lying in misery at the bottom
of the boat all the way. ... 1 cannot believe my eyes : the
same place, the pavement, the same dear old smells, die dear old
handsome loving faces again. It is as if I was a little boy again,
or the place had stood still while all the world had been rushing
and rumbling on past it ; and then I suddenly recollect your face,
and those two ducks on the pier ; and it is no dream ; this is the
dream, and I am your husband ; what have I not to thank God
for ? 1 have been thanking Him ; but where can I stop ? We
talk of sailing home again, as cheapest and pleasantest ; most
probably Friday or Saturday. To-day- I lionize Charlotte over
everything. Kiss the children for me."
The following letter, addressed to a young man going over to
Rome, though incomplete, is too valuable to omit. Several pages
have been lost, which will account for any want of sequence.
HARLEY HOUSE, CLIFTON, May u, 1849.
MY DEAR SIR,
" I have just heard from Charles Mansfield, to my inexpressi-
ble grief, that you are inclined to join the Roman Communion ;
and at the risk of being called impertinent, I cannot but write my
whole heart to you.
" What I say may be Trapd rdv Aoyov, after all ; if so, pray write
and let me know what your real reasons are for such a step. I
think, as one Christian man writing to another, I may dare to en-
treat this of you. For believe me I am no bigot. I shall not
trouble you with denunciations about the 'scarlet woman' or the
' little horn.' I cannot but regard with awe, at least, if not rever-
ence, a form of faith which God thinks good enough still for one
half (though it be the more brutal, profligate, and helpless half) of
Europe. Believe me, I can sympathise with you. I have been
through it ; I have longed for Rome, and boldly faced the conse-
The Church of Rome. 115
quences of joining Rome ; and though I now have, thank God,
cast all wish of change behind me years ago, as a great lying devil's
temptation, yet I still long as ardently as ever to see in the Church
of England much which only now exists, alas ! in the Church of
Rome. Can I not feel for you ? Do I not long for a visible, one,
organized Church ? Do 1 not shudder at the ghastly dulness of
our services ? Do I not pray that I may see the day when the
art and poetry of the nineteenth century shall be again among us,
turned to their only true destination the worship of God ? Have
I shed no bitter, bitter tears of shame and indignation in cathedral
aisles, and ruined abbeys, and groaned aloud ' Ichabod, Ichabod,
the glory is departed,' etc."
[Here some pages are lost.]
" Can you not commit the saving of your soul to Him that made
your soul ? I think it will be in good keeping, unless you take it
out of His hands, by running off where he has not put you. Did
you never read how ' He that saveth his soul shall lose it.' Be-
ware.
" Had you been born an Italian Romanist I would have said to
you, Don't leave Rome ; stay where you are and try to mend the
Church of your fathers ; if it casts you out, the sin be on its own
head ; and so I say to you. Do you want to know God's will
about you ? What plainer signs of it, than the fact that he has
made you, and educated you as a Protestant Englishman. Here,
believe it believe the providentiam, ' Dei in rebus revelatam.'
Here He intends you to work, and to do the duty which lies near-
est. Hold what doctrines you will, but do not take yourself out
of communion with your countrymen, to bind yourself to a sys-
tem which is utterly foreign to us and our thoughts, and only by
casting off which, have we risen to be the most mighty, and, with all
our sins, perhaps the most righteous and pure of nations (a fact
which the Jesuits do not deny). I assure you that they tell their
converts that the reason why Protestant England is allowed to be
so much more righteous than the Romish nations is to try the
faith of the elect ! ! You will surely be above listening to such
anile sophistry !
"Hut still, you think, 'you may be holier there than here.'
Ah, sir, 'ccelum, non animum, mutant, qui trans mare currunt.'
Ultramontanism will be a new system ; but not, I think, a new
character. Certain outward acts, and certain inward feelings,
which are all very nice, and right, and pleasant, will be made easier
for you there than here : you will live so charmingly by rule and
measure ; not a moment in the day but will be allotted out for you,
with its appropriate acts of devotion. True, now you are a man,
standing face to face with God ; then you will (believe one who
knows) find yourself a machine, face to face, not with God, but
with a priest and a system, and hosts of inferior deities, of which
n6 Charles Kingsley.
hereafter. Oh ! sir, you, a free-born Englishman, brought up in
that liberty for which your forefathers died on scaffolds and in bat-
tle-fields that liberty which begot a Shakspeare, a Raleigh, a Ba-
con, Milton, Newton, Faraday, Brooke will you barter away that
inestimable gift because Italian pedants, who know nothing of
human nature but from the books of prurient celibates, tell you that
they have got a surer 'dodge ' for saving your soul than those have,
among whom God's will, not your own, has begotten and educated
you ? But you ' will be able to rise to a greater holiness there.'
Holiness, sir? Devoutness, you mean. The 'will of God' is
your holiness already, and you may trust Him to perfect His will
in you here for here He has put you if by holiness you mean
godliness and manliness, justice and mercy, honesty and usefulness.
But if by holiness you mean ' saintliness,' I quite agree that Rome
is the place to get that, and a poor pitiful thing it is when it is got
not God's ideal of a man, but an effeminate shaveling's ideal.
Look at St. Francis de Sales, or St. Vincent de Paul's face, and then
say, does not your English spirit loathe to see that 1 God made
man in His image, not in an imaginary Virgin Mary's image. And
do not fancy that you will really get any spiritual gain by going
over. The very devotional system which will educe arid develop
the souls of people born and bred up under it, and cast, constitu-
tionally and by hereditary associations, into its mould, will only
prove a dead leaden crushing weight on an Englishman, who has,
as you have, tasted from his boyhood the liberty of the Spirit of
God. You will wake, my dear brother, you will wake, not alto-
gether, but just enough to find yourself not believing in Romish
doctrines about saints and virgins, absolutions and indulgences,
but only believing in believing them an awful and infinite differ-
ence, on which I beseech you earnestly to meditate. You will
find yourself crushing the voice of conscience, common-sense, and
humanity I mean the voice of God within you, in order to swal-
low down things at which your gorge rises in disgust. You will
find the Romish practice as different from the Romish ideal as the
English is from the English ideal, and you will find amid all your
discontents and doubts, that the habits of religious excitement,
and of leaning on priests whom you will neither revere nor trust
for themselves, will have enchained you like the habits of a drunk-
ard or an opium-eater, so that you must go back again and again
for self-forgetfulness to the spiritual laudanum-bottle, which gives
now no more pleasant dreams, but only painful heartache, and
miserable depression afterwards. I know what I have seen and
heard from eye-witnesses.
" 1 know you may answer This may be all very fine, but if
Rome be the only true Church, thither I must go, loss or gain.
Most true. But take care how you get at this conviction that Rome
is the true Church ; if by a process of the logical understanding,
The Charticts, 1 1 7
that is most unfair, for you have to renounce the conclusions of
the understanding when you go to Rome. How then can you let
it lead you, to a system which asserts in limine that it has no right
to lead you any where at all ?
" But I must defer this question, and also that of Romish
aesthetics, to another letter. I make no apology for plain speak-
ing ; these are times in which we must be open with each other.
And I was greatly attracted by the little I saw of you. I know
there is a sympathy between us ; and having passed through these
temptations in my own person, God would judge me if I did not
speak what He has revealed to me in bitter struggles. One word
more. Pray, answer this, and pray wait. Never take so impor-
tant a step without at least six months' deliberate waiting, not till,
but after your mind is made up. Five-and twenty years God has
let you remain a Protestant. Even if you were wrong in being
one, He will surely pardon your remaining one six months longer,
in a world where the roads of error are so many and broad that a
man may need to look hard to find the narrow way.
Before resuming work again at Eversley, he went to London,
and took up the old thread by attending a Chartist meeting on the
3d of June, and on the igth a workmen's meeting on the Land
Colonization question, and from Chelsea he writes home :
" .... I could not write yesterday, being kept by a poor
boy who had fallen off a truck at Croydon and smashed himself,
whom I escorted to Gu>'s Hospital. 1 have spent the whole day
running up and down London on business. I breakfasted with
Bnnsen, such a divine-looking man, and so kind. I have worlds
to tell you. Met F. Newman last night, and breakfast with him
to-morrow. I had a long and interesting talk with Froude last
night
' Monday. I spent yesterday with Ludlow, and went with him
to Dr. Thorpe's, and to Lincoln' s-inn Chapel in the afternoon a
noble sight. Maurice's head looked like some great, awful Gior-
gione portrait in the pulpit, but oh, so worn, and the face worked
so at certain passages of the sermon.
" Long and most interesting talk with Mons. Chevallier this
O O
morning. London is perfectly horrible. To you alone 1 look for
help and advice God and you, else I think at times I should
cry myself to death The women's shoe-makers are not
set up yet. My sermons (' Village Sermons') are being lent from
man to man, among the South London Chartists, at such a pace
that Cooper can't get them back again. And the Manchester
men stole his copy of the Saint's Tragedy
1 1 8 Charles Kingsley.
" I have just been to see Carlyle."
(Later) " On Friday I dined at Maurice's. Met Mrs. Augustus
Hare, and a brother of the Archdeacon's, an officer in the Prussian
army, also Mr. and Mrs. Scott, who were very kind indeed. I
took George to a soiree at Parker's, and introduced him to all the
set there. On Saturday we dined at Ludlow's, met dear Charles
Mansfield and a Frenchman, now being tried in Paris for the June
Row, a complete Red Republican and Fourierist ; he says nothing
but Christianity can save France or the world. I had an intensely
interesting talk with him. In the evening the Campbells, Shorter
the Chartist, and Dr. Walsh, came in, and we had a glorious
evening "
June 12, 1849 (My Birthday).
" Last night will never be forgotten by many, many men.
Maurice was I cannot describe it. Chartists told me this morn-
ing that many were affected even to tears. The man was inspired
gigantic. No one commented on what he said. He stunned
us ! I will tell you all when I can collect myself. ....
" This morning I breakfasted with Dr. Guy, and went with him
Tailor hunting, very satisfactory as yet Yesterday
afternoon with Professor Owen at the College of Surgeons, where I
saw unspeakable things "
He now settled at Eversley again, and threw himself into the
full tide of parish work with the loving help of the Rev. H. Percy
Smith, of Baliol, who was ordained to the curacy of Eversley.
The season was unhealthy ; cholera was brooding over England,
and a bad low fever broke out at Eversley, which gave the rector
incessant work and anxiety. The parishioners got frightened. It
was difficult to get nurses for the sick, so that he was with them at
all hours ; and after sitting up a whole night with one bad case, a
laborer's wife, the mother of a large family, that he might himself
give the nourishment every half-hour on which the poor woman's
life depended, he once more completely broke down, and London
physicians advised his taking a sea voyage. A trip to America
and back was proposed ; but he dreaded the loneliness, and his
parents being strongly averse to the plan, he went again to
Devonshire, hoping that a month's quiet and idleness would re-
store him.
From thence he writes home.
Fishing. 119
TORRIDGE MOORS, WEST COUNTRY INN.
" I have been fishing the Torridge today. Caught i^ dozen
very bright sun, which was against me. To-morrow I return to
Clovelly. 1 have got a companion here who is fishing and collect-
ing his rents. Gentleman-like man, and friend of Hawker's the
West Country Poet. Tennyson was down here last year, and
walked in on Hawker to collect Arthur legends."
CLOVELLY, Aug. 16, 1849.
" I have read Rabelais right through, and learnt immensely from
him. I have been reading P. Leroux's book on Christianity and
Democracy, and am now reading Ruskin. The weather has been
too stormy for trawling, but I have got a few nice shells
My landlady is an extraordinary woman, a face and figure as of a
queen, but all thought, sensibility and excitement ; a great ' devote '
and a true Christian ; between grief and religion she has learnt a
blessed lesson. Old VVim. potters in, like an old grey-headed New-
foundland dog, about three times a day to look after me in all sorts
of kind and unnecessary ways. I have been pestered with letter
after letter asking me to join this new popular Church paper, but
have of course fought off. I am convinced at moments that, after
all, the best place for me is at home "
" Saturday I start. J am quite in spirits at the notion of the
Moor. It will give me continual excitement ; it is quite new to
me and I am well enough now to walk in moderation. Let me
know when you receive my drawings. I am doing you a set more
still better J hope. ' The Artist's Wife,' seven or eight shetches
of Claude-Mellot and Sabina, two of my most darling ideals, with a
scrap of conversation annexed to each, just embodying my dreams
about married love and its relation to art.
TO J. M. LUDLOW, ESQ.
CLOVELLY, August 17, 1849.
" I am at last enjoying perfect rest doing nothing but fish,
sail, chat with old sailor and Wesleyan cronies, and read, by way of
a nice mixture, Rabelais, Pierre Leroux, and Ruskin. The first,
were he seven times as unspeakably filthy as he is, I consider as
priceless in wisdom, and often in true evangelic godliness more of
him hereafter. The second is indeed a blessed dawn. The third,
a noble, manful, godly book, a blessed dawn too : but I cannot
talk about them ; I am as stupid as a porpoise, and I lie in the
window, and smoke and watch the glorious cloud-phantasmagoria,
infinite in color and form, crawling across the vast bay and deep
woods below, and draw little sketches of figures, and do not even
dieam, much less think "
I2O Charles Kingsley.
TO HIS WIFE.
COLEBROOK, CREDITON, September 2, 1849.
"Starting out to fish down to Drew's Teignton the old Druid's
sacred place, to see Logan stones and cromlechs. Yesterday was
the most charming solitary day I ever spent in my life scenery
more lovely than tongue can tell. It brought out of me the follow-
ing bit of poetry, with many happy tears.
POET.
I cannot tell what you say, green leaves,
I cannot tell what you say ;
But I know that there is a spirit in you,
And a word in you this day.
I cannot tell what ye say, rosy rocks,
I cannot tell what ye say ;
But I know that there is a spirit in you,
And a word in you this day.
I cannot tell what ye say, brown streams,
I cannot tell what ye say ;
But I know in you too, a spirit doth live,
And a word in you this day.
THE WORD'S ANSWER.
Oh, rose is the color of love and youth, ,
And green is the color of faith and truth,
And brown of the fruitful clay.
The earth is fruitful, and faithful, and young,
And her bridal morn shall rise ere long,
And you shall know what the rocks and the streams,
And the laughing green-woods say !
" Show these to C. If she has taken in the real good of Spino-
zism, she ought to understand them. To-morrow I tramp for Two
Bridges."
And now the Cholera was once more in England, and sanitary
matters absorbed him. He preached three striking sermons at
Eversley, on Cholera, " Who causes Pestilence " (published to-
gether in 1854, with preface). He worked in London and the
country in the crusade against dirt and bad drainage. The terrible
revelations of the state of the Water supply in London saddened
Memories by C. Kegan Paul. 121
and sickened him, and led to his writing an article in the " North
British Review" on the subject.*
At this period many young men from Oxford and elsewhere
gathered round him. The following letter from one of them, Mr.
C. Kegan Paul, speaks for itself of the life at Eversley, which had
become a centre to so many enquiring spirits.
" I first saw Charles Kingsley in Oxford, in the spring term of
1848. He had just published the ' Saint's Tragedy,' and came up
to stay with his old schoolfellow, Cowley Powles, one of our Exeter
tutors. He had not, I think, the least notion he would find himself
famous, but he was so among a not inconsiderable section of young
Oxford, even one month after the drama had appeared. A large
number of us were thoroughly dissatisfied with the high-church
teaching, which then was that of most earnest tutors in Oxford.
There were, indeed, some noble exceptions, Jowett of Balliol,
Powles of Exeter, Congreve of Wadham, Stanley of University,
Clough of Oriel. But they were scattered, and their influence was
over men here and there ; the high-churchmen held the mass of
intelligent young men, many of whom revolted in spirit, yet had
not found a leader. Here was a book which showed that there was
poetry also in the strife against asceticism, whose manly preface
was as stirring as the verse it heralded. We looked at its author
with the deepest interest ; it was a privilege to have been in the
room with him; but my acquaintance with him was necessarily of
the slightest.
" In the summer of the following year, H. Percy Smith, of Balliol,
who also had met Kingsley and taken a walk with him during that
memorable Oxford visit, went to Eversley as curate, and almost as
soon as he was settled, invited me to stay with him in his lodgings,
about half a mile from the Rectory. The day after my arrival we
dined at the Rectory. You were then using as a dining-room the
larger room which afterwards was your drawing-room, and were
alone ; Percy and 1 were the only guests. We went into the study
afterwards while Kingsley smoked his pipe, and the evening is one
of those that stand out in my memory with peculiar vividness, i
had never then. 1 have seldom since, heard a man talk so well.
"Kingsley's conversational powers were very remarkable. In
the first place he had, as may be easily understood by the readers
of his books, a rare command of racy and correct English, while he
was so many sided that he could take keen interest in almost any
subject which attracted those about him. He had read, and read
much, not only in matters which every one ought to know, but had
gone deeply into many out-of the way and unexpected studies. Old
* " Water Supply of London," published in the Miscellanies.
122 Charles Kingsley.
medicine, magic, the occult properties of plants, folk-lore, mesmer-
ism, nooks and bye-ways of history, old legends ; on all these he
was at home. On the habits and dispositions of animals he would
talk as though he were that king in the Arabian Nights who under-
stood the language of beasts, or at least had lived among the
gipsies who loved him so well. The stammer, which in those days
was so much more marked than in later years, and which was a
serious discomfort to himself, was no drawback to the charm of his
conversation. Rather the hesitation before some brilliant flash of
words served to lend point to and intensify what he was saying ;
and when, as ha sometimes did, he fell into a monologue, or recited
a poem in his sonorous voice, the stammer left him wholly, as it did
when he read or preached in church.
" When, however, I use the word monologue, it must not be
supposed that he ever monopolized the talk. He had a courteous
deference for the opinions of the most insignificant person in the
circle, and was even too tolerant of a bore. With all his vast
powers of conversation, and ready to talk on every or any subject,
he was never superficial. What he knew he knew well, and was
always ready to admit the fact when he did not know.
"The morning after that evening in the study, came a note to
me dated, ' Bed this morning,' inviting me to breakfast, and to
transfer my goods from the village public house Percy Smith had
no spare bed-room to the Rectory. I did so, and this was the
first of many visits, each one of increasing intimacy and pleasure.
I cannot do better than expand some notes of those visits, which I
sent to the ' Examiner ' newspaper, in the week which followed
Kingsley' s death last year :
" 'To those who, in the years of which we speak, were constant
guests at Eversley, that happy home can never be forgotten.
Kingsley was in the vigor of his manhood and of his intellectual
powers, was administering his parish with enthusiasm, was writing,
reading, fishing, walking, preaching, talking, with a twenty-parson
power, but was at the same time wholly unlike the ordinary and
conventional parson.
" 'The picturesque bow-windowed Rectory rises to memory as it
stood with all its doors and windows open on certain hot summer
days, the sloping bank with its great fir-tree, the garden a gravel
sweep before the drawing-room and dining-rooms, a grass-plat before
the study, hedged off from the walk and the tall active figure of the
Rector tramping up and down one or the other. His energy made him
seem everywhere, and to pervade every part of house and garden.
The MS. of the book he was writing lay open on a rough standing
desk, which was merely a shelf projecting from the wall ; his pupils
two in number, and treated like his own sons were working in
the dining-room ; his guests perhaps lounging on the lawn, or read-
ing in the study. And he had time for all, going from writing to
Memories by C. Kegan Paul. 123
lecturing on optics, or to a passage in Virgil, from this to a vehe-
ment conversation with a guest, or tender care for his wife who
was far from strong or a romp with his children. He would work
himself into a sort of white heat over his book, till, too excited to
write more, he would calui himself down by a pipe, pacing his grass-
plat in thought and with long strides. He was a great smoker, and
tobacco was to him a needful sedative. He always used a long
and clean clay pipe, which lurked in all sorts of unexpected places.
But none was ever smoked which was in any degree foul, and when
there was a vast accumulation of old pipes, they were sent back
again to the kiln to be rebaked, and returned fresh and new.
This gave him a striking simile, which, in "Alton Locke," he puts
into the mouth of James Crossthwaite. " Katie here believes
in Purgatory, where souls are burnt clean again, like 'bacca
pipes." '
"When luncheon was over, and any arrears of the morning's
work cleared up, a walk with Kingsley was an occasion of constant
pleasure. His delight in every fresh or known bit of scenery was
most keen, and his knowledge of animal life invested the walk
with singular novelty even to those who were already country bred.
1 remember standing on the top of a hill with him when the autumn
evening was fading, and one of the sun's latest rays struck a patch.
on the moor, bringing out a very peculiar mixture of red-brown
colors. What were the precise plants which composed that patch ?
He hurriedly ran over the list of what he thought they were, and
then set off over hedge and ditch, through bog and water-course,
to verify the list he had already made.
" During these afternoon walks he would visit one or another of
his very scattered hamlets or single cottages on the heaths. Those
who have read 'My Winter Garden,' in the 'Miscellanies,' know
how he loved the moor under all its aspects, and the great groves
of firs. Nothing was ever more real than Kingsley's parish visit-
ing. He believed absolutely in the message he bore to the poor,
and the health his ministrations conveyed to their souls, but he was
at the same time a zealous sanitary reformer, and cared for their
bodies also. I was with him once when he visited a sick man
satfering from fever. The atmosphere of the little ground-floor
bed-room was horrible, but before the Rector said a word he ran
up-stairs, and, to the great astonishment of the inhabitants of the
cottage, bored, with a large auger he had brought with him, several
holes above the bed's head for ventilation. His reading in the
sick room and his words were wholly free from cant. The Psalms
and the Prophets, with judicious omissions, seemed to gain new
meaning as he read them, and his after-words were always cheerful
and hopeful. Sickness, in his eyes, seemed always to sanctify and
purify. He would say, with the utmost modesty, that the patient
endurance of the poor taught him day by day lessons which he took
124 Charles Kings ley.
back again as God's message to the bed-side from which he had
learnt them.
" One great element of success in his intercourse with his parish-
ioners was his abounding humor and fun. What caused a hearty
laugh was a real refreshment to him, and he had the strongest be-
lief that laughter and humor were elements in the nature of God
Himself.
" This abounding humor has with some its dangers. Not so
with Kingsley. No man loved a good story better than he, but
there was always in what he told or what he suffered himself to
hear, a good and pure moral underlying what might be coarse in
expression. While he would laugh with the keenest sense of
amusement at what might be simply broad, he had the most utter
scorn and loathing for all that could debase and degrade. And he
was the most reverent of men, though he would say things which
seemed daring because people were unaccustomed to hear sacred
things named without a pious snuffle. This great reverence led
him to be even unjust to some of the greatest humorists. I quoted
Heine one day at his table. 'Who was Heine?' asked his little
daughter. ' A wicked man, my dear,' was the only answer given
to her, and an implied rebuke to me.
" On the week-day evenings he frequently held a ' cottage
lecture ' or short service in a cottage, for the old and feeble who
lived at a distance from church. To this he would sally forth in a
fisherman's knitted blouse if the night were wet or cold.
" Old and new friends came and went as he grew famous not
too strong a word for the feeling of those days and the drawing-
room evening conversations and readings, the tobacco parliaments
later into the night, included many of the most remarkable persons
of the day.
" I do not give any recollections of those conversations, partly
because it would be difficult to do so without giving names which
I have no right here to introduce, and partly because his opinions
on all subjects will be amply illustrated in his own words from let-
ters to many who sought his advice. But 1 know that those
evening talks kept more than one who shared in them from
Rome, and weaned more than one from vice, while others had
doubts to faith removed which had long paralyzed the energy of
their lives.
" It would not be right, however, to pass over the fact that it was
through his advice, and mainly in consequence of the aid he gave
me, that I was myself enabled to take orders. You know that I
have again become a layman, but though my views have greatly
developed from those I held twenty-three years ago, I do not
regret that I then was encouraged to become a clergyman. Kings-
ley enabled me to dismiss at once and forever all faith whatever in
the popular doctrine of eternal punishment, and all the whole class
Memories by C. Kegan Paul. 125
of dogmas which tend to confuse the characters of God and the
Devil.
" A day rises vividly to memory, when Kingsley remained shut
up in the study during the afternoon, the door bolted, inaccessible
to all interruption. The drowsy hour had come on between the
lights, when it was time to dress for dinner, and talk, without the
great inspirer of it, was growing disjointed and fragmentary, when
he came in from the study, a paper, yet undried, in his hand, and
read us the ' Lay of the Last Buccaneer,' most spirited of all his
ballads. One who had been lying back in an arm-chair, known
for its seductive properties as 'sleepy hollow,' roused up then, and
could hardly sleep all night for the inspiring music of the words
read by one of the very best readers I have ever heard.
" It was my good fortune to be staying with you through the sum-
mer in which the greater part of ' Hypatia ' was written. I was
especially struck not only with his power of work, but with the extra-
ordinary pains he took to be accurate in detail. We spent one
whole day in searching the four folio volumes of Synesius for a fact
he thought was there, and which was found there at last. The hard
reading he had undergone for that book alone would furnish an
answer to some who thought him superficial.
" Others will write better than I of his work in the parish gener-
ally, and of his theology.
" In some places in the country it is still the custom to perform
part of the marriage service in the body of the church, and then
proceed to the chancel. So it had always been in the Oxfordshire
parish to which I was appointed. Kingsley told with infinite delight
how a curate at or near Bideford had tried to introduce the practice,
and how the Devon clerk protested, saying, ' First he went up the
church, and then he went down the church, side-a-ways, here-a-ways,
and theer-a-ways, a scrattlin' like a crab. 1
" His sermons were full of most tender care for individual
cases known only to himself. When he was most impressive and
pathetic it was generally because' his sermon touched the sorrow of
some one in the congregation, though the words seemed general.
Once, when I was to preach for him, he asked me to let him look
at two or three MS. sermons I had with me. He read them care-
fully, and selected one, not by any means the best written. Preach
//iaf, Charles ; there is a poor soul who will be in church whose sins
it may touch, and whose sorrows it may heal. God help us all.'
" In the summer of 1851, I travelled from Reading to London
with Miss Mitford, who did not then know Kingsley, though after-
wards they became very good friends. She said she had driven by
Eversley churchyard a few days before, and had seen Kingsley
reading the funeral service ; that he looked quite what she should
have expected, ' a pale student.' I need hardly say she had seen
his curate, and that Kingsley was as unlike a pale student as any
126 Charles Kings ley.
man who ever lived. His temperament was artistic and impulsive.
He delighted in out-door life, in sport, in nature in all her moods
and phases. His physical frame was powerful and wiry, his com-
plexion dark, his eye bright and piercing. Yet he often said he did
not think that his would be a long life, and the event has sadly con-
firmed his anticipations.
" My life at Eton as Master in College was one which left me
scant time for visits to Eversley. But my rare interviews with
Kingsley, when I snatched a day to drive over, were always full of
delight. I often consulted him about professional difficulties, and
found his insight into school-boy life most remarkable, and his
sympathy with the young unflagging. He spent one day only with
us at Eton in those eight years, but I remember his delight in a row
on the river, visiting the boys' bathing places.
" Cambridge, indeed, in those years was more accessible than
Eversley, and that again would furnish me with somewhat to say,
did not others know that portion of the life better than I. I was
staying at Cambridge at the time of the Prince Consort's death,
and remember how he was affected by it, as at the loss of a per-
sonal friend. I walked over the next day to Maddingley with
Kingsley, who wished to hear Windsor news from some of the suite,
and met, on the way, more than one of the specially chosen young
associates of the Prince of Wales. I can never forget, nor probably
will those who were addressed forget, the earnest, solemn, and
agitated tones in which he spoke of the Prince Consort's care for
his son, and the duty which lay on them, the Prince of Wales'
young friends, to see that they did all in their power to enforce the
wise counsel of him who was dead.
"My removal into Dorset yet further sundered us in person, but
never in heart. When we met from time to time, his cordial grasp
said more than words to assure me of the old brotherly affection.
" Coming once more to live in London, I hoped for the old
unrestricted intimacy once again. It was not so to be. I saw him,
and saw him only but once, enough to notice that he was sorely
changed in body, which, though far from puny, was fretted away
by his fiery spirit. And when they laid him to rest, in Eversley
churchyard, near the graves where some whom he loved repose,
and where the shadow of the great Scotch fir lies each summer
afternoon, 1 could stand by his grave only in thought. But it will
ever have association of the most solemn kind. I am among those
many who can never forget that, widely as they have differed from
Charles Kingsley, and that, whatever were his failings and incom-
pletenesses, his was just that one influence which, at a time they
needed a guide, roused them to live manly lives, and play their
parts in the stir of the world, while to me he was the noblest,
truest, kindest friend I ever had or can hope to have."
CHAPTER IX.
1850 1851.
AGED 31, 32.
Resigns the Office of Clerk in Orders at Chelsea Pupil Life at Eversley Pub-
lication of " Alton Locke" Letters from Mr. Carlyle Writes for " Chris-
tian Socialist" Troubled State of the Country Burglaries The Rectory
Attacked.
THE year 1850 was spent by the Rector of Eversley at home, in
better health, with still fuller employment ; for in addition to parish
and writing, he had the work of teaching a private pupil, which
was quite new to him. Times were bad, rates were high, rate-
payers discontented, and all classes felt the pressure. The Rector
felt it also, but he met it by giving the tenants back ten per cent.
on their tithe payments, and thus at once and for ever he won.
their confidence.
He had, since his marriage, held the office of Clerk in Orders in
his father's parish of St. Luke's, Chelsea, which added consider-
ably to his income, and in those days was not considered incom-
patible with non-residence ; but though his deputy was well paid,
and he himself occasionally preached and lectured in Chelsea, he
looked upon the post as a sinecure, and so he resigned it. The
loss of income must however be met, and this could only be done
by his pen. It was a heavy struggle just then, with Rector's Poor
Rates at ^150 per annum, and the parish charities mainly depen-
dent on him ; but he set to work with indomitable industry, and
by a great effort finished "Alton Locke." It was a busy winter,
for the literary work was not allowed to interfere with the pupil
work, or either with the parish ; he got up at five every morning,
and wrote till breakfast ; after breakfast he worked with his pupil
and at his sermons ; the afternoons were devoted as usual to cot-
tage visiting ; the evenings to adult school and superintending the
fair copy of "Alton Locke" made by his wife for the press. It
was the only book of which he had a fair copy made. His habit
128 Charles Kings ley.
was thoroughly to master his subject, whether book or sermon, al-
ways out in the open air, in his garden, on the moor, or by the side
of a lonely trout stream, and never to put pen to paper till the
ideas were clothed in words ; and these, except in the case of
poetry, he seldom altered. For many years his writing was all
done by his wife from his dictation, while he paced up and down
the room.
When "Alton Locke" was completed, the difficulty was to find
a publisher : Messrs. Parker, who had, or thought they had, suffered
in reputation for publishing "Yeast" in the pages of F'raser, and
" Politics for the People," refused the book ; and Mr. Carlyle
kindly gave the author an introduction to Messrs. Chapman &
Hall, who, on the strength of his recommendation, undertook to
bring it out.
"I have written to Chapman," says Mr. Carlyle, "and you shall
have his answer, on Sunday, if it come within post hours to-mor-
row ; if not then on Tuesday. But without any answer, I believe
I may already assure you of a respectful welcome, and the new
novel of a careful and hopeful examination from the man of books.
He is sworn to secrecy too. This is all the needful to-day, in
such an unspeakable hurry as this present.
" And so, right glad myself to hear of a new explosion, or salvo
of red-hot shot against the Devil's Dung-heap, from that particular
battery,
" I remain,
"Yours always truly,
" T. CARLYLE."
The spread of infidel opinions among the working classes and
the necessity of meeting them, continually occupied him, and he
writes to his friend Mr. Ludlow,
" But there is something else which weighs awfully on my mind,
the first number of Cooper's Journal, which he sent me the other
day. Here is a man of immense influence, openly preaching
Straussism to the workmen, and in a fair, honest, manly way, which
must tell. Who will answer him ? Who will answer Strauss ? Who
will denounce Strauss as a vile aristocrat, robbing the poor man of
his Saviour of the ground of all democracy, all freedom, all asso-
ciation of the Charter itself? Oh si mihi centum voces et ferrea
lingua. Think about that talk to Maurice about that. To me
it is awfully pressing. If the priests of the Lord are wanting to the
cause now ! woe to us !
A Flood. 129
"Don't fire at me about smoking. I do it, because it does me
good, and I could not (for I have tried again and again) do without
it. I smoke the very cheapest tobacco. In the meantime I am
keeping no horse a most real self-sacrifice to me. But if I did, I
should have so much the less to give to the poor. God knows all
about that, John Ludlow, and about other things too."
EVERSLEY, June, 1850.
" Up till one this morning, keeping a great flood out amid such
lightning and rain as I think I never saw before; up to my knees
in water, working witli a pickaxe by candle-light to break holes in
the wall, to prevent all being washed away. Luckily my garden is
saved. But it all goes with me under the head of ' fun.' Some-
thing to do and lightning is my highest physical enjoyment. I
should like to have my thunderstorm daily, as one has one's
dinner. What a providence I did not go to town last night.
My man was gone home, and we should have had the garden
ruined, and the women frightened out of their wits."
A new penny periodical had been proposed, to counteract the
spread of infidel opinions among the masses. Before it was set
on foot the writers for "Politics" brought out a series of tracts,
" On Christian Socialism." Among the most remarkable was
" Cheap Clothes, and Nasty," by Parson Lot,* exposing the slop-
selling system, which was at the root of much of the distress in
London and the great towns. The Tailors' Association was formed,
and a shop opened in Castle Street, to which the publication of
"Cheap Clothes" took many customers; and in June, a friend
writes to Mrs. Kingsley from London :
". . . Three copies of 'Cheap Clothes, and Nasty' are
lying on the Guards' Club table ! Percy Fielding (Captain in the
Guards) went to Castle Street and ordered a coat, and I met two
men at dinner yesterday with Castle Street coats on."
In August the Rectory party had an addition, Mr. Lees, a
young Cambridge man arriving for three months to read for Holy
Orders. It was a bold step in those days for any man to take, to
read divinity with the author of "Yeast" and "Alton Locke," but
after twenty-six years' ministry in the Church, he looks back to it
as a time not only of enjoyment, but of profit.
With his pupil he read Strauss's " Leben Jesu," of which an
English translation had just been published. He considered
* Now republished in a new edition of " Alton Locke."
9
130 Charles Kingsley.
Strauss, as he considered Comte eighteen years later, the great
false prophet of the day, who must be faced and fought against by
the clergy.
To another candidate for Holy Orders, who wrote to him at that
time, he replies :
TO C. KEGAN PAUL, ESQ.
" You wish to know what to read for Orders ? That depends
on what you mean. If to get through a Bishop's examination, just
ask any one who has been lately ordained what he crammed ; and
cram that, which may take you some six weeks, and no trouble.
"But if you want to be of any use, I should advise you, if you
can, which all men cannot, to sit down and read your Bible
honestly, and let it tell you its own story, utterly careless of any
theories, High Church or Puritan, which have been put into the
text first, and then found there by their own inserters.
" For instance : read the Pentateuch and the books of Samuel
and Kings ; Isaiah in Lowth's and the minor prophets in New-
come's translation ; the Gospels from Alford's new text, and the
Epistles by the light of your own common sense and honest scholar-
ship. Believe that if TTOUT means a foot in profane Greek, it will
most likely mean a foot also in ecclesiastical Greek, and avoid the
popular belief that the Apostles write barbarisms, whenever their
words cannot be made to square at first sight with Laud or Calvin.
" For books : Kitto's ' Encyclopaedia of Biblical Literature' will
tell you all that is known of Bible history and antiquities ; * and for
doctrine, I advise you to read Maurice's ' Kingdom of Christ,'
' Christmas Day and other sermons,' and his new edition of the
'Moral and Metaphysical Philosophy.'
" Thus much now, but if you will ask me questions from time to
time, I will tell you all I know, if you think my knowledge worth
having. Never think of bothering me. It is a delight to me to
give hints to any one whom I can ever so little put forward in these
confused times."
During the autumn of 1850 the state of the country was ominous.
In his own parish there was still low fever, and a general depression
prevailed. Work was slack, and as winter approached gangs of
housebreakers and men who preferred begging and robbery to the
workhouse, wandered about Hampshire, Surrey, and Sussex. No
house was secure. Mr. Holiest, the clergyman of Frimley, was
* It must be remembered that this was in 1850, before the " Dictionary of
the Bible," &c., &c., were published.
Forebodings. 131
murdered in his own garden while pursuing the thieves ; and
the little Rectory at Eversley, which had never hitherto needed pro-
tection, and had scarcely a strong lock on its doors, was armed
with bolts and bars, fortunately before it too was attempted by the
same gang. The Rector slept with loaded pistols by his bed-side,
and policemen from Winchester watched in and about the quiet
garden by night. . The future of England looked dark, and he writes
to Mr. Maurice :
EVERSLEY, SUNDAY, October, 1850.
" MY DEAREST MASTER,
" I hear you are come home. If so, for God's sake come
down and see me, if but for a day. I have more doubts, perplexi-
ties, hopes, and fears to pour out to you than I could utter in a
week, and to the rest of our friends I cannot open. You compre-
hend me ; you are bigger than I. Come down and tell me what
to think and do, and let Fanny as well as me, have the delight of
seeing your face again. I would come to you, but I have two
pupils, and business besides, and also don't know when and how to
catch you.
" The truth is, I feel we are all going on in the dark, toward some-
thing wonderful and awful, but whether to a precipice or a paradise,
or neither, or both, I cannot tell. All my old roots are tearing up
one by one, and though I keep a gallant ' front ' before the Char-
lotte Street people (Council of Association), little they know of
the struggles within me, the laziness, the terror. Fray for me ; I
could lie down and cry at times. A poor fool of a fellow, and yet
feeling thrust upon all sorts of great and unspeakable paths, in-
stead of being left in peace to classify butterflies and catch trout.
" If it were not for the Psalms and Prophets, and the Gospels,
I should turn tail, and flee shamefully, giving up the whole ques-
tion, and all others, as agri somnia"
TO J. M. LUDLOW, ESQ.
EVERSLEY, October, 1850.
" I have been thinking about two ways of working this penny
periodical, and which is the right. Whether our present idea is
not to write down to the people, to address ourselves too exclu-
sively to the working man, to give them only a part of our thoughts ?
Whether the truly democratic method would not be to pour out our
whole souls in it. To say, if not all we think, yet all we think fit
to say on every subject ; to make it, if possible, an organ of Chris-
tian teaching to all classes, on the things now agitating their minds.
" To have the best criticism, metaphysics, history, and everything
else, and by teaching all, to teach the working man merely as a.
132 Charles Kings ley.
member of the whole, and of equal rights and mind with all. I
cannot help fancying this the true brotherly method to speak to
factory-worker and duke alike to put them on one common
ground, show that we consider them subject to the same law.
" The rogues are frightened off. I had to send a charge of
slugs, not deadly though unpleasantly straight, after one the other
night, and they have eschewed us since.
" I will get ready the Labor Conference Tract as soon as I can.
But I have been disorganized, and kept up at night by these sons
of Belial, and so I am behind in my work "
" Jeremiah is my favorite book now. It has taught me more
than tongue can tell. But I am much disheartened, and -am
minded to speak no more words in this name (Parson Lot). Yet
all these bullyings teach one, correct one, warn one, show one
that God is not leaving one to go one's own way. ' Christ reigns,'
quoth Luther."
"Alton Locke" came out in August, and the verdict of the
Press was of course a severe one. The best artizans, however,
hailed it as a true picture of their class and circumstances, and
there are still thoughtful men and women of the higher orders who
consider it one of the finest of his productions. Mr. Carlyle's
words on the subject are noteworthy.
CHELSEA, October 31, 1850.
"It is now a great many weeks that I have been your debtor
for a book which in various senses was very welcome to me.
' Alton Locke ' arrived in Annandale, by post, from my wife, early
in September, and was swiftly read by me, under the bright sun-
shine, by the sound of rushing brooks and other rural accompani-
ments. I believe the book is still doing duty in those parts ; for I
had to leave it behind me on loan, to satisfy the public demand.
Forgive me that I have not, even by a word, thanked you for this
favor. Continual shifting and moving ever since, not under the
best omens, has hindered me from writing almost on any subject
or to any person.
" Apart from your treatment of my own poor self (on which sub-
ject let me not venture to speak at all), I found plenty to like, and
be grateful for in the book : abundance, nay exuberance of gen-
eral zeal ; head-long impetuosity of determination towards the man-
ful side on all manner of questions ; snatches of excellent poetic
description, occasional sunbursts of noble insight ; everywhere a
certain wild intensity, which hol'ds the reader fast as by a spell :
these surely are good qualities, and pregnant omens in a man of
your seniority in the regiment ! At the same time, I am bound to
Letter from Thomas Carlylc. 133
say, the book is definable as crude ; by no manner of means the
best we expect of you if you will resolutely temper your fire.
But to make the malt sweet, the fire should and must be slow :
so says the proverb, and now, as before, I include all duties for
you under that one ! ' Saunders Mackaye,' my invaluable country-
man in this book, is nearly perfect ; indeed 1 greatly wonder how
you did contrive to manage him his very dialect is as if a na-
tive had done it, and the whole existence of the rugged old hero
is a wonderfully splendid and coherent piece of Scotch bravura.
In both of your women, too, I find some grand poetic features ;
but neither of them is worked out into the ' Daughter of the Sun '
she might have been ; indeed, nothing is worked out anywhere
in comparison with ' Saunders ; ' and the impression is of a fer-
vid creation still left half chaotic. This is my literary verdict, both
the black of it and the white.
" Of the grand social and moral questions we will say nothing
whatever at present : any time within the next two centuries, it is
like, there will be enough to say about them ! On the whole, you
will have to persist ; like a cannon-ball that is shot, you will have to
go to your mark, whatever that be. I stipulate farther that you
come and see me when you are at Chelsea ; and that you pay no
attention at all to the foolish clamor of reviewers, whether laud-
atory or condemnatory.
"Yours with true wishes,
'T. CARLYLE."
The publication of "Yeast" brought him some enemies and
many correspondents ; and more than one "fast man" came down
from London to open his heart to its author and ask advice. In
the religious world the Anglican question occupied one large sec-
tion of the Church, and the tide set Rome-wards. Clergymen
wrote to him to ask him to advise them how to save members of
their flock from Popery ; mothers to beg him to try and rescue their
daughters from the influence' of Protestant confessors; while wo-
men themselves hovering between Rome and Anglicanism, be-
tween the attractions of a nunnery and the monotonous duties of
family life, laid their difficulties before the author of the "Saint's
Tragedy." He who shrank on principle from the office of father-
confessor had the work thrust upon him by many whom he never
met face to face in this world, and whom he dared not refuse to
help.
The labor was severe to a man who felt the importance of such
communications, and the responsibility of giving counsel, as in-
134 Charles Kingsley.
tensely as he did ; and those who saw the daily letters on his study
table would say that the weight of such correspondence alone was
enough to wear any man down, who had not in addition sermons
to write, books to compose, a parish to work, and a pupil to teach.
But his iron energy, coupled with a deep conscientiousness, en-
abled him to get through it. " One more thing done," he would
say, " thank God," as each letter was written, each chapter of a
book or page of sermon dictated to his wife ; " and oh ! how
blessed it will be when it is all over, to lie down in that dear
churchyard."
The correspondence increased year by year, as each fresh book
touched and stirred fresh hearts. Officers both in the army and
navy would write to him all strangers one to ask his opinion
about duelling ; another to beg him to recommend or write a ra-
tional form of family prayer for camp or hut ; another for a set of
prayers to be used on board ship in her Majesty's navy ; others on
more delicate social points of conscience and conduct, which the
writers would confide to no other clergyman ; but all to thank him
for his books. The atheist dared tell him of his doubts ; the pro-
fligate of his fall ; young men brought up to go into Holy Orders,
but filled with misgivings about the Articles, the Creeds, and, more
than all, on the question of endless punishment, would pour out all
their difficulties to him; and many a noble spirit now working as a
priest and pastor in the Church of England would never have
taken orders but for Charles Kingsley.
CHAPTER X.
1851.
AGED 32.
Opening of the Great Exhibition Attack on " Yeast " in the " Guardian " and
Reply Occurrence in a London Church Goes to Germany Letter from
Mr. John Martineau.
THE year of the Great Exhibition, which began with distress and
discontent in England, and ended with a Revolution in Paris, was
a notable one in the life of Charles Kingsley. His parochial work
was only varied by the addition of new plans of draining the parish
at the points where low fever had prevailed ; which he success-
fully carried out without help from any sanitary board. " Hypa-
tia " was begun as a serial in "Eraser's Ma.gazine." "Santa
Maura " and several shorter poems were written. He contributed
to the "Christian Socialist" eight papers on "Bible Politics, or
God justified to the People," four on the " Firmley Murder," three
entitled "The Long Game," a few ballads and sonnets, and "The
Nun's Pool," which had been rejected by the publishers of "Poli-
tics." He preached two sermons in London, one of which made
him notorious, and occasionally he attended the Conferences of
the Promoters of Association. He crossed the Channel for the
first time. His friendship with Erederika Bremer, the Swedish
novelist, and with Miss Mitford, date from this year.
In January he writes to Mr. Maurice about the new romance
which was dawning upon his imagination.
EVERSLEY, January 16, 1851.
' A thousand thanks for all your advice and information, which
encourages me to say more. I don't know how far I shall be able
to write much for the ' Christian Socialist.' Don't fancy that I am
either lazy or afraid. But, if I do not use my pen to the uttermost
in earning my daily bread, I shall not get through this year. I
am paying off the loans which I got to meet the expenses of re-
136 Charles Kings ley.
pairing and furnishing ; but, with an income reduced this year by
more than 2oo/., having given up, thank God, that sinecure clerk-
ship, and having had to return ten per cent, of my tithes, owing to
the agricultural distress, I have also this year, for the first time, the
opportunity, and therefore the necessity, of supporting a good
school. My available income, therefore, is less than 400?. I can-
not reduce my charities, and I am driven either to give up my
curate, or to write, and either of these alternatives, with the in-
creased parish work, for I have got either lectures or night school
every night in the week, and three services on Sunday, will demand
my whole time. What to do unless 1 get pupils I know not.
Martineau leaves me in June.
" My present notion is to write a historical romance of the be-
ginning of the fifth century, which has been breeding in my head
this two years. But how to find time I know not. And if there
is a storm brewing, of course I shall have to help to fight the Phil-
istines. Would that I had wings as a dove, then would I flee away
and be at rest ! I have written this selfish and egotistical letter to
ask for your counsel ; but I do not forget that you have your own
troubles. My idea in the romance is to set forth Christianity as
the only really democratic creed, and philosophy, above all, spir-
itualism, as the most exclusively aristocratic creed. Such has been
my opinion for a long time, and what J have been reading lately
confirms it more and more. Even Synesius, ' the philosophic '
bishop, is an aristocrat by the side of Cyril. It seems to me that
such a book might do good just now, while the Scribes and Phaii-
sees, Christian and heathen, are saying, ' This people, which
knoweth not the law, is accursed ! ' Of English subjects I can
write no more just now. I have exhausted both my stock and my
brain, and really require to rest it, by turning it to some new field,
in which there is richer and more picturesque life, and the elements
are less confused, or rather, may be handled more in the mass
than English ones now. I have long wished to do something an-
tique, and get out my thoughts about the connection of the old
world and the new ; Schiller's ' Gods of Greece ' expresses, I think.
a tone of feeling very common, and which finds its vent in modern
Neo-Platonism Anythingarianism. But if you think I ought not,
I will not. I will obey your order."
TO GEORGE BRIMLEY, ESQ.
Monday, October, 1851.
" I am quite astonished at the steady-going, respectable people
who approve more or less of ' Alton Locke.' It was but the other
night, at the Speaker's, that Sir *** ***, considered one
of the safest Whig traditionists in England, gave in his adher-
ence to the book in the kindest terms. Both the Marshall s have
Teetotalism. 137
done the same so has Lord Ashburton. So have, strange to say,
more than one ultra-respectable High-Tory Squire so goes the
world. If you do anything above party, the true-hearted ones of all
parties sympathize with you. And all I want to do is to awaken
the good men of all opinions to the necessity of shaking hands and
laying their heads together, and to look for the day when the bad
of all parties will get their deserts, which they will, very accurately,
before Mr. Carlyle's friends, 'The Powers' and 'The Destinies,'
have done with them.
" The article I have not seen, and don't intend to. There is no
use for a hot-tempered and foul-mouthed man like myself praying
not to be led into temptation, and then reading, voluntarily, at-
tacks on himself from the firm of Wagg, Wenham, and Co. But if
you think I ought to answer the attack formally, pray tell me so.
" Hypatia grows, little darling, and I am getting very fond of
her ; but the period is very dark, folks having been given to lying
then, as well as now, besides being so blind as not to see the mean-
ing of their own time (perhaps, though, we don't of ours), and so
put down, not what we should like to know, but what they liked
to remember. Nevertheless there are materials for a grand book.
And if I fail in it, 1 may as well give up writing perhaps the best
thing for me ; though, thanks to abiue-puffs, my books sell pretty
steadily."
The " Christian Socialist " movement had been severely at-
tacked in an article in the " Edinburgh" and in the "Quarterly;"
in both articles Communism and Socialism were spoken of as
identical, and the author of "Alton Locke" was pointed at as the
chief offender.
Among other topics discussed in the " Christian Socialist " was
" Teetotalism." While Mr. Kingsley argued against it, and for
the right of the poor man to wholesome (and therefore not public-
house) beer, he was for ever urging on landlords, magistrates, and
householders to make a stand against the increasing number of
public-houses and consequent increase of drunkenness and de-
moralization, which paralyzed the work of the clergy, by refusing
licences to fresh public-houses, and above all by withholding spirit
^licences. He saw no hope for country parishes unless the number
of public-houses could be legally restricted by the area of the par-
ish and the amount of population to the lowest possible number,
and those placed under the most vigilant police superintendence,
especially in the outlying districts where they are nests of poachers
and bad characters, and utterly ruinous to the boys, girls, and
138 Charles Kings ley.
young men who frequent them from the moment they leave
school.
TO THOMAS HUGHES, ESQ.
". . . . You are green in cottoning to me about our '48'
mess. Because why ? I lost nothing i risked nothing. You
fellows worked like bricks, spent money, and got midshipman's
half-pay (nothing a day and find' yourself ), and monkey's allowance'
(more kicks than halfpence). 1 risked no money ; 'cause why, I
had none ; but made money out of the movement, and fame too.
I've often thought what a poor creature I was. I made ^150 by
' Alton Locke,' and never lost a farthing ; and I got, not in spite
of, but by the rows, a name and a standing with many a one who
would never have heard of rne otherwise, and I should have been
a mendicant if I had holloaed when I got a facer, while I was win-
ning by the cross, though I didn't mean to fight one. No. And
if I'd had ^100,000, I'd have, and should have, staked and lost it
all in 1848-50. I should, Tom, for my heart was and is in i v , and
you'll see it will beat yet; but we ain't the boys, we don't see but
half the bull's eye yet, and don't see at all the policeman which is.
a-going on his beat behind the bull's eye, and no thanks to us.
Still, some somedever, it's in the fates, that association is the pure
caseine, and must be eaten by the human race if it would save its
soul alive, which, indeed, it will ; only don't you think me a good
fellow for not crying out, when I never had more to do than scratch
myself, and away went the fleas. But you all were real bricks;
and if you were riled, why let him that is without sin cast the first
stone, or let me cast it for him, and see if I don't hit him in the
eye.
" Now to business ; I have had a sorter kinder sample day.
Up at five, to see a dying man ; ought to have been up at two, but
Ben King, the rat-catcher, who came to call me, was taken ner-
vous ! ! ! and didn't make row enough ; was from 5.30 to 6.30 with
the most dreadful case of agony insensible to me, but not to his
pain. Came home, got a wash and a pipe, and again to him at
eight. Found him insensible to his own pain, with dilated pupils,
dying of pressure of the brain going any moment. Prayed the
commendatory prayers over him, and started for the river with W.
Fished all the morning in a roaring N.E. gale, with the dreadful
agonized face between me and the river, pondering on The mystery. .
Killed eight on ' March brown,' a ' governor,' by drowning the flies
and taking 'em out gently to see if aught was there, which is the
only dodge in a north-easter. 'Cause why ? The water is wanner
than the air ergo, fishes don't like to put their noses out o' doors,
and feeds at home down stairs. It is the only wrinkle, Tom. The
captain fished a-top, and caught but three all day. They weren't
Notes on Fishing. 139
going to catch a cold in their heads to please him or any man.
Clouds burn up at i p.m. I put on a minnow, and kill three
more ; I should have had lots, but for the image of the dirty hick-
ory stick, which would ' walk the waters like a thing of life,' just
ahead of my minnow. Mem. never fish with the sun in your back ;
it's bad enough with a fly, but with a minnow its strychnine and
prussic acid. My eleven weighed together four and a-half pounds,
three to the pound ; not good, considering 1 had passed many a
two-pound fish, I know.
if Corollary. Brass minnow don't suit the water. Where is
your wonderful minnow ? Send me one down, or else a horn one,
which I believes in desperate ; but send me something before
Tuesday, and I will send you P.O.O. Horn minnow looks like a
gudgeon, which is the pure caseine. One pounder I caught to-day
on the ' March brown,' womited his wittles, which was rude, but
instructive ; and among worms was a gudgeon three inches long
and more. Blow minnows gudgeon is the thing.
" Came off the water at three. Found my man alive, and, thank
God, quiet. Sat with him, and thought him going once or twice.
What a mystery that long, insensible death- struggle is ! Why
should they be so long about it ? Then had to go to Hartley
Row for an Archdeadon's Sunday-school meeting three hours
useless (I fear) speechifying and shop ; but the archdeacon is a
good man, and works like a brick beyond his office. Got back at
10.30, and sit writing to you. So goes one's day. All manner of
incongruous things to do, and the very incongruity keeps one
beany and jolly. Your letter was delightful. I read part of it to
W., who says you are the best fellow on earth, to which I agree.
" So no more from your sleepy and tired,
"C. KINGSLEY."
TO HIS WIFE.
EVERSLEY RECTORY.
" Friday. Such a ducking ! such a storm ! I am glad you were
not at home for that only. We were up fishing on the great lake
at Bramshill : the morning soft, rich, and lowering, with a low, fall-
ing glass. I have been prophesying thunder for two or three days.
Perch would not bite. I went to see E. H. ; and read and prayed
with her. How one gets to love consumptive patients. She seems
in a most happy, holy state of mind, thanks to Smith. Then I went
on to L. G. ; sat a long time with her, and came back to the lake
day burning, or rather melting, the country looking glorious.
The day as hot without sun, as it generally is with. There appeared
a black storm over Reading. I found the luckless John had
hooked a huge jack, which broke everything in a moment, and
went off with all his spinning tackle which he prizes so. Then the
storm began to work round in that mysterious way storms will, and
140 Charles Kingsley.
gather from every quarter, and the wind which had been dead calm'
S.E., blew N.E., N., W., and lastly as it is doing now, and always
does after these explosions, S.W. And then began such a sight,
and we on the island in the middle of the great lake ! The light-
ning was close, and we seemed to strike the ground near Sand-
hurst again and again, and the crackle and roar and spit and
grumble over our heads was awful. I have not been in such a storm
for four years. And it rained fancy it ! We walked home after
an hour's ducking. I gave John a warm bath and hot wine and
water, for I did not feel sure of his strength. I am not ashamed to
say that I prayed a great deal during the storm, for we were in a
very dangerous place in an island under high trees ; and it seemed
dreadful never to see you again. I count the hours till Monday.
Tell the chicks I found a real wild duck's nest on the island, full of
eggs, and have brought one home to hatch it under a hen ! Kiss
them for me. We dined at theT.'s last night, and after dinner went
birds' nesting in the garden, and found plenty. Tell Rose a bull-
finch's, with eggs, and a chaffinch's, and an oxeye's, and a thrush's,
and a greenfinch's; and then Ball and I, to the astonishment and
terror of old Mrs. Campbell, climbed to the top of the highest fir
tree there, to hang our hats on the top.
The opening of the Great Exhibition was a matter of deep in-
terest to him, not only for its own sake, but for that of the Great
Prince who was the prime mover in the undertaking. On enter-
ing the building he was moved to tears ; to him it was like going
into a sacred place, not a mere show as so many felt it, and still
less a mere giganhc shop, in which wares were displayed for selfish
purposes, and from mere motives of trade competition. The
science, the art, the noble ideas of universal peace, universal
brotherhood it was meant to shadow forth and encourage, excited
him intensely, while the feeling that the realization of those great
and noble ideas was as yet so far off, and that these achievements
of physical science were mere forecastings of a great but distant
future, saddened him as profoundly. Four days after the opening,
he preached to a London congregation in St. Margaret's, West-
minster, on Psalm Ixviii. 18, and Eph. iv. 8 : " When He ascended
up on high., He led captivity captive, and received gifts for men,
yea, even for His enemies, that the Lord God might dwell among
them" he startled his hearers by contrasting the wide-spread un-
belief of the present day in God, as the Fount of all science, all
art, all the intelligence of the nation, with the simple faith of our
forefathers.
Attack on "Yeast" 141
In the month of May there was a review of his " Yeast " in the
" Guardian " by a well-known Oxford graduate, a strong partisan
of the Anglican party. The review was anonymous, and con-
tained very grave charges against the book and its writer of
heresy of encouraging profligacy, &c., &c.
Their effect was to leave a general impression that the book in-
culcated the vilest principles, and most pernicious doctrines, while
not a single quotation from it was given, so as to afford the readers
of the review an opportunity of judging for themselves.
Mr. Kingsley had hitherto made it a rule not to answer news-
paper attacks on himself, especially those of the religious press,
but these charges being beyond all precedent, he repudiated them
in the following indignant words :
TO THE EDITOR OF THE "GUARDIAN."
May, 1851.
" SIR,
u Having lived for several years under the belief that the Editor
of the ' Guardian ' was a gentleman and a Christian, I am bound
to take for granted that you have not yourself read the book called
' Yeast,' which you have allowed to be reviewed in your columns.
This answer therefore is addressed, not to you, but to your re-
viewer ; and I have a right to expect that you will, as an act of
common fairness, insert it.
" I most thoroughly agree with the reviewer that he has not mis-
understood me ; on the contrary, he sees most Clearly the gist of
the book, as is proved by his carefully omitting any mention what-
soever of two questions connected with a character whose existence
is passed over in silence, which form the very pith and moral of
the whole book. 1 know well enough why he has ignored them ;
because they were the very ones which excited his wrath.
" But he makes certain allegations against me which I found it
somewhat difficult to answer, from their very preposterousness, till,
in Pascal ' s Fifteenth Provincial Letter, 1 fell on an argument
which a certain Capuchin Father, Valerian, found successful against
the Jesuits, and \vnich seems to suit the reviewer exactly. I shall
therefore proceed to apply it to the two accusations which concern
me most nearly as a churchman.
" i. He asserts that I say that ' it is common sense and logic to
make ourselves children of God by believing that we are so when
we are not.' Sir, you and your readers will hardly believe me
when I tell you that this is the exact and formal opposition to
what I say, that the words which he misquotes, by leaving out the
context and the note of interrogation, occur in a scornful reductio
142 Charles Kingsley.
ad absurdum of the very doctrine which he wantonly imputes to
me, an appeal to common sense and logic against and not for the
lie of the Genevan School. 1 have a right to use the word ' wan-
tonly,' for he cannot say that he has misunderstood me ; he has
refused to allow me that plea, and I refuse to allow it to him. In-
deed, I cannot, for the passage is as plain as daylight, no school-
boy could misunderstand it ; and every friend to whom I have
shown his version of it has received it with the same laughter and
indignation with which I did, and felt with me, that the only
answer to be given to such dishonesty was that of Father Valerian,
' Mentiris impudentissime!
"2. So with the assertion, that the book 'regards the Catholic
doctrine of the Trinity as the same thing with that of the Vedas
Neo-Platonists,' &c. &c. ; or considers ' a certain amount of youth-
ful profligacy as doing no real and permanent harm to the charac-
ter perhaps strengthening it for a useful and even religious life ;
and that the existence of the passions is a proof that they are to
be gratified.' Sir, I shall not quote passages in disproof of these
calumnies, for if I did I should have to quote half the book. I
shall simply reply, with Father Valerian, ' Mentiris impudentis-
sime'
" I shall enter into no further defence of the book ; I have no
doubt of there being many errors and defects in it. 1 shall be
most thankful to have them pointed out, and to correct them most
patiently. But one thing I may say, to save trouble hereafter, that
whosoever henceforth, either explicitly or by insinuation, says that
I do not hold and believe ex animo, and in the simple and literal
sense, all the doctrines of the Catholic and Apostolic Church of
England, as embodied in her Liturgy or Articles, shall have no
answer from me but Father Valerian's Mentiris impudentissime.
" I am, Sir,
" Your obedient and faithful servant,
" THE AUTHOR OF ' YEAST.' "
In speaking of this correspondence, Mr. Maurice says :
"If / had been accused of profligacy and heresy, as Mr. Kings-
ley has been in the ' Guardian,' I believe I should have felt much
more indignation than he has, though I might have expressed it
with less simplicity and brevity. If a man in a mask, calling him-
self a ' We,' tells a clergyman that he has been all his life uttering
a lie, that his whole professions before God and man are a lie, that
he is an advocate for profligacy when he professes to make men
moral, a deliberate teacher of heresy when he knows that his in-
most desire is to preach the Catholic faith, and when he knows
that he expresses that desire most loudly, not in the presence of
dignitaries who might patronize him for it, but of infidels who
Effect of "Yeast" 143
would despise him for it, it does not seem very strange that such
a clergyman should say in Latin or English, Sir We ! thou thyself
tellest a lie "
Some may think it needless to revive these old controversies,
but attacks on his moral teaching in this case, and at a later
period on " Hypatia," implying as they did, a want of moral prin-
ciple in himself, and the encouragement of it in others, touched
Mr. Kingsley on his tenderest point, and cannot be passed over,
if only to show those who know what the results of his work have
been, and have seen the different tone taken since by the religious
press with regard to him and his writings, what sore battles he had
at one time to fight, what bitter insults he had to stand, while
laboring day and night for the good of others. But when once the
moment and the expression of righteous indignation was over, he
had a wonderful power of putting attacks and the individuals who
made them, out of his mind, bearing no malice, and going on his
way. " Life is too hard work in itself," he would say, " to let one
stop to hate and suspect people."
The " Guardian" replied again, reiterating its charges, but hap-
pily there was another side to the question. Only three weeks
before . these attacks he had received the following among many
other testimonies to the moral influence of " Yeast," on men
whose hearts could not be touched by teachers of a narrower
school :
April 2, 1851.
" DEAR SIR,
" I have just finished ' Yeast' /;/ extenso, having only skimmed
it in Fraser, and, fresh from the book, 1 cannot resist communi-
cating to you my heartfelt thanks for it. You will not care about
whether / thank you or not ; never mind, I shall relieve myself by
writing, and you at any rate will not feel insulted. I believe you
have taken up the right ground in standing firmly by the spirit of
Christianity, and the divineness of Christ's mission, and showing
the people how they are their best friends and the truest reformers.
I have been as far as most people into the Kingdom of the Ever-
lasting No, and had nearly, in my intellectual misery, taken up
with blank Atheism and the Reasoner ; and should have done so,
had not my heart rebelled against my head, and flooding in upon
me reflections of earlier, purer days, brighter days of Faith, bade
me pause. For six months 1 have been looking back to Chris-
tianity, my heart impelling me towards it ; my head urging me
144 Charles Kings ley.
into farther cimmerias. I wanted some authoritative word to
confirm my heart, but could not meet with it. I read orthodox
books of argument, of persuasion, of narrative, but I found they
only increased my antagonism to Christianity. And I was very
miserable as I believe all earnest men must be when they find
themselves. God-abandoned in times like these when, picking up
your ' Christian Socialist,' I read your ' God justified to the
People,' and felt that here now was a man, not a mere empty
evangelical tub-thumper (as we of the North call Ranters), but a
bona fide man, with a man's intellect, a man of genius, and a
scholar, and yet who did not spit upon his Bible, or class it with
Goethe and Dante, but could have sympathies with all the ferment
of the age ; be a Radical Reformer without being a vague Denier,
a vaguer ' Spiritualist,' as our ' Leader ' friends have it, or an utter
Atheist. If this man, on further acquaintance, prove what I sus-
pect him to be, here is the confirmation I desire. Impelled by
this, and by the accounts 1 gathered of you from Mr. and Mrs.
Carlyle, I devoured ' Yeast ; ' and ' Alton Locke,' I am now in
the middle of (I am no novel reader, which must be my excuse
for being so late in the field). I find that I am quite correct, 'that
I have not exaggerated your capacity at all ; and having, day and
night, meditated on what you have to say, I feel that the con-
firmation I have got from you is sufficient. But I have another
better confirmation in my own heart. I feel as if I had emerged
from a mephitic cavern into the open day. In the midst of worldly
reverses, such as I never before experienced, I feel a mental
serenity I never before knew ; can see life and my role in life,
clear and definite for the first time, through all manner of inter-
vening entanglements.
" I know not by what right I make you my father confessor, but
I feel strangely drawn towards you, and even at the risk of being
deemed impertinent, must send this rambling missive to thank you
and to bless you for having helped in the light and the leaven to a
sad yeasty spirit hitherto.
In the summer of 1851 several London clergymen arranged to
have courses of lectures specially addressed to the working men,
who came in numbers to see the Great Exhibition. One of these
clergymen, whose church was in the neighborhood of a lecture-
hall much frequented by working men of atheistic views, begged
Mr. Maurice to take part in his course of lectures and (once more
to quote Mr. Hughes's words) :
" to ask Kingsley to do so also ; assuring Mr. Maurice that he
' had been reading ICingsley's works with the greatest interest, and
Occurrence in a London Church. 145
earnestly desired to secure him as one of his lecturers.' ' I prom-
ised to mention this request to him,' Mr. Maurice says, ' though I
knew he rarely came to London, and seldom preached except in
his own parish. He agreed, though at some inconvenience, that
he would preach a sermon on the Message of the Church to the
Laboring Man. I suggested the subject to him. The incumbent
intimated the most cordial approval of it. He had asked us, not
only with a previous knowledge of our published writings, but
expressly because he had that knowledge. I pledge you my word
that no questions were asked as to what we were going to say, and
no guarantees given. Mr. Kingsley took precisely that view of
the message of the Church to laboring men which every reader of
his books would have expected him to take.'
"Kingsley took his text from Luke iv. verses 18 to 21 : 'The
Spirit of the Lord is upon me, because He hath anointed me to
preach the gospel to the poor,' &c. What then was that gospel ?
Kingsley starts at once with ' I assert that the business for which
God sends a Christian priest in a Christian nation is, to preach
freedom, equality, and brotherhood, in the fullest, deepest, widest
meaning of those three great words ; that in as far as he so does,
he is a true priest, doing his Lord's work with His Lord's blessing
on him ; that in as far as he does not he is no priest at all, but a
traitor to God and man ; ' and again, ' I say that these words ex-
press the very pith and marrow of a priest's business ; I say that
they preach freedom, equality, and brotherhood, to rich and poor
for ever and ever.' Then he goes on to warn his hearers how there
is always a counterfeit in this world of the noblest message and
teaching.
" Thus there are two freedoms the false, where a man is free to
do what he likes ; the true, where a man is free to do what he
ought.
" Two equalities the false, which reduces all intellects and all
characters to a dead level, and gives the same power to the bad as
to the good, to the wise as to the foolish, ending thus in practice
in the grossest inequality ; the true, wherein each man has equal
power, to educate and use whatever faculties or talents God has
given him, be they less or more. This is the divine equality
which the church proclaims, and nothing else proclaims as she
does.
" Two brotherhoods the false, where a man chooses who shall
be his brothers, and whom he will treat as such ; the true, in svhich
a man believes that all are his brothers, not by the will of the flesh,
or the will of man, but by the will of God, whose children they
all are alike. The church has three special possessions and
treasures. The Bible, which proclaims man's freedom, Baptism
his equality, the Lord's Supper his brotherhood." (Preface to
'Alton Locke ').
10
146 Charles Kingsley.
The sermon was listened to with profound attention by a large
congregation, in which were many working men. But at its close,
just as the preacher was about to give the blessing, the incumbent
rose in the reading-desk and declared, that while he agreed with
much that had been said by the preacher, it was his painful duty
to add that he believed much to be dangerous and much untrue.
The excitement of the congregation was intense ; the working
men could with dimculy be kept quiet, and to a man of the
preacher's vehement temperament it must have required a great
effort not to reply. He only bowed his head, and with deepened
solemnity came down from the pulpit, passed straight through the
crowd that thronged him with outstretched hands, and an eager
" God bless you, sir," on their lips, and went into the vestry, where
his friends gathered round him to express their sympathy, and to
take the sermon from him that it might be printed exactly as it was
written.' ' ; Those," said Mr. Maurice, " who observed the solem-
nity of Mr. Kingsley's manner while he was delivering his sermon,
still more when he was praying with the congregation, and blessing
them, will believe that the thought of having unwittingly made
himself a stumbling-block to his fellow-men, was infinitely more
bitter to him than any mere personal insult which he was called
upon to endure."
" You will have heard ere this," writes a friend to Mrs. Kingsley
the day following, " all about the strange event of last night.
Nothing could justify the violation of church order and de-
cency which was committed Thank God, thank Him
on your knees, that Charles did not answer a single word ; if he
had, I do not know what might not have happened. Robertson
and Hansard had severally to quiet knots of working men, who
were beginning to hiss or otherwise testify their disapproval. A
word from Charles, or, indeed, from any one on his behalf, might
have raised such a storm as God only could have quelled.
" What the consequences of the whole thing may be, none, I
suppose, can tell ; but they are in God's hands, and He knows
best, and makes all things work together for good for us if we truly
fear Him. Charles, I think, feels that it is his only policy to keep
quiet and so must his friends for the present. Tell him old Lum-
ley is showing himself a man, and will be extremely glad to publish
the sermon. ."
Mr. Kingsley returned to Eversley exhausted and depressed, and
in the meantime the storm burst. A leading morning paper began
Sympathy of Working Men. 147
the attack, with an article, which being full of inaccuracies, made
its due impression on those who did not know the facts, and who
were already strongly prejudiced against the " Apostle of Socialism."
This was followed by a letter from the Bishop of London (Dr.
Bloomfield), who hearing of the disturbance, wrote to Air. Kingsley
to express his displeasure, and forbade him to preach in London.
Mr. Kingsley replied most respectfully, requesting his lordship to
suspend his judgment till he had read the sermon. Meanwhile
letters of sympathy poured in from all quarters, from a few of the
clergy, from many of the laity, and from numbers of working
men. There was a meeting of working men on Kennington Com-
mon, and an expression of their warm allegiance and sympathy.
A proposal was also made before the bishop's prohibition was with-
drawn, to induce Mr. Kingsley to start a free church independent
of episcopal rule, with a promise of a huge following. It is need-
less to say he did not entertain this proposal for a moment.
In the meantime the sermon was printed, and a copy sent to the
Bishop, who wrote at once to ask Mr. Kingsley to come up and
see him at London House ; and after a kind reception he withdrew
his prohibition, and in a fortnight Mr. Kingsley preached at the
parish church of Chelsea.
Before the meeting on Kennington Common, the secretary of
the John Street Lecture Hall, where the principal audience was
composed of Chartists, free thinkers, and followers of Strauss, wrote
to offer Mr. Kingsley the use of their lecture hall, which he de-
clined in the following words :
EVERSLEY, June 26, 1851.
" I have conferred with my friends on their willingness to give
lectures in John Street, and find it to be their unanimous opinion,
that to do so, would be interpreted by the public into an approval,
more or less, of other doctrines which are taught there, from which
I, of all men in England, differ most strongly, and from which I
hold myself bound most strongly to protest.
"As a churchman, such a suspicion would be intolerable to me,
as it would be gratuitously incurred. Those who wish to know mv
opinions will have plenty of opportunities elsewhere ; and I must
therefore, in common with my friends, distinctly, but most cour-
teously, decline your kind offer of the John Street lecture rooms."
He was so much exhausted with the work and the controversies
of the last eight months, that his parents, who were going to Ger-
148 Charles Kingsley.
many for some weeks, seeing the importance of his having tho-
rough change, persuaded him to leave his parish in the care of a
curate and go abroad with them. It was the first time he had
crossed the water, and it was quite a revelation to him, to be
enjoyed as thoroughly as he could enjoy any thing which took him
from his home. But even in new scenes his fiery spirit could not
rest ; and the cause of the Church and the People pressed heavily
on him.
TO HIS WIFE.
MENDERSCHEID, August 7.
" I write from the loveliest place you can imagine, only how we
got here I know not ; having lost our way between some 'feld' or
other to here. We found ourselves about 8 P.M. last night at the
top of a cliff 500 feet high, with a roaring river at the bottom, and
no path. So down the cliff face we had to come in the dark, or
sleep in the forest to be eaten by wild boars and wolves, of which
latter, one was seen on our route yesterday ' as high as a table.'
And down we came, knapsacks, fishing-rods, and all ; which process
must not be repeated often if we intend to revisit our native shores.
I have seen such wonders, I don't know where to begin. Craters
filled sometimes with ghastly blue lakes, with shores of volcanic
dust, and sometimes, quaintly enough, by rye-fields and reapers.
The roads are mended with lava ; the whole country the strangest
jumble, alternations of Cambridgeshire ugliness (only lifted up 1.200
feet high) with all the beauties of Devonshire. The bed of the
Issbach, from the baths of Bertrich, up which we came yesterday,
was the most ravishingly beautiful glen scenery I ever saw ; such
rocks such baths such mountains covered with huge timber
not mere scrub, like the Rhine forests. Such strips of lawn here
and there between the stream and the wood. All this, of course,
you get on a grander scale on the Moselle, which was perfectly
exquisite ; yet there is a monotomy in its luxious richness and soft-
ness, and I was right glad to find myself on my legs at Alf. Two
days of that steamer running would have been too much for one,
with its heat and confinement, so I think this plan of walking is the
best. Weather glorious."
TREVES, August 17.
" Here we are at Treves, having been brought here under ar-
rest, with a gensdarme from the Mayor of Bittsburg, and liberated
next morning with much laughter and many curses from the police
here. However, we had the pleasure of spending a night in pri-
son, among fleas and felons, on the bare floor. It appears the
barbarians took our fishing-rods for ' todt-instrumenten ' deadly
Arrested at Treves. 149
weapons and our wide-awakes for Italian hats, and got into their
addle pates that we were emissaries of Mazzini and Co. distributing
political tracts, for not a word of politics had we talked. Luckily
the police-inspector here was a gentleman, and his wife and daugh-
ter ladies, and they did all they dare for us, and so about ten next
morning we were set free with many apologies, and the gensdarme
(who, after all, poor fellow, was very civil) sent back to Bittsburg
with a reprimand. We are the lions of Treves at present, for the
affair has made a considerable fuss. We leave this to-morrow after
having seen all the wonders and what wonders there are to see.
I need not tell you all I have felt here and at Fleissem. But at
first the feeling that one is standing over the skeleton of the giant
iniquity Old Rome is overpowering. And as I stood last night
in that amphitheatre, amid the wild beasts' dens, and thought of
the Christian martyrdoms and the Frank prisoners, and all the hell-
ish scenes of agony and cruelty that place had witnessed, I seemed
to hear the very voice of the Archangel whom St. John heard in Pat-
mos, crying, ' Babylon the Great is fallen ; ' but no more like the
sound of a trumpet, but only in the still whisper of the night breeze,
and through the sleeping vineyards, and the great still smile of God
out of the broad blue heaven. Ah ! and you were not there to
feel it with me ! I am so longing to be home ! "
Before going abroad, he had parted with the beloved pupil who
had become quite one of the family at the Rectory, and was dear
to him and his wife as a son. Mr. John Martineau's graphic words
and tender recollections of the eighteen months he spent at Evers-
ley, give the best picture of the home life at that period, between
January 21, 1850, and June 28, '851.
PARK CORNER, HECKFIELD, Christmas Eve, 1875.
" I first knew him in January, 1850. I entered his house as his
pupil, and was for nearly a year and a half his constant companion ;
indeed, out of doors, almost his only companion, for during the
greater part of the time he had no other pupil, and hardly any inti-
mate friends within reach. He was then in his thirty-first year, in
the fulness of his strength ; I a raw receptive school-boy of fifteen ;
so that his mind and character left their impression upon mine as
a seal does upon wax. What that impression was I will put down
as best I can.
" He was then, above all things and before all things else, a
parish clergyman. His parish work was not indeed so laborious
and absorbing as it had been six years before, when he was first
made Rector. The efforts of these six years had told, the seed
was bearing fruit, and Eversley would never again be as it had
150 Charles Kingsley.
been. His health had nearly broken down not long before, and he
had now a curate to help him, and give him the leisure which he
needed for writing and other things. Still, even so, with a large
and straggling though not very populous parish, with his share of
three services on Sunday and cottage-lectures on two week-day
evenings in winter, there was much for him to do ; throwing him-
self into it, as he did, with all his intensity and keen sense of
responsibility. At this time, too, he had not, as in later years, the
help and the purses of laymen to assist him.
" These were the days when farm-laborers in Hampshire got
from eight to ten shillings a week, and bread was dear, or had not
long ceased to be so. The cholera of 1849 had just swept through
the country, and though it had not reached Eversley, a severe kind
of low fever had, and there had been a season of much illness and
many deaths, during which he had, by his constant, anxious, tender
care of -the sick poor, won their confidence more than ever before.
The poor will not go*to the relieving officer if they can get their needs
supplied elsewhere ; and the Eversley poor used to go for relief,
and something more than relief, to the Rectory. There were few
mornings, at that time, that did not bring some one in distress,
some feeble woman, or ailing child, or a summons to a sick bed.
Up to that time he had allowed (I believe) no man or woman in
his parish to become an inmate of the work-house through infirmity
or old age, except in a few cases were want had been the direct
consequence of indolence or crime.
" At times, too, other poor besides those of his parish, might be
seen at his door. Gipsies were attracted to him from all the
country round. He married and christened many of them, to
whom such rites were things almost unknown.
"I cannot give any description of his daily life, his parish
work, which will not sound commonplace. There were the morn-
ings chiefly spent in reading and writing, the afternoons in going
from cottage to cottage, the long evenings in writing. It sounds
monotonous enough. But there never was a man with whom life
was less monotonous, with whom it was more full to overflowing,
of variety, and freshness. Nothing could be so exquisitely delight-
ful as a walk with him about his parish. Earth, air, and water, as
well as farm-house and cottage, seemed full of his familiar friends.
By day and by night, in fair weather and in storm, grateful for
heat and cold, rain and sunshine, light and soothing darkness, he
drank in nature. It seemed as if no bird, or beast, or insect,
scarcely a drifting cloud in the sky, passed by him unnoticed, un-
welcomed. He caught and noted every breath, every sound,
every sign. With every person he met he instinctively struck some
point of contact, found something to appreciate often, it might
be, some information to ask for which left the other cheered,
self-respecting, raised for the moment above himself ; and whatever
Letter from Mr. John Martineau. 151
the passing word might be, it was given to high or low, gentle or
simple, with an appropriateness, a force, and a genial courtesy, in
the case of all women, a deferential courtesy, which threw its spell
over all alike, a spell which few could resist.
" So many-sided was he that he seemed to unite in himself more
types and varieties of mind and character, types differing as widely
as the poet from the man of science, or the mystic from the soldier ;
to be filled with more thoughts, hopes, fears, interests, aspirations,
temptations than could co-exist in any one man, all subdued or
clenched into union and harmony by the force of one iron will,
which had learnt to rule after many a fierce and bitter struggle.
" His senses were acute to an almost painful degree. The sight
of suffering, the foul scent of a sick-room well used as he was to
both would haunt him for hours. For with all his man's strength
there was a deep vein of woman in him, a nervous sensitiveness, an
intensity of sympathy, which made him suffer when others suffered,
a tender, delicate, soothing touch, which gave him power to under-
stand and reach the heart ; to call out, sometimes at first sight
^what he of all men least sought), the inmost confidences of men
and women alike in all classes of life. And he had sympathy with
all moods from deepest grief to lightest humor for no man had a
keener, quicker perception of the humorous side of anything a
love and ready word of praise for whatever was good or beautiful,
from the greatest to the least, from the heroism of the martyr to the
shape of a good horse, or the folds of a graceful dress. And this
wide-reaching hearty appreciation made a word of praise from him
sweeter, to those who knew him well, than volumes of commenda-
tion from all the world besides.
" His every thought and word was penetrated with the belief,
the full assurance, that the world the world of the soldier or the
sportsman, as well as the world of the student or the theologian
was God's world, and that everything which He had made was
good. ' Humani nihil a me alienum puto,' he said, taught by his
wide human sympathies, and encouraged by his faith in the Incar-
nation. And so he rejected, as Pharisaic and unchristian, most of
what is generally implied in the use of such words as ' carnal,'
'unconverted,' 'worldly,' and thereby embraced in his sympathy,
and won to faith and hope, man)' a struggling soul, many a bruised
reed, whom the narrow and exclusive ignorance of schools and
religionists had rejected.
"No human being but was sure of a patient, interested hearer in
him. 1 have seen him seat himself, hatless, beside a tram]) on the
grass outside his gate in his eagerness to catch exactly what he had
to say, searching him, as they sate, in his keen kindly way with
question and look. With as great a horror of pauperism and alms-
giving as any professed political economist, it was in practice very
hard to him to refuse any one. The sight of unmistakable misery,
152 Charles Kingsley.
however caused, covered to him, the multitude of sins. I recollect
his passing backwards and forwards again and again the strong
impulsive will for once irresolute between the breakfast-room and
a miserable crying woman outside, and 1 cannot forget, though
twenty-five years have passed since, the unutterable look of pain
and disgust with which, when he had decided to refuse the request,
he said, ' Look there ! ' as he pointed to his own well-furnished
table.
" Nothing roused him to anger so much as cant. Once a
scoundrel, on being refused, and thinking that at a parsonage and
with a parson it would be a successful trick, fell on his knees on
the door-step, turned up the whites of his eyes and began the dis-
gusting counterfeit of a prayer. In an instant the man found him-
self, to his astonishment, seized by collar and wrist, and being
swiftly thrust towards trje gate, with a firm grip and a shake that
deprived him of all inclination to resist, or, till he found himself
safe outside it, even to remonstrate.
" He had at that time great physical strength and activity, and
an impetuous, restless, nervous energy, which I have never seen
equalled. All his strength, physical, mental, and moral, seemed
to find expression in his keen grey eyes, which gazed, with the look
of an eagle, from under massive brows, divided from each other by
two deep perpendicular furrows at that time, together with the
two equally deep lines from nostril to mouth, very marked features
in his face. One day, in a neighbor's yard, a large savage dog flew
out at him, straining at its chain. He walked up to it, scolding it,
and by mere force of eye, voice, and gesture, drove it into its
kennel, close to which he stopped, keeping his eye on the cowed
animal, as it growled and moved uneasily from side to side. He
had done the same thing often before, and had even pulled an in-
furiated dog out of its kennel by its chain, after having driven it in.
" By boyish habits and tastes a keen sportsman, the only sport
he ever enjoyed at this time was an occasional day's trout or pike
fishing, or throwing a fly for an hour or two during his afternoon's
walk over the little stream that bounded his parish. Hunting he
had none. And in later years, when he did hunt occasionally, it
was generally a matter of two or three hours on an old horse, taken
as a relaxation in the midst of work, not, as with most other men,
as a day's work in itself. Fond as he was of horses, he never in
his Itfe had one worth fifty pounds, so little self-indulgent was he.
He never then, or afterwards so far as I know went out shoot-
ing.
" Though exercising intense self-control, he was very restless and
excitable. Constant movement was a relief and almost a necessity
to him. His study opened by a door of its own upon the garden,
and most of his sermons and books were thought out and composed
as he paced up and down there, at all hours and in all weathers,
Mr. Maurice. 153
his hands behind his back, generally smoking a long clay pipe ; for
tobacco had, as he found by experience having once tried a year's
total abstinence from it an especially soothing beneficial effect
upon him. He ate hurriedly, and it was an effort to him to sit still
through a meal. His coat frequently had a white line across the
back, made by his habit of leaning against the whitened chimney-
piece of the dining-room during breakfast and dinner. Once in the
long summer days we were condemned to a more than usually dull
dinner-party at a neighbor's house, where the only congenial person
was a young scientific doctor from the next parish. After dinner,
it being broad daylight, we were all in the garden, and opposite to
us were two high thick-foliaged trees. I do not know which of
the two suggested it, but in an instant his coat and the doctor's
were off, and they were racing each other, each up his tree, like
schoolboys, one getting first to the top, the other first down again
to the ground.
"Of society he had then very little, and it was rarely and un-
willingly that he passed an evening away from home. He did not
seek it, and it had not yet begun to seek him. Indeed, at no time
was general society a congenial element to him ; and those who
knew him only thus, did not know him at his best. A few intimate
friends, and now and then a stranger, seeking his advice on some
matter, would come for a night or a Sunday. Amongst the former,
and honored above all, was Mr. Maurice. One of his visits hap-
pened at a time when we had been startled by a burglary and
murder at a parsonage a few miles off, and had armed ourselves
and barricaded the rambling old Rectory in case of an attack. In
the middle of the night an attempt was made to force open the
back door, which roused us all, and we rushed down stairs with
pistols, guns, and blunderbuss, to expel the thieves, who, however,
had taken alarm and made off. Mr. Maurice, the only unarmed
and the coolest man amongst us, was quietly going out alone, in
the pitch darkness, into the garden in pursuit of them, when Mr.
Kingsley fortunately came upon him and stopped him ; and the
two passed the rest of the night together talking over the study-fire
till morning came.
" Many a one has cause to remember that Study, its lattice
window (in later years altered to a bay), its great heavy door,
studded with large projecting nails, opening upon the garden ; its
brick Moor covered with matting ; its shelves of heavy old folios,
with a fishing-rod, or landing-net, or insect-net leaning against
them ; on the table, books, writing materials, sermons, manuscript,
proofs, letters, reels, feathers, fishing-Mies, clay-pipes, tobacco. On
the mat, perhaps the brown eyes, set in thick yellow hair, and
gently-agitated tail, asking indulgence for the intrusion a long-
bodied, short-legged Dandy Dinmont Scotch terrier, wisest, hand-
somest, most faithful, most memorable of its race. When the rest
1 54 Charles Kingsley.
of the household went to bed, he would ask his guest in, ostensibly
to smoke. The swing-door would be flung open and slam heavily
after him, as it always did, for he would never stop to catch and
close it. And then in the quiet of night, when no fresh face could
come, no interruption occur to distract him, he would give himself
wholly to his guest, taking up whatever topic the latter might sug-
gest, whatever question he might ask, and pouring out from the
full stores of his knowledge, his quick intuitive sagacity, his ready
sympathy. Then it was, far more than in the excitement and dis-
traction of many voices and many faces, that he was himself, that
the true man appeared ; and it was at times such as these that he
came to be known and trusted and loved, as few men ever have
been, as no man has been whom I ever knew.
" He had to a wonderful degree the power of abstraction and
concentration, which enabled him to arrange and elaborate a whole
sermon, or a chapter of a book, while walking, riding, or even fly-
fishing, without making a note, so as to be able on his return to
write or dictate it in clear terse language as fast as pen could move.
He would read a book and grasp its essential part thoroughly in a
time so short that it seemed impossible that his eyes could have
traversed its pages. Compared with other men who have written
or thought much, he worked for a few hours in the day, and with-
out much system or regularity ; but his application was so intense
that the strain upon his vital powers was very great. Nor when he
ceased could his brain rest. Except during sleep, and even that
was characteristic, so profound was it, repose seemed impossible
to him for body or mind. So that he seemed to live three days, as
it were, while other men were living one, and already foresaw that
there would be for him no great length of years.
" Connected with this rapid living was a certain impatience of
trifles, an inaccuracy about details, a haste in drawing conclusions,
a forgetfulness of times and seasons, and of words lightly spoken
or written, and withal an impulsive and almost reckless generosity,
and fear of giving pain, which sometimes placed him at an unfair
disadvantage and put him formally in the wrong when substantially
he was in the right. It led him, too, to take too hastily a favor-
able estimate of almost every one with whom he came personally
into contact, so that he was liable to suffer from misplaced con-
fidence ; while in the petty matters of daily life it made him a bad
guardian of his own interests, and but for the wise and tender
assistance that was ever at his side would almost have overwhelmed
him with anxieties.
" In the pulpit, and even at his week-day cottage-lectures, where,
from the population of his parish being so scattered, he had some-
times scarcely a dozen hearers, he was at that time eloquent be-
yond any man I ever heard. For he had the two essential con-
stituents of eloquence, a strong man's intensity and clearness of
Hesitation in Speech, 155
conviction, and a command of words, not easy or rapid, but sure
and unhesitating, an unfailing instinct for the one word, the most
concrete and pictorial, the strongest and the simplest, which
expressed his thought exactly.
''M.iny have since then become familiar with his preaching,
many more with his published sermons, but few comparatively can
know what it was to hear him, Sunday after Sunday, in his own
church and among his own people, not preach only, but read, or
rather pray, the prayers of the Church-service. So completely was
he in harmony with these prayers, so fully did they satisfy him, that
with all his exuberance of thought and imagination, it seemed as if
for him there was nothing to be asked for beyond what they asked
for. So that in his cottage-lectures, as in his own household wor-
ship, where he was absolutely free to use any words he chose, I
scarcely ever heard him use a word of prayer other than the words
of the Prayer book.
" In conversation he had a painful hesitation in his speech, which
diminished as he got older, though it never wholly left him. But
in preaching, and in speaking with a set purpose, he was wholly
free from it. He used to say that he could speak for God but not
for himself, and took the trial and to his keenly sensitive nature it
was no small one, patiently and even thankfully, as having by
God's* mercy saved him from many a temptation to mere brilliancy
and self-seeking. The successful effort to overcome this difficulty
increased instead of diminishing the impressiveness of his voice,
for to it \vas partly due the strange, rich, high-pitched, musical
monotone in which he prayed and preached, the echo of which, as
it filled his church, or came borne on the air through the open
window of a sick room, seems to travel over the long past years
and kindle his words afresh, as I read them in the cold dead page.
" And as it was an unspeakable blessing to Eversley to have him
for its Rector, so also it was an inestimable benefit to him to have
had so early in life a definite work to do which gave to his generous
sympathetic impulses abundant objects and responsibilities and a
clear purpose and direction. Conscious, too, as he could not but
be, of great powers, and impatient of dictation or control, the
repose and isolation of a country parish afforded him the best and
healthiest opportunities of development, and full liberty of thought
and speech, with sufficient leisure for reading and study.
" Great as was his love of natural science, in so many of its
branches, his genius was essentially that of a poet. Often a time
of trouble and sadness and there was in him a strong undercurrent
of sadness at all times, would result in the birth of a lyrical poem
or song, on a subject wholly unconnected with that which occupied
him, the production of which gave him evident relief, as though in
some mysterious way his mind was thereby disburdened and set free
for the reception of new thoughts and impressions. In June, 1851,
156 Charles Kingsley.
he preached a powerful sermon to working men in a London
church. No sooner had he finished it than the incumbent who
had asked him to preach, rose in the reading-desk and denounced
it. It was a painful scene, which narrowly escaped ending in a
riot, and he felt keenly not the insult to himself but the dis-
credit and scandal to the Church, the estrangement that it would
be likely to increase between the clergy and the working men. He
came home the day after, wearied and worn out, obliged to stop
to rest and refresh himself at a house in his parish during his after-
noon's walk. That same evening he brought in a song that he had
written, the * Three Fishers,' as though it were the outcome of it
all ; and then he seemed able to put the matter aside, and the
current of his daily life flowed as before.
" Not that he at this time or indeed at any time wrote much
verse. Considering that what the world needed was not verse,
however good, so much as sound knowledge, sound reasoning,
sound faith, and above all, as the fruit and evidence of the last,
sound morality, he did not give free rein to his poetical faculty,
but sought to make it his servant, not his master, to use it to
illuminate and fix the eyes of men on the truths of science, of
social relationship, of theology, of morality. His books and they
are many are the living witnesses of the fruit of these efforts, of
the many purposes, the varied subjects, on which he employed the
gift that was in him. The letters which he received in countless
numbers, often from utter strangers who knew nothing of him but
from his books, seeking counsel on the most delicate and important
matters of life, testify how great a gift it was, how truly and
tellingly it was used.
" In reading all his writings, on whatever subject, it must not be
forgotten that he was a poet, that he could not help thinking,
feeling, and writing as a poet. Patience, industry, a memory for
detail, he had, even logical and inductive power of a certain in-
tuitive intermittent kind, not sustained, indeed, or always reliable,
for his was not a logical, or in details an accurate mind, and surface
inconsistencies are not hard to find in his writings ; but as a poet,
even if he saw all sides, he could not express them all at once.
The very keenness of his sympathy, the intensity with which he
realized all that was passing around him, made it impossible for
him to maintain the calm unruffled judgment of men of a less fiery
temperament, or to abstract and devote himself to the pursuit of
any one branch of study without being constantly distracted from it
and urged in some new direction by the joys and sorrows of the
surging world around, to seek if by any means he might find a
medicine to heal its sickness.
" Hence it may, perhaps, be that another generation will not
fully realize the wide-spread influence, the great power, he exer-
cised through his writings. For, in a sense, it may be said that, as
A Radical and Chartist. 157
to some of them, not their least merit is that in part they will not
live, except as the seed lives in the corn which grows, or water in
the plant which it has revived. For their power often lay mainly
in the direction of their aim at the special need of the hour, the
memory of which has passed, or will pass, away. As his ' Master,'
as he affectionately and humbly called Mr. Maurice, was a theo-
logian, and, in its original sense, a ' Prophet,' so Mr. Kingsley, as
Priest and Poet, gloried in interpreting, expanding, applying him.
' I think this will explain a good deal of Maurice,' was the single
remark I heard him make when he had completed ' Yeast.'
" In later years, as his experience widened, his judgment ripened,
his conclusions were more calmly formed. But his genius was
essentially of a kind that comes to maturity early, when the imagi-
nation is still vivid, the pulses of life beat fastest, and the sym-
pathies and affections are most passionately intense. And I
venture to think that these comparatively early years were amongst
the best of his life, best in all senses. It was at this time, the first
half of the year 1850, that he completed 'Alton Locke,' which,
containing though it may more faults, sweeping accusations, hasty
conclusions, than any of his writings, is nevertheless his noblest
and most characteristic book at once his greatest poem and his
grandest sermon.
" With the great outside world, with the world of politicians and
the press, and still more with the religious world, so called, as
represented by the religious newspapers, he was in those years at
open war. Popular as he afterwards became, it is difficult now to
realize how great was the suspicion, how bitter the attacks,
especially from the religious newspapers, which his books and
sermons drew down upon him. Not that he in general cared much
for praise or blame from the newspaper press, so venal and un-
principled did he not without reason consider most of it, Whig,
Tory, Radical, and religious. At that time he did not take in or
read any daily paper: The Spectator, then edited by Mr. Rintoul,
and with Mr. Krimley for its chief critic, was almost his only source
of news.
" It was then about two years after the events of 1848, and for
him the one all-important and absorbing question of Politics was
the condition, physical and mental, of the working-classes and the
poor in town and country. On that question he considered that
all the leading parties of the legislature had alike shown themselves
indifferent and incapable. This conviction, and a deep sympathy
with the suffering poor, had made him a Radical. Nay, on at least
one occasion, he publicly and deliberately declared himself a
Chartist a name which then meant a great deal, and for a clergy-
man to do this was an act the boldness of which it is difficult to
appreciate now.
" So vividly did he realixe the sufferings of the poor, so keenly
158 Charles Kings ley.
did he feel what he deemed the callousness and the incompetence
of the Government to alleviate them, and the mass of the upper
and middle classes, that at times he seemed to look, with trembling,
for the coming of great and terrible social convulsions, of a ' day of
the Lord,' such as Isaiah looked for, as the inevitable fate of a
world grown evil, yet governed still by a righteous God. In later
years this feeling gradually left him already, perhaps, it was
beginning to fade. But it was no mere pulpit or poetic gust. It
penetrated (I think) occasionally even to the lesser matters of
daily life. Late one dark night he called me out to him into the
garden to listen to a distant sound, which he told me was a fox's
bark, bidding me to remember it, for foxes might soon cease to
be in England, and I might never hear one bark again.
" This phase of his lite has been described by one who knew it
in an earlier stage, and far better than I. I. will only say that,
looking back upon his daily life and conversation at that time, I
believe he was democratic in his opinions rather than in his instincts,
more by force of conviction than by natural inclination. A doc-
trinaire, or a lover of change for the sake of change, he never was ;
and when he advocated democratic measures, it was more as a
means to an end than because he altogether liked the means. From
the pulpit, and with his pen, he claimed brotherhood with all men.
No man in his daily intercourse respected with more scrupulous cour-
tesy the rights, the dignity of the humblest. But he instinctively dis-
liked a ' beggar on horseback.' Noblesse oblige, the true principle
of feudalism, is a precept which shines out conspicuously in all his
books, in all his teaching, at this period of his life, as at all others.
" In later years his convictions became more in accord with this
natural tendency of his mind, and he gradually modified or aban-
doned his democratic opinions, thereby, of course, drawing down
upon himself the reproach of inconsistency from those who con-
sidered that he had deserted them. To me, looking back at what
he was when he wrote ' Yeast,' and ' Alton Locke,' the change
seems rather the natural development of his mind and character
under more or less altered circumstances, partly because he saw
the world about him really improving, partly because by experience
he found" society and other existing institutions more full of healthy
life, more available as instruments of good, more willing to be
taught, than he had formerly thought.
" But, at that time, in his books and pamphlets, and often in
his daily familiar speech, he was pouring out the whole force of his
eager, passionate heart, in wrath and indignation, against starva-
tion wages, stifling workshops, reeking alleys, careless landlords,
roofless and crowded cottages, hard and canting religion. His
'Poacher's Widow' is a piercing, heart-rending cry to heaven for
vengeance against the oppressor. ' There is a righteous God,' is
its burthen, ' and such things cannot and shall not, remain to de-
The Bristol Riots. 159
face the world which He has made. Laws, constitutions, churches,
are none of His if they tolerate such ; they are accursed, and
they must perish destroy what they may in their fall. Nay, they
will perish in their own corruption.'
" One day, as he was reading with me, something led him to tell
me of the Bristol Riots of 1832. He was in that year a schoolboy
of thirteen, at Bristol, and had slipped away, fascinated by the
tumult and the horror, into the midst of it. He described rap-
idly pacing up and down the room, and, with glowing, saddened
face, as though the sight were still before his eyes, the brave,
patient soldiers sitting hour after hour motionless on their horses,
the blood streaming from wounds on their heads and faces, wait-
ing for the order which the miserable, terrified Mayor had not
courage to give ; the savage, brutal, hideous mob of inhuman
wretches plundering, destroying, burning ; casks of spirits broken
open and set flowing in the streets, the wretched creatures drink-
ing it on their knees from the gutter, till the flame from a burning
house caught the stream, ran down it with a horrible rushing sound,
and, in one dreadful moment, the prostrate drunkards had become
a row of blackened corpses. Lastly, he spoke of the shameless-
ness and the impunity of the guilty ; the persecution and the
suicide of the innocent.
"'That sight,' he said, suddenly turning to me, 'made me a
Radical.'
" 'Whose fault is it,' I ventured to ask, ' that such things can be ? '
" ' Mine,' he said, ' and yours.'
" I understood partly then, I have understood better since,
what his Radicalism was.
" From his home life I scarcely dare, even for a moment, try to
lift the veil. I will only say that having had the priceless blessing
of admission to it, the daily sight of him in the closets of his home
relations has left me a deeper debt of gratitude, and more precious
memories, created higher hopes and a higher ideal, than all other
manifestations combined of his character and intellect. To his
wife so he never shrank from affirming in dee]) and humble
thankfulness he owed the whole tenor of his life, all that he had
worth living for. It was true. And his every word and look, and
gesture of chivalrous devotion for more than thirty years, seemed
to show that the sense of boundless gratitude had become part of
his nature, was never out of the undercurrent of his thoughts.
Little thinking that he was to be taken first, and with a prospect
of a long agony of loneliness imminent from hour to hour, the last
flash of genius from his breaking heart was to gather into three
simple, pregnant words, as a last offering to her, the whole story
of his life, of the Faith he preached and lived in, of his marriage,
blessed, and yet to be blessed. He was spared that agony. Over
his grave first are written his words,
' Amavimus, amamus, amabimus. ' "
CHAPTER XL
1852.
AGED 33.
Strike in the Iron-Trade Correspondence on Social and Metaphysical Ques-
tions Mr. Erskine comes to Fir Grove Parson Lot's last Words Birth of
his youngest Daughter Letter from Frederika Bremer.
THE short holiday of the past year had so far invigorated Charles
Kingsley that he worked without a curate for a time. The literary
work was hampered by the heavy correspondence, principally with
strangers, who little knew what labor each letter cost him. Of
one very valuable series of letters with the son of a clergyman, a
young man of atheistical opinions, connected with the " Reasoner,"
ewspaper, and who eventually died a professing Christian, only
two letters are preserved, the rest having been by the will of their
owner destroyed at his death, as referring to a phase in his life
which it would be painful to his family to recall. Another series,
to Thomas Cooper, the Chartist, though spread over this and
several years, will be given together in a later chapter. His liter-
ary work consisted of " Hypatia," now coming out monthly in
" Eraser's Magazine ;" "Phaeton," and a reply to an attack on
Christian Socialism in " Eraser's Magazine," which was not in-
serted. In the summer he amused himself by trying his hand at
hexameters, and began the poem of "Andromeda." His parish
work prevented his helping personally in the Co-operative Move-
ment in London ; but he was consulted from time to time by the
Council of Promoters, and in the great lock-out of the Iron Trade
in January he wrote to explain his views on the matter. This let-
ter " will show," as Mr. Hughes truly says, " how far Kingsley was
an encourager of ' violent measures or views.' "
TO TOM HUGHES, ESQ.
EVERSLEY, January 28, 1852.
" You may have been surprised at my having taken no part in
this Amalgamated Iron Trades' matter. And I think that I am
Masters and Men. 161
bound to say why I have not, and how far I wish my friends to
interfere in it.
" I do think that we, the Council of Promoters, shall not be
wise in interfering between masters and men ; because i. I
question whether the points at issue between them can be fairly
understood by any person not conversant with the practical de-
tails of the trade
" 2. Nor do I think they have put their case as well as they
might. For instance, if it be true that they themselves have in-
vented many, or most, of the improvements in their tools and ma-
chinery, they have an argument in favor of keeping out unskilled
laborers, which is unanswerable, and yet what they have never
used viz. : 'Your masters make hundreds and thousands by these
improvements, while we have no remuneration for this inventive
talent of ours, but rather lose by it, because it makes the introduc-
tion of unskilled labor more easy. Therefore the only way in
which we can get anything like a payment for this inventive faculty
of which we make you a present over and above our skilled labor,
for which you bargained, is to demand that we, who invent the
machines, if we cannot have a share in the profits of them, shall
at least have the exclusive privilege of using them, instead of their
being, as now, turned against us.' That, I think, is a fair argu-
ment ; but I have seen nothing of it from any speaker or writer.
" 3. I think whatever battle is fought, must be fought by the
men themselves. The present dodge of the Manchester school is
to cry out against us, as Greg did, ' These Christian Socialists are
a set of mediaeval parsons, who want to hinder the independence
and self-help of the men, and bring them back to absolute feudal
maxims ; and then, with the most absurd inconsistency, when we
get up a Co-operative workshop, to let the men work on the very
independence and self-help of which they talk so fine, they turn
round and raise just the opposite yell, and cry, 'The men can't be
independent of capitalists; these associations will fail because the
men are helping themselves' showing that what they mean is,
that the men shall be independent of every one but themselves
independent of legislators, parsons, advisers, gentlemen, noblemen,
and every one that tries to help them by moral agents ; but the
slaves of the capitalists, bound to them by a servitude increasing
instead of lightening with their numbers. Now, the only way in
which we can clear the cause of this calumny, is to let the men
light their own battle ; to prevent any one saying, ' These men are
the tools of dreamers and fanatics,' which would be just as ruin-
ously blackening to them in the public eyes, as it would be to let
the cry get abroad, ' This is a Socialist movement, destructive of
rights of property, Communism, Louis Blanc, and the devil, &c.'
You know the infernal stuff which the devil gets up on such
occasions having no scruples about calling himself hard names
II
1 62 Charles Kingsley.
when it suits his purpose, to blind and frighten respectable old
women.
" Moreover, these men are not poor distressed needle-women
or slop-workers. They are the most intelligent and best educated
workmen, receiving incomes often higher than a gentleman's son
whose education has cost iooo/. ; and if they can't fight their own
battles, no men in England can, and the people are not ripe for
association, and we must hark back into the competitive rot heap
again. All, then, that we can do is, to give advice when asked
to see that they have, as far as we can get at them, a clear stage
and no favor, but not by public, but by private influence.
" But we can help them in another way by showing them the
way to associate. That is quite a distinct question from their quar-
rel with their masters, and we shall be very foolish if we give the
press a handle for mixing up the two. We have a right to say to
masters, men, and public, ' We know, and care nothing about the
iron strike. Here are a body of men coming to us, wishing to be
shown how to do that which is a right thing for them to do well
or ill off, strike or no strike, namely, associate ; and we will help
and teach them to do that to the very utmost of our power.'
" The Iron Workers' co-operative shops will be watched with
lynx eyes, calumniated shamelessly. Our business will be to tell
the truth about them, and fight manfully with our pens for them.
But we shall never be able to get the ears of the respectabilities
and the capitalists, if we appear at this stage of the business. What
we must say is, ' If you are needy and enslaved, we will fight for
you from pity, whether you be associated or competitive. But you
are neither needy, nor, unless you choose, enslaved ; and therefore
we will only fight for you in proportion as you become associates.
Do that, and see if we can't stand hard knocks for your sake.' '
We now come to the more private correspondence of the year.
TO , ESQ.*
EVERSLEY, WHIT TUESDAY, 1852.
"Mr DEAR MR. ,
" Sad as your letter was, it gave me much pleasure : it is al-
ways a pleasure to see life springing out of death health returning
after disease, though, as doctors know, the recovery from asphyxia
or drowning is always as painful as the temporary death itself was
painless Faith is born of doubt. 'It is not life but
death where nothing stirs.' I take all these struggles of yours
* A young man of nineteen, to whom he was personally a stranger, but who
wrote to him laying bare his whole heart, having woke up from a course of sin
and unbelief in black despair.
Sympathy with Young Men. 163
as simply so many signs that your Father in heaven is treating you
as a father, that He has not forsaken you, is not offended with you,
but is teaching you in the way best suited to your own idiosyn-
crasy, the great lesson of lessons. ' Empty thyself, and God will
fill thee.' 1 am not a man of a mystical or romantic turn of mind ;
but I do say and know, both from reason and experience, that we
must be taught, even though it be by being allowed for awhile to
make beasts of ourselves, that we are of ourselves, and in our-
selves, nothing better than as you see in the savage a sort of
magnified beast of prey, all the more terrible for its wondrous fa-
culties ; that neither intellect nor strength of will can save us from
degradation ; that they may be just as powerful for evil as for
good ; and that what we want to make us true men, over and
above that which we bring into the world with us, is some sort of
God-given instinct, motive, and new principle of life in us, which
shall make us not only see the right, and the true, and the noble,
but love it, and give up our wills and hearts to it, and find in the
confession of our own weakness a strength, in the subjection of
our own will a freedom, in the utter carelessness about self a self-
respect, such as we have never known before.
" Do not do not fancy that any confession of yours to me can
lower you in my eyes. My dear young man, I went through the
same devil's sewer, with a thousand times the teaching and advan-
tages which you have had. Who am I, of all men, to throw stones
at you ? But take your sorrows, not to me. but to your Father in
heaven. If that name, Father, mean anything, it must mean that
He will not turn away from His wandering child, in a way in which
you would be ashamed to turn away from yours. If there be pity,
lasting affection, patience in man, they must have come from
Him. They, above all things, must be His likeness. Believe
that He possesses them a million times more fully than any human
being.
" St. Paul knew well, at least, the state of mind in which you are.
He said that he had found a panacea for it ; and his words, to judge
from the way in which they have taken root, and spread, and con-
quered, must have some depth and life in them. Why not try
them ? Just read the first nine chapters of St. Paul's Epistle to
the Romans, and write me your heart about them. But never
mind what anybody, Unitarian or Trinitarian,* may say they mean.
Read them as you would a Greek play taking for granted that
they mean the simplest and most obvious sense which can be put
upon them.
" Let me hear more I long for another letter. I need not say
that I consider your confidence an honor, and shall keep it sacred.
" Do not consult ******. I love him well, but he has no
* His correspondent had been brought up a Unitarian.
164 Charles Kings ley.
evangel for you. I should be glad to see him in the state you are
in now. It would be nearer health."
In the summer of 1852 the Right Hon. Thomas Erskine, with
his family, settled at Fir Grove, Eversley. For the next twelve
happy years he was friend and counsellor to the Rector, and to the
parish his influence and example was a priceless blessing. The
Judge and his family relieved him of a load of expense and conse-
quent anxiety in the matter of the parish charities, which had
hitherto fallen almost exclusively on the Rector ; regular district
visiting began, and at Fir Grove, which was henceforth like a second
home to him and his wife, some of the most charming friendships of
that period of his life were formed. It was a new era in Eversley,
and with fresh help and fresh hope he worked cheerfully, and had
the heart once more to turn his thoughts to poetry. The " Chris-
tian Socialist" at this time came to an end, and Parson Lot spoke
his " last words " in its last number, concluding thus :
" Let us say little and work the more. We shall be the more
respected, and the more feared too for it. People will begin to
believe that we really know what we want, and really do intend to
get it, and really believe in its righteousness. And the spectacle
of silent working faith is one at once so rare and so noble, that it
tells more, even on opponents, than ten thousand platform pyro-
technics. In the meantime it will be no bad thing for us if we
are beaten sometimes. Success at first is dangerous, and defeat
an excellent medicine for testing people's honesty for setting
them earnestly to work to see what they want, and what are the
best methods of attaining it. Our sound thrashings as a nation
in the first French war were the making of our armies ; and it is
good for an idea, as well as for a man, to ' bear the yoke in his
youth.' The return match will come off, and many, who are now
our foes, will then be our friends ; and in the meantime,
' The proper impulse has been given,
Wait a little longer.'
" PARSON LOT."
This was his last signature as Parson Lot. At the same time he
writes to the editor : " If you want an Epiceditim, I send one.
It is written in a hurry, so if you like, reject it ; but I have tried to
get the maximum of terseness and melody.
An Epicedium. 165
"So die, thou child of stormy dawn,
Thou winter flower, forlorn of nurse ;
Chilled early by the bigot's curse,
The pedant's frown, the worldling's yawn.
Fair death, to fall in teeming June,
When every seed which drops to earth
Takes root, and wins a second birth
From streaming shower and gleaming moon :
Fall warm, fall fast, thou mellow rain ;
Thou rain of God, make fat the land ;
That roots, which parch in burning sand,
May bud to flower and fruit again.
To grace, perchance, a fairer morn
In mighty lands beyond the sea,
While honor falls to such as we
From hearts of heroes yet unborn.
Who in the light of fuller day,
Of loving science, holier laws,
Bless us, faint heralds of their cause,
Dim beacons of their glorious way.
Failure? while tide-floods rise, and boil
Round cape and isle, in port and cove,
Resistless, star-led from above :
What though our tiny wave recoil ?
"June 9, 1852.
" CHARLES KINGSLEY."
TO J. M. LUDLOW, ESQ.
EVERSLEY RECTORY, yune 6, 1852.
" Too tired, confused, and happy to work, I sit down for a
chat with you.
" i. About the last number of ' Hypatia.' I dare say you are
right. I wanted, for artistic purposes, to keep those two chapters
cool and calm till just the very end of each ; and it is very difficult
to be quiet without also being dull. But this, you know, is only
after all rough copy; and such running criticisms are of the very
greatest help to me. About the ' Saga : ' I sent it to Max Miiller,
who did not- like it at all, he said ; because, though he highly ap-
proved of the form (and gave me a good deal of learned advice
in re), it was too rational and moral and rounded, he said, and not
irrational and vast, and dreamy, and hyperbolic like a true saga.
But I told him, that as a parson to the English public, I was ex-
1 66 Charles Kingsley.
pected to point a moral ; and so I put Muller's criticism and yours
too into the mouth of Agilmund, who complains of its respectable
Benjamin Franklin tone.
"As for the monks : 'pon honor they are slow fellows but then
they ^vere so horribly slow in reality. And I can't see but that
Pambo's palaver in my tale is just what I find in Rosweyde's ' Vitse
Patrum,' and Athanases' ' Life of Anthony.' Almost every ex-
pression of Pambo's is a crib from some one, word for word. And
his instances are historic ones. Moreover, you must recollect,
that Arsenius was no mere monk, but a finished gentleman and
court intriguer taken ill with superstition. ... As for the
Sermons,* I am very glad you like any of them. About what you
don't like, I will tell you honestly, 1 think that I have not said
anything too strong. People must be cured of their horrible
notions of God's arbitrary power His ' satisfaction ' in taking ven-
geance His inflicting a permanent arbitrary curse as a penalty
His being the author of suffering or evil in any way. I have been
driven to it by this. It is easy enough in the case of a holy per-
son to use the stock phrase of its having ' pleased God to afflict
them,' because one sees that the affliction is of use ; but you can't
and darn't say that God is pleased, i.e., satisfied, or rejoiced to
afflict poor wretched heathens in St. Giles's, to whom, as far as we
can see, the affliction is of no use, but the very reverse. The
school formula (not a Scripture one at all, mind) works very well
in the school, when at his desk or in the pulpit the good pedant
is bringing out his system to a select audience of ' Christian friends,'
and forgetting, he and they too, that outside the walls lies a whole
world who, he confesses himself, have no more to do with his for-
mula (at least till they find themselves in hell at last) than sticks or
stones. But if I am to preach a gospel, it must have to do with
the people outside the tract-and-sermon- world, as well as inside it ;
and then the formula, like most others, don't fit
" If, however, I found it in Scripture, 1 should believe it : what I
want is plain inductive proof from texts. The ' it has pleased
the Lord to bruise Him,' is just the very opposite. The pith and
marrow of the 53d of Isaiah being, that He of whom it speaks is
afflicted, not for the good of His own soul, but for others that He
is ennobled by being sacrificed. It seems to me, that the only way
to escape the dilemma really is, to believe that God is what He
has revealed Himself to be ' A Father.' If a child said, ' I was
naughty, and it pleased my father to whip me for it,' should we not
feel that the words were hollow and absurd ? And if F. died
to-morrow. God forbid that I should say of rny Father in heaven, it
pleased Him to take her from me. If the Lord Jesus is the express
image of His Father's glory, then His Father cannot be like that.
* National Sermons, First Series.
Sorrow and its Lessons. 167
For could I dare believe that it would not pain the Blessed Lord
infinitely more than it would pain me, if He was compelled by my
sins, or by any other necessity of His -government of this rebel-
lious world, to inflict on me, not to mention on the poor little chil-
dren, that bitter agony ? In the face of such real thoughts, school
terms vanish, and one has to rest on realities ; on the belief in
a human-hearted, loving, sorrowing Lord, and of A Father whose
image He, in some inexplicable way is or one would go mad.
And I have always found, in talking to my people in private, that all
second-hand talk out of books about the benefits of affliction, was
rain against a window pane, blinding the view but never entering.
But I can make a poor wretch believe' the Lord Jesus is just as
sorry as you that you have compelled Him for a while to deliver
you over to Satan for the punishment of the flesh, that your soul
may be saved thereby.' Till you can make them believe that God
is not pleased, but /Vpleased to afflict them, I never found them
any the better for their affliction. They take either a mere hypo-
critically fatalist view of their sorrow, or else they are terrified and
despairing, and fancy themselves under a curse, and God angry
with them, and are ready to cry, ' Let us curse God and die ! If
God be against me, what matter who is for me ? ' And so with
* * * * I have been trying hard to make him believe that his
sonows come from himself and the devil, just because he has been
believing that they came from God. He has been believing and
telling me that ' he is under a curse : that God's wrath is perma-
nently abiding on him for acts committed at school years ago,
which never can be undone, and that therefore ' If God be
against him, what matter who is for him ? '
" Now I have been trying to tell him, as I do every one ' If
God be for you, what matter who is against you ! ' I have been
saying to him what Anthony used to say, as Pa.mbo quotes him to
Arsenius. I have been trying to make him understand that lie is
not in the devil's hands one moment longer than he likes, because
God is as much the enemy of his sorrows as he is of his own, and
that the moment he will allow God to remove those sorrows, the
Lord will rejoice in doing so Am I to tell him it
pleased God that he should do such and such wrong, or am I to
tell him, that 'it pleased the devil into whose power, not God but
you yourself put yourself years ago, deliberately separating your
own will from God, and determining to be a law unto yourself, and
to do exactly what was right in the sight of your own eyes ? Hut
God abhors your misery ; God yearns to lift you out of it.' If I
can make him feel that first, then, and then only, 1 can go on to
say, ' But He will not lift you out of it till it has taught you the
lesson which He intends you to learn ; ' because then (instead of
canting generalities, which, God forgive me, I too often use, and
feel ready to vomit my own dirty soul out the next minute) 1 can
1 68 Charles Kingsley.
tell him what lesson God intends him to learn by affliction, namely,
the very lesson which I have been trying to teach him, the very
lesson which I preached in the three sermons on the cholera that
God is the foe of all misery and affliction ; that He yearns to raise
us out of it, and to show us that in His presence is the fulness of
life and joy, and that nothing but our own wilfulness and imperfec-
tion keep us in it for an instant. I dare not say this of A. or B. I
leave them to impute sin to themselves, but I will impute to
myself, and not to God's will, the cause of every finger ache I
have, because I know that I never had a sorrow which I did not
cause myself, or make necessary for myself by some sin of my
own ; and I will stand by the service of the ' Visitation of the
Sick,' which represents the man's sins as the reason of the sickness,
and his recovery as God's will and desire. ' He doth not afflict
willingly or grieve the children of men,' is a plain Scripture, and I
will not explain it away to suit any theory whatsoever about the
origin of evil ; but believe that the first chapter of Job, and the two
accounts of David's numbering the people, tell us all we can know
about it. Thus, so far from allowing that what I say of God's
absolute love of our happiness and hatred of our misery is the half-
truth, which must be limited by anything else, I say it is the whole
truth, the root truth, which must limit all theories about the benefit
of suffering, or any other theories, and must be preached abso-
lutely, nakedly, unreservedly first, as the Lord Jesus preached it,
instead of any such theories or schemes (however true) to be of
any real benefit to men.
"I know all this is incoherent; but I don't pretend to have
solved this or any other problem. If you prove to me seven large
self-contradictions in my own harangue it won't matter. All you
will do, will be to drive me to a Socratic dialogue, which is the
only way I can argue.
" This is the end of my say, which I could not finish the other
night."
TO THE SAME.
June, 1852.
" As Browning says :
' Come in any shape,
As a victor crowned with vine,
Or a beaten slave,
Only come,
'Tis thy coming which I crave.'
" In three weeks' time, or a month at furthest, we shall be de-
lighted to see thee. My beloved roses will be just in glory, the
fish will be just in season ; thanks to the late spring. My old
His Poetic Faculty. 169
hunter will be up from grass, and proud to carry you and me per
gig to see the best of men, John Paine, saint and hop-grower, of
Farnham, Surrey. Also we will talk of all matters in heaven and
earth. That is, unless I am so deeply unthankful, as indeed I am,
for all my blessings that the Giver finds it necessary, against His
will, to send some bitter among my paradise of sweets ....
But What has become of a huge packet I sent to you through
Louis? It contained a burlesque novel in G. VV. Reynolds's style,
which I had highly finished, and would not lose not for no money.
It must and shall be found ; therefore disgorge !
" Oh ! ah ! eh ! . . . . I have laid a poem and it won't
hatch ! Oh for Mr. Cantelo * and his ecc-ecc-ecc cackle callobion !
. . . . Perseus and Andromeda. ... I have written a lot
in blank verse, and a lot in the metre of Hood's 'Hero and Lean-
der ' (a noble poem, and so little known), and I can't please my-
self. Rhymed metres run away with you, and you can't get the
severe, curt, simple objectivity you want in them, and unrhymed
blank verse is very bold in my hands, because I won't write
'poetic diction,' but only plain English and so I can't get mythic
grandeur enough. Oh for the spirit of Tennyson's ' CEnone ! '
Write, pity, and advise.
". . . What you say * * * writes to a friend about my ' ergon '
being poetry is quite true. I could not write ' Uncle Tom's
Cabin,' and I can write poetry .... there is no denying it :
I do feel a different being when I get into metre I feel like
an otter in the water, instead of an otter ashore. He can run fast
enough ashore, and keep the hounds at a tearing gallop, as my legs
found this spring in Snowdonia, but when he takes water, then in-
deed he becomes beautiful, full of divine grace and freedom, and
exuberance of power. Go and look at him in the Zoological Gar-
dens, and you'll see what I mean. When I have done ' Hypatia '
I will write no more novels. I will write poetry not as a profes-
sion but I will keep myself for it, and I do think I shall do some-
thing that will live. I feel my strong faculty is that sense of form,
which, till I took to poetry, always came out in drawing, drawing,
but poetry is the true sphere, combining painting and music and
history all in one."
A friend lent him an old horse this year which gave him
constant amusement, and kept him in health, and he writes to Mr.
T. Hughes :
"I had just done my work, and seen my poor, and dinner was
coming on the table yesterday just four o'clock, when the bow-
wows appeared on the top of the Mount, trying my patch of gorse ;
* Then hatching chickens by artificial heat at the Egyptian Hall.
170 Charles Kingsley.
so I jumped up, left the cook shrieking, and off. He wasn't there,
but I knew where he was, for I keep a pretty good register of
foxes (ain't they my parishioners, and parts of my flock ?) ; and, as
the poor fellows had had a blank day, they were very thankful to
find themselves in five minutes going like mad. We had an hour
and a half of it scent breast high as the dew began to rise (bleak
north-easter always good weather), and if we had not crossed a
second fox, should have killed him in the open ; as it was we lost
him after sunset, after the fiercest grind I have had this nine years,
and I went back to my dinner. The old horse behaved beau-
tifully ; he is not fast, but in the enclosed woodlands he can live
up to any one and earned great honor by leaping in and out of the
Loddon ; only four more doing it, and one receiving a mucker. I
feel three years younger to-day.
" P.S. The whip tells me there were three in the river together,
rolling over horse and man ! What a sight to have lost even by
being a-head.
'Have you seen the story of the run of January 7, when Mr.
Woodburne's hounds found at Blackholme, at the bottom of
Windermere, and ended beyond Helvellyn, more than fifty miles
of mountain. After Applethwaite Crag (where the field lost them)
they had a ring on High Street (2700 feet) of an hour unseen by
mortal eye ; and after that were seen by shepherds in Patter-
dale, Brotker Water, top of Fairfield (2900) Dunnaid Gap ; and
then over the top of Helvellyn (3050) ; and then to ground on
Birkside Screes I cannot find it on the maps. But what a poetic
thing ! Helvellyn was deep in frost and snow. Oh, that I could
write a ballad thereanent. The thing has taken possession of me ;
but I can't find words. There was never such a run since we
were born ; and think of hounds doing the last thirty miles alone ! "
One of his many correspondents at this time was Frederika
Bremer, the Swedish novelist, who, in the previous autumn among
other visitors, paid a visit to Eversley Rectory. She had come to
England to see the Great Exhibition, but she expressed one still
stronger desire, which was to see Charles Kingsley, whose writings
had struck a deep chord in her heart. It would be needless to say
that he thought her one of the most highly cultivated women he
had ever conversed with, and her sweet gentleness and womanli-
ness attracted him still more than her intellect. After she left
Eversley, she sent him Esaia Tegner's " FrithioPs Saga," with this
inscription : "To the Viking of the New Age, Charles Kingsley,
this story of the Vikings of the Old, from a daughter of the Vikings,
his friend and admirer, Frederika Bremer." He had several letters
Letter from Frederika Bremer. 171
from her, but there is only space for this one, sent with a copy of
her " Midnight Sun."
FREDERIKA BREMER TO CHARLES KINGSLEY.
LONDON, Nov. i, 1851.
"Mv YOUNG FRIEND,
"Will you allow me to call you in writing, in plain words,
what I have called and do call you in my mind and heart ? You
must think then it is a baptismal of the spirit and you must under-
stand it. I have received your books. They shall go with me
over the sea to my fatherland, and there in my silent home, I shall
read them, live in them, enjoy them deeply, intensely. I know it,
know it all the better since I have been with you. 1 have had a
dream sometimes of a young brother like that one that was
snatched away from me in his youth ; like him but more ardent, a
young mind that I could like, love, sympathize with, quarrel with,
live with, influence, be influenced by, follow, through the' thorny
path, through tropical islands, through storm and sunshine, higher
and higher ascending in the metamorphosis of existence. I had
that dream, that vision again when I saw you, that made me so sad
at parting. But let that pass. With much we must part. Much
must pass. More will remain. The communion of related souls
will remain to be revived again and again. I shall hear from you,
and I will write to you. Meantime my soul will hover about you
with the wings of blessing thoughts. 1 send you some books ; not
the one I thought of, I could not get a copy. But I send a copy
of my last book, the ' Midnight Sun.' As you are fond of Natural
History, the sketch of the people and provinces of Sweden in the
introduction may interest you, this much belongs to the natural
history of a country. The voyage up to the mountains of the mid-
night sun, the scenery there is perfectly true to nature ; I have
seen and lived it through myself. Frithiof's Saga I take peculiar
pleasure in asking you to accept, as a true follower of Scandinavian
mind and life, and as the story of a spirit to whom your own
is nearly related.
" The universal, the tropical mind seems more embodied in man
in the rigid zones of the north, than in those of tropical nature.
(It is strange but it seems to me to be so) the old Viking's great-
ness was that he wanted to conquer the whole world and make
it his own. The mission of the spiritual Viking seems to me the
higher one to conquer fhe world to God. So is yours. God speed
you ! and He will ! God bless you and yours, your lovely wife
first among those, and lastly me as one of yours in sisterly love."
In the autumn of 1852 an effort was made to open the Crystal
Palace on Sundays a move which many thought would stem the
172 Charles Kings ley.
tide of Sunday drunkenness, and his friend Mr. George Grove
wrote to him on the subject. He replied
TO GEORGE GROVE, ESQ.
October 28, 1852.
" I am in sad perplexity about your letter. I have been talking
it over with Maurice. He says he shall take the matter in hand
in his Lincoln's Inn sermons, and that it is a more fit thing for a
London than for a country parson, being altogether against my
meddling. My great hitch is that my family are strongly the other
way, and that although my father himself is very liberal on the mat-
ter, it would pain him dreadfully to see me in the wars with the
Evangelical party on that point. His health is bad, and he is very
nervous. You are sure to carry your point. But this I can do
I will sound through a friend the Morning Chronicle and Guardian.
A little good management on your company's part would get the
whole o'f the High Church on their side you and the company are
as right as a church literally, for the Catholic doctrine and disci-
pline are on your side
"Don't fancy me afraid. You and the world know that I am not
that : but if I were to tell you all the little ins and outs which
make me shrink, you would see that I was right."
TO THE SAME.
January 2, 1853.
" I send you an ex-cathedra opinion, which may do even
more good than if I appended my too notorious name. But yet I
use freely a pamphlet, here enclosed, by the Rev. Baldwin Brown,*
which I think the wisest and most eloquent speech, save Maurice's,
which I have seen on the matter.
"FOR PUBLICATION.
" MY DEAR GROVE, I am much shocked to hear that this Anti-
Crystal-Palace Agitation is injuring the clergy in the estimation of
the laity. Those who have taken part in it must bear their own
burden ; for whatsoever they have said and done is really, and
ought to be clearly understood to be, the consequence of their own
party opinions, and not of the doctrines either of the Bible or of
the Church of England. The Church of England knows nothing
of that definition of the Sabbath as a fast ; \vhich the Puritans bor-
rowed from the Pharisees and Rabbins of the most fallen and
* Minister of Brixton Independent Church, author of " The Higher Life,"
"The Home Life," and a remarkable little volume published in 1875, entitled
" The Doctrine of Annihilation in the Light of the Gospel of Love."
Letter to George Grove. 173
hideous period of Judaism, and which the Lord denounced again
and again as contrary to, and destructive of, the very idea and
meaning of the Sabbath. The Church of England calls Sunday a
feast-day, and not a fast ; and it is neither contrary to her ritual
letter, nor to her spirit, to invite on that day every Englishman to
refresh himself with the sight of the wonders of God's earth, or
with the wonders of men's art, which she considers as the results
of God's teaching and inspiration.
" The letter, moreover, as well as the spirit of the Bible is di-
rectly in favor of the arguments brought forward by the Crystal
Palace Company's advocates. The Sabbath, it declares, was made
for man. And man, it declares to be, not a mere ' soul to be
saved ' (an expression nowhere used in Scripture, in its modern
sense of a spirit, to be got safely through to some future state of
bliss), but as consisting of body, soul, and spirit meaning by soul
what we call intellect and feelings. And therefore any institution,
which like the Crystal Palace tends to give healthy and innocent
rest and refreshment to body, mind, and tastes, is in accordance in
a lower sphere certainly, but still directly in accordance with the
letter of the Sabbatical institution, as a day of rest made for man
as man.
" I think that you would find, were any real danger to the Crys-
tal Palace scheme to require a wide-spread agitation in its favor,
that the High Church party, as well as the great majority of ' moder-
ate churchmen,' would coincide in this view, and that the present
outcry would be found to have proceeded only from that rapidly
decreasing Low Church party, which tries to unite most eclectically
and inconsistently a watery Calvinism with the profession of the
Catholic creeds and formularies of the Church of England. Firmly
convinced that in this case the Vox Populi coincides with the Vox
Dei,
" 1 remain, yours faithfully,
"A HIGH CHURCH PARSON."
CHAPTER XII.
AGED 34.
The Rector in his Church "Hypatia" Letters from Chevalier Bunsen Mr.
Maurice's Theological Essays Correspondence with Thomas Cooper.
THE books which entailed so many letters, now also attracted
strangers to Eversley Church on Sunday. Officers from Sandhurst
would constantly walk over, and occasionally a stray clergyman
would be seen in the free sittings.
"Twenty-five Village Sermons" had been published in 1849, an ^
had been brought into notice by a review in the "Times," and
"Sermons on National Subjects," perhaps the most remarkable of
all his volumes of sermons, had just been brought out. His
preaching was becoming a great power. It was the speech of a
live man to living beings.
" Yes, my friends," he would say, " these are real thoughts.
They are what come into people's minds every day ; and I am here
to talk to you about what is really going on in your soul and mine ;
not to repeat to you doctrines at second hand out of a book, and
say, ' There, that is what you have to believe and do, and if you do
not, you will go to hell ; ' but to speak to you as men of like pas-
sions with myself; as sinning, sorrowing, doubting, struggling hu-
man beings ; to talk to you of what is in my own heart, and will be
in your hearts too, some day, if it has not been already. . . ."
The Collect he invariably used before preaching for twenty-four
years was the one for the Second Sunday in Advent, till about six
years ago, when the question of prayer before sermon being dis-
cussed in his parish, he consulted his diocesan (Samuel, Bishop
Wilberforce), and decided to abide by his opinion. From that time
he used in the morning the Invocation to the Trinity, in the after-
noon the usual Collect and Lord's Prayer.
After he gave out his text, the poor men in the free sittings un-
der the pulpit would turn towards him, and settle themselves into
As a Preacher.
175
an attitude of fixed attention. In preaching he would try to keep
still and calm, and free from all gesticulation ; but as he went on,
he had to grip and clasp the cushion on which his sermon rested,
in order to restrain the intensity of his own emotion ; and when,
in 5pite of himself, his hands would escape, they would be lifted
up, the fingers of the right hand working with a peculiar hovering
EVERSLEY CHURCH.
movement, of which he was quite unconscious ; his eyes seemed
on fire, his whole frame worked and vibrated. It was riveting to
see as well as hear him, as his eagle glance penetrated every cor-
ner of the church, and whether there were few or many there, it
was enough for him that those who were present were human be-
ings, standing between two worlds, and that it was his terrible re-
sponsibility as Avell as high privilege, to deliver a message to each
and all. The great festivals of the church seemed to inspire him,
and his words would rise into melody. At Christmas, Easter,
176 Charles Kings ley.
Whitsuntide, and on the Holy Trinity especially, his sermon be-
came a song of gladness ; during Advent, a note of solemn wain-
ing. On Good Friday, and through the Passion week evening ser-
vices, it would be a low and mournful chant, uttered in a deep,
plaintive, and at moments, almost agonised tone, which hushed his
congregation into a silence that might be felt.
The evening services for the Passion Week were given at an
hour to suit the laboring men on their way home from work, when
a few would drop into church, and to those few he preached a short
sermon of about fifteen minutes, which a London congregation
would have gone miles to hear. Those who were present, some-
times only fifteen to twenty besides his own family, will not forget
the dimly-lighted chuch in the twilight of the spring evenings, with
its little sprinkling of worshippers, and the silence as of death and
the grave, when with a look which he never seemed to have at any
other season, he followed Christ through the sufferings of the Holy
Week, beginning with either the liii. or Ixiii. of Isaiah, on each day
its own event, from the First Communion to the Betrayal the
Denial of Peter, the fate of Judas, on to the foot of the Cross.
And when " the worst was over," with what a gasp of relief was
Easter Even, with its rest and quietness, reached ; and with signi-
ficant words about that intermediate state, in which he so deeply
believed, he would lead eur thoughts from the peaceful sepulchre
in the garden to the mysterious gate of Paradise.
Passion Week was, to him, a time of such real and terrible pain
that he always thanked God when it was over ; and on Easter day
he would burst forth into a song of praise once more, for the Blessed
Resurrection not only of Christ the Lord, but of man, and of the
dear earth he loved so well spring after winter, birth after death.
Every gnat that danced in the sunshine on the blessed Easter
morn ; every blade of grass in the dear churchyard spoke of hope
and joy and a living God. And the flowers in the church, and the
graves decked with bright wreaths, would add to his gladness, as he
paced up and down before service. Many a testimony has come
to the blessing of those village sermons. "Twenty-five village
sermons," said a clergyman working in a great city parish, "like a
plank to a drowning man kept me from sinking in the 'blackness
of darkness,' which surrounds the unbeliever. Leaning upon these,
while carried about by every wind of doctrine, I drifted hither and
Preparation of Sermons. 177
thither, at last, thanks be to God, I found standing ground." But
none who merely read them could tell what it was to hear them,
and to see him, and the look of inspiration on his face, as hit;
preached them. While to those his nearest and dearest, who looked
forward with an ever fresh intensity of interest to the Sunday
services week after week, year after year, each sermon came with .
double emphasis from the knowledge that the daily life of the week
days was no contradiction to, but a noble carrying out of the words
preached in church.
His sermons owed much tp the time he gave himself for prepara-
tion. The Sunday services, while they exhausted him physically,
yet seemed to have the effect of winding his spirit up to higher
flights. And often late on Sunday evening he would talk over
with his wife the subject and text of the next week's sermon. On
Monday, he would, if possible, take a rest, but on Tuesday, to use
his own words, it would be set on the stocks. The text already
chosen, the method of treating it was sketched^and the first half
carefully thought out before it was dictated or written, then put by
for a day or two, while yet it was simmering in his brain, and finished
on Friday. He seldom put off his sermon till Saturday.
This year, begun at Eversley and ended at Torquay, was one of
much anxiety and incessant labor. Unable to get a pupil, he was
therefore unable to keep a curate. The Sunday services, night
schools, and cottage lectures, were done single-handed; and if he
seemed to withdraw from his old associates in the cause of co-
operation, and of the working men in London, it was not from
want of interest, but of time and strength. He went only once to
London, to lecture for the Needlewomen's Association. Constant
sickness in the parish and serious illness in his own household gave
him great anxiety ; while the proceedings of the King's College
Council against his friend and teacher, Mr. Maurice, on the ground
of the views on eternal punishment, published in his Theological
Essays, depressed him deeply. But the year had its lights as well
as shadows; he had the comfort of seeing the first good national
school built and opened in his parish ; friends, new and old, came
and went Mr. Maurice frequently Bishop McDougall of Labuan,
and Mr. Alfred Tennyson. His intimacy with Bishop Wilberforce,
Chevalier Bunsen, and Miss Mitford deepened ; he made the per-
sonal acquaintance of several of his hitherto unknown correspond-
12
178 Charles Kings ley.
ents, and met Mr. Robert Browning and his wife, for the first time,
at the house of mutual friends.
"Hypatia" this year came out as a book ; and by thoughtful
people was recognized not only as a most valuable page of history,
but as a real work of art. In one section of the English Church it
made him bitter enemies, more bitter, perhaps, than were stirred
up by either "Yeast" or the " Saint's Tragedy." The work was
more appreciated in Germany than in England for some years.
" I delight in Hypatia" said Chevalier Bunsen, when reading it
as a serial the year before, " only I cannot get over the hardship
against our common ancestors in presenting them in that drunken
mood in which they appear as lawless and blood-sucking barbarians
and chronic berserkers, rather than what I thought them to be. But
I have only just landed Philammon at Alexandria, and therefore
am not able to judge."
The following letters, written after the book appeared as a whole,
are doubly interesting from their allusions to Baron Bunsen's own
" Hyppolytus " :
CHEVALIER BUNSEN TO REV. C. KINGSLEY.
PRUSSIA HOUSE, May, 1853.
" I want just to send you a line to wish you joy for the wonderful
picture of the inward and outward life of Hypatia' s age, and of the
creation of such characters as hers and Raphael's, and the other pro-
togonists. I have such a longing to see you quietly .... that
I had conceived a hope you might be induced to pay me a visit at
the seaside. One day by the sea is worth more than a month in
this distracting metropolis, or Qreat Sahara.
" I have written, with all the feeling of awe and responsibility, a
confession of my faith, as conclusive of the Preface to my ' Ignatius
and Hyppolytus.' .... I am anxious to read it to you, and
to speak it to you.
" You have performed a great and lasting work, but it is a bold
undertaking. You fire over the heads of the public, oiov vuv dv&puirot
elov, as Nestor says, the pigmies of the circulating library. Besides,
you have (pardon me) wronged your own child most cruelly. Are
you aware ihat many people object to reading or allowing it to
be read, because the author says in the Preface, it is not written
for those of pure mind ? * My daughters exclaimed when they read
* The passage referr jd 10 is the < pening paragraph of the Preface where the
author says, " A picture of life in the fifth century must needs contain much
Letters from Bunsen. 179
that in the Preface, after having read to their mamma the whole in
numbers to general edification, as they do Bible and Shakspeare
every day. I should wish you to have said, that in describing and
picturing an age like that, there must here and there be nudities
as in nature and as in the Bible. Nudities there are because there
is truth. For God's sake, let that Preface not come before Ger-
many without some modified expression. Impure must be the
minds who can be offended or hurt by your picture ! What offends
and hurts is the modern Lusternheit, that veiling over indecency,
exciting imagination to draw off the veil in order to see not God's
naked nature, but corrupted man's indecency. Forgive that I take
the child's part against the father ! But, indeed, that expression is
not the right, and unjust to yourself, and besides highly detrimental
to the book.
" You know of the persecution of the Evangelicals, and High and
dry against Maurice ! I go to-morrow to Hare, and stay till
Tuesday. I am sure you would be more than welcome there, with
me and Savage Landor, who arrives also to-morrow ; but I am
afraid you are not so easily movable. There is place at the rectory
or at Lime ; Mrs. Augustus Hare is there and well.
" I depend, however, on your being my guest at Carlton Terrace.
Take it as a joint invitation from my wife and myself to Mrs. Kings-
ley and yourself. I have been moved to write strange things in
the first volume of the new ' Hippolytus,' and in the Key (to which
Max Miiller has contributed two most prodigious chapters). You
know the spirit writes what he will, and must. The times before us
are brimful of destruction therefore of regeneration. The Nemesis
is coming, as Ate.
" Farewell,
" Ever yours faithfully,
" BUNSEN."
which will be painful to any reader, and which the young and innocent will do
well to leave altogether unread. It has to represent a very hideous, though a
very great, age ; one of those critical and cardinal eras in the history of the
human race, in which virtues and vices manifest themselves side by side ev.-n
at times, in the same person with the most startling openness and power. One
who writes of such an era labors under a troublesome disadvantage. He dare
not tell how evil people were ; he will not be believed if he tell how good they
were. In the present case that disadvantage is doubled ; for while the sins of
the Church, however heinous, were still such as admit of being expressed in
words, the sins of the heathen world against which she fought, were utterly un-
describable ; and the Christian apologist is thus compelled, for the sake of
decency, to state the Church's case far more weakly than the facts deserve.
Preface to " Hypatia," vii.
180 Charles Kingsley.
Again the Chevalier writes :
September 16, 1853.
" I must express to you, in a few words, how much I rejoice in
hearing that you intend to propose to Messrs. Tauchnitz to under-
take a German translation of your admirable ' Hypatia.' You
know what I think about it. You have succeeded in epicizing,
poetically and philosophically, one of the most interesting and
eventful epochs of the world, clothing the spirits of that age in the
most attractive fable ; you resuscitate the real history of the time
and its leading characters so poetically that we forget that instruc-
tion is conferred upon us in every page. I find no book to which I
can compare 'Hypatia' but Hope's ' Anastasius.' But how much
more difficult, and how much more important is the subject you
treat ! I find that my friends, not only here, but also in Germany,
share my opinion. I have sent a copy to Abaken, expressing to
him my anxiety it should be well translated. It requires a man of
unusual knowledge and talents to do justice to the original and to
the subject. Now nobody can manage that better than the distin-
guished house with which I understand you are connected. May I
soon hear that a translation is coming forth ?
" I hope you may be able to come to town during the beautiful
months of quiet. I shall be settled there for good from i5th Oc-
tober. ' Hip poly tus ' is coming out in a second edition, but as
three different works.
"a, Hippolytus and his Age (first volume), newly-written, to
match the Picture of the congregational life in the second volume.
Two volumes.
"b, The Philosophical Key to it ; or Outlines of a Philosophy
of the History of Language and Religion. Two volumes.
" c, Analecta Ante-Nicaena (the philosophical key). Three vol-
umes.
" When you come to town you must stay with me at Carlton
Terrace, that we may have quiet night hours and (if you are an
early riser) morning hours together, unter vier Augen, as we say.
In the meantime, i remain,
" My dear Mr. Kingsley,
" Ever yours faithfully,
" BUNSEN."
An attack on Mrs. Gaskell produced the following letter :
EVERSLEY RECTORY, July 25, 1853.
" MY DEAR MADAM,
"I am sure that you will excuse my writing to you thus
abruptly when you read the cause of my writing.
" I am told, to my great astonishment, that you have heard
Essays of Maurice. 181
painful speeches on account of ' Ruth ; ' what was told me raised
all my indignation and disgust.
" Now 1 have read only a little (though, of course, I know the
story) of the book ; for the same reason that I cannot read ' Uncle
Tom's Cabin,' or 'Othello,' or 'The Bride of Lammennoor.' It
is too painfully good, as I found before I had read half a volume.
" But this I can tell you, that among all my large acquaintance
I never heard, or have heard, but one unanimous opinion of the
beauty and righteousness of the book, and that, above all, from
real ladies, and really good women. If you could have heard the
things which 1 heard spoken of it this evening by a thorough High
Church fine lady of the world, and by her daughter, too, as pure
and pious a soul as one need see, you would have no more doubt
than I have, that whatsoever the ' snobs ' and the bigots may
think, English people, in general, have but one opinion of ' Ruth,'
and that is, one of utter satisfaction,
" I doubt not you have had this said to you already often. Be-
lieve me, you may have it said to you as often as you will by the
purest and most refined of English women.
" May God bless you, and help you to write many more such
books as you have already written, is the fervent wish of
" Your very faithful servant,
" C. KINGSLEY."
Mr. Maurice's volume of "Theological Essays" appeared at this
time, and the subject of one, on Eternal Life and Death, was
the cause of his dismissal from King's College by Dr. Jelf and the
Committee. The subject had occupied Mr. Kingsley's mind for
years, and the persecution of his friend and teacher roused all his
chivalry.
" The Time and Eternity Question," he says in writing to a
friend, "is coming before the public just now in a way which may
seriously affect our friend Maurice, unless all who love him make
good fight.
"Maurice's essays, as you say, will constitute an epoch. If the
Church of England rejects them, her doom is fixed. She will rot
and die, as the Alexandrian did before her. If she accepts them
not as 'a code complete,' but as hints towards a new method
of thought, she may save herself still."
TO REV. F. D. MAURICE.
EVERSLEY, July 14, 1853.
"I have delayed writing to you about the Essays* till I had
read them over many times, which I have now done.
* "Theological Essays."
1 82 Charles Kingsley.
" That I agree and admire, is needless to be said. It seems to
me that the book marks a new era in English ecclesiastical history
not that you, single-handed, have caused it : but that
you have justified and expressed what is seething in the minds of
so many. I was utterly astonished at finding in page after page
things which I had thought, and hardly dared to confess to myself,
much less to preach. However, you have said them now; and I,
gaining courage, have begun to speak more and more boldly,
thanks to your blessed example, in a set of sermons on the
Catechism, accompanying your angels' trump on my private
penny-whistle Nevertheless, a tail of penny-whistles,
if they will only keep tune with you, may be useful. For there is
much in your book which will be caviare. I believe firmly that it
will do more good to the infidels and heretics than to the orthodox,
and I will tell you why. The former are not hampered in mind
by those forced dogmatic, systematised interpretations of theologic
words, which are destroying too often in the latter the plain sense
of right and wrong, truth and falsehood ; and they will, therefore,
take your words in their simple and honest meaning better than
'believers' and 'churchmen,' who, perhaps unconsciously to them-
selves, will be substituting for each of your Catholic expressions
some ghost of a meaning which they got from Grossman or Watts.
Therefore you must expect good pious people to accuse you- of
misinterpreting scripture and preaching a new gospel (which,
indeed, you do), and of the very faults of which you and I should
accuse them, that is of partial induction from those texts which
seem to make for your ' theory,' and here we of the penny-whistles
shall be of use to you, in verifying your inductions by applying
them to fresh texts.
" Moreover, you must submit to be accused of sentimentalism
because you appeal to inward experiences by the Sadducees,
because they have not had these experiences, or don't like to con-
fess them to themselves and by the Pharisees, because they allow
no spiritual experiences to be subjects of theologic inquiry,
except those which fit into their system ; and so, indeed, as 1 have
more than once dared to tell them, both disbelieve that man was
made in the image of God, and that God was made man of the
substance of his mother.
" On the whole, the outlook is perfectly awful, when one sees
the mountains of rubbish which have to be cleared before people
can be made to understand their Bible and prayer-book and still
more awful, when one feels as I do, that I have just as much dirt
and dust to get out of my own brain and heart, before I can see
to take the mote out of my brother's eye ; and still more awful,
when one feels, as one does, that though you are utterly right in
asserting what the Bible says to be the keynote of our creeds and
prayer-book, yet that there is much, especially in the latter parts of
F. D. Maurice and King's College. 183
the prayer-book, which does chime in with the popular superstitions ;
that though the compilers were indeed inspired, and raised most
miraculously above their age, yet they were not always consistent
in seeing what was to be said, any more than Augustine was ; and
then comes the terrible business of being tempted to twisj: -the
tenth word, in order to make it fit the other nine, and of being
called an eclectic, and of not being sure whether one is not one
really. Not that I am frightened at any such awful prospect.
If God is with us who can be against us ? If He has taught us so
far, we may trust Him to teach us more, and make our strength as
our day is. And if, as one is bound to expect, He does not show
us the whole truth in this life, but lets us stop short somewhere,
why what matter? Let Him send by the hand of whom He will.
He has set us to carry the lamp in the lamp-race a little further
on why should we pine at having to pass it on to fresh runners?
It is quite honor enough (and I suspect, before we get it done, we
shall find it quite work enough) to get one soul saved alive, or one
truth cleared from rubbish, before we die."
, 1853.
" It seems to me that two courses only are open to you, my dear
master. One : to resign your King's College posts at once, with a
solemn and sincere printed protest against being required to believe
and say things which the Articles of the Church of England do not
require. Or, to fight it out to the very last and compel them to the
odium of rejecting you.
" Either course would excite the sympathy and indignation of vast
numbers. It remains to be considered.
" i. By which process most truth would be hammered out by the
strokes.
" 2. Which would give least scandal to the Church, i.e., which
would give least handle for heretics of the atheistic school to say,
' Of course his opinions are incompatible with the Church. We
always knew it, now it is proved ; and he must join us, or start a
schism of his own.'
" Now as for the first count. I seriously think that by fighting
as long as you can, you might bring the whole eschatological ques-
tion up into the field in such a way, that they would be forced not
only to give their opinions but their reasons, or unreasons for them ;
and then, in the eyes of the world, the triumph is pretty sure, as it
is written, ' Oh, that my enemy would write a book ! '
" I think, too, that in this way so much of the real liberality of
our Articles and Liturgy might be made evident, as would prevent
the heretics having any important case against the Church, and
turn the wrath on to the present generation of religionists, and
184 Charles Kingsley.
on the bishops, as I wish to save religion and episcopacy, in
England.
"But if you are so completely a tenant-at-will at King's College
that they can dismiss you without making their reasons public, then
your only plan, surely, is to forestall them, and throw up your cure
on the ground of your rights as an English priest, thereby again
preventing scandal, in the true sense of the verb.
" But whethersoever of these is your plan, will it not be expe-
dient for one of us at least, to get up the question historically? It
seems to me that no such bondage has hitherto been formally
demanded in the English Church. And if we can prove this point,
we prove everything with precedent-worshipping John Bull. The
whole matter for the next seven years will practically turn on, not,
' are you right or wrong ? ' but ' are you legally and formally per-
mitted or unpermitted ? ' and that will depend, in a vague business
(shame that it should be vague !) like this, on Were divines since
the Reformation allowed to have their own opinions on this point,
and yet to hold ecclesiastical preferment ? Indeed, paltry as this
point may seem, we must have it formally proved or disproved,
not only for our own safety, but for the safety of the Established
Church.
" Now do you know anything about this ? Do you know men
who do ? Or can you get me put in the way of finding out by
being told what books to read, and I will work it out. Let that be
my business. We will settle hereafter in what form my results
shall be brought into the battle. This seems to me the first indis-
pensable practical act not of defence, but of offence.
" For I would not act on the defensive. If you only go to prove
that you may hold what you do, you will either be smashed by the
same arguments as smashed the good of Tract 90 with the evil of
it, or you will be sorely tempted hereafter dare manus and say, ' If
I can't hold this here, I will go where I can hold it ' (not that you
will ever yield to that temptation, but that it will come, and must
be provided against). But if you go steadily on the offensive, say,
I and you must hold this, and proclaim yourself as the champion
of the honest and plain meaning of our formularies, and hurl back
the onus probandi on the popular party, you will frighten them,
get a hearing from the unorthodox, and bring over to your side
the great mass who fear change, while they love and trust their
formularies enough to be glad to have the right interpretation of
them.
" I was struck the other day by the pleasure which a sermon of
mine gave not only to my clods, but to the best of my high church
gentry, in which sermon I had just copied word for word your
Essay on Eternal Life and Death of course stating the thing
more coarsely, and therefore more dangerously, than your wisdom
would have let you do and yet people were delighted.
Archdeacon Hare Consulted. 185
" Now forgive me, a thousand times I ask it, if I have seemed
to put myself up as a counsellor. You know what I feel for you.
But your cause is mine. We swim in the same boat, and stand or
fall henceforth together. I am the mouse helping the lion with
this difference, that the mouse was outside the net when she gnawed
it, while I am inside. For if you are condemned for these
' opinions ' I shall and must therefore avow them."
EVERSLEY, October 30.
"Well, dearest master I shall not condole with
you. You are above that : but only remind you of this day's
Psalms, which have been to me, strangely enough, the Psalms for
the day in all great crises of my life.
" Will you please get the correspondence published as soon as
possible, and send me down, if possible by return of post, the
whole of it, and also Jelf's notice in the Record. I promise you,
I will do nothing without consulting better and wiser men than
myself; and I will show you all arguments which I may write.
But the time is now come for those who love you to show their
colors, and their teeth also. I am too unhappy about you to say
much. You must know what I feel. I always expected it ; but
yet, when it comes one cannot face it a bit the better. Neverthe-
less, it is but a passing storm of dust."
He now consulted Archdeacon Hare about a protest : he went
to Oxford, and wrote to Cambridge. Archdeacon Hare's reply
will show what was proposed, and who were to be taken into
counsel :
FROM ARCHDEACON HARE.
ST. LEONARD'S, November 10, 1853.
" MV DEAR MR. KlNGSLEY,
" We know from of old that the Seniores Patrum were apt to
think the Juniores inclined to act too precipitately ; and it may
perhaps be this drag of old age that makes me think the plan
sketcht in your last letter somewhat over hasty. Time is an
unimportant element in our proceedings : two or three months
spent in the proper preparations will not injure, and may greatly
benefit our cause. If we begin with getting a good list of eminent
names to head our protest, before we publish it, it will be sure to
command attention, and many will follow such leaders ; while, if
it be circulated as the act of a small number, a cry will be raised
against it as issuing from a few latitudinarians, and the priest and
the scribe will pass it by on the other side. I should, indeed, be
delighted if Keble were to espouse our cause : but I remember
some sonnets of his, twenty years ago, on the blessings of the
1 86 Charles Kings ley.
Athanasian Creed, which struck me with terror and awe. Being
absent from home, I cannot ascertain how Trench interprets the
last parable in Matthew xxv. ; but I would fain hope we might
have him : and he, as one of the Professors immediately affected
by the recent decision, would rightly take the lead.
" Thirlwall writes indignantly of the proceedings. When our
project is further advanced, I will write to him about it : but he
will have to consider how far a Bishop may join in such a protest.
Stanley might consult Whately, who, I fancy, has already written
on the subject.
" Thompson and Sedgwick would be with us ; and perhaps
Whewell also, if our protest were judiciously drawn up.
" In the preamble, we must state the immediate ground foi
the step we take, and the fact, not generally known, that our
church has implicitly sanctioned the exercise of private judgment
on this point, by the retracting of the 426. Article. It seems to
me, too, that we must say something to remove the primd facie
objection, which will strike most persons, from the Athanasian
Creed ; and I think this may be done without appearing to dog-
matize, while it will be a comfort to numbers to have this thorn
drawn out of their hearts.
"Stanley was in Cheshire the other day : I know not where he
is now.
" Yours most sincerely,
" JULIUS C. HARE.
" Since writing the above, I have a letter from Trench, pro-
posing to come to Hurstmonceaux on Tuesday next. It would be
a great delight to us, and would much forward our work, if you
could meet him there."
The following letters to Mr. Thomas Cooper, Chartist, who
wrote the " Purgatory of* Suicides " in 1843-4, while imprisoned
in Stafford Gaol on a charge of sedition, though spreading over
several years, will be more interesting if read together without
regard to dates. The corresponding letters that called them forth
are full of power and vigor, and have been kindly placed by Mr.
Cooper at the disposal of the editor, but want of space prevents
their publication. When Mr. Kingsley first knew Thomas Cooper,
he was lecturing on Strauss, in the John Street Lecture Rooms, to
working men ; and after long struggles with his own sceptical diffi-
culties, as will be seen by these letters, his doubts were solved, and
he became a lecturer on Christianity, a work he continues now at
the age of seventy. He is a man of vast reading and indomitable
Letters to Thomas Cooper. 187
courage. His autobiography, published in 1872, is a remarkable
book well worth reading, both for its own sake and for the pictures
of working class life and thought, which it reveals.*
EVERSLEY, November 2, 1853.
". . . . Work and family illness have kept your kind letter
unanswered, with many others, till this leisure morning. As to
your ' Alderman Ralph,' I shall possess myself of a copy when I
come to London, and also do myself the pleasure of calling upon
you.
" I am glad you like ' Hypatia.' I wrote it with my whole
heart, trusting that I should find at least a few who would read it
with their whole hearts, and I have not been disappointed." (Your
Jew in ' Hypatia,' Thomas Cooper had said, shows me that you
understand me.)
"Your friend is a very noble fellow. As for converting either
you or him, what 1 want to do, is to make people believe in
the Incarnation, as the one solution of all one's doubts and fears
for all heaven and earth, wherefore I should say boldly, that, even
if Strauss were right, the thing must either have happened some-
where else, or will happen somewhere some day, so utterly does
both my reason and conscience, and, as I think, judging from
history, the reason and conscience of the many in all ages and
climes, demand an Incarnation. As for Strauss, 1 have read a great
deal of him, and his preface carefully.f Of the latter, I must say
that it is utterly illogical, founded on a gross pctitio principii ; as
for the mass of the book, I would undertake, by the same falla-
cious process, to disprove the existence of Strauss himself, or any
other phenomenon in heaven or earth. But all this is a long story.
* Life of Thomas Cooper, by himself, published by Hodder and Stoughton,
London.
f This refers to a letter in which Thomas Cooper says, " My friend, a noble
young fellow, says you are trying to convert him to orthodoxy, and expresses
great admiration for you. I wish you success with him, and I had almost said
I wish you could next succeed with me ; but I think I am likely to stick where
I have stuck for some years never lessening, but I think increasing, in my love
for the truly divine Jesus but retaining the Strauss view of the Gospel."
" Ah ! that grim Strauss," he says in a later letter, " how he makes the iron
agony go through my bones and marrow, when I am yearning to get hold of
Christ ! But you understand me ? Can you help me ? I wish I could be near
you, so as to have a long talk with you often. I wish you could show me that
Strauss's preface is illogical, and that it is grounded on a petitio principii. I
wish you could bring me into a full and hearty reception of this doctrine of the
Incarnation. I wish you could lift off the dead weight from my head and
heart, that blasting, brutifying thought, that the grave must be my ' end all.' "
1 88 Charles Kings ley.
As long as you do see in Jesus the perfect ideal of man, you are
in the right path, you are going toward the light, whether or not
you may yet be allowed to see certain consequences which, as I
believe, logicallly follow from the fact of His being the ideal;
Poor * * * * 's denial (for so I am told) of Jesus being the ideal of a
good man, is a more serious evil far. And yet Jesus Himself said,
' That if any one spoke a word against the Son of Man (z. e.,
against Him as the perfect man) it should be forgiven him ' ; but
the man who could not be forgiven either in this world or that to
come, was the man who spoke against the Holy Spirit, i. e., who
had lost his moral sense and did not know what was righteous
when he saw it a sin into which we parsons are as likely to fall as
any men, much.more likely than the publicans and sinners. As
long as your friend, or any other man loves the good, and does it,
and hates the evil and flees from it, my Catholic creeds tell me
that the Spirit of Jesus, ' the Word,' is teaching that man ; and
gives me hope that either here or hereafter, if he be faithful over
a few things, he shall be taught much.
" You see, this is quite a different view from either the Dissent-
ers or Evangelicals, or even the High-Church parsons. But it is
the view of those old ' Fathers ' whom they think they honor, and
whom they will find one day, in spite of many errors and supersti-
tions, to be far more liberal, humane, and philosophical than our
modern religionists . ."
Thomas Cooper had now re-commenced lecturing at the Hall
of Science on Sunday evenings, simply teaching theism, for he had
not advanced farther yet in positive conviction.
" Immediately after I had obeyed conscience," he says in his
Autobiography, " and told the people I had been in the habit of
teaching, that I had been wrong, I determined to open my mind
fully to my large-hearted friend, Charles Kingsley. He showed
the fervent sympathy of a brother. We began a correspondence
which extended over more than a year. I told him every doubt,
and described every hope I had ; and he counselled, instructed,
and strengthened me to the end
" I told him that while I diligently read ' Bridgewater Treatises,'
and all the other books with which he furnished me, as a means
of beginning to teach sceptics the truth from the very foundation,
that the foundations themselves seem to glide from under my
feet. I had to struggle against my own new and tormenting
doubts about God's existence, and feared I should be at last over-
whelmed with darkness and confusion of mind.
"No, no!" said my faithful and intelligent friend. "You will
get out of all doubt in time. When you feel you are in the
Justice of God. 189
deepest and gloomiest doubt, pray the prayer of desperation ;
cry out, ' Lord, if Thou dost exist, let me know that Thou dost
exist ! Guide my mind by a way that I know not, into Thy truth,'
and God will deliver you."
TO THE SAME.
EVERSLEY, September 16, 1855.
" Poor * * * * sent me some time ago a letter of yours which I
ought to have answered before, in which you express dissatisfaction
with the ' soft indulgence ' which I and Maurice attribute to God.
I am sure you mistake us. No men are more ready to say (I at
least from experience) that 'it is a fearful thing to fall into the
hands of the living God.' All we say is, that God* is just, and re-
wards every man according to his work.
" My belief is, that God will punish (and has punished already
somewhat) every wrong thing I ever did, unless I repent that is,
change my behavior therein ; and that His lightest blow is hard
enough to break bone and marrow. But as for saying of any
human being whom I ever saw on earth that there is no hope for
them ; that even if, under the bitter smart of just punishment,
they opened their eyes to their folly, and altered their minds, even
then God would not forgive them ; as for saying that, I will not
for all the world and the rulers thereof. I never saw a man in
whom there was not some good, and I believe that God sees that
good far more clearly, and loves it far more deeply, than I can,
because He Himself put it there, and, therefore, it is reasonable to
believe that He will educate and strengthen that good, and chas-
tise and scourge the holder of it till he obeys it, and loves it, and
gives up himself to it ; and that the said holder will find such chas-
tisement terrible enough, if he is unruly and stubborn, I doubt not,
and so much the better for him. Beyond this I cannot say ; but I
like your revulsion into stern puritan vengeance it is a lunge too
far the opposite way, like Carlyle's ; but anything better than the
belief that our Lord Jesus Christ was sent into the world to enable
bad men to be infinitely rewarded, without doing anything worth
rewarding anything, oh ! God of mercy, as well as justice, than
a creed which strengthens the heart of the wicked, by promising
him life, and makes * * * * * * * believe (as I doubt not he does
believe) that though a man is damned here, his soul is saved here-
after."
1856.
" Your letter this morning delighted me, for / see that you see.
If you are an old hand at the Socratic method, you will be saved
much trouble. I can quite understand young fellows kicking at it.
Plato always takes care to let us see how all but the really earnest
kicked at it, and flounced off in a rage, having their own notions
190 Charles Kings ley.
torn to rags, and scattered, but nothing new put in the place
thereof. It seems to me (I speak really humbly here) that the
danger of the Socratic method, which issued, two or three genera-
tions after in making his so-called pupils the academics mere
destroying sceptics, priding themselves on picking holes in every-
thing positive, is this to use it without Socrates' great Idea, which
he expressed by ' all knowledge being memory,' which the later
Platonists, both Greek and Jew, e. g., Philo and St. John, and
after them the good among the Roman stoics and our early
Quakers and German mystics, expressed by saying that God, or
Christ, or the Word, was more or less in every man the Light
which lightened him. Letting alone formal phraseology, what I
mean, and what Socrates meant, was this, to confound people's
notions and theories, only to bring them to look their own reason
in the face, and to tell them boldly, you know these things at heart
already, if you will only look at what you know, and clear from
your own spirit the mists which your mere brain and ' organization
and truth,' has wrapt round them. Men may be at first more
angry than ever at this ; they will think you accuse them of
hypocrisy when you tell them ' you know that I am right, and you
wrong : ' but it will do them good at last. It will bring them to
the one great truth, that they too have a Teacher, a Guide, an
Inspirer, a Father : that you are not asserting for yourself any
new position, which they have not attained, but have at last found
out the position which has been all along equally true of them and
you, that you are all God's children, and that your Father's Love
is going out to seek and to save them and you, by the only possible
method, viz., teaching them that He is their Father.
" I should advise you to stick stoutly by old Paley. He is
right at root, and I should advise you, too, to make your boast of
Baconian Induction being on your side, and not on theirs ; for
' many a man talks of Robin Hood who never shot in his bow,'
and the ' Reasoner ' party, while they prate about the triumphs of
science, never, it seems to me, employ intentionally in a single
sentence the very inductive method whereby that science has
triumphed. But these things perhaps you know as well as I.
" For the end of your letter. Be of good cheer. WHEN the
wicked man turneth from his wickedness (then, there and then),
he shall save his soul alive as you seem to be consciously doing,
and all his sin and his iniquity shall not be mentioned unto him.
What your ' measure ' of guilt (if there can be a measure of the
incommensurable spiritual) I know not. But this I know, that as
long as you keep the sense of guilt alive in your own mind, you
will remain justified in God's mind ; as long as you set your sins
before your face, He will set them behind His back. Do you ask
how I know that ? I will not quote ' texts,' though there are
Systematic Work Healthful. 191
dozens. I will not quote my own spiritual experience, though I
could honestly : I will only say, that such a moral law is implied
in the very idea of ' Our Father in heaven.'
' P. S. I have ordered ' Glaucus ' to be sent you. I wish you
would consider especially pp. 69-80, 95-7, 100-103. I send you
also Harvey's sea-side book, that you may read up the 'Echinus.'
I think a lecture simply on the ' Echinus ' would astonish weak
minds more utterly than anything I can guess at. I could help
you to all facts. As for specimens, I could send you a few. But
do you know Dr. Carpenter, at University Hall ? He is a good
man, full of desire to teach workmen wisdom, and knows the
' Echini' better than any man on earth. He might help you to
facts and specimens better than I. But think it over. Can you
make drawings ? Again, have you Hugh Miller's invaluable
' Footprints of the Creation,' a corroboration of Paley against the
' Vestiges,' drawn principally from the geology of his favorite Old
Red Sandstone fishes? You will find it useful beyond any modern
book. Also, you must get a sight of Owen's new collection of his
Lectures.
" My father wants to know if you have ever seen old Mendels-
sohn's (the musician's grandfather) Answer to an Atheist at Ham-
burgh. I have heard that the book is highly valuable. Do you
know 'Kant's Theodicy?' It reveals A Being; but hardly a
Father "
Through the exertions of his friends, Thomas Cooper was now
given copying work at the Board of Health, of which the Rt.
Hon. William Cowper was then President : his hearers at the Hall
of Science, already made bitter by his deserting the atheist camp,
made the fact of his doing government work and taking govern-
ment pay a fresh ground of opposition to his teaching, and Mr.
Kingsley writes :
RECTORY, CHELSEA, June 14, 1856.
" I called and asked for you at the Board of Health, but you
were away ! You must not give up to low spirits wait awhile,
and all will be right. Get into harness, become a habitue of the
place, get every one's good word, and in six months you will be
found out to be a ' valuable man ; ' and then, in due time, you may
say what you like and rise to something really worth having.
" It is, 1 know it, a low aim (I don't mean morally) for a man
who has had the aspirations which you have ; but may not Our
Heavenly Father just be bringing you through this seemingly de-
grading work, to give you what I should think you never had,
what it cost me bitter sorrow to learn the power of working in
192 Charles Kings ley.
harness, and so actually drawing something, and being of real use.
Be sure, if you can once learn that lesson, in addition to the rest
you have learnt, you will rise to something worthy of you yet. My
dear Cooper, you are a very clever man. But don't you think
that the God who made you is as fully aware of that fact as you or
I ? And is it not probable that He is only keeping your powers
seemingly useless, till you have learned to use them ? Now it has
seemed to me, in watching you and your books, and your life, that
just what you wanted was self-control. I don't mean that you
could not starve, die piece-meal, for what you thought right ; for
you are a brave man, and if you had not been, you would not have
been alive now. But it did seem to me, that what you wanted was
the quiet, stern cheerfulness, which sees that things are wrong, and
sets to to right them, but does it trying to make the best of them all
the while, and to see the bright side ; and even if, as often hap-
pens, there be no bright side to see, still ' possesses his soul in pa-
tience,' and sits whistling and working till ' the pit be digged for
the ungodly.'
" Don't be angry with me and turn round and say, ' You, sir, who
never knew what it was to want a meal in your life, who belong
to the successful class who have. What do you mean by preaching
these cold platitudes to me ?' For, Thomas Cooper, I have
known what it was to want things more precious to you, as well as
to me, than a full stomach ; and I learnt or rather I am learning
a little to wait for them till God sees good. And the man who
wrote 'Alton Locke' must know a little of what a man like you
could feel to a man like me, if the devil entered into him. And
yet I tell you, Thomas Cooper, that there was a period in my
life and one not of months, but for years, in which I would have
gladly exchanged your circumstantia, yea, yourself, as it is now,
for my circumstantia, and myself, as they were then. And" yet I
had the best of parents and a home, if not luxurious, still as good
as any man's need be. You are a far happier man now, I firmly
believe, than I was for years of my life. The dark cloud has past
with me now. Be but brave and patient, and (I will swear now),
by God, sir ! it will pass with you."
June 2$, 1856.
" I have had a sad time, for a dear friend has died suddenly, or I
would have both written again to you, and called again ; but I could
not recollect your exact address, and could not get it at the Board
of Health, and meanwhile this trouble came, and I had to exert
myself for a poor dear man left with a family of young folk, and ut-
terly broken-hearted. You are in the right way yet. I can put you
in no more right way. Your sense of sin is not fanaticism ; it is, I
suppose, simple consciousness of fact. As for helping you to Christ,
I do not believe 1 can one inch. I see no hope but in prayer, in
Knowledge of God. 193
going to Him yourself, in saying : Lord if Thon art there, if Thou
art at all, if this all be not a lie. fulfil Thy reputed promises, and
give me peace and a sense of forgiveness, and the feeling that bad
as I may be, Thou lovest me still, seeing all, understanding all,
and therefore making allowances for all ! I have had to do that
in past days ; to challenge Him through outer darkness and the
silence of night, till I almost expected that He would vindicate
His own honor by appearing visibly as He did to St. Paul and St.
John ; but he answered in the still small voice only ; yet that was
enough.
" Read the book by all means ; but the book will not reveal
Him. He is not in the book ; He is in the heaven which is as
near you and me as the air we breathe, and out of that He must
reveal Himself; neither priests nor books can conjure him up,
Cooper. Your Wesleyan teachers taught you, perhaps, to look for
Him in the book, as Papists would have in the bread ; and when
you found He was not in the book, you thought him nowhere ; but
He is bringing you out of your first mistake and idolatry, ay,
through it, and through all wild wanderings since, to know Him
Himself, and speak face to face with Him as a man speaks with
his friend. Have patience with Him. Has He not had patience
with you ? And therefore have patience with all men and things ;
and then you will rise again in His good time the stouter for your
long battle.
"As for worldly matters, there is nothing to be done now, but
to trust God to give you the right work in His own good time.
He has, you see, given you anchorage-ground when you fancied
yourself utterly adrift. Oh, trust this earnest of His care, and
' wait on Providence.' Men may misuse that expression into
Micawber's cant, but there is an everlasting truth in it. In such a
work as God is doing with you, He will have it all His own way,
so that you shall have no chance of mistaking from whom the
blessing comes.
" Write again soon. Your letters are always pleasant to me. I
should have answered this before ; but I have been living for three
days on a vault, and a funeral, and the sight of utter woe."
EVERSLEY, December 4, 1856.
" Your letter is very cheering ; I wish I could tell you as much
about probabilities as I can about natural history.
" But, for the zoology, I will bring you up not only Cuvier, but
all the books I can think of. Have you Hiiber on the bee ? It
is old, but good. I will bring you Kirby and Spence's entomology,
where you will find wonders on bees and ants. Moreover, 1 can
help you, I think, with geological books. Have you read Hitch-
cock, who is making a noise now ? and did you ever see a ' Boy's
13
194 Charles Kingsley.
Dream of Geology'? But the most important book for you is
Sedgwick's ' Notes to his University Studies,' containing his refu-
tation of the ' Vestiges of Creation.' I come to town the toth,
and must have some talks with you, for now that we are got upon
my ground of Natural History, I think I could do more to help
you in one talk than in three letters. A Lecture on Physical
Geography, as showing God's providence and care of man, might
be effective. Do you know ' Guyot's Earth and Man ' ? an admir-
able book, which I can bring. I am going to get you Agassiz's
opening lecture to the British Association this year, which will be
quite invaluable to you. Borrow from some one Orr's ' Circle of
the Sciences' : with Owen's 'Tractate on Physiology.' "
56 MARINA, ST., LEONARD'S, May 9, 1857.
" About endless torment. (Keep that expression distinct from
eternal, which has been mixed up with it, the former being what
the popular creed really holds.) You may say,
" i. Historically, that,
" a. The doctrine occurs nowhere in the Old Testament, or any
hint of it. The expression, in the end of Isaiah, about the fire un-
quenched, and the worm not dying, is plainly of the dead corpses
of men upon the physical earth, in the valley of Hinnom, or Ge-
henna, where the offal of Jerusalem was burned perpetually. En-
large on this, as it is the passage which our Lord quotes, and by it
the meaning of His words must be primarily determined.
" b. The doctrine of endless torment was, as a historical fact,
brought back from Babylon by the Rabbis. It was a very ancient
primary doctrine of the Magi, an appendage of their fire-kingdom
of Ahriman, and may be found in the old Zends, long prior to
Christianity.
" c. St. Paul accepts nothing of it as far as we can tell, never
making the least allusion to the doctrine.
" d. The Apocalypse simply repeats the imagery of Isaiah, and
of our Lord ; but asserts, distinctly, the non-endlessness of torture,
declaring that in the consummation, not only death, but Hell, shall
be cast into the Lake of Fire.
" e. The Christian Church has never really held it exclusively,
till now. It remained quite an open question till the age of Jus-
tinian, 530, and significantly enough, as soon as 200 years before
that, endless torment for the heathen became a popular theory, pur-
gatory sprang up synchronously by the side of it, as a relief for the
conscience and reason of the Church.
"_/. Since the Reformation, it has been an open question in the
English Church, and the philosophical Platonists, of the i6th and
1 7th centuries, always considered it as such.
" g. The Church of England, bv the deliberate expunging of the
Endless Torment. 195
42111! Article, which affirmed endless punishment, has declared it
authoritatively to be open,
" h. It is so, in fact. Neither Mr. Maurice, I, or any others, who
have denied it, can be dispossessed or proceeded against legally in
any way whatsoever.
" Exegetically, you may say, I think, a. That the meanings of
the word uuov and aicii/tos have little or nothing to do with it,
even if ouSv be derived from dei always, which I greatly doubt. The
word never is used in Scripture anywhere else, in the sense of end-
lessness (vulgarly called eternity). It always meant, both in Scrip-
ture and out, a period of time. Else, how could it have a plural
how could you talk of the asons, and aeons of aeons, as the Scrip-
ture does ? Nay, more, how talk of ovros 6 ataif, which the trans-
lators with laudable inconsistency, have translated ' this world,' i.e.,
this present state of things, 'Age,' 'dispensation, 1 or epoch
auovtos, therefore, means, and must mean, belonging to an epoch,
or the epoch, and atwvios /cdAams is the punishment allotted to that
epoch. Always bear in mind, what Maurice insists on, and
what is so plain to honest readers, that our Lord, and the
Apostles, always speak of being in the end of an age oraion, not as
ushering in a new one. Come to judge and punish the old world,
and to create a new one out of its ruins, or rather as the S. S. bet-
ter expresses it, to burn up the chaff and keep the wheat, i.e., all
the elements of food as seed for the new world.
" I think you may say, that our Lord took the popular doctrine
because He found it, and tried to correct and purify it, and put it
on a really moral ground. You may quote the parable of Dives and
Lazarus (which was the emancipation from the Tartarus theory) as
the one instance in which our Lord professedly opens the secrets
of the next world, that He there represents Dives as still Abraham's
child, under no despair, not cut off from Abraham's sympathy, and
under a direct moral training, of which you see the fruit. He is
gradually weaned from the selfish desire of indulgence for himself,
to love and care for his brethren, a divine step forward in his life,
which of itself proves him not to be lost. The impossibility of
Lazarus getting to him, or vice versd, expresses plainly the great
truth, that each being where he ought to be at that time, inter-
change of place (i.e., of spiritual state) is impossible. But it says
nothing against Dives rising out of his torment, when he has learnt
the lesson of it, and going where he ought to go. The common
interpretation is merely arguing in a circle, assuming that there are
but two states of the dead, ' Heaven ' and ' Hell,' and then trying
at once to interpret the parable by the assumption, and to prove
the assumption from the parable. Next, you may say that the
English damnation, like the Greek Kara/cpio-is, is perhaps K/H'WIS sim-
ple, simply means condemnation, and is (thank God) retained in
that sense in various of our formularies, where I always read it, e.g.>
196 Charles Kingsley.
' eateth to himself damnation,' with sincere pleasure, as protests in
favor of the true and rational meaning of the word, against the
modern and narrower meaning.
" You may say that Fire and Worms, whether physical or spirit-
ual, must in all logical fairness be supposed to do what fire and
worms do do, viz., destroy decayed and dead matter, and set free its
elements to enter into new organisms; that, as they are beneficent
and purifying agents in this life, they must be supposed such in the
future life, and that the conception of fire as an engine of torture,
is an unnatural use of that agent, and not to be attributed to God
without blasphemy, unless you suppose that the suffering (like all
which He inflicts) is intended to teach man something which he
cannot learn elsewhere.
" You may say that the catch, ' All sin deserves infinite punish-
ment, because it is against an Infinite Being,' is a worthless amphi-
boly, using the word infinite in two utterly different senses, and
being a mere play on sound. That it is directly contradicted by
Scripture, especially by our Lord's own words, which declare that
every man (not merely the wicked) shall receive the due reward of
his deeds, that he who, &c., shall be beaten with few stripes, and so
forth. That the words ' He shall not go out till he has paid the ut-
termost farthing, evidently imply (unless spoken in cruel mockery)
that he may go out then, and that it is scandalous for Protestants
to derive from thence the opposite doctrine, while they call the
Papists rogues for proving the perpetual virginity of the B. V. Mary
from exactly the same use of eu>s.
* " Finally, you may call on them to rejoice that there is a fire of
God the Father whose name is Love, burning for ever unquench-
ably, to destroy out of every man's heart and out of the hearts of
all nations, and off the physical and moral world, all which offends
and makes a lie. That into that fire the Lord will surely cast all
shams, lies, hypocrisies, tyrannies, pedantries, false doctrines, yea,
and the men who love them too well to give them up, that the
smoke of their /3a0-avrp)s (i.e., the torture which makes men con-
fess the truth, for that is the real meaning of it ; /3ao-aj'i0yx,os means
the to;/w God in fact who
intended to move them into endless torture, were quite unable to
conceive of the Son as the express image of the Father. How
could He be, if the Father intended to damn, and the Son to save ?
Thus the Godhead of the Son became to them a necessary part of
their scheme of redemption, only because unleos He were God,
198 Charles Kingsley.
His 'satisfaction' and His 'merits' would not be 'infinite,' and
the Trinity became a mere function of the ' scheme of redemp-
tion,' that again being a function of the 'fall.'
" This I have seen long, having been brought up among the
evangelicals ; but I never knew that their old prophets had stated
it so naively. But see what follows what has followed in Geneva
and Germany what followed with you when the Tartarus and
the doctrine of vicarious satisfaction became incredible, then the
Divinity of Christ, becoming unnecessary, fell to the ground like-
wise and socinianism, and at last deism, followed as a matter of
course. Think this out for yourself. It is historically as well as
logically true.
" Now with me. As I have told you, my reason demands a co-
equal and co-eternal Son, in order that He may be an ideal and
absolute Son at all. Adam Clarke's ' eternal generation being
eternal nonsense,' is a very rash, foolish, ignorant speech ; but
pardonable to a man of Locke's school, and therefore unable to
conceive of an ever-present and unceasing eternity, but referring
all things to the conditions of time unable to conceive that an
eternal generation means an ever-present and unceasing one, by
which the Father saith at every and all moments of time, ' Thou
art my Son, this day have I begotten thee.' It is this Lockism
which infects all our pulpits, which makes even educated men un-
able to understand Maurice.
" But my heart, Cooper, demands the Trinity, as much as my
reason. I want to be sure that God cares for us, that God is our
Father, that God has interfered, stooped, sacrificed Himself for us.
I do not merely want to love Christ a Christ, some creation or
emanation of God : s whose will and character, for aught 1 know,
may be different from God's. I want to love and honor the abso-
lute, abysmal God Himself, and none other will satisfy me and in
the doctrine of Christ being co-equal and co-eternal, sent by, sacri-
ficed by, His Father, that he might do His Father's will, 1 find it
and no puzzling texts, like those you (mote, shall rob me of that
rest for my heart, that Christ is the exact counterpart of Him in
whom we live, and move, and have our being. The texts are few,
jonly two after all ; on them I wait for light, as I do on many more ;
meanwhile, I say boldly, if the doctrine be not in the Bible, it
ought to be, for the whole spiritual nature of man cries out for it.
Have you read Maurice's essay on the Trinity in his theological
essays ? addressed to Unitarians ? If not, you must read it.
" About the word Trinity, I feel much as you do. It seems un-
fortunate that the name of God should be one which expresses a
mere numerical abstraction, and not a moral property. It has, I
think, helped to make men forget that God is a Spirit that is, a
moral being, and that moral spiritual, and that morality (in the
absolute) is God, as St. John saith God is love, and he that dwelleth
Letters to Thomas Cooper. 199
in love* dwelleth in God, and God in him words which, were they
not happily in the Bible, would be now called rank and rampant
Pantheism. But, Cooper, I have that faith in Christ's right govern-
ment of the human race, that I have good hope that He is keeping
the word Trinity, only because it has not yet done its work ; when
it has, He will inspire men with some better one.
The following is the last letter which passed between the two
friends :
EVERSLEY, September 23, 1872.
" MY DEAR THOMAS COOPER,
' ; I have been wandering for nearly a fortnight, the only scrap
of holiday I have had for two years, and only found your book and
letter yesterday. But I have read through your ' Plain Pulpit
Talk ' in two evenings, and I am a close and critical reader, and
with delight. That a man of your genius and learning should have
done the thing well does not surprise me. The delight to me is
, the thing which you have done.
" I see the thorough right old morality common to puritans,
old Anglican Churchmen, apostles, and prophets ; that you hold
right to be infinitely right ; and wrong ditto wrong ; that you call a
spade a spade, and talk to men about the real plagues of their own
heart ; as Carlyle says, you ' do not rave against extinct Satans,
while quite unaware of the real man-devouring Satan at your elbow.'
My dear friend, go on and do that, and whether you call yourself
Baptist or Buddhist, I shall welcome you as one who is doing the
work of God, and fighting in the battle of the Lord, who makes
war in righteousness. But more. You are no Buddhist, nor even
an Unitarian
" I happen to be, from reason and science as well as from Scrip-
ture and Catholic tradition (I use a word I don't like, but you who
have read know that there is no better one as yet), I happen to be,
I say, an orthodox theologian, and to value orthodoxy more the
more I think, for its own sake. And it was a solid pleasure to me
to find you orthodox, and to find you deriving your doctrines con-
cerning right and wrong, and the salvation of men, from orthodox
theology. Pp. 128, 131, is a speech of which no sound divine,
either of the Church of England or of the middle age, ought to be
ashamed. . . . But, my dear friend, whatever you do, don't
advocate disestablishing us. We are the most liberal religious body
in these realms. In our pale men can meet who can meet nowhere
else. Would to God you belonged to us, and we had your powers,
as we might have without your altering your creed, with us. But
if we the one remaining root of union we disestablish and become
a sect like the sects, then competition, not Christ will be God, and
we shall bite and devour one another, till atheism and M. Comte
2OO Charles Kings ley.
are the rulers of modern thought. I am not mad, but speak the
words of truth and soberness; and remember (I am sure you will,
though orators at public meetings would not) that my plea is quite
disinterested. If the Church of England were disestablished and
disendowed to-morrow, vested interests would be respected, and I
and others living on small incomes till our deaths. I assure you
that I have no family livings, or an intention of putting my sons
into them. My eldest son a splendid young fellow is roughing,
it successfully and honorably as an engineer anywhere between
Denver, U. S., and the city of Mexico. My next and only other
son may possibly go to join him. I can give no more solid proof
that, while Radical cockneys howl at me as an aristocrat and a
renegade, I am none ; but a believer in the persons of my own
children, that a man's a man for a' that."
CHAPTER XIII.
1854.
AGED 35.
Torquay Seaside Studies Lectures in Edinburgh Deutsche Theologic Letter
from Baron Bunsen Crimean War Settles in North Devon Writes
" Wonders of the Shore " and " Westward Ho."
" TORBAY is a place which should be as much endeared to the
naturalist as to the patriot and to the artist. We cannot gaze on
its blue ring of water and the great limestone bluffs which bound it
to the north and south without a glow passing through our hearts,
as we remember the terrible and glorious pageant which passed by
it in the bright days of July, 1588, when the Spanish Armada
ventured slowly past Berry Head, with Elizabeth's gallant pack of
Devon captains (for the London fleet had not yet joined), following
past in its wake, and dashing into the midst of the vast line, undis-
mayed by size and numbers, while their kin and friends stood
watching and praying on the cliffs, spectators of Britain's Salamis.
The white line of houses, too, on the other side of the bay, is
Brixham, famed as the landing-place of William of Orange ; and
the stone on the pier-head, which marks his first footprints on
British ground, is sacred in the eyes of all true English Whigs ; and
close by stands the castle of the settler of Newfoundland, Sir
Humphrey Gilbert, Raleigh's half-brother, most learned of all
Elizabeth's admirals in life, most pious and heroic in death. And
as for scenery, though it can boast of neither mountain-peak nor
dark fiord, and would seem tame enough in the eyes of a Western
Scot or Irishman, yet Torbay has a soft beauty of its own, in the
rounded hills which slope into the sea, spotted with parks full of
stately timber trees, with squares of emerald grass and rich red
fallow fields, each parted from the other by the long line of tall
elms, just flushing green in the Spring hedges, which run down to
the very water's edge, their boughs tin warped by any blast ; and
here and there apple orchards, just bursting into flower in the
Spring sunshine, and narrow strips of water meadow, where the
202 Charles Kingsley.
red cattle are already lounging knee-deep in richest grass, within
ten yards of the rocky, pebble beach, which six hours hence will
be nurling. columns of rosy foam high into the sunlight, and
sprinkling passengers, and cattle, and trim gardens, which hardly
know what frost and snow may be, but see the flowers of Autumn
meet the flowers of Spring, and the old year linger smilingly to
twine a garland for the new." *
In these words Mr. Kingsley describes Torquay, where he
passed the winter and spring in 1854, during a leave of absence
granted him by the Bishop on account of his wife's health, which
had suffered severely from the damp rectory at Eversley.
At this time, and for some years to come, the clergy of all
parties in the Church stood aloof from him as a suspected person.
The attacks of the religious press, perhaps happily for him, had so
alarmed the clergy of Torquay, High Church and Evangelical,
that all pulpit doors were closed against the author of " Alton
Locke," " Yeast," and " Hypatia," and he spent quiet peaceful
Sundays with his wife and children for the first time for many years.
Once only he was asked to preach in the parish church, and once
at the chapel of St. John, in a Lenten week-day service, when the
congregation, a High Church one, were surprised at his reverent
and orthodox views on the Holy Eucharist. It was a resting time,
and the temporary cessation from sermon writing and parish work
was very grateful to him, " a combination of circumstances having,
during the last year," he wrote to a friend, " so utterly exhausted
me, physically and intellectually, that I must lie very quiet for a
time, and I look forward with some dread even to the research
necessary to make my Edinburgh lectures what they ought to be."
Once settled at Livermead, the father and children spent happy
hours on the shore, bringing home treasures every afternoon from
the rocks and sands, and from occasional dredging expeditions in
Tor Bay, to be classified and arranged in the vivarium, and to
amuse the invalid. A daily journal of natural history was kept,
and hampers of sea beasts, live shells, and growing seaweed sent
off to Mr. H. P. Gosse, then living in I^ondon.
This sea-side life led to a voluminous correspondence, illustrated
by his own beautiful sketches, the contents of which were summed
* The " Wonders of the Shore," p. 15.
New Treasures. 203
up in an article in the " North British Review " on " The Won-
ders of the Shore." This article, afterwards developed into
". Glaucus," contained not only sketches of natural history, but
some of his deepest thoughts on theology as connected with the
Transmutation Theory and " The Vestiges of Creation."
At this time, while treading in the footsteps of Colonel George
Montagu, whose lynx eyes had espied them nearly in the same
spot fifty years before, he found washed ashore, in a cave neai
Goodrington, after a succession of south-easterly gales, a number of
Montagu's Chirodota (Synapta digitata] which had not been seen
in the interval. Of these he made many drawings, while, with
delight, he studied their strange contortions ; and he writes :
TO H. P. GOSSE. ESQ.
LIVERMEAD, January 3, 1854.
" I jot down what I see of my pink chirodotas, (?) in case yours
die. They are quite distinct from scolanthus ; their power is one
of ^//traction, not of retraction : have no retractile longitudinally-
lined proboscis, and the tentacula from the mouth are twelve in
number, not fourteen, and are compound, not simple. Their form
is this : carrying a boss or thumb at the back of the quadri-palmate
horns, the smooth palm turned towards the mouth. These arms
are continually curving inward to an invisible mouth, generally in
alternate pairs, thus :
" You will see by my rough sketch what I mean. I can discern
no solid matter passing into the mouth from their strokes. They
are never spread out in a ring as in Johnstone's figure.
" One has parted with his tail, in the form of a globe of half inch
diameter, from which hang many white filaments, two inches long.
Another (perhaps the same) has two similar filaments protruding
from his tail, which under a quarter inch power, are full of white
globular granules in a glairy mucus. I can see no more. All these
filaments are knotted. The red spots are continued up the back
of the arms to the thumb. The body is covered with minute papil-
lae (?) and irregular transverse wrinkles, along the salient ridges of
which the red spots generally run. The red spots become more
irregular toward the head, and delicate longitudinal pale lines ap-
pear between them.
" I have just been watching the dismemberment of a specimen.
It first threw off, without my seeing, a piece about an inch long,
with the white filaments protruding at each end ; then recom-
menced by a constriction an inch from the end ; the part beyond
the constriction rapidly swelled and contracted to half inch, and
began a series of violent rotations from right to left, till it had
204 Charles Kingsley.
turned itself more than half round on the longitudinal (fig. 2) axis.
This circular wrenching continued principally in the part about to
separate (which was much more lively than the body- of the animal)
till the part nearest it swelled and became transparent, disclosing
four muscular (?) bands, as in fig. 3. A second constriction and
rotations then took place, and I witnessed the separation, as in fig.
4, but no filaments escaped. The first parted bit remains very
lively. The parent animal was feeding busily with all its hands the
whole time.
"The animal has during the night broken itself into six pieces,
the filaments protruding at the point of separation or anterior end
in each. The process has hurt the water, making it milky ; of the
Holothtiriae, the brown have contracted both tentacula and suck-
ers, the white only the suckers, and, taking in a reef in their tenta-
cula, have inflated their heads with water, the mouth pouting in the
centre, like an auricula.
" N.K. I have seen Cyprea Europaea during the last few days
suspend itself from the under-side of low-tide rocks by a glutinous
thread, an inch and more in length ; and when in captivity float
on the surface by means of a similar thread attached to a glutinous
bubble. Johnstone does not mention this.
" All the specimens of chirodota have since gone the same way,
and become dissolving views, plus an evil and sour smell."
In the well-stocked vivarium at home he could study the ways
of the lovely little Eclis papillosa, the bright lemon-colored Doris,
and the Cucumaria Hyndmanii, with their wondrous gills and
feathers to common eyes mere sea-slugs, and varieties of Ser-
pulas, with their fairy fringes only visible at happy moments to
those who have the patience to watch and wait for the sight ; while
the more minute forms of the exquisite Campctnularia Syringa and
Volubilis, and the Sertularii, and that " pale pink flower of stone,"
the Caryophyllia Sniithii, with numberless others, were examined
under the microscope. Before leaving Torquay he made a rough
list of about sixty species of Mollusks, Annelids, Crustacea, and
Polypes found on the shore, nearly all new to him, and revealing a
new world of wonders to his wife and children.
To this period, his distinguished friend Professor Max Miiller,
who came to see him at Livermead, refers when he speaks of him
"on the Devonshire coast watching the beauty and wisdom of
Nature, reading her solemn lessons, and chuckling, too, over her
inimitable fun." The "inimitable fun" was enjoyed in watching
the movements and manners of the family of the Crustacea, espe-
Lecturing in Edinburgh. 205
cially the soldier crab, of which he had always several specimens
in the vivarium, which were an inexhaustible source of merriment
to him, and which yet led him at the same moment to some of the
deep, strange speculations hinted at so reverently in the pages of
" Glaucus."
But these pursuits, however enchanting, did not engross him to
the forgetfulness of the great social questions of the day, and
early in the year we find him writing to Sir Arthur Helps, about
Sanitary matters, and urging the clergy to turn their minds to the
subject.
In February he went to Edinburgh to deliver four lectures on
the "Schools of Alexandria," at the Philosophical Institute. It
was his first visit to Scotland, and he writes to his wife :
WARRISTON, Wednesday.
"The lecture went off well. I was dreadfully nervous, and
actually cried with fear up in my own room beforehand ; but after
praying I recovered myself, and got through it very well, being
much cheered and clapped All the notabilities came,
and were introduced to me ; and I had some pleasant talk with
Sir James Maxwell. Mr. Erskine, of Linlathen, is a charming old
man.
" My second lecture went off better than the first, in spite of the
delicate points on which it touched. Nothing can exceed the cor-
diality of people."
WARRISTON, February 26.
" It is at last over, and I start for England to-morrow. The last
lecture was more crowded than ever Altogether it
has been (if you had but been with me, and alas ! that poisons
everything) one of the most pleasant and successful episodes in
my life. I have not met with a single disagreeable have been
heaped with kindness. I have got my say said without giving
offence, and have made friends which I hope will last for life. I
have seen the very best society in Scotland, and I cannot be thank-
ful enough to God for having sent me here, and carried me through.
To-night I dine with Sir * * * * * *, a perfect fine gentleman of
the old school, who was twenty-five years in parliament, and ap-
proves highly of 'Alton Locke' and 'Yeast;' as also does his
wife, who told me I had a glorious career before me, and bade
God speed me in it." ....
Returning from Scotland he stopped in London to see how Mr.
206 Charles Kings ley.
Maurice's affairs were going on, on his way to Eversley, where he
had to remain during a change of curates.
" I have just seen Archdeacon Hare, who is looking better ; but
this business of Maurice's has fretted him horribly. L * * is work-
ing, tooth and nail, for Maurice in Lincoln's-inn ; and the working
men in London, including many of the old Chartists of 1848, are
going to present a grand address to Maurice in St. Martin's Hall,
at which, I believe, I am to be a chairman. Kiss the babes for
me, and tell them I long to be with them on Tor sands.
" Did I ever tell you of my delightful chat with Bunsen ? I have
promised him to write a couple of pages preface to Miss Winkworth's
translation of the ' Deutsche Theologie.' Oh ! how you will revel
in that book !...."
The anxieties and expenses of illness were very heavy just now,
but he always met them by a brave heart and by cheering words,
to one who lamented the labor they entailed on him.
EVERSLEY, February.
" . . . . And these very money difficulties
Has it not been fulfilled in them, ' As thy day so shall thy strength
be ? ' Have we ever been in any debt by our own sin ? Have
we ever really wanted anything we needed ? Have we not had
friends, credit, windfalls in all things, with the temptation, a way
to escape? Have they not been God's sending? God's way of
preventing the cup of bliss being over sweet (and I thank him
heartily it has not been) ; and, consider, have they not been blessed
lessons ? But do not think that I am content to endure them any
more than the race horse, because he loves running, is content to
stop in the middle of the course. To pay them, I have thought,
I have written, I have won for us a name which, please God,
may last among the names of English writers. Would you give
up the books I have written that we might never have been in
difficulties? So out of evil God brings good; or rather, out of(
necessity He brings strength and, believe me, the highest spirit- /
ual training is contained in the most paltry physical accidents;/
and the meanest actual want, may be the means of calling into
actual life the possible but sleeping embryo of the very noblest
faculties. This is a great mystery ; but we are animals, in time
and space ; and by time and space and our animal natures, are we
educated. Therefore let us be only patient, patient ; and let God
our Father teach His own lesson, His own way. Let us try to
learn it well, and learn it quickly ; but do not let us fancy that He
will ring the school-bell, and send us to play before our lesson is
learnt.
Bunsen and the Deutsche Thcologie. 207
"Therefore 'rejoice in your youth, ere the days come when
thou shalt say, I have no pleasure in them.' But make to yourself
no ghosts. And remember he who says, ' I will be happy some
day,' never will be happy at all. If we cannot be happy now
with ten times the blessings which nine-tenths of God's cieatures
have, we shall never be happy though we lived a thousand years.
Let us lay this solemnly to heart, and take no thought for the
morrow."
February 27.
" The Guards march to-morrow ! How it makes one's blood
boil ! We send 10,000 picked men to Malta, en route for Con-
stantinople, and the French 60,000."
EVERSLEY, ASH WEDNESDAY, March, 1854.
" . . . . The ' Deutsche Theologie ' is come from Bunsen :
i.e., both Miss Wink\vorth's MSS. and Mrs. Malcolm's printed
translation. Pray order Mrs. Malcolm's ' Old German Theology,'
with a preface by Martin Luther. You never read so noble a
book. The Reform Bill is shelved : excellent as it is, it does not
much matter at this minute. Two days after our deputation, that
bane of London, the Sewers Commission, awoke in the morning,
and behold they were all dead men ! Lord Palmerston, having
abolished them by one sentence the night before, and I have not
heard that any one is gone into mourning. The Board of Health
are now triumphant and omnipotent. God grant that they may
use their victory well, and not spoil it by pedantry and idealism !
Baines (capital man that he is !) brings in three clauses, which will
reform the whole poor-law, and strike at the root of cottage-de-
struction. The squires intend to show fight."
In reference to the evidence he gave on sanitary matters as one
of a deputation to Lord Palmerston, he says :
" I had an opportunity of telling Lord Palmerston a great deal
which 1 trust may save many lives. Remember, it is now a
question of blood-guiltiness that is all. But I am not going to
London any more about sanitary matters. The utter inability
of the Health of Towns Act to cleanse this or any other neigh-
boring parish made me consider what I have done as a parochial
duty "
The "Deutsche Theologie" was translated by Miss Susanna
Winkworth at Chevalier Bunsen's request, and Mr. Kingsley was
asked to write a preface. He had objections, and consulted Mr.
Maurice, who answered him thus :
208 Charles Kingsley.
" I think your objections have great force, but I do not see that
they need prevent you from stating your conviction that, as a
practical work on Ethics, the book fully deserves to be translated and
read ; and that the discovery of the only correct MSS. is a reason
for introducing it to the public at this time. The religious people
have no right to be scandalized by any thing that Luther and
Spenser sanctioned. You can say that you, being more severely
orthodox than they were, cannot swallow all the sentences in it,
esteeming them to be too mystical and not quite scriptural, but
that nevertheless your judgment in the main jumps with the great
Evangelical authorities, and that you conceive they were anxious
to enlist such a witness against the self-seeking tendencies of the
religion of their time, as you and the translator are to claim him
for the same purpose in this day "
Chevalier Bunsen writes in the same strain :
" MY DEAR FRIEND,
" My practical proposal Coincides with that of Maurice. Keep
to the ethic point, and refer as to the metaphysical terminology to
Luther. I may, if required, say a word in the letter to Miss VV.
about this point, although it would be much better for the book and
its readers if you, a clergymen of the Church of England, did it
instead. Now, having said so much, let me add a word on the
great subject itself. When I read your Preface to Hypatia (which
you know I think does not justice to the book), I thought I per-
ceived you had accepted the council-creeds more historically than
penetrated them philosophically. Otherwise you could not have
praised so much what I must believe to be only a great logical,
formal ingenuity, but compared with St. John and the apostolic
fathers down to Tertullian and Origen, a perfect and thorough
misunderstanding, like that of an anatomist taking the corpse for
the living body. The more I study and think, the stronger that
conviction grows, for the inward witness goes with the outward.
You will see that my whole new volume has its centre in pointing
to facts which show that I cannot say less than what I do say ;
that our Confessions of Faith, if taken as making law, must be said
frankly to be confessions of the blunders of those who drew them
up : like the failure in an equation. The X is not made out, and
this is confessed.
"I have been at this point from 1817, when the Theologia Ger-
manica came into my hands at Rome. My Aphorisms* if you
read them with reference to this, will tell you more.
"The difference of God and Man, of the Logos, Christ and the
individual Christian, is that of the Infinite and the Finite, neither
Hippolytus," vol. ii., first edition (1852).
Before the House of Commons. 209
more nor less. This is nothing to those for whom nothing exists
which is not in space and time ; but much, and enough for all who
know that the finite world and man has no other key to its un-
derstanding except the infinite. No Werden without the Sein ~6
OVTW^ ov = 6 ovrug &v.
"Now the Theologia Germanica>says nothing more in the most
startling passages. But certainly we have learnt to say it better,
and you, the English, ought to help us to say it still better. 'For
this reason I have tortured my brains and your language, in laying
before you the Aphorisms.
" See whether we meet on this divine road. Excuse the hurried
and imperfect writing. I hope Mrs. Kingsley is continuing better.
A great anxious time of judgment is now hanging over Germany.
Deus providebit ! I correct two proof-sheets every day.
" Ever yours faithfully,
" BUNSEN."
These letters decided him, and he wrote to Miss Winkworth :
TORQUAY, March 25, 1854.
" I am conquered. I have written the preface this day, and
will send the MSS. on Monday. Pray translate that Unterschied
der Personen (if you can) ' the distinction of the persons : ' and
then we shall be at least, on that point, a labri du diablc. I
believe Maurice is right. Pray show the preface to him and Bun-
sen, and whomsoever you like, that we may get the help of any
suggested improvement."
After the book had been out some time he writes again to Miss
Winkworth :
" You will be glad to hear, I am sure, that your Theologia is
being valued by every one to whom I have shown it. Sure I am
that the book will do very great and lasting good."
In the spring he went up to give evidence on two subjects which
he had much at heart before the House of Commons on Sanitary
Matters and on the insufficient pay of Parish Medical Officers.
His experience of eleven years in a parish had convinced him that
the pay of the parish doctor was much too low ; and he willingly
gave evidence on the subject, dwelling particularly on the fact that
under their present salaries no medical men could afford, or be
expected, to give two of the most important but most expensive
medicines quinine and cod-liver oil.
14
2io Charles Kingsley.
TO HIS WIFE.
CHELSEA RECTORY, May, 1854.
" I am glad to have been up here. I have seen
very much life, and learnt very much. It was just what I wanted
after that Devon retirement. 1 went to meet Gosse at the Lin-
nasan, and met Darwin (the Voyage of the Beagle). Such a noble
face" as the average of the Linnseans, I must say, had. * * * *
is a quiet, meek man, and was very anxious to know whether I and
Maurice really 'denied the Atonement,' on which point, I think, I
satisfied him.
" We had a regular microscopic evening last night. George
with his microscope, and Mr. H with his both magnificent.
The things they showed me were enough to strike one dumb. I
am enjoying the thought of bringing Gosse' s book down to you.
He has a whole chapter at the end on the things I sent him most
kindly written.
" Tell the dear children I long to see them, and will be home
Wednesday, without fail "
In the spring, as his wife was not allowed to return to the
colder climate of North Hants, he settled with his family at
Bideford, where his novel of " Westward Ho ! " was begun,
whose opening pages describe his surroundings for the next twelve
months.
While there, a. lady consulted him about joining a sisterhood,
and he replies :
BIDEFORD, July 24, 1854.
" MADAM,
" Though I make a rule of never answering any letter from a
lady whom I have not the honor of knowing, yet I dare not refuse
to answer yours. First, because you, as it were, challenge me on
the ground of my books : and next, because you tell me that if I
cannot satisfy you, you will do that, to prevent which, above all
things, my books are written, namely, flee from the world, instead
of staying in it and trying to mend it.
" Be sure that I can sympathize with you most deeply in your
dissatisfaction with all things, as they are. That feeling grows on
me, as I trust in God (strange to say) it may grow on you, day by
day. I, too, have had my dreams of New Societies, brotherhoods,
and so forth, which were to regenerate the world. I, too, have had
my admirations for Old Societies and brotherhoods like those of
Loyola and Wesley, which intended to do the same thing. But I
have discovered, Madam, that we can never really see how much
evil there is around us, till we see how much good there is around
Brotherhoods and Societies. 211
us, just as it is light which makes us, by contrast, most aware of
darkness. And 1 have discovered also, that the world is already
regenerated by the Lord Jesus Christ, and that all efforts of our
own to regenerate it are denials of Him and of the perfect regen-
eration which He accomplished when He sat down on the right
hand of God, having all power given to him in heaven and in
earth, that He might rule the earth in righteousness for ever. And I
have discovered also, that all societies and brotherhoods which
may form, and which ever have been formed, are denials of the
One Catholic Church of faithful and righteous men (whether Pro-
testant or Roman Catholic, matters not to me) which He has estab-
lished on earth, and said that hell shall not prevail against it. And
when I look back upon history, as I have done pretty carefully, I find
that all such attempts have been total failures, just because, with
the purest and best intentions, they were doing this, and thereby
interfering with the Lord Jesus Christ's way of governing the
world, and trying to introduce some new nostrum and panacea of
their own, narrow and paltry, compared with His great ways in the
deep.
" Therefore, though Fox (to take your own example) was a most
holy man, Quakerism in general, as a means of regenerating the
world, has been a disastrous failure. And so (I speak from years
of intimate experience) has good John Wesley's Methodist attempt.
Both were trying to lay a new foundation for human society, and
forgetting that one which was already laid, which is Christ, who
surely has not been managing the earth altogether wrongly, Madam,
for 1800 years, or even before that ?
" So, again, with that truly holy and angelic man, St. Vincent de
Paul has he succeeded ? What has become of education, and of the
poor, in the very land where he labored ? God forbid that we Eng-
lish should be in such a state, bad as we are ! The moment the per-
sonal influence of his virtue was withdrawn, down tumbled all that
he had done. He (may God bless him all the same) had no pana-
cea for the world's ills. He was not a husband or a father how
could he teach men to be good husbands and fathers ? You point
to what he and his did. 1 know what they did in South America,
and beautiful it was : but, alas ! I know, too, that they could give
no life to their converts ; they could not regenerate society among
the savages of Paraguay ; and the moment the Jesuit's gentle des-
potism was withdrawn, down fell the reductions again into savagery,
having lost even the one savage virtue of courage. The Jesuits were
shut out, by their vows, from political and family life. How could
they teach their pupils the virtues which belong to those states ?
But all Europe knows what the Jesuits did in a country where they
had every chance ; where for a century they were the real rulers,
in court and camp, as well as in schools and cloisters, I mean ii;
France. They tried their very best (and tried, 1 am bound to be-
212 Charles Kings ley.
lieve, earnestly and with good intent) to regenerate France. And
they caused the Revolution. Madam, the horrors of 1 793 were the
natural fruit of the teaching of the very men who not only would
have died sooner than bring about these horrors, but died too many
of them, alas ! by them. And how was this ? By trying to set up
a system of society and morals of their own, they, without knowing
it, uprooted in the P'rench every element of faith in, and reverence
for, the daily duties and relations of human life, without knowing
it without meaning it. They would call me a slanderer if they
saw my words, and would honestly think me so. May God keep
you from the same snare, of fancying, as all ' Orders,' Societies,
and Sects do, that they invent a better system of society than the
old one, wherein God created man in His own image, viz., of father
and son, husband and wife, brother and sister, master and servant,
king and subject. Madam, these are more divine and godlike
words than all the brotherhoods, ' Societies of Friends,' ' Associa-
tions of the Sacred Heart,' or whatsoever bonds good and loving
men and women have from time to time invented to keep them-
selves in that sacred unity from which they felt they were falling.
I can well believe that you feel it difficult to keep in it now. God
knows that I do : but never will I (and I trust you never will)
yield to that temptation which the Devil put before our Lord,
' Cast thyself down from hence, for it is written He shall give His
angels charge over Thee, c.' Madam, whenever we leave the
station where God has placed us, be it for never so seemingly self-
sacrificing and chivalrous and saintly an end, we are tempting the
Lord our God, we are yielding most utterly to that very self-will
which we are pretending to abjure. As long as you have a parent,
a sister, a servant, to whom you can do good in those simple every-
day relations and duties of life, which are most divine, because they
are most human, so long will the entering a 'cloister be tempting
the Lord your God. And so long, Madam, will it be the doing all
in your power to counteract every word which I have ever written.
My object has been and is, and I trust in God ever will be, to
make people see that they need not, as St. Paul says, go up into
heaven, or go down to the deep, to find Christ, because He, the
Word whom we preach, is very near them, in their hearts and on
their lips, if they would but believe it ; and ready, not to set them
afloat on new untried oceans of schemes and projects, but ready
to inspire them to do their duty humbly and simply where He has
put them and, believe me, Madam, the only way to regenerate
the world is to do the duty which lies nearest us, and not to hunt
after grand, far-fetched ones for ourselves. If each drop of rain
chose where it should fall, God's showers would not fall, as they do
now, on the evil and on the good alike. I know 1 know from
the experience of my own heart how galling this doctrine is how,
like Naaman, one goes away in a rage, because the Prophet has
u
The Crimean War. 213
not bid us do some great thing, but only to go and wash in the
nearest brook, and be clean. But, Madam, be sure that he who is
not faithful in a little will never be fit to be ruler over much. He
who cannot rule his own household will never (as St. Paul says)
rule the Church of God ; and he who cannot keep his temper, or
be self-sacrificing, cheerful, tender, attentive at home, will never be
of any real and permanent use to God's poor abroad.
" Wherefore, Madam, if, as you say, you feel what St. Francis de
Sales calls ' a dryness of soul ' about good works and charity, con-
sider well within yourself," whether the simple reason, and (no
shame on you !) be not only because God does not wish you just
yet to labor among the poor ; because He has not yet finished
educating you for that good work, and therefore will not let you
handle tools before you know how to use them.
" Begin with small things, Madam you cannot enter the pres-
ence of another human being without finding there more to do than
you or I, or any soul, will ever learn to do perfectly before we die.
Let us be content to do little, if God sets us at little tasks. / It is
but pride and self-will which says, ' Give me something huge to
fight, and I should enjoy that but why make me sweep the .
dust ? ' Finally, Madam, be sure of one thing, that the Lord Jesus
Christ is King of this earth, and all therein ; and that if you will
do faithfully what He has set you to already, and thereby using the
order of a Deaconess well, gain to yourself a good foundation in
your soul's training, He will give you more to do in His good time,
and of His good kind.
" If you are inclined to answer this letter, let me ask you not to
answer it for at Itast thrre months to come. It may be good for
you to have read it over a second time.
" I am, Madam,
" Your obedient servant,
" C. KlNGSLEY/'
TO T. HUGHES, ESQ.
BIDEFORD, December 18, 1854.
" . . . . As to the War, I am getting more of a Govern-
ment man every day. I don't see how they could have done better
in any matter, because I don't see but that /should have done a
thousand times worse in their place, and that is the only fair
standard.
" As for a ballad oh ! my dear lad, there is no use fiddling
while Rome is burning. I have nothing to sing about those glorious
fellows, except ' God save the Queen and them.' I tell you the
whole thing stuns me, so I cannot sit down to make fiddle rhyme
with diddle about it or blundered vith hundred, like Alfred Tenny-
son. He is no Tyrtanis, though he has a glimpse of what Tyrtanis
214 Charles Kingsley.
ought to be. But I have not even that ; and am going rabbit-
shooting to-morrow instead. But every man has his calling, and
my novel is mine, because I am fit for nothing better. The book
(' Westward Ho ! ') will be out the middle or end of January, if the
printers choose. It is a sanguinary book, but perhaps containing
doctrine profitable for these times. My only pain is that I have
been forced to sketch poor Paddy as a very worthless fellow then,
while just now he is turning out a hero.
" I have made the deliberate amende honorable in a note.
" I suppose " (referring to some criticism of Mr. H.'s on ' West-
ward Ho!') "you are right as to Amyas and his mother ; I will
see to it. The letter in Purchas is to me unknown, but your con-
ception agrees with a picture my father says he has seen of Cap-
tain John (he thinks at Lord Anglesey's, at Beaudesert), as a prim,
hard, terrier-faced little fellow with a sharp chin, and a dogged
Puritan eye. So perhaps I am wrong : but I don't think that very
important, for there must have been sea-dogs of my stamp in plenty
too.
" Tummas ! Have you read the story of Abou Zennab, his horse,
in Stanley's 'Sinai,' p. 67? What a myth! What a poem old
Wordsworth would have writ thereon ! If I didn't cry like a baby
over it. What a brick of a horse he must have been, and what a
brick of an old head-splitter Abou Zennab must have been, to have
his commandments keeped unto this day concerning of his horse ;
and no one to know who he was, nor when, nor how, nor nothing.
I wonder if anybody '11 keep our commandments after we be gone,
much less say, ' Eat, eat, oh horse of Abou Kingsley ! ' "
CHAPTER XIV.
1855-
AGED 36.
Bideford Crimean War Death of his friend Charles Blachford Mansfield
" Westward Ho " Letters from Mr. Henry Drummond and Rajah Brooke
Drawing Class for Mechanics at Bideford Leaves Devonshire Lectures
to Ladies in London Correspondence Winter at Farley Court The
" Heroes " Written.
THE Crimean winter, bitter alike to the brave men before Sebas-
topol and to the hearts of all Englishmen and women at home,
weighed heavily on Charles Kingsley, to whom the War was like a
dreadful nightmare, which haunted him day and night. " I can
think of nothing but the war," he said, and on the receipt of a
letter from a friend which told him of the numbers of tracts sent out
to the soldiers which they never read and looked upon as so much
waste paper, and urging him to write something which would touch
them, he sat down, wrote off, and despatched the same day to
London a tract which is probably known to few in England
" Brave Words to Brave Soldiers." Several thousand copies were
sent out and distributed in the Crimea, and the stirring words
touched many a noble soul. Jt was published anonymously to
avoid the prejudice which was attached to the name of its author
in all sections of the religious world and press at that period.
To his friend Mr. Tom Hughes he writes at this moment :
" You may have fancied me a bit of a renegade and a hanger-
back of late.
" ' Still in our ashes live their wonted fires."
And if I have held back from the Socialist Movement, it has been
because I have seen that the world was not going to be set right in
any such rose-pink way, excellent as it is, and that there are heavy
arrears of destruction to be made up, before construction can even
begin ; and I wanted to see what those arrears were. And 1 do
see a little. At least I see that the old phoenix must burn, before
the new one can rise out of its ashes.
216 Charles Kings ley.
" Next, as to our army. I quite agree with you about that if
it existed to agree about. But the remnant that comes home, like
gold tried in the fire, may be the seed of such an army as the world
never saw. Perhaps we may help it to germinate. But please
don't compare the dear fellows to Cromwell's Ironsides. There is
a great deal of ' personal ' religion in the army, no doubt : and
personal religion may help men to endure, and complete the bull-
dog form of courage: but the soldier wants more. He wants a
faith that he is fighting on God's side ; he wants military and cor-
porate and national religion, and that is what I fear he has yet to
get, and what I tried to give in my tract. That is what Cromwell's
Ironsides had, and by it they conquered. This is what the Eliza-
bethans had up to the Armada, and by it they conquered."
To Miss Marsh he writes on the death of Captain Hedley Vicars,
93rd Regiment, who was shot in a sortie, March 23, 1855 :
NORTH DOWN HOUSE, BIDEFORD, May 9, 1855.
" . . . . These things are most bitter, and the on-ly comfort
which I can see in them is, that they are bringing us all face to face
with the realities of human life, as it has been in all ages, and giving
us sterner and yet more loving, more human, and more divine
thoughts about ourselves, and our business here, and the fate of those
who are gone, and awakening us out of the luxurious, frivolous, un-
real dream (full nevertheless of harsh judgments, and dealings forth
of damnation), in which we have been living so long to trust in a
Living Father who is really and practically governing this world
and all worlds, and who willeth that none should perish and
therefore has not forgotten, or suddenly begun to hate or torment,
one single poor soul which is past out of this life into some other,
on that accursed Crimean soil. All are in our Father's hands ; and
as Uavid says, Though they go down into hell, He is there. Oh ! >
blessed thought more blessed to me at this moment (who think
more of the many than of the few) than the other thought, that i
though they ascend into heaven with your poor lost hero, He is there \
also "
During the winter, on the 25th of February, a sorrow came, and
God took from him, for a time, one who had been his beloved
friend for seventeen years, the ever welcomed guest in his home
since his marriage, and dear to his wife and children as to himself.
His own words, partly from a slight prefatory sketch,* partly
* " Brazil, Buenos Ayres, and Paraguay," by Charles B. Mansfield, Esq.,
with a Sketch of the Author's Life, by Rev. Charles Kingsley. (Macmillan,
1856.)
Charles Mansfield. 217
from some notes found among his private papers, will best describe
Charles Blachford Mansfield ; and to those who love to dwell on
fair pictures of God's works, this picture of a human being, moulded
into His image, may be acceptable and inspiring. Any record of
Charles Kingsley would be incomplete unless it included a glimpse
of one who was so entwined with his Cambridge days, with the
rectory life at Eversley, with the winter in Devonshire, and at times
when the presence of any other third person would have been an
interruption.
" I knew Charles Mansfield first when he was at Clare Hall in
1838-9, sometime in my freshman's winter. He was born in the
year 1819, at a Hampshire parsonage, and in due time went to
school at Winchester, in the old days of that iron rule among mas-
ters, and that brutal tyranny among the boys themselves, which are
now fast disappearing before the example of influence of the great
Arnold. Crushed at the outset, he gave little evidence of talent
beyond his extraordinary fondness for mechanical science. But
the regime of Winchester told on his mind in after life for good and
for evil ; first, by arousing in him a stern horror of injustice (and in
that alone he was stern), which showed itself when he rose to the
higher forms, by making him the loving friend and protector of all
the lesser boys ; and next, by arousing in him a doubt of all prece-
dents, a chafing against all constituted authority, of which he was
not cured till after long and sad experience. What first drew me
to him was the combination of body and mind. He was so won-
derfully graceful, active, and daring. He was more like an ante-
lope than a man. He had a gymnastic pole in his room on which
he used to do strange feats. There was a seal-skin, too, hanging
in his room, a mottled two-year-old skin, about five feet long, of a
seal which was shot by him down on the Cornish coast. The seal
came up to the boat side and stared at him, and he knocked
it over. That thing haunted him much in after life. He deplored
it as all but a sin, after he had adopted th *. notion that it was
wrong to take away animal life, for which he used to scold me in
his sweet charitable way, for my fishing and entomologizing. He
has often told me that the ghost of the seal appeared to him in his
dreams, and stood by his bed, bleeding, and making him wretched.
"He was a good shot, and captain of his boat at Cambridge, I
think. His powers of leaping standing, exceeded almost any
man's I ever saw. I believe him to have been physically incapable
of fear. And since his opinions changed, and during the last war,
he has said to me that he wished he was at Sebastopol, handling a
rifle, 1 have been tempted to wish that he had been a soldier,
so splendid a one do 1 think he would have made.
218 Charles Kings ley.
" The next thing which drew me to him was his intellect, not
merely that he talked of the highest things, but he did it in such a
wonderful way. He cared for nothing but truth. He would argue
by the hour, but never for arguing sake. None can forget the
brilliance of his conversation, the eloquence with which he could
assert, the fancy with which he could illustrate, the earnestness
with which he could enforce, the sweetness with which he could
differ, the generosity with which he could yield. Perhaps the
secret of that fascination, which even at Cambridge, and still
more in after life, he quite unconsciously exercised over all who
really knew him (and often, too, over those who but saw him for a
passing minute, or heard him in a passing sentence, yet went away
saying that they had never met his like), was that virtue of earnest-
ness. When I first met him at Cambridge he was very full of
Combe's works, and of 'Voiney's Ruins of Empires.' He was
what would be called a materialist, and used to argue stoutly on it
with me, who chose to be something of a dualist or gnostic. I
forget my particular form of folly. But I felt all through that his
materialism was more spiritual than other men's spiritualism, be-
cause he had such an intense sense of the truly spiritual ; of right
and wrong. He was just waiting for the kingdom of God.
When the truth was shown to him, he leapt up and embraced it.
There was the most intense faith in him from the first that Right
was right, and wrong wrong ; that Right must conquer ; that there
was a kingdom of God Eternal in the heavens, an ideal righteous
polity, to which the world ought to be, and some day would be,
conformed. That was his central idea ; I don't say he saw it
clearly from the first ; 1 don't say that he did not lose sight of it at
times, but I know that he saw it, for he was the first human being
that taught it to me. Added to this unconquerable faith in good,
was an unconquerable faith in truth. He first taught me not to
be afraid of truth. 'If a thing is so, you can't be the worse for
knowing it is so,' was his motto, and well he carried it out. This
was connected, it seems to me, with his intense conscientiousness.
Of course that faculty can be diseased, like any other, and men
may conscientiously do wrong. But what corrected it in him
in after life, and prevented it from becoming mere obstinacy
and fanaticism, was his wonderful humility. That grew on him
after his conversion. He had it not at starting. At first he was
charming, but wilful and proud. Afterwards he was just as
charming, but too apt to say to any and to every one, ' Here
am I, send me ! ' But of his conscientiousness I could write
pages. I will not here though, perhaps never such fantastic
forms did it take. All knight-errant honor which I ever heard of,
that man might have, perhaps has, actually outdone. From the
time of his leaving Cambridge he devoted himself to those sciences
which had been all along his darling pursuits. Ornithology, geolo-
Charles Mansfield. 219
gy, mesmerism, even old magic, were his pastimes ; chemistry and
dynamics his real work. He was a great ornithologist from child-
hood ; he knew eggs especially well : one of his plans, because he
did not like shooting the birds, was to observe them on the trees
with a telescope ; and though not ' musical ' in the common sense,
he knew the note of every English bird. I never knew him
wrong. The history of his next ten years is fantastic enough,
were it written, to form material for any romance. Long periods
of voluntary penury, when (though a man of fair worldly fortune)
he would subsist on the scantiest fare a few dates and some
brown bread, or a few lentils at the cost of a few pence a day,
bestowing his savings on the poor ; bitter private sorrows, which
were schooling his heart and temper into a tone more purely an-
gelic than I have ever seen in man ; magnificent projects, worked
out as far as they would go, not wildly and superficially, but on the
most deliberate and accurate grounds of science, then thrown
away in disappointment, for some fresh noble dream ; an intense
interest in the social and political condition of the poor, which
sprang up in him, to his great moral benefit, during the last five
years of his life. Here were the elements of his schooling as
hard a one, both voluntary and involuntary, as ever human soul
went through. In all my life I never heard that man give vent to
a low or mean word, or evince a low or mean sentiment. Though
he had never, I suppose, seen much of the ' grand monde,' he was
the most perfectly, well-bred man at all points I ever saw ; and
exquisite judges have said the same thing. His secret seemed very
simple, if one could attain it ; but he attained it by not trying to
attain it, for it was merely never thinking about himself. He was
always thinking how to please others in the most trivial matters ;
and that, not to make them think well of him (which breeds only
affectation), but just to make them comfortable : and that was
why he left a trail of light wherever he went.
" It was wonderful, utterly wonderful to me in after life, know-
ing all that lay on his heart, to see the way he flashed down over
the glebe at Eversley, with his knapsack at his back, like a shining
star appearing with peace on earth and good-will to men, and
bringing an involuntary smile into the faces of every one who met
him the compelled reflection of his own smile. And his voice
was like the singing of a bird in its wonderful cheerfulness, and
tenderness, and gaiety.
"At last, when he was six and thirty years of age, his victory
in the battle of life seemed complete. His enormous and increas-
ing labor seemed rather to have quickened and steadied than tired
his brain. The clouds which had beset his path had all but cleared,
and left sunshine and hope for the future. His spirit had become
purified, not only into doctrinal orthodoxy, but also into a humble,
generous, and manful piety, such as I cannot hope often to behold
220 Charles Kingsley.
again. He had gathered round him friends, both men and women,
who looked on him with a love such as might be inspired by a
being from a higher world. He was already recognized as one of
the most promising young chemists in England, for whose future
renown no hope could be too high-pitched ; and a patent for a
chemical discovery which he had obtained, seemed, after years of
delay and disappointment, to promise him what he of all men
coveted least, renown and wealth. One day he was at work on
some experiments connected with his patent. By a mistake of
the lad who assisted him, the apparatus got out of order, the
naphtha boiled over, and was already on fire. To save the prem-
ises from the effect of an explosion, Mr. Mansfield caught up the
still in his arms, an attempted to carry it out ; the door was fast ;
he tried to hurl it through the window, but too late. The still
dropped from his hands, half flayed with liquid fire. He scrambled
out, rolled in the snow, and so extinguished the flame. Fearfully
burnt and bruised, he had yet to walk a mile to reach a cab, and
was taken to Middlesex Hospital, where, after nine days of agony,
he died like a Christian man.
"Oh, fairest of souls! Happy are those who knew thee
in this life ! Happier those who will know thee in the life to
come !
C. K."
They are together now ! Two true and perfect knights of God,
perchance on some fresh noble quest !
Little has been recovered of the correspondence of this year,
much of which sprung out of the publication of "Westward Ho ! "
That book was dedicated to Rajah Brooke and Bishop Selwyn, and
produced the following letter from Mr. Henry Drummond, and at
a later period, one from the Rajah himself :
ALBEMARLE STREET, May 13, 1855.
" DEAR SIR,
" I have just seen your noble dedication of ' Westward Ho ! '
to Sir J. Brooke, and have taken the liberty to desire a copy of
the shameful trial to which he has been subjected to be sent you,
as I am sure it will gratify you. I heard from him last week : he
is quite well, and all his work prospering. A remarkable thing is
about to take place in Sarawak. The people finding themselves
dealt with in a manner so superior to that in which they are dealt
with by their own rulers, have considered that the religion of their
present governor must be the true religion, and accordingly are
about to apply en masse to become members of Brooke's religion.
In my opinion the only means which should be used towards
Rajah Brooke and "Westward Ho!" 221
heathen is the manifestation of mercy, justice, and truth. The
poor bishop's trouble will bt-gin after he has got his converts.
"Begging pardon for this intrusion from a stranger,
" I am, Sir,
" With great admiration of your writings,
" Your obedient Servant,
" HENRY DRUMMOND."
RAJAH SIR JAMES BROOKE TO REV. CHARLES KINGSLEY.
DAWLISH, March 24, 1859.
" MY DEAR SIR,
"I have long delayed to thank you in person for a very wel-
come dedication to ' Westward Ho ! ' but business, with many cares,
prevented me.
"I cannot, however, now that I hear of your kind interest in my
cause, and the exertions you are making to advance it, forbear
from assuring you of my sense of your good opinion, and the good
it does me mentally. My life is pretty well at its dregs, and I shall
be glad indeed to pass the few remaining months or years in quiet,
and free from the anxieties which must beset the post I have occu-
pied, but which of late years have been increased tenfold, owing to
the course or rather no course pursued by the Government.
" It is a sadbut'true experience, that everything has succeeded
with the natives, and everything has failed with the English in Bor-
neo. I am anxious, to retire, for Sarawak should not be ruled by
a failing man, and I would not cling to power when unable to dis-
charge its duties.
" In due time I would fain hand over my staff to my successor if
permitted ; but if forced to return to Sarawak, to bear its anxieties
and share its trials, I shall know it is a duty though a trying one, and
shall not begrudge the exertion for the short time I can make it.
" Let me thank you, then, for your kindness, and let me have
the satisfaction of knowing you before I leave this country.
" Whenever I go again to town, I will let you hear from me, in
the hope you will invite me to visit you.
"Believe me, my dear Sir,
" Yours very sincerely,
"J. BROOKE."
Having no parish work at Bideford, except during an outburst
of cholera, when he took a district for house to house visitation,
and occasional duty at Northam, Hartland, and Abbotsham, he
lectured on the Fine Arts, and got up a drawing-class for young
men, of which one of the members, Mr. Plucknett, (now head of
a great firm for the design and manufacture of art furniture and
222 Charles Kingsley.
decoration in Warwick and Leamington,) feelingly speaks in a let-
ter to Mrs. Kingsley :
WARWICK, April, 1876.
" I was a youth in Bideford at the time Mr. Kingsley came to
reside there, when seeing the young men of the town hanging
about wasting their leisure hours in worse than wasting, his heart
yearned to do them good. He at first endeavored to establish a
Government School of Art this, however, failed. He then offered
to teach a class drawing gratuitously. A few of us held a meet-
ing and hired a room in the house of the Poet Postman, Edward
Capern, who, although a married man', much older than the rest of
us, was a most hard-working pupil. 1 look back upon those even-
ings at Bideford as the pleasanlest part of my life, and, with God's
blessing, I attribute my success in life to the valuable instruction 1
received from Mr. Kingsley : his patience, perseverance, and kind-
ness won all our hearts, and not one of his class but would have
given his life for the master. He used, as no doubt you remem-
ber, to bring fresh flowers from his conservatory for us to copy as
we became sufficiently advanced to do so ; and still further on he
gave us lectures on anatomy, illustrating the subject with chalk
drawings on a large black board. His knowledge of geometry,
perspective, and free-hand drawing, was wonderful ; and the rapid
and beautiful manner in which he drew excited both our admiration
and our ambition. I have reason to believe that most of the class
received lasting benefit, and have turned out well. Personally, I
may say, with truth, 1 have cause to bless the name of Mr. Kings-
ley as long as I live ; for I left home with little more than the
knowledge of my business, and the knowledge of drawing learned
in the class. After many years of hard work I am now at the head
of a good business, which I am proud to say is well known for the
production of art furniture, &c. I often thought of writing to Mr.
Kingsley, but diffidence prevented me. The last time I ever saw
him was in front of Lord Elcho's Cottage, at Wimbledon, at the
time the Belgians first came to the camp. I was there represent-
ing my corp from Bath as a marksman, and just as I was about to
speak to Mr. Kingsley, the Prince of Wales came out on the green
and entered into conversation with him, and my opportunity was
lost for ever.
" Though dead, he yet influences for good thousands of hearts
and minds ; and he is now reaping the reward of his noble efforts
while on earth to add to the sum of human happiness, and thus
leave the world better than he found it. I need not speak of the
time when the class ceased, and Mr. Kingsley invited us to your
house, to bid us farewell, and of our tribute of love and respect to
him. ."
Facility in Sketching. 223
This tribute of love was a silver card case, which was very pre-
cious to him, given at the close of a happy evening, when the
class came to supper at North Down House.
The mention of the "black board" will remind many of his
masterly sketches, in public lectures and at his own school, where
he liked always to have a black board, with a piece of chalk, to
illustrate his teachings by figures, which spoke sometimes as elo-
quently as his words. His sense of form was marvellous, and, when
in doors, he was never thoroughly at ease without a pen or pencil
in his hand. In conversation with his children or guests his pencil
was out in a moment to illustrate every subject, whether it was
natural history, geological strata, geography, maps, or the races of
mankind. And even when writing his sermons his mind seemed
to find relief in sketching on the blotting-paper before him, or on
the blank spaces in his sermon-book, characteristic heads, and
types of face, among the different schools of thought, from the
mediaeval monk to the modern fanatic. At Bristol, when he was
President of the Educational Section at the Social Science Con-
gress, as he sat listening to the various speakers, pen in hand, for
the ostensible purpose of making notes, he covered the paper with
sketches suggested by the audience before him or by his own im-
agination ; and when the room was cleared, unknown to him, peo-
ple would return and beg to carry off every scrap of paper he had
used, as mementos.
In the end of May he left Devonshire and went up to London,
before settling at Eversley. He there gave a lecture to the Work-
ing Men's College, and one of a series to ladies interested in the
cause of the laboring classes. The subject he took was, The work
of ladies in the Country Parish.
The lecture, valuable in itself, is doubly so, as the result of the
first eleven years of his labor among the poor, and some extracts
are given to show the human and humane rules by which he worked
his parish.
" I keep to my own key-note," he says " I say, Visit whom,
when, and where you will ; but let your visits be those of u omen to
women. Consider to whom you go to poor souls whose life, com-
pared with yours, is one long malaise of body, and soul, and spirit
and do as you would be done by ; instead of reproving and fault-
finding, encourage. In God's name, encourage. They scramble
224 Charles Kingsley.
through life's rocks, bogs, and thorn-brakes, clumsily enough, and
have many a fall, poor things ! But why, in the name of a God of
love and justice, is the lady, rolling along the smooth turnpike road
in her comfortable carriage, to be calling out all day long to the
; poor soul who drags on beside her, over hedge and ditch, moss and
/ moor, barefooted and weary hearted, with half a dozen children on
/ her back ' You ought not to have fallen here ; and it was very
cowardly to lie down there ; and it was your duty as a mother, to
have helped that child through the puddle ; while as for sleeping
under that bush, it is most imprudent and inadmissible?' Why
not encourage her, praise her, cheer her on her weary way by lov-
ing words, and keep your reproofs for yourself even your advice ;
for she does get on her way after all, where you could not travel a
step forward ; and she knows what she is about perhaps better than
you do, and what she has to endure, and what God thinks of her
life-journey. The heart knoweth its own bitterness, and a stranger
intermeddleth not with its joy. But do not you be a stranger to
her. Be a sister to her. I do not ask you to take her up in your
carriage. ^ You cannot ; perhaps it is gDod for her that you cannot.
. . . All I ask is, do to the poor soul as you would have her
do to you in her place. Do not interrupt and vex her (for she is
busy enough already) with remedies which she does not understand,
for troubles which you do not understand. But speak comfortably
to her, and say, ' I cannot feel with you, but I do feel/
(TOIS) ovpavots, and on the very throne of God. Face the seemingly
coarse anthropomorphism of the Old Testament, and believe that the
New Testament so (far from narrowing it, widens and deepens it.
" This is m)' only hope and stay, while I see belief and practice
alike rocking and reeling to decay. May God keep it alive in me
and in you, recollecting always that to do the simple right thing
The Mutiny in India. 275
which lies at our feet, is better than to have ascended into the third
heaven, and to have all yvwcris and all mysteries.
" You sign yourself by a very noble name. Are you a son of
that good and wise man to whose lectures about Chara and Nitella I
have listened in Quy-fen eighteen years ago ? 1 shall be happy to
hear from you again."
He gave many lectures in the diocese this autumn for Mechanics'
Institutes, and among others his " Thoughts in a Gravel Pit," and
one on " Chaucer," also a long promised one at Bristol on " Great
Cities, their Influence for Good and Evil." *
He was just now engaged on a volume of poems for publication,
and they had been advertised by Messrs. Parker for Christmas.
But while preparing them for the press he was asked to write an
article on Sanitary reform. This work, and the terrible depression
produced on his mind by the Indian mutiny, prevented his being
able to get them ready in time. The agony of his mind as the
details from India poured in, though he had no relatives or per-
sonal friends engaged in the mutiny, was terrible, and he writes to
Mr. Bullar:
"... Do not talk to me about India, and the future of India,
till you can explain the past the past six months. O Bullar, no
man knows, or shall know, what thoughts they have cost me.
Meanwhile, I feel as if I could dogmatise no more.
I dare say you are right and I wrong. I have no heart, at least, to
continue any argument, while my brain is filled with images fresh
out of hell and the shambles. Show me what security I have that
my wife, my children, should not suffer, from some unexpected
outbreak of devils, what other wives and children have suffered,
and then 1 shall sleep quiet, without longing that they were safe
out of a world where such things are possible
" You may think me sinful for having such thoughts. My experi-
ence is. that when they come, one must face them, do battle with
them deliberately, be patient if they worst one for a while. For by
all such things men live, in these is the life of the spirit. Only by
going down into hell can one rise again the third day. I have been
in hell many times in my life ; therefore, perhaps, have I had some
small power of influencing human hearts. But I never have looked
hell so close in the face as I have been doing of late. Wherefore
I hope thereby to get fresh power to rise, and to lift others heaven-
ward. But the power has not come yet And
* Published iu the " Miscellanies."
276 Charles Kings ley.
I can only cry, ' O Lord, in Thee have I trusted, let me never be
confounded. Wherefore should the wicked say, where is now his
God?'
" But while I write now, and while I fret most, there comes to
me an inner voice, saying What matter if thou art confounded.
God is not. Only believe firmly that God is at least as good as
thou, with thy ' finite reason,' canst conceive ; and He will make
thee at last able to conceive how good He is, and thou shalt have
the one perfect blessing of seeing God.
" You will say I am inconsistent. So I am ; and so, if read
honestly, are David's Psalms. Yet that very inconsistency is what
brings them home to every human heart for ever. The words of a
man in real doubt and real darkness, crying for light, and not cry-
ing in vain. As I trust I shall not. God bless you."
TO GEORGE BRIMLEY, ESQ.
EVERSLEY, 1857.
" DEAR BRIMLEY,
" Your letter has much comforted me ; for your disapproval is
really to me a serious thing, from what I know of your critical
powers ; while my own hopeless inability to judge of the goodness
or badness of anything I write makes me more and more modest
about my own ' aesthesis.' That word ' masque ' I will omit here-
after. The truth is, that I have drawn, modelled in clay, and pic-
ture fancied, so much in past years, that I have got unconsciously
into the slang for slang it is and I am faulty therein.
" About the melodrama on the Glyder, I quite agree with you
that some folks will carp. There was a cantankerous lady (I heard
who she was, but forget why not ?) who attacked me fiercely on
that score, anent ' Westward Ho ! ' She knew not that the one
point which infuriated her most, viz., the masts and sails and people
looking red-hot against a black background instead of vice versa,
when Amyas is struck blind, was copied from the experience of a
near relative who was struck senseless by a flash of lightning, and
squinted and had weak eyes for years after. So much for the re-
ward which one gets for copying nature !
" In the Glyder scene I have copied nature most carefully,
having surveyed every yard of the ground this summer. The vision
of Snowdon towering and wet against the background of blue flame,
appearing and disappearing every moment, was given me byFroude,
who lived there three years, and saw it, and detailed it carefully,
begging me to put it in ! But why go on justifying ? I don't think
the deerstalkers of Park Lane and Belgravia will sneer, because
they see such things in their field-sports, and are delighted when
such men as Maxwell or St. John, or perhaps I for they have told
me so often can put them into words for them ; but the true
Nature s Melodrama. 277
snubbers are the cockneys who write for the press, and who judge
of the universe from the experiences of the London suburbs, or a
summer's watering-place trip. I have seen as awful sights here at
the breaking up of a long drought ; and what I wanted to do was
boldly to defy criticism on that very point, calling the chapter
'Nature's Melodrama,' and showing, meanwhile, that the ' melo-
dramatic element ' was a false, and morbid, and cowardly one, by
bringing in Naylor and VVynd, thinking the very same horrors capi-
tal fun. I would not have taken Elsley there if I had not taken
them there also, as a wholesome foil to his madness.
" Claude and Sabina are altogether imaginary. Ever since
'Yeast,' I'have been playing with them as two dolls, setting them
to say and do all the pretty naive things any one else is too re-
spectable to be sent about, till I know them as well as I know you.
I have half-a-dozen pet people of that kind, whom I make talk and
walk with me on the moors, and when I am at my parish work ;
and charming company they all are, only they get more and more
wilful, being ' spoilt children,' and I cannot answer for any despe-
rate aberration of theirs, either in doctrine or practice, from hour
to hour. Like all the rest of human life, the best things which I
get out of them are too good to be told. So nobody will ever know
them, save a little of the outside. Writing novels is a farce and a
sham. If any man could write the simple life of a circle of five
miles round his own house, as he knew, and could in many cases
swear it to be, at that moment, no one would believe it ; and least
of all would those believe it who did believe it. Do you ask the
meaning of the paradox ?
" Those who know best that the facts are true, or might be true,
would be those most interested in declaring them impossible.
When any man or woman calls anything 'over-drawn,' try them, if
you can, by the argument
" ' Now, confess. Have you not seen, and perhaps done,
stranger things?' And in proportion to their honesty and genial-
ity they will answer, ' Yes.'
" I have never found this fail, with people who were human, and
were capable of having any ' history ' at all."
CHAPTER XVIII.
AGED 39.
Eversley Work Diphtheria Lectures and Sermons at Aldershot Blessing the
Colors of the 22nd Regiment Staff College Advanced Thinkers Poems
and Santa Maura Letter from Dr. Monsell Letters to Dr. Monsell, Dean
Stanley, &c. Letter from Captain Congreve Birth of his Son Grenville
Second Visit to Yorkshire.
THIS was a year of severe work and anxiety, for he could not
afford a curate. Diphtheria, then a new disease in England, ap-
peared in the neighborhood, and was very fatal. It created a
panic, and to him it was a new enemy to be hated, and fought
against, as it was his wont to hate and fight against every form of
disease, and especially those which he suspected to come from
malaria, and other preventable causes. Its prevalence among
children, and cases in his own parish, affected and excited him,
and he took counsel with medical men, as to how to meet the
earliest symptoms of the new foe. When it reached Eversley,
some might have smiled at seeing him, going in and out of the cot-
tages with great bottles of gargle under his arm, and teaching the
people men, women, and children, to gargle their throats, as a
preventive ; but to him it was terrible grim earnest, acting as he
did on Thomas Carlyle's principle, "Wheresoever thou findest
disorder, there is thy eternal enemy ; attack him swiftly, subdue
him, make order of him."
His work for the Hants and Wilr.s Education Society, to which
he had bound himself to give so many lectures annually, in lieu of
subscription, was heavy : he lectured on local geology, on Chau-
cer, on Jack of Newbury, and Flodden Field, and on the Days of
the Week ; in those days seldom repeating the same lecture. The
position of Eversley with regard to Chobham, Aldershor, and
Sandhurst, brought him more and more in contact with military
men, and widened his sphere of influence. The society of soldiers
The Soldier Spirit. 279
as a class was congenial to him. He inherited much of the soldier
spirit, as he inherited soldier blood ; and the few of his direct an-
cestors' portraits that have survived the wreck of his family, are all
of men in uniform, including, with others of earlier date, General
Kingsley, Governor of Fort William, colonel of the 2oth Regiment,
who fought at the battle of Minden ; and among the family papers
there are commissions with the signature of the reigning authori-
ties. He had himself, at one time, thought of the army as a pro-
fession, and had spent much time as a boy in drawing plans of
fortifications ; and after he took holy orders it was a constant occu-
pation to him, in all his walks and rides, to be planning fortifications.
There is scarcely a hill-side within twenty miles of Eversley, the
strong and weak points of which in attack and defence during
a possible invasion, he has not gone over with as great an intensity
of thought and interest as if the enemy were really at hand ; and
no soldier could have read and re-read Hannibal's campaigns,
Creasy's Sixteen decisive battles, the records of Sir Charles Na-
pier's Indian warfare, or Sir William's magnificent history of the
Peninsular War, with keener appreciation, his poet's imagination
enabling him to fill up the picture and realize the scene, where his
knowledge of mere military detail failed. Hence the honor he
esteemed it to be allowed to preach to the troops at Aldershot,
and to lecture to military men there and at Woolwich. His eyes
would kindle and fill with tears as he recalled the impression made
on him on Whit Sunday, 1858, by the sound heard for the first
time, and never to be forgotten, of the clank of the officers' swords
and spurs, and the regular tramp of the men as they marched into
church, stirring him like the sound of a trumpet. He lectured this
year, too, to the troops in the camp on Cortez. He was also
asked by Mrs. William Napier to bless the new colors which she
presented to her father's old regiment, the 22nd, of which Sir
Charles Napier himself had spoken when he, as its distinguished
colonel, presented colors to the ist battalion some years
before :
" That brave regiment which won the battle of Meanee won
the battle of Hydrabad won Scinde for England ; . . . .
the regiment which stood by the King of England at Dettingen,
stood by the celebrated Lord Peterborough at Barcelona ; and
into the arms of whose grenadiers the immortal Wolfe fell on the
280 Charles Kings ley.
heights of Abraham. Well may I exult in the command of such a
regiment." (Life of Sir Charles Napier.)
After the ceremony, Mrs. Napier went round the ranks, among
which were many old veterans who had survived from the great
Indian battles, in which her father commanded them in the field,
and introduced Mr. Kingsley to them. That too was a red letter
in his calendar, as he called it. He camped out a night this sum-
mer with the Guards on Cove Common. His sermons in camp
brought many officers over to Eversley Church, and led to the
formation of friendships which were very dear to him. During the
earlier years of the Staff College, Sandhurst, of which his valued
friend General William Napier was commandant, he was often
invited to mess, and was received with a marked respect, which did
as much honor to his hosts as to their guest. That he never
shrunk from showing his colors, the following reminiscence from
one who was present will testify :
" We had among us one or two so-called ' advanced thinkers,'
men who were inclined to ridicule religion somewhat. I remem-
ber once the conversation at mess took that direction, and Mr.
Kingsley stopped it at once and forever in the pleasantest, and at
the same time most effectual manner, by pointing out how unmanly
and ungenerous it was to endeavor to weaken a faith which was a
trusted support to one's friends. He said it was impossible to use
arguments of this kind without causing pain to some, and even if a
man could hope to produce conviction, it could only be by taking
from his convert much of the present joy of his life. Would any brave
man desire to do that for the mere sake of a rhetorical triumph ?
There was the regular little apology, 'Forgot for a moment that
there was a clergyman at the table,' &c.
" ' All right, never mind, but you must not apologize on that
ground, We are paid to fight those arguments as you soldiers are
to do another sort of fighting, and if a clergyman is worth his salt,
you will always find him ready to try a fall with you. Besides, it is
better for your friends, if they are to have the poison, to have the
antidote in the same spoon.' "
Early this year his poems were published, and among them
"Santa Maura," which had a powerful effect on thoughtful people;
the story being so little known.
" I am delighted," he says to Mr. Maurice, " that you are satis-
fied with ' St. Maura.' Nothing which I ever wrote came so out
St. Maura. 281
of the depths of my soul as that, or caused me during writing (it
was all clone in a day and a night) a poetic fervor such as I never
felt before or since. It seemed to me a sort of inspiration which I
could not resist ; and the way to do it came before me clearly and
instantly, as nothing else ever has done. To embody the highest
spiritual nobleness in the greatest possible simplicity of a young
village girl, and exhibit the martyr element, not only free from
that celibate element which is so jumbled up with it in the old
myths ; but brought out and brightened by marriage love. That
story, as it stands in the Acta SS., has always been my experimen-
tum crucis of the false connection between martyrdom and celibacy.
But enough of this selfish prosing I have no novel
in my head just now. I have said my say for the time, and I want
to sit down and become a learner, not a teacher, for I am chiefly
impressed with my own profound ignorance and hasty assumption
on every possible subject."
The volume of poems led to his first communication with Dr.
Monsell, who writes :
GULVAL VICARAGE, PENZANCE, April 14, 1858.
" REV. AND DEAR SlR,
" I have read with wondrous delight your beautiful book of
poetry just come out, and thank you most sincerely for a great
deal of it as a source of very pure pleasure, and a great deal of it
as very deep and earnest teaching in holy things. One poem
especially I thank God for, that entitled ' St. Maura.' I could
wish that sent out into the world by itself, as a little tract, to be
slipt into the hands of the suffering, or of those who are sometimes
in the midst of great blessings disposed to make too much of the
little trials they are called on to endure. It would strengthen and
brace up to high endeavors and endurings many who now little
dream of what real endurance for the love of Christ means. I
know it was so with me the other day. I had heard from home of
some parish vexations, which pained me far more than any earthly
ill should do. I took up that dear book, read that one poem for
the first time aloud to my wife and children, and as I laid it down
with tears in my eyes, could smile through those tears at any little
cross 1 had to bear for my dear Master's sake. What it has done
for me I am sure it will do for thousands, and therefore I have
ventured to tell you how God has blessed it to me.
" May He strengthen and bless you in your noble endeavors to
glorify Him and benefit your race is the sincere prayer of one who
has been much benefited by your writings.
"Yours most faithfully,
"JOHN S. B. MONSKI.L.
" (Vicar of Kgham.)"
282 Charles Kingsley.
The answer is characteristic :
EVERSLEY, April 2, 1858.
" MY DEAR SIR,
" Your letter gave me the most lively pleasure, and all the
more lively, because it came from you, whose spiritual poems have
been a delight and comfort in a time of anxiety to my dear wife.
" Would to God that I could be the persons that 1 can conceive.
If you wish to pray against a burden and temptation, pray against
that awful gift (for it is a purely involuntary gift) of imagination,
which alternately flatters and torments its possessor, flatters him
by making him fancy that he possesses the virtues which he can
imagine in others ; torments him, because it makes him feel in him-
self a capacity for every imaginable form of vice. Yet if it be a
gift of God's (and it cannot be a gift of the devil's) it must bring
some good, and perhaps the good is the capacity for sympathy
with blackguards, ' publicans and sinners,' as we now euphemize
them in sermons, trying, as usual, to avoid the tremendous mean-
ing of the words by borrowing from an old English translation.
To see into the inner life of these ; to know their disease, not from
books, but from inward and scientific anatomy, imagination may
help a man. If it does that for me 1 shall not regret it ; though it
is, selfishly speaking, the most humiliating and tormenting of all
talents.
" God be with you and yours,
" C. KINGSLEY."
TO REV. ARTHUR PENRHYN STANLEY.
EVERSLEY, April 10, 1858.
" MY DEAR STANLEY,
" I must write and tell you the perfect pleasure with which I
have read your three lectures on Ecclesiastical History, which that
excellent fellow, Edward Egerton, lent ine.
'' It is a comfort in this dreary world to read anything so rational
and fair, so genial and human ; and if those Oxford youths are
not the better men for such talk, they deserve the pool of Hela.
" What you say about learning ecclesiastical history by biography
is most true. I owe all I really know about the history of Christi-
anity (ante Tridentine), to thumbing and re-thumbing a copy of
' Surius' Actse Sanctorum.' In that book I found out for the first
time in my life ' what they were all about.' But you have, from
your greater knowledge, and wider view, a spirit of hope about it
all, which sadly fails me at times ; and therefore your lectures
have done me good ; and I thank you for them, as for personal
and private consolation which I sorely wanted. God bless you
and prosper you and your words."
Sunday Amusements. 283
Among the many pleasant friendships formed at this time, which
sprung out of the Eversley Church services, was that of Captain
Congreve, who thus recalls those Sundays :
" It was in the spring of 1858 that Capt., now Colonel, Jebb, of
the 67th, and I first began to go to Eversley Church. We used to
walk over on Sunday mornings after breakfast, and then have
some bread and cheese at the little public house in the village after
church.
' There we discussed with our host, the parson and the village
generally, and 1 remember his amusing us very much once, when
referring to some cricket to be played in the afternoon, by saying,
' Kh, Paason, he doan't objec' not ee as loik as not 'e'll coom
and look on, and ee do tell 'em as its a deal better to 'ave a bit
o' elthy play o' a Sunday evenin' than to be a-larkin' 'ere and
a-larkin there hall hover the place a-courtin' and a-drinkin' hale.'
"Mr. Kingsley soon observed the two new faces in his church,
and spoke to us one Sunday after service. From that time I think
we were pretty constant guests at your Sunday luncheon-table. I
shall never forget the genial, happy, unreserved intercourse of
those Sunday afternoons, and I never strolled home to mess with-
out feeling that I had come away wiser and better from the con-
tact with that clear and kindly mind. He essentially loved men
and manly pursuits, and perhaps liked soldiers, as being a class
among whom manly feeling and many virtues were cultivated.
" The Staff College was then in its infancy, and had perhaps
gathered together a few of the best educated, hardest working, and
most ambitious young men in the service.
"Mr. Kingsley was very soon a welcome and an honored guest
at our mess. He entered into our studies, popularised our geol-
ogy, and was an able critic on questions of military history. Not
only that, however, head work needs physical relaxation. He
told us the best meets of the hounds, the nearest cut to the cover,
the best trout streams, and the home of the largest pike. Many
an hour have I spent pleasantly and profitably on the College
lakes with him. Every fly that lit on the boat-side, every bit of
weed that we fished up, every note of wood-bird, was suggestive of
some pretty bit of information on the habits, and growth, and
breeding of the thousand unnoticed forms of life around.
" Yours truly,
" W. CONGREVE."
His youngest son, Grenville Arthur, for whom, in the course of
time, "The Waterbabies " and "Madame How" were written,
was born this spring, and named after his godfather, Dean Stanley,
284 Charles Kingslcy.
and Sir Richard Grenvil, one of the heroes of " Westward Ho ! "
from whom Mrs. Kingsley's family claimed descent.
A new novel was now projected on the subject of the Pilgrimage
of Grace, which made it necessary for him to go into Yorkshire for
a few days to identify places and names. This was his only holi-
day for the year, and thanks to the kindness of his friend, Mr. (now
the Rt. Hon.) E. Forster, and Mr. Morrison, of Malham, it was a
very charming one, combining antiquities, manufactures, scenery,
and fishing, with the facts he had to make out. The novel was
partly written, but never finished.
BURLEY,WHARFSIDE, July, 1858.
" At a most delicious place, and enjoying good society and a
good library, with some very valuable books Tell
the children I have just seen oh ! i don't know what I hav'nt
seen the largest water-wheel in England, making light summer
over-coats for the Yankees and Germans. I am in a state of
bewilderment such machinery as no tongue can describe, about
three acres of mills and a whole village of people, looking healthy,
rosy, and happy ; such a charming half-time school for the children,
library for the men, &c. Tell R. I saw the wool as it came off
the sheep's back in Leicestershire, followed it till it was turned
into an 'alpaca' coat, and I don't care to see conjuring or magic
after that. The country is glorious ''
" We had a delighftul day at Bolton yesterday, and saw the Abbey.
Tell R. I jumped over the Strid where young Romilly was drowned.
Make her learn Wordsworth's ballad on it, ' What is good for a
bootless bene ' ? "
After his return home a lady of an old Roman Catholic family
sent him through a mutual friend some curious facts for his book,
but expressed her fears that his strong Protestant sympathies would
prevent his doing justice to her co-religionists. He thus acknowl-
edges her help in a letter to Mr. C. Kegan Paul :
EVERSLEY, October, 1858.
" Will you thank Mrs. * * * * most heartily from me for all she has
found out for me. The Merlin's prophecy about Aske is invaluable.
The M iltons I don't know of, and would gladly know. The York
documents about the Pilgrimage of Grace have got, I hear, to
Durham, at least there are none to be found in the Chapter Library
at York.
Justice to the Catholics. 285
" But let her understand if it be any comfort to her that I shall
in this book do the northern Catholics ample justice ; that Robert
and Christopher Aske, both good Romanists, are my heroes, and
Robert the Rebel my special hero. I can't withdraw what I said
in ' Westward Ho,' because it is true. Romanism under the Jesuits
became a different thing from what it had been before. Of course
Mrs. * * * * does not know that, and why should she ?
" But I fear she will be as angry as ever, though really she is
most merciful and liberal, at my treatment of the monks. I love
the old Catholic Laity : I did full justice to their behavior at the
Armida juncture; but I know too much of those shavelings, and
the worst is, I know, as Wolsey knew, and every one knew, things
one dare'nt tell the world, much less a woman. So judgment must
go by default, as I cannpt plead, for decency's sake. Still, tell her
that had I been born and bred a Yorkshire Catholic, I should
probably unless I had been a coward have fought to the last
drop at Robert Aske's side. But this philosophy only gives one a
habit of feeling for every one, without feeling with them, and I can
now love Robert Aske, though I think him as wrong as man can be,
who is a good man and true."
CHAPTER XIX.
1859.
AGED 40.
Sanitary Work First Sermon at Buckingham Palace Queen's Chaplaincy
First Visit to Windsor Letter to an Atheist Correspondence with Artists
Charles Bennett Ladies' Sanitary Association Letter from John Stuart
Mill.
As years went on he devoted time, thought, and influence more and
more to Sanitary science ; the laws of health, and the enfranchise-
ment of men's bodies from disease and dirt, and their inevitable
consequences of sin, misery, and physical if not spiritual death,
became more important in his eyes than any Political reforms. He
lectured at the different institutes in the diocese of Winchester on
the laws of health, rather than on literary and scientific matters,
and attended the first public meeting in Willis's Rooms of the
Ladies' National Sanitary Association, where he made a speech
that was afterwards published under the title of " The Massacre of
the Innocents."
This year, 1859, was an altogether important one to him. On
Palm Sunday he preached for the first time before the Queen and
the Prince Consort at Buckingham Palace, and was shortly after-
wards made one of Her Majesty's chaplains in ordinary. He now
took his turn as Queen's Chaplain in the services at the Chapel
Royal, St. James's, and preached in the autumn before the Court
in the private chapel at Windsor Castle. On this occasion he had
the honor of being presented to the Queen and the Prince Consort,
and to the Crown Prince and Princess of Prussia, then staying at
Windsor, and from that hour to his dying day he received marks of
Royal kindness and condescension, the memory of which will be an
heirloom to his children. To a man of his fine imagination and
deep loyalty, who had sounded the depths of society, and whose
increasing popularity as an author, and power as a preacher, had
given him a large acquaintance with all ranks, this new phase in
Marriage of Max Mutter. 287
his life seemed to come just to complete the cycle of his experi-
ences. But while its result was, in a certain sense, to establish his
position and enlarge his influence, on his own character it had a
humbling rather than exalting effect. From this time there was a
marked difference in the tone of the public press, religious and
otherwise, towards him : and though he still waged war as hereto-
fore against bigotry, ignorance, and intolerance, and was himself
unchanged, the attacks on him from outside were less frequent and
less bitter.
The events of this year, uninteresting to the outside world, but
each important to himself in giving color to his daily life and leav-
ing its own mark on his heart and imagination, are soon told.
He sent his eldest son to Wellington College, which had opened in
the winter, and where the scheme of education, due much to the
wise influence of the Prince Consort, was more consonant to his
own views for his son, being of a wider and more modern character
than that of the older and more venerable public schools. He was
present at the marriage of his friend Max Miiller and a beloved
niece,* who spent the first week of their married life at Eversley
Rectory; and he preached them their wedding sermon, giving them
their first communion in his own church. Dean Stanley (then
Canon of Christ Church, Oxford) paid his first visit to Eversley.
His acquaintance with Lord Cranworth and with Lord Carnarvon,
to whom he became more and more attached as time went on, was
made this year. In the autumn, with his wife, he spent a few days
with Mr. and Mrs. Tennyson in the Isle of Wight, but having no
curate, his holiday was short, and more than once he broke down
from overwork ; the excitement too of the Sundays, and his full
church, overpowered him. He shrunk from the bustle of London,
refused all sermons there, and withdrew from politics.
" I have not been to town," he said, " for more than two days in
the last nine months. I see no chance of preaching there, I am
happy to say, for a long time, save next Sunday, when I preac.li to
the Queen. As for politics, I heed them not. The only politician
now living is the Lord of all ; and He has principle and principles ;
* The G. to whom the lines were written beginning
" A hasty jest I once let fall,
As jests are wont to he, untrue." To G., " Poems," p. 236.
288 Charles Kingsley.
whoever has not. It is a fearful lookout when God has to govern
a nation because it cannot govern itself. . . . ."
Notwithstanding fair prospects and outward distinction, he clung
more and more passionately to his country home the "far off
look," and longing for rest and reality, and for the unfolding of
the mystery of life grew stronger upon him, and he said more fre-
quently to his wife " How blessed it will be when it is all over ! "
With his children, however, he was always bright and merry. To
his friend, Mr. Tom Hughes, he writes this summer, on the i2th
of June :
" This is my fortieth birthday. What a long life I have lived !
and silly fellows that review me say that I can never have known
ill-health or sorrow. I have known enough to make me feel very
old happy as I am now ; and I am very happy "
A correspondence with an intelligent artizan, an avowed atheist,
and editor of an atheist newspaper in one of the manufacturing
towns in the north, is unfortunately lost, with the exception of Mr.
Kingsley's last letter, in answer to one telling him that his corre-
spondent had in common with his class read " Alton Locke,"
" Yeast," and " Hypatia," with interest, from " their freshness of
thought and honesty, which seemed to place them above the fac-
tions of creed, while breathing the same spirit of Christian kind-
ness which Fenelon and Dr. Arnold practised." " Such perusal,"
he added, " makes us better men."
EVERSLEY, January 15, 1859.
" MY DEAR SIR,
" I should have answered so frank and manly a letter before,
but my father's sudden and severe illness called me away from
home. I hope that you and your friends will not always remain
Atheists. . . . It is a barren, heartless, hopeless creed, as a
creed though a man may live long in it without being heartless
or hopeless himself. Still, he will never be the man he ought to
have been ; and therefore it is bad for him and not good. But
what I want to say to you is this, and I do want to say it. What-
ever doubt or doctrinal Atheism you and your friends may have,
don't fall into moral Atheism. Don't forget the Eternal Goodness,
whatever name you may call it. I call it God. Or if you even
deny an Eternal Goodness, don't forget or neglect such goodness
as you find in yourselves not an honest, a manly, a loving, a
An Illustrated Pilgrim s Progress. 289
generous, a patient feeling. For your own sakes, if not for God's
sake, keep alive in you the sense of what is, and you know to be,
good, noble, and beautiful. I don't mean beautiful in ' art,' but
beautiful in morals. If you will keep that moral sense that sense
of the beauty of goodness, and of man's absolute duty to be good,
then all will be as God wills, and all will come right at last. But
if you lose that if you begin to say, ' Why should not I be quar-
relsome and revengeful ? why should I not be conceited and inso-
lent ? why should 1 not be selfish and grasping ? then you will be
Atheists indeed, and what to say to you 1 shall not know. But
from your letter, and from the very look of your handwriting, I
augur better things ; and even hope that you will not think me im-
pertinent if I send you a volume of my own Sermons to think over
manfully and fairly. It seems to me (but I may flatter myself)
that you cannot like, as you say you do, my books, and yet be
what I call moral Atheists.
" Mind, if there is anything in this letter which offends you, don't
take fire, but write and ask me (if you think it worth while) what I
mean. In looking it through I see several things which (owing to
the perversion of religious phrases in these days) you may mis-
understand, and take your friend for your foe.
" At all events, I am, yours faithfully,
" CHARLES KINGSLEY."
Artists now often consulted him, and among them Charles Henry
Bennett, a man full of genius, then struggling with poverty and the
needs of a large young family, who began by illustrating children's
books, then went on the staff of " Punch," and died a few years
since, greatly regretted. His letters, followed by a visit to Evers-
ley, led to Mr. Kingsley's offering to write him a preface to an
Illustrated Pilgrim's Progress, for which he had some difficulty in
getting a publisher, but on this offer Messrs. Longman undertook
to bring out the work at once.
TO CHARLES H. BENNETT, ESQ.
EVERSI.EY, January 23, 1859.
" . . . I feel as deeply as you our want of a fitting illustra-
tion of the great Puritan Epic, and agree in every word which you
say about past attempts. Your own plan is certainly the right one,
only in trying for imaginative freedom, do not lose sight of beauty
of form. I am, in taste, a strong classicist, contrary to the reign-
ing school of Ruskin, Pugin, and the pre-Raphaelites, and wait
quietly for the world to come round to me again. But it is per-
fectly possible to combine Greek health and accuracy of form, with
19
290 Charles Kingsley.
German freedom of imagination, even with German grotesqueness.
I say Greek and German (i.e., fifteenth and sixteenth century
German) because those two are the only two root-schools in the
world. I know no such combination of both as in Kaulbach. His
illustrations of Reinecke Fuchs are in my eyes the finest designs
(save those of three or four great Italians of the sixteenth century),
which the world has ever seen. Any man desiring to do an endur-
ing work, must study, copy, and surpass them.
" Now in Bimyan there is a strong German (Albert Durer) ele-
ment which you must express, viz., ist, a tendency to the gro-
tesque in imagination ; 2nd, a tendency to spiritual portraiture of
the highest kind, in which an ideal character is brought out, not by
abstracting all individual traits (the Academy plan), but by throw-
ing in strong individual traits drawn from common life. This, in-
deed, has been the manner of the highest masters, both in poetry
and painting, e.g., Shakespeare and Dante, and the portraits, and
even heroic figures of Leonardo, Raphael, Michael Angelo, Sebas-
tian del Piombo, Bronzino, the two latter with Titian, the triumvi-
rate of portrait-painting. You find the same in Correggio. He
never idealises, i.e., abstracts in a portrait, seldom in any place.
You would know the glorious ' Venus ' of the National Gallery if
you met her in the street. So this element you have a full right to
employ.
" But there is another, of which Bunyan, as a Puritan tinker,
was not conscious, though he had it in his heart, that is, classic
grace and purity of form. He had it in his heart, as much as
Spenser. His women, his Mr. Greatheart, his Faithful, his shep-
herds, can only be truly represented in a lofty and delicate outline,
otherwise the ideal beauty which lifts them into a supernatural and
eternal world is lost, and they become mere good folks of the seven-
teenth century. Some illustrators, feeling this, have tried to me-
dievalize them silly fellows. What has Bunyan to do with the
Middle Age ? He writes for all ages, he is full of an eternal
humanity, and that eternal humanity can only be represented by
something of the eternal form which you find in Greek statues. I
don't mean that you are to Grecianize their dress, any more than
medievalize it. No. And here comes an important question.
" Truly to illustrate a poem, you must put the visions on paper
as they appeared to the mind of the seer himself. Now we know
that Bunyan saw these people in his mind's eye, as dressed in the
garb of his own century. It is very graceful, and I should keep to
it, not only for historic truth's sake, but because in no other way
can you express Bunyan's leading idea, that the same supernatural
world which was close to old prophets and martyrs, was close to
him ; that the devil who whispered in the ears of Judas, whispered
in the ears of a cavalier over his dice, or a Presbyterian minister in
his Geneva gown. Take these hints as meant, kindly."
Illustrating Pilgrim's Progress. 291
ST. LEONARD'S, April i, 1859.
"I saw Longman the other day hunting his hounds, and \ve had
a talk about you and the 'Pilgrim's Progress.' I shall be ready for
you some time this summer. Do you know the old cuts of the
' Pelerinage de 1'homme,' from which Bunyan took his idea ? They
have been lately republished. I will show them to you when you
come down to me.
" I like your heads well. I really have had no time to write to
you before, having been half insane with parish work and confirma-
tion classes. I think Mr. Worldly Wiseman excellent, and ; the
Lust of the Eye,' ditto. ' Mr. Gripeman ' is too handsome. I
think you want a more sharp, comprest, and cruel lip. But the
general shape of the face is good. It is very like Alva, who was a
cruel man, and a rigid pedant.
'' I think you must have more smirk about Smoothman's face ;
and should certainly shave him, all but a very neat little imperial.
The ' Lust of the Flesh,' is hardly animal enough. I have gene-
rally seen with strong animal passion, a tendency to high cheek-
bone ; but only in a dark woman. Yours may stand for a blonde
type ; but even then I should prefer a lower forehead. I should
take the 'Pride of Life' for an older woman, and a much stouter
one. Give her very full features and bust. As it is, your ' Pride
of Life' has more animal passion than the ' Lust of the Flesh ; ' in-
deed, beyond that of vacuity, she has not much. She would be
gad-about and vain enough, but not pompous and magnificent.
Besides, she is a low type, and you should have the highest you
can get. You see I criticise freely. I liked your ' Vanity Fair '
sketches (in words) very much. Embody them in lines, and you
will indeed do well. Do you know Walker's 'Analysis of Female
Beauty?' It is a valuable book, and has much which would help
any man."
In July Mr. Kingsley attended the first meeting of the Ladies'
Sanitary Association at Willis's Rooms, and made the following re-
markable speech :
" Let me say one thing to the ladies who are interested in this
matter. Have they really seriously considered what they are
about to do in carrying out their own plans ? Are they aware that
if their Society really succeeds they will produce a very serious,
some would think a very dangerous, change in the state of this
nation ? Are they aware that they would probably save the lives
of some thirty or forty per cent, of the children who are born in
England, and that therefore they would cause the subjects of
Queen Victoria to increase at a very far more rapid rate than they
do now ? And are they aware that some very wise men inform us
292 Charles Kings ley.
that England is already over-peopled, and that it is an exceedingly
puzzling question where we shall soon be able to find work or food
for our masses, so rapidly do they increase already, in spite of the
thirty or forty per cent, kind Nature carries off yearly before they
are five years old ? Have they considered what they are to do
with all those children whom they are going to save alive ? That
has to be thought of ; and if they really do believe, with political
economists now, that over-population is a possibility to a country
which has the greatest colonial empire that the world has ever
seen, then I think they had better stop in their course and let the
children die, as they have been dying.
" But if, on the other hand, it seems to them, as I confess it does
to me, that the most precious thing in the world is a human being,
that the lowest, and poorest, and most degraded of human beings
is better than all the dumb animals in the world ; that there is an
infinite, priceless capability in that creature, degraded as it may be
a capability of virtue, and of social and industrial use, which, if
it is taken in time, may be developed up to a pitch, of which at
first sight the child gives no hint whatsoever ; if they believe
again, that of all races upon earth now, probably the English race
is the finest, and that it gives not the slightest sign whatever
of exhaustion ; that it seems to be on the whole a young race, and to
have very great capabilities in it which have not yet been developed,
and above all, the most marvellous capability of adapting itself to
every sort of climate, and every form of life that any nation, except
the old Roman, ever had in the world : if they consider with me
that it is worth the while of political economists and social philos-
ophers to look at the map, and see that about four-fifths of the
globe cannot be said as yet to be in anywise inhabitated or culti-
vated, or in the state in which men could make it by any fair sup-
ply of population and industry and human intellect : then,
perhaps, they may think with me that it is a duty, one of the
noblest of duties, to help the increase of the English race as much
as possible, and to see that every child that is born into this great
nation of England be developed to the highest pitch to which we
can develop him, in physical strength and in beauty, as well as in
intellect and in virtue. And then, in that light, it does seem to
me, that this Association small now, but 1 do hope some day to
become great, and to become the mother Association of many and
valuable children is one of the noblest, most right-minded,
straight-forward, and practical conceptions that I have come
across for some years.
" We all know the difficulties of Sanitary Legislation. One
looks at them at times almost with despair. I have my own rea-
sons, with which I will not trouble this meeting, for looking on
them with more despair than ever ; not on account of the govern-
ment of the time, or any possible government that could come to
Women and Sanitary Reform. 293
England, but on account of the peculiar class of persons in whom
the ownership of the small houses has become more and more
vested, and who are becoming more and more, I had almost said,
the arbiters of the popular opinion, and of every election of parlia-
ment. However, that is no business of mine here ; that must be
settled somewhere else : and a fearfully long time, it seems to me,
it will be before it is settled. But, in the mean time, what legisla-
tion cannot do, I believe private help, and, above all, woman's
help, can do even better. It can do this ; it can not only improve
the condition of the working-man ; I am not speaking of working-
men just at this time, I am speaking of the middle classes, of the
man who owns the house in which the working-man lives. I am
speaking, too, of the wealthy tradesman ; I am speaking, it is a sad
thing to have to say, of our own class as well as of others. Sani-
tary Reform, as it is called, or, in plain English, the art of health,
is so very recent a discovery, as all true physical science is, that
we ourselves and our own class know very little about it, and prac-
tice it veiy ill. And this Society, I do hope, will bear in mind
that it is not simply to affect the working-man, not only to go into
the foul alley ; but it is to go to the door of the farmer, to the door
of the shopkeeper, aye, to the door of ladies and gentlemen of the
same rank as ourselves. Women can do in that work what men
cannot do. Private correspondence, private conversation, private
example, may do what no legislation can do. I am struck more
and more with the amount of disease and death I see around me
in all classes, which no sanitary legislation whatsoever could touch,
unless you had a complete house-to-house visitation of a govern-
ment officer, with powers to enter every house, to drain and venti-
late it, and not only that, but to regulate the clothes and the diet of
every inhabitant, and that among all ranks. I can conceive of
nothing short of that, which would be absurd and impossible and
most harmful, which would stop the present amount of disease and
death which I see around me, without some such private exertion
on the part of women, above all of mothers, as 1 do hope will
spring from this Institution more and more.
" I see this, that three persons out of four are utterly unaware
of the general causes of their own ill health, and of the ill health
of their children. They talk of their ' afflictions,' and their ' mis-
fortunes ; ' and, if they be pious people, they talk of ' the will of
Clod,' and of ' the visitation of Clod.' I do not like to trench upon
those matters, but when I read in my Book and in your Book that
' it is not the will of our Father in heaven that one of these little
ones should perish,' it has come to my mind sometimes with very
great strength, that that may have a physical application as well as
a spiritual one, and that the Father in heaven who does not wish
the child's soul to die may possibly have created that child's body
for the purpose of its not dying except in a good old age. Not
294 Charles Kingsley.
only in the lower class, but in the middle class, when one sees an
unhealthy family, then in three cases out of four, if one takes time,
trouble, and care enough, one can, with the help of the doctor who
has been attending them, run the evil home to a very different
cause than the will of God ; and that is, to a stupid neglect, a
stupid ignorance, or what is just as bad, a stupid indulgence.
" Now, I do believe that if those tracts which you are publish-
ing, which 1 have read, and of which I cannot speak too highly,
are spread over the length and breadth of the land, and if women,
clergymen's wives, the wives of manufacturers and of great em-
ployers, district visitors and school mistresses, have these books
put into their hands, and are persuaded to spread them, and to
enforce them, by their own example and by their own counsel,
then in the course of a few years, this system being thoroughly
carried out, you would see a sensible and large increase in the rate
of population.
" When you have saved your children alive, then you must settle
what to do with them. But a living dog is better than a dead
lion ; I would rather have the living child, and let it take its
chance, than let it return to God wasted. Oh ! it is a distressing
thing to see children die. God gives the most beautiful and
precious thing that earth can have, and we just take it and cast it
away ; we cast our pearls upon the dunghill, and leave them. A
dying child is to me one of the most dreadful sights in the world.
A dying man, a man dying on the field of battle, that is a small
sight; he has taken his chance ; he has had his excitement, he
has had his glory, if that will be any consolation to him ; if he is a
wise man, he has the feeling that he is doing his duty by his coun-
try, or by his King, or by his Queen. It does not horrify or shock
me to see a man dying in a good old age, even though it be pain-
ful at the last, as it too often is. But it does shock me, it does
make me feel that the world is indeed out of joint, to see a child
die. I believe it to be a priceless boon to the child to have lived
for a week, or a day ; but oh, what has God given to this thank-
less earth, and what has the earth thrown away, in nine cases out
of -ten, from its own neglect and carelessness? What that boy
might have been, what he might have done as an Englishman, if
he could have lived and grown up healthy and strong ! I entreat
you to bear this in mind, that it is not as if our lower classes or our
middle classes were not worth saving ; bear in mind that the physi-
cal beauty and strength and intellectual power of the middle
classes, the shopkeeping class, the farming class, the working
class whenever you give them a fair chance, whenever you give
them fair food and air, and physical education of any kind, prove
them to be the finest race in Europe. Not merely the aristocracy,
splendid race as they are : but down and down and down to the
lowest laboring man, to the navigator ; why there is not such a
Wasted Lives. 295
body of men in Europe as our navigators, and no body of men
perhaps have had a worse chance of growing to be what they are ;
and yet see what they have done. See the magnificent men they
become in spite of all that is against them, all that is drawing them
back, all that is tending to give them rickets and consumption, and
all the miserable diseases which children contract ; see what men
they are, and then conceive what they might be.
" It has been said, again, that there are no more beautiful races
of women in Europe than the wives and daughters of our London
shopkeepers, and yet there are few races of people who lead a life
more in opposition to all rules of hygiene. But in spite of all that,
so wonderful is the vitality of the English race, that they are what
they are ; and therefore we have the finest material to work upon
that people ever had. And therefore, again, we have the less
excuse if we do allow English people to grow up puny, stunted,
and diseased.
" Let me refer again to that word that I used : death the
amount of death. I really believe there are hundreds of good and
kind people who would take up this subject with their whole heart
and soul if they were aware of the magnitude of the evil. Lord
Shaftesbury told you just now that there were one hundred thou-
sand preventable deaths in England every year. So it is. We
talk of the loss of human life in war. We are the fools of smoke
and noise ; because there are cannon-balls and gunpowder, and
red coats, and because it costs a great deal of money, and makes a
great deal of noise in the papers, we think, What so terrible as
war ? I will tell you what is ten times, and ten thousand times,
more terrible than war, and that is outraged nature. War, we
are discovering now, is the clumsiest and most expensive of all
games ; we are finding that if you wish to commit an act of
cruelty or folly, the most expensive act that you can commit is to
contrive to shoot your fellow-men in war. So it seems ; but Na-
ture, insidious, inexpensive, silent, sends no roar of cannon, no
glitter of arms to do her work ; she gives no warning note of
preparation ; she has no protocol, nor any diplomatic advances,
whereby she warns her enemy that war is coming. Silently, I say,
and insidiously she goes forth ; no she does not even go forth,
she does not step out of her path, but quietly, by the very same
laws by which she makes alive, she puts to death. By the very
same laws by which every blade of grass grows, and every insect
springs to life in the sunbeam, she kills, and kills, and kills, and is
never tired of killing, till she has taught man the terrible lesson he
is so slow to learn, that nature is only conquered by obeying her.
"And bear in mind one thing more. Alan has his courtesies of
war, and his chivalries of war : he does not strike the unarmed
man ; he spares the woman and the child. But Nature is fierce
when she is offended, as she is bounteous and kind when she is
296 Charles Kingsley.
obeyed. She spares neither woman nor child. She has no pity :
for some awful, but most good reason, she is not allowed to have
any pity. Silently she strikes the sleeping child, with as little
remorse as she would strike the strong man, with the musket or
the pickaxe in his hand. Ah, would to God that some man had
the pictorial eloquence to put before the mothers of England the
mass of preventable suffering, the mass of preventable agony of
mind and body, which exists in England year after year ! And
would that some man had the logical eloquence to make
them understand that it is in their power, in the power of the
mothers and wives of the higher class, I will not say to stop it
all, God only knows that, but to stop, as I believe, three-
fourths of it.
" It is in the power, I believe, of any woman in this room to
save three or four lives, human lives, during the next six months.
It is in your power, ladies, and it is so easy. You might save
several lives apiece, if you choose, without, I believe, interfering
with your daily business, or with your daily pleasure, or, if you
choose, with your daily frivolities, in any way whatsoever. Let me
ask, then, those who are here, and who have not yet laid these
things to heart : Will you let this meeting to-day be a mere pass-
ing matter of two or three hours' interest, which you shall go away
and forget for the next book or the next amusement ? Or will
you be in earnest ? Will you learn I say it openly from the
noble chairman*, how easy it is to be earnest in life ; how every
one of you, amid all the artificial complications of English society
in the nineteenth century, can find a work to do, and a noble
work to do, chivalrous work to do, just as chivalrous as if you
lived in any old fairy land, such as Spenser talked of in his ' Faery
Queen ; ' how you can be as true a knight-errant, or lady-errant in
the present century, as if you had lived far away in the dark ages
of violence and rapine ? Will you, I ask, learn this ? Will you
learn to be in earnest, and use the position, and the station, and
the talent that God has given you, to save alive those who should
live ? And will you remember that it is not the will of your
Father that is in heaven that one little one that plays in the kennel
outside should perish, either in body or in soul ? "
Mr. Kingsley's work was incessant, and the letters now printed
give a most inadequate idea of the labor of his life, of the calls on his
sympathy, and of the different attitudes in which he had to put his
mind according to the variety of subjects on which he was asked
for counsel, or called upon to do battle ; but as Bishop Forbes
* The Earl of Shaftesbury.
Letter from John Stuart Mill. 297
beautifully says of Professor James D. Forbes in words which truly
picture Mr. Kingsley, especially in the concluding sentence,
" I never saw in any man such fearlessness in the path of duty.
The one question with him was 'Is it right?' No dread of con-
sequences, and consequences often bitterly felt by him, and wound-
ing his sensitive nature, ever prevented him from doing that to
which conscience prompted. His sense of right amounted to
chivalry."
But he seldom returned from speech or lecture without showing
that so much life had actually gone out of him not only from the
strain of brain and heart, but from the painful sense of antagonism
which his startling mode of stating things called out in his hearers,
and of which he was keenly conscious at the time.
The following letter from Mr. Mill was in answer to one from
Mr. Kingsley thanking him for the gift of his " Dissertations and
Discussions," and also for the work on " Liberty," which he says,
" affected me in making me a clearer-headed, braver-minded man
on the spot."
MR. JOHN STUART MILL TO REV. CHARLES KINGSLEY.
SAINT VEREN, NEAR AVIGNON, Aug. 6, 1859.
" Your letter of July 5 reached me long after its date, while
wandering in search of health in the Pyrenees. Allow me, while
expressing the great pleasure it gave me, to say that its humility, as
it respects yourself, seems to me as much beyond the mark as the
deference expressed towards me exceeds anything I have the
smallest title to.
" Laudari a laudato, or by any other viro, has never been very
much of an object with me. But to be told by a man who is him-
self one of the good influences of the age, and whose sincerity I
cannot doubt, that anything i have written makes him feel able to
be a still better influence, is both an encouragement and a reward
the greatest I can look for, now that a still greater has been
taken from me by death.
" Far from having read none of your books, I have read them
nearly all, and hope to read all of them. I have found in them an
earnest endeavor towards many of the objects I myself have at
heart ; and even when I differed from you it has never been with-
out great interest and sympathy. There are few men between
whom and myself any nearer approximation in opinion could be
more agreeable to me, and that you should look forward to it gives
^me a pleasure I could' not forbear to express."
298 Charles Kings ley.
TO FREDERIC SHIELDS, ESQ.
EVERSLEY, Nov. 2$, 1859.
" Your letter is sensible and pertinent to the matter in hand,
and I tell you at once what I can. I think that you much over-
rate the disuse of armor in Bunyan's day. When the 'Pilgrim's
Progress' was written it was much gone out, but in Bunyan's
boyhood he must have seen everywhere old armor hanging up in
every gentleman or burgher's house (he would to his dying day),
which had been worn and used by the generation before him. Al-
lowing, as we must, in every human being for the reverence for
early impressions, I think his mind would have pictured to him
simply the Elizabethan and James I.'s armor, which he saw hang-
ing in all noble houses, and in which he may have, as a boy, seen
gentlemen joust, for tilting was not extinct in his boyhood. As
for this co-existing with slop breeches (what we now call knicker-
bockers are nothing else), I think you will find, as now, that
country fashions changed slowlier than town. The puffed trunk-
hose of 1580-1600 co-existed with the finest cap-a-pied armor of
proof. They gradually in the country, where they were ill made,
became slops, i. e., knickerbockers. By that time almost loose and
short cavalier breeks had superseded them in the court but what
matter? The change is far less than that during 1815-1855. The
anachronism of putting complete armor by the side of one drest
as Christian is in the frontispiece of the original edition of the
' Pilgrim's Progress' is far less than putting you by the side of a
Life-Guard's officer in 1855 ; far less, again, than putting a clod
of my parish, drest as he would have been in A. D. noo, in smock
frock and leather gaiters, by the side of you or me. Therefore
use without fear the beautiful armor of the later years of P^lizabeth
and the beginning of James I., and all will be right, and shock
nobody. As for shields, I should use the same time. Shields
were common among serving men in James I. There are several
in the Tower, fitted with a pistol to be fired from the inside, and a
long spike. All are round. I believe that ' sword and buckler
play' was a common thing among the country folk in Bunyan's
time. Give your man, therefore, a circular shield, such as he
would have seen in his boyhood, or even later, among the retainers
of noble houses. As for the cruelties practised on Faithful, for
the sake of humanity don't talk of that. The Puritans were very
cruel in the North American colonies ; horribly cruel, though no-
where else. But in Bunyan's time the pages of Morland, and
others, show us that in Piedmont, not to mention the Thirty
Years' War in Germany, horrors were being transacted which no
pen can describe nor pencil draw. Dear old Oliver Cromwell
stopped them in Piedmont, when he told the Pope that unless they
were stopped English cannon should be heard at the gates of the
Revivals and Revivalists. 299
Vatican. But no cruelty to man or woman that you dare draw
can equal what was going on on the Continent from Papist to
Protestant during Runyan's lifetime.
" I have now told you all I can. I am very unwell, and forbid
to work. Therefore I cannot tell you more, but what I send I
send with all good wishes to any man who will be true to art and
to his author."
TO LORD ROBERT MONTAGU.
EVERSLEY, y/K 7, 1859.
" As to revivals I don't wonder at revivalists taking to drink.
Calvinism has become so unreal -so afraid of itself so apolo-
getic about its own peculiar doctrines, on which alone it stands,
that revivals now must be windy flarings up in the socket of the
dying candle. All revivals of religion which I ever read of, which
produced a permanent effect, owed their strength to the introduc-
tion of some new element, derived from the actual modern con-
sciousness, and explaining some fresh facts in or round man ; e.g.,
the revivals of the Franciscans and Dominicans those of the
Reformation and of Wesley.
" We may see such things ere we die. At present revivals are
mere threshings of the old chaff, to see if a grain of corn be still
there."
TO , ESQ.
EVERSLEY, March 16, 1859.
" I wish you would give me the chapter and page in which Swe-
denborg handles your text (Matt. xxii. 24-28). There are many
noble and beautiful things in that text-book of his, and I should
like to see what he makes of so puzzling a passage. It seems to
me that we must look at it from the stand-point of the Sadducees,
and therefore of our Lord as condescending to them. It is a
hideous case in itself. .... I conceive the Jews had no
higher notion than this of the relation of the sexes. Perhaps no
eastern people ever had. The conception of a love-match belongs
to our Teutonic race, and was our heritage (so Tacitus says with
awe and astonishment) when we were heathens in the German
forests. You will find nothing of it in Scripture, after the first
chapter of Genesis, save a glimpse thereof (but only a glimpse) in
St. Paul's Epistle to the Ephesians. To me, who believe the
Gospel of St. John, and believe therefore that Jesus Christ, the
Word of God, was the light and life of my German forefathers,
as well as of the Jews, there is nothing strange in this. I only
say, Christ has taught us something about wedlock, which He did
not teach the Jews ; that He taught it is proved by its fruits, for
300 Charles Kings ley.
what has produced more of nobleness, more of practical good, in
the human race, than the chivalrous idea of wedlock, which our
Teutonic race holds, and which the Romance or Popish races of
Europe have never to this day grasped with any firm hold ?
Therefore all I can say about the text is ... (about mar-
riage in the world to come) that it has nought to do with me and
my wife. I know that if immortality is to include in my case
identity of person, I shall feel to her for ever what I feel now.
That feeling may be developed in ways which I do not expect ; it
may have provided for it forms of expression very different from
any which are among the holiest sacraments of life ; of that I take
no care. The union I believe to be as eternal as my own soul.
I have no rule to say in what other pairs of lovers it may or may
not be eternal. I leave all in the hands of a good God ; and can
so far trust His Son Jesus Christ our Lord, as to be sure that
He knew the best method of protesting against the old Jewish
error (which Popish casuists still formally assert) that the first end
of marriage is the procreation of children, and thereby laid the
true foundation for the emancipation of woman.
" Let neither Swedenborg, nor any other man, argue you out of
the scientific canon, that to understand the spirit of Scripture, or
any other words, you must first understand the letter. If the spirit
is to be found anywhere, it is to be found by putting yourself in the
place of the listeners, and seeing what the words would have meant
to them. Then take that meaning as an instance (possibly a lower
one) of an universal spiritual law, true for all men, and may God
give you wisdom for the process of induction by which that law is
to be discovered."
The next letter, on the Eternity of Marriage, written some years
before, may fitly come in here with scattered extracts on the same
subject.
" . . . In heaven they neither marry nor are given in mar-
riage, but are as the angels of God ! And how are the angels of
God in heaven ? Is there no love among them ? If the law winch
makes two beings unite themselves, and crave to unite themselves",
in body, soul, and spirit, be the law of earth of pure humanity
if, so far from being established by the Fall, this law has been the
one from which the Fall has made mankind deflect most in every
possible way ; if the restoration of purity and the restoration of
this law are synonymous; if love be of the Spirit the vastest and
simplest exercise of will of which we can conceive then why
should not this law hold in the spiritual world as well as in the
natural ? In heaven they neither marry nor are given in marriage ;
but is not marriage the mere approximation to a unity which shall
Eternity of Marriage. 301
be perfect in heaven ? Read what Milton says of angels' love in
Books VI. and VII. and take comfort. f What if many have been
alone on earth ? may they not find their kindred spirit in heaven,
and be united to it by a tie still deeper than marriage ? And shall
we not be re-united in heaven by that still deeper tie ?j Surely on
earth God has loved, Christ the Lord has loved some more than
others why should we not do the same in heaven, and yet love
all? Here the natural body can but strive to express its love
its desire of union. Will not one of the properties of the spiritual
body be, that it will be able to express that which the natural body
only tries to express ? Is this a sensual view of heaven ? then are
the two last chapters of the Revelation most sensual. They tell,
not only of the perfection of humanity, with all its joys and wishes
and properties, but of matter ! They tell of trees, and fruit, and
rivers of gold and gems, and all beautiful and glorious material
things. Isaiah tells of beasts and birds and little children in that
new earth. Who shall say that the number of living beings is filled
up ? Why is heaven to be one vast lazy retrospect ? Why is not
eternity to have action and change, yet both, like God's, compati-
ble with rest and immutability ? This earth is but one minor planet
of a minor system : are there no more worlds ? Will there not be
incident and action springing from these when the fate of this world
is decided? Has the Evil Spirit touched this alone? Is it not
self-conceit which makes us think the redemption of this earth the
one event of eternity? The same feeling (sensuality, which is self-
love) prompted men of old to fancy that this globe was the centre
of the universe.
"These are matters too high for us, therefore we will leave them
alone ; but is flatly denying their existence and possibility leaving
them alone ? No ! it is intruding into them more conceitedly,
insolently, and sensually than speculating on them by the carnal
understanding like the Mystics, Platonists. and Gnostics. Calvin
was a more conceited mystic than Henry More. It is more humble,
more rational, to believe the possibility of all things than to doubt
the possibility of one thing. Reason is the deadly fire, not only of
mysticism and credulity, but ot unbelief and bigotry !
" And what if earthly love seems so delicious that all change in
it would seem a change for the worse ? Shall we repine ? What
does reason (and faith, which is reason exercised on the invisible)
require of us, but to conclude that, if there is change, there will be
something better there? Here are t\vo truths
" i st. Body is that which expresses the spirit to which it is joined ;
therefore, the more perfectly spiritual the body, the better it will
express the spirit joined to it.
" 2nd. The expression of love produces happiness : therefore,
the more perfect the expression the greater the happiness ! And,
therefore, bliss greater than any we can know here awaits us in
302 Charles Kings ley.
heaven. And does not the course of nature point to this? What
else is the meaning of the gradual increase of love on earth ? What
else is the meaning of old age ? when the bodily powers die, while
the love increases. What does that point to, but to a restoration
of the body when mortality is swallowed up of life ? Is not that
mortality of the body sent us mercifully by God, to teach us that
our love is spiritual, and therefore will be able to express itself in any
state of existence ? to wean our hearts that we may learn to look
for more perfect bliss in the perfect body ? . . Do not
these thoughts take away from all earthly bliss the poisoning
thought, ' all this must end ? ' Ay, end ! but only end so gradually
that we shall not miss it, and the less perfect union on earth shall
be replaced in heaven by perfect and spiritual bliss and union, in-
conceivable because perfect !
'' Do I undervalue earthly bliss ? No ! I enhance it when I
make it the sacrament of a higher union ! Will not these thoughts
give more exquisite delight, will it not tear off the thorn from every
rose and sweeten every nectar cup to perfect security of blessed-
ness, in this life, to feel that there is more in store for us that all
expressions of love here are but dim shadows of a union which shall
be perfect, if we will but work here, so as to work out our salva-
tion !
i " My views of second marriage are peculiar. I consider that it
is allowed for the hardness of men's hearts, but from the beginning
it was not so, and will not be so, some day, when the might of love
becomes generally appreciated ! perhaps that will never be, till the
earth is renewed." )
CHAPTER XX.
1860.
AGED 41.
Professorship of Modern History Death of his Father and of Mrs. Anthony
Froude Planting the Churchyard Visit to Ireland First Salmon killed
Wet Summer Sermon on Weather Letter from Sir Charles Lyell Corre-
spondence Residence in Cambridge Inaugural Lecture in the Senate House
Visits to Barton Hall Letter from Sir Charles Bunbury.
THE Regius professorship of Modern History at Cambridge had
not been filled up since the resignation of Sir James Stephen, and
some of Mr. Kingsley's friends wished to see him in the vacant
chair. It was mentioned to Lord Palmerston, then Prime Minister.
On the Qth of May he received a letter from Lord Palmerston ask-
ing him if he was willing to undertake the duties of the post ; he
accepted with extreme diffidence, and went up to the University in
the spring to take his M.A. degree, which he had not been able to
afford as yet. Dr. Whewell, who was then Master of Trinity, re-
ceived him most kindly. Having been one of those who had dis-
approved most emphatically of "Alton Locke" when it was first
published, his generosity on this occasion, and his steady friendship
from that time up to the date of his own death in 1866, laid the
new Professor under a deep debt of gratitude. The feelings with
which he re-visited Cambridge are told in a letter to his wife from
Trinity Lodge.
TRINITY, CAMBRIDGE, May 22, 1860.
". . . It is like a dream. Most beautiful and London
buildings having been the only ones I have seen for years, I am
struck with the sharpness and richness of the stone work, and the
exquisite clearness of the atmosphere. My windows look into
Trinity Walks the finest green walks in England, now full of flags
and tents for a tulip show. I had a pleasant party of men to meet
me last night. After breakfast I go to Magdalene, then to the
Senate House ; after luncheon to this Mower show, then to dinner
in hall at Magdalene ; and back as early as I can All
304 Charles Kingsley.
this is so very awful and humbling to me. I cannot bear to think
of my own unworthiness "
His experience of life this year was new, varied, and often very
sad. His father, to whom he had ever been the most dutiful and
devoted son, died early in the winter, and from that hour till her
death in 1873, the care of his widowed mother was one of his first
and most nobly fulfilled duties. He writes to his old college friend,
the Rev. James Montagu, from Chelsea rectory in February :
" . . . Forgive me for my silence, for I and my brothers are
now wearily watching my father's death-bed long and lingering.
Miserable to see life prolonged when all that makes it worth having
(physically) is gone, and never to know from day to day whether
the end is to come in six hours or six weeks. But he is all right
and safe, and death for him would be a pure and simple blessing.
" James Montagu, never pray for a long life. Better die in the
flower of one's age, than go through what I have seen him go
through in the last few days. I shall come to you at Shoeburyness ;
but when, God knows."
The epitaph he wrote over his father's grave in Brompton
Cemetery speaks his appreciation of that father.
" Here lies
All that was mortal
of
CHARLES KINGSLEY,
Formerly of Battramsley House, in the New Forest, Hants,
And lately of St. Luke's Rectory, Chelsea.
Endowed by God with many noble gifts of mind and body,
He preserved through all vicissitudes of fortune
A loving heart and stainless honour ;
And having won in all his various Cures
The respect and affection of his people,
And ruled the Parish of Chelsea well and wisely
For more than twenty years,
He died peacefully in the fear of God and in the faith of Christ
On the agth of February, 1 860,
Aged 78 years,
With many friends, and not an enemy on earth ;
Leaving to his children as a precious heritage
The example of a Gentleman and a Christian."
To Mr. Maurice he writes
The Eversley Churchyard. 305
CHELSEA, March, 1860.
" I have been so hunted backwards and forwards to Eversley
and hither, upon trying business at both places, that I have not had
time to thank you for your kind and comforting letter. My poor
dear mother broke down frightfully for a day or two after the fune-
ral ; but the necessity of exertion is keeping her up now. - is
here, as a ministering angel, doing everything for her, and we hope
in a week or two to get her down to her quiet little cottage at
Eversley, to end her days with us. Ah, Mr. Maurice, such times
as these bring conviction of sin with them. How every wrong
word and deed toward that good old man, and every sorrow I
caused him, rise up in judgment against one, and how one feels
that right doing does not atone for wrong doing. I have this com-
fort, that he died loving me, and satisfied with me and my small suc-
cess, and happy in his children, as he said again and again. But if
death at least the death of a rational human being be not an
ugly damnable solecism, even in a good old age, then I know not
what is. I shall see and hear you, please God, Sunday afternoon.
Remember me."
He was called away from Chelsea to be present at the enlarge-
ment and consecration of his churchyard at Eversley, and to meet
his bishop (Dr. Sumner), whose coming, as he had never been in
Eversley before, was a great event. The new ground gave the
Rector the opportunity of planting the whole with evergreens, for
it had long been his wish to make his churchyard an arboretum,
and gradually to gather together rare shrubs and trees, so that it
should be truly a Gottesacker in a double sense. He writes to
his wife, then at Chelsea :
EVERSLEY, March 10.
". . . I can understand your being unhappy leaving us and this
delicious place again. It does look too blessed for a man to spend
his life in. I have been making it blessed-er in the last thirty hours,
with a good will ; for I and B. (his churchwarden) have been work-
ing with our own hands, as hard as the four men we have got on.
We have planted all the shrubs in the churchyard. \Ve have grav-
elled the new path with fine gravel, and edged it with turf; we
have levelled, delved, planned, and plotted ; and pressed into the
service that most cockney of good fellows , making him work
like a horse, in carrying water. M. is trimming up unsightly
graves, and we shall be all right and ready for the Bishop by
Monday
" Altogether I am delighted at the result and feel better, thanks
to two days' hard work with pick and spade, than 1 have done for
2O
306 Charles Kings ley.
a fortnight. So never mind about me. . . . But I cannot bear
working and planning at improvements without you ; it seems but
half a life ; and I am leaving everything I can (considering the
bishop on Monday) to be done after you come back. Oh ! when
shall we settle down here in peace and see the spring come on ?
Patience, though. It wants three weeks to spring, and we may, by
God's blessing, get back here in time to see the spring unfold
around us, and all mend and thrive. After all, how few troubles
we have ! for God gives with one hand, if He takes away with the
other I found a new competitor for the corner of the
new ground, just under our great fir tree, which I had always
marked out for you and me, in dear old Bannister (his churchwar-
den, a farmer), who had been telling M. that he wanted to be
buried close to me. So I have kept a corner for ourselves ; and
then he comes at our feet, and by our side insists on lying.
Be it so. If we could see the children grown up, and the History *
written, what do I need, or you either below ? "
The vacant space by the side of his own proposed grave was
soon to have a tenant he little dreamt of, for in the spring an-
other heavy sorrow came and one to whom he had been more
than a brother in some of the most important circumstances of her
life for the last sixteen years, his wife's sister, Charlotte, wife of
Anthony Froude, was laid there under the shade of the fir trees
she loved so well. Her grave was to him during the remainder of
his own life a sacred spot, where he would go almost daily to
commune in spirit with the dead, where flowers were always kept
blooming, and where on the Sunday morning he would himself su-
perintend the decorations the cross and wreaths of choice flowers
placed by loving hands upon it.
Death was very busy that year among those he loved, and before
twelve months were over three of those who stood around that grave,
a brother, a nephew, and a friend, John Ashley Warre, Charles
Grenfell, and Mr. John Parker, were all called away into the un-
seen world.
The latter, publisher, of West Strand, London, who had been
fellow student with Charles Kingsley, at King's College, London,
and with whom he had renewed his old intimacy at the publication
of the " Saint's Tragedy," was a constant visitor at the Rectory.
* Before his appointment at Cambridge he had begun a " School History of
England," of which only the three first chapters were written.
The Future. 307
At Mr. Parker's house in London he had met the very best liter-
ary society whenever he had an evening to spare away from home,
and his death made a great gap in the knot of remarkable men who
had gathered round him. In a letter to one of these, Mr. Skel-
ton, Mr. Kingsley thus speaks of him :
" I trust if you come to London you will take courage to come
forty miles further to Eversley. You will meet there, not only for
your own sake but for John Parker's, a most cordial welcome.
Before our window lies the grave of one whom he adored, my
wife's favorite sister. He was at her funeral. The next funeral
which her widowed husband and I attended was his : Froude
nursed him like a brother till the moment of death. His was
a great soul in a pigmy body ; and those who know how I loved
him, know what a calumny it is to say that I preach ' muscular
Christianity.' "
TO JOHN BULLAR, ESQ.
EVERSLEY, 1860.
" I am getting all right now, by dint of much riding with my
boy, who is home for Easter. Riding has a specific effect on me,
both on body and mind, and I hardly know how I should keep
well without it. I hope you have not suffered, like me, with this
gale. Two of the prettiest trees on my lawn (and I have some
very pretty ones) came down with a crash this morning, and I have
had the melancholy pleasure and exercise of dismembering ancient
friends. When spring is coming, I cannot guess. My hope is that
this gale will 'blow the weather out,' as sailors say; and that we
shall have a sudden turn to thunder, heat, and rain. I have seen
this happen several times, just at this season.
" 1 am utterly astonished at your courage in letting your wife go
to Egypt. I have just let mine go to Devonshire without me,
to nurse a sick sister, and I feel like a cat without its skin."
After he had taken his M.A. degree he writes from the north to
his wife
" I have been thinking and praying a good deal over my future
life. A new era has opened for me : I feel much older, anxious,
and full of responsibility ; but more cheerful and settled than I
have done for a long time. All that book writing and struggling
is over, and a settled position and work is before me. Would that
it were done, the children settled in life, and kindly death near to
set one off again with a new start somewhere else. 1 should like
the only epitaph on our tomb to be Thekla's :
" ' We have lived and loved,
We live and love.' "
308 Charles Kingsley.
No book was written this year, his spare time being given to the
preparation of his Inaugural Lecture at Cambridge, and the course
of Lectures which was to follow it. By command of the Prince
Consort, he preached the annual sermon for the Trinity House, of
which H.R. H. was then Master. He preached also at Whitehall,
Windsor Castle, and St. James's. He was made chaplain to the
Civil Service Volunteers ; he lectured at Warminster and Bury St.
Edmund's. A few weeks' rest in Ireland with Mr. Froude, helped
him greatly in preparing for his career in Cambridge, and at Mark-
ree Castle he killed his first salmon, a new and long coveted
experience in life.
MARKREE CASTLE, SLIGO, July 4, 1860.
" .... I have done the deed at last killed a real actual
live salmon, over five pounds weight, and lost a whopper from
light hooking. Here they are by hundreds, and just as easy to
catch as trout ; and if the wind would get out of the north, I could
catch fifty pounds of them in a day. This place is full of glory
very lovely, and well kept up.
" But I am haunted by the human chimpanzees I saw along that
hundred miles of horrible country. I don't believe they are our
fault. I believe there are not only many more of them than of
old, but that they are happier, better, more comfortably fed and
lodged under our rule than they ever were. But to see white
chimpanzees is dreadful ; if they were black, one would not feel it
so much, but their skins, except where tanned by exposure, are as
white as ours. Tell Rose I will get her plants. 1 have got the
great Butterwort already; very fine. . . ."
5-
" I had magnificent sport this morning five salmon killed (big-
gest, seven pounds), and another huge fellow ran right away to sea,
carrying me after him waist deep in water, and was lost, after
running 200 yards, by fouling a ship's hawser ! There is nothing
like it. The excitement is maddening, and the exertion very
severe. I am going to sleep for two hours, having been up at
four ..... "
The summer of 1860 was a very wet one. Rain fell almost in-
cessantly for three months. The farmers were frightened, and the
clergy all over the country began to use the prayer against rain.
The cholera had long been threatening England, and Mr. Kings-
ley's knowledge of physical and sanitary science had told him how
beneficial this heavy rain was a gift from God at that particular
Sir Charles Lyell and the Rain Question. 309
moment to ward off the enemy which was at hand, by cleansing
drains and sweeping away refuse, and giving the poor an abundance
of sweet clean water. It was a notable fact that while ignorant
people were crying out against the rain, the chemists complained
that there was so little illness they had nothing to do, and the
medical men pronounced it to be a very healthy season. The
parishioners of Eversley, however, remonstrated with him for not
using the prayer for fine weather, and he answered them by preach-
ing a sermon on Matth. vii. 9-11, which provoked much discussion,
and was published under the title of " Why should we pray for fair
weather ? "
On this subject Sir Charles Lyell writes to Mr. Kingsley :
LONDON, September 23,- 1860.
" On my return from the Continent, I find here your excellent
sermon on the prayer for rain, sent to me, I presume, by your di-
rection, and for which 1 return you many thanks. Two weeks
ago, I happened to remark to a stranger, who was sitting next me
at a table (f hdte at Rudoldstadt in Thuringia, that I feared the
rains must have been doing a great deal of mischief. He turned
out to be a scientific man from Berlin, and replied, ' 1 should think
they were much needed to replenish the springs, after three years
of drought.'
" I immediately felt that I had made an idle and thoughtless
speech. Some thirty years ago 1 was told at Bonn of two proces-
sions of peasants, who had climbed to the top of the Peter's Berg,
one composed of vine-dressers, who were intending to return
thanks for sunshine, and pray for its continuance : the others from
a corn district, wanting the drought to cease and the rain to fall.
Each were eager to get possession of the shrine of St. Peter's
Chapel before the other, to secure the saint's good offices, so they
came to blows with fists and sticks, much to the amusement of the
Protestant heretics at Bonn, who, I hope, did not by such prayers
as you allude to, commit the same solecism, occasionally, only less
coarsely carried out into action."
In the following winter Mr. Kingsley writes from Eversley to Sir
Charles Bunbury on the same topic.
" The frost here is intense and continuous. The result, the per-
fect health of everybody. Of course, sufficient food and firing are
required. But much that I have seen of late years (and this frost
inter alia) proves to me that the most ' genial ' weather is not the
healthiest.
3 TO Charles Kings ley.
" I have been called names, as though I had been a really selfish
and cruel man, for a foolish ' Ode to the North-East Wind.' If my
cockney critics had been country parsons, they would have been
more merciful, when they saw me, as I have been more than once,
utterly ill from attending increasing sick cases during a soft south-
west November of rain and roses ; and then, released by a hard
frost, my visits stopped in a few days by the joyful answer, ' Thank
God, we are getting all well now, in this beautiful seasonable
weather.' ' Seasonable weather ' that expression has taught me
much. In the heart of the English laborer and fanner, unsophisti-
cated by any belief that the Virgin Mary or the saints can coax the
Higher Powers into sending them a shower or a sunbeam, if they
be sufficiently coaxed and flattered themselves into their hearts
and minds has sunk a deep belief that God is just and wise, and
orders all things well, according to a 'law which cannot be broken.'
A certain sermon of mine about the rains, which shocked the clergy
of all denominations, pleased deeply, thank God, my own laborers
and farmers. They first thanked me heartily for it, and begged for
copies of it. I then began to see (what I ought to have seen long
before) that the belief in a good and just God is the foundation, if
not of a scientific habit of mind, still of a habit of mind into which
science can fall, and seed, and bring forth fruit in good ground. I
learnt from that to solve a puzzle which had long disturbed me
why the French philosophers of the last century, denying and
scoffing at much which I hold true and dear, had still been not only
men of science, but men who did good work in their time. They
believed, even Voltaire, in a good God at least they said, ' If God
is at all, He is good, just, and wise.' That thought enabled them
at once to face scientific fact, and to testify against cruelty, oppres-
sion, ignorance, and all the works of darkness wherever they found
them. And so I learnt to thank God for men who seemed not to
believe in Him, and to value more and more the moral instincts of
men, as a deeper and more practical theology than their dogmas
about God. Excuse this tirade. But you are one of the few per-
sons to whom I can speak my whole heart. .
" Meanwhile, you would exceedingly oblige me by telling me
where the geology of Palestine is described. I cannot get trust-
worthy information about it. Lynch and the man who went some
years ago to look for coal, tell me very little ; and though Lord
Lindsay has some hints about the volcanic appearances north of
the Lake Tiberias, he tells one nothing about the age and super-
position of the beds. It seems strange that so little should be
known about one of the most remarkable volcanic districts of the
world. The age of the normal limestones ; of the bitumen beds of
the Dead Sea ; of the Edomite mountains ; and of the recent (?)
volcanic rocks of the north, all ought to be known by some one or
other. But most who have gone have wasted their time in looking
Inaugural Lecture at Cambridge. 3 1 1
for the ' Cities of the Plain, 1 instead of collecting sound physical
facts. Some have been afraid, it seemed to me, of looking at the
physical facts too closely, for fear of coming to some ' rationalist '
conclusion."
in the autumn the new Professor went up to Cambridge. " It is
with a feeling of awe, almost of fear, that I find myself in such a
place on such an errand," he said when he delivered his Inaugural
Lecture * in the crowded Senate House on the i2th of November.
He had an enthusiastic welcome from the undergraduates, and
the lecture, which was published under the title of "The Limits of
Exact Science applied to History," was listened to with profound
attention, and most kindly received by all ranks in the university.
He now settled in Cambridge with his family till Christinas, and
began his first course of lectures, eventually published as "The
Roman and the Teuton," to a class of upwards of one hundred
undergraduates, and during the nine years of his professorship his
class was one of the best attended in the university. His residence
in Cambridge enabled him to cultivate one of the most valuable
friendships of his life, that of Sir Charles Fox Bunbury, of Barton
Hall, Suffolk, at whose house, rich in itself with works of art, and
with a museum and arboretum, in which he delighted, he had the
rare pleasure of meeting, year by year, men distinguished in science,
in literature, and in society. There he first met Sir Charles Lyell,
Sir Edmund Head, Dr. Joseph Hooker, and Sir Louis Mallet, and
renewed his friendship with Lord Arthur Harvey (now Bishop of
Bath and Wells), and his happy days at Barton, which became a
second home to himself and his family, were a constant refresh-
ment to his spirit.
" I cannot understand," he says, with characteristic modesty, in
a letter to Sir Charles, after one of his first visits to him, "the kind
words which you use about my visit to you. That you should
speak so kindly of a poor stammering superficial person like me,
shows me only that there are more good and kind and tolerant
people in the world than I looked for, and I knew there were
many . . . ."
The friendship he so dearly prized was mutual. But Sir Charles's
* The Inaugural Lecture is now incorporated with the new edition of the
"Roman and the Teuton," with a preface by Max Miiller. (Macmillan.)
312 Charles Kingsley.
generous appreciation must be told in his own words in a letter to
Mrs. Kingsley.
BARTON, October 18, 1875.
" I have lost in him," he says, "an invaluable friend ; one whom
for many years past I have truly loved and revered, and who has
left a blank, that, for me, can never be filled up. I scarcely ever
was in his company without learning something from him. Much
as I like and admire his writings to many of which I return again
and again with fresh pleasure his conversation was much more
delightful than his books. I have very seldom, if ever, known a
man whose talk was so charming, so rich in matter, so various,
so easy and unassuming, so instructive and so free from dogmatism.
Sensibility, humor, wisdom, were most happily blended in it. Many
a long conversation I have enjoyed with him, and the remembrance
of them will always be precious to me ; but I continually regret
that my memory could not retain more of what I heard from him.
Our talk often turned upon subjects of natural science, in which
he delighted, and of which his knowledge was extensive and sound.
He more than once said to me that, if circumstances had allowed
him leisure, botany, and natural history in general, would have
been his favorite studies. We passed many hours (delightful to
me) in examining together my botanical collections, and discussing
the questions which they suggested. His remarks were always
instructive and valuable. He had not, indeed, had leisure to
prosecute those elaborate researches, or to acquire that vast knowl-
edge of details, which belong to the great masters of science ;
but his knowledge was by no means superficial. He had mastered
the leading principles and great outlines of scientific natural his-
tory, in its principal branches ; and the large generalizations in
which he delighted, were based on a well-directed study of facts,
both in books and in nature.
" He had the true naturalist's eye for quick and acute observa-
tion ; the philosopher's love of large views and general principles;
the poet's faculty of throwing a glow of light upon the objects
which he wished to illustrate. This combination of powers gave
a peculiar charm to his descriptions of natural objects, as is well
exemplified in his West Indian book and in many parts of his
essays, especially in 'From Ocean to Sea,' 'My Winter Garden,'
and ' Chalk Stream Studies.' 1 think it a great loss to science that
he was not able to carry out a plan which, as he told me, he had
formed ; that of writing the Natural History of his own district,
the district of the Bagshot sands. He would have made of it a
work of remarkable interest.
"Another quality of Mr. Kingsley, by which I was particularly
struck in the course of our discussions on these subjects, was his
Mr. K ings ley s Modesty. 313
remarkable modesty, indeed humility. He never dogmatized ;
never put himself forward as an authority ; was always ready to
welcome any suggestion from a fellow-laborer ; and indeed always
seemed more anxious to learn than to teach. I have been tempted
to dwell, perhaps too long, on one aspect only of his character and
genius : but I believe you wish to have my impression of him in
this point of view. His higher qualities are indeed more generally
known, through his writings, and I will not attempt to expatiate on
a theme, to which more justice may be done by others. I can
safely say that he was one of the best men I have known ; his
conversation was not only agreeable, but had a constant tendency
to make one wiser and better ; and when it was directed to spe-
cially religious topics, his tone of feeling and thought appeared to
me both elevating and comforting. I shall ever feel grateful for
having been allowed to enjoy the friendship of such a man.
"Believe me,
" My Dear Mrs. Kingsley,
" Ever yours affectionately,
"CHARLES J. F. BUNBURY."
CHAPTER XXI.
18611862.
AGED 42-43.
Cambridge Lectures to the Prince of Wales Essays and Reviews Letters to
Dr. Stanley Bishop of Winchester Tracts for Priests and People Death of
the Prince Consort Letter to Sir C. Bunbury The Water-babies Installa-
tion Ode at Cambridge Visit to Scotland British Association Lord Dun-
dreary.
" THE longer I live, ihe more certain I am," said Sir T. Fovvell
Buxton, " that the great difference between men, the feeble and
the powerful, the great and the insignificant, is energy and invin-
cible determination a purpose once fixed, and then death or vic-
tory. That quality will do anything that can be done in this
world ; and no talents, no circumstances, no opportunities, will
make a two-legged creature a man without it."
It was this very invincible determination and energy which car-
ried Charles Kingsley through work, and sometimes a distracting
confusion of different works, and which preserved his often weary
body and exhausted brain from breaking down entirely : but more
than this, it was his child-like faith in God which kept him not only
free from the irritability so common to all highly-strung natures,
but cheerful and brave under every circumstance.
The weight of responsibility that pressed heavily on him during
this year was added to by the duty and honor of giving private lec-
tures to H.R.H. the Prince of Wales, who had just left Oxford,
and kept the^usual terms at Cambridge during 1861. On the 2nd
of January, Mr. Kingsley received through the Prince's tutor, Mr.
Herbert Fisher, a message from the Prince Consort on the subject
of his son's studies, informing him how they had been conducted at
Oxford how a special class had been formed there for instruction
in Modern History, which instruction had been carried up to the
reign of William III. what book had been used, &c., and request-
ing the Cambridge Professor to consult Dr. Whewell, then Master
of Trinity, as to the undergraduates who should attend with the
Prince. To this Mr. Kingsley replied :
Lectures to the Prince of Wales. 315
EvERSLEY RECTORY, January 2, 1871.
" Do me the kindness to inform the Prince Consort that h:s
wishes are, of course, commands to me.
" I shall have great pleasure in following out the excellent
method sketched for me in your letter, and in putting myself into
Dr. VVhewell's hands as to the formation of a special class for His
Royal Highness.
" Any information which you can give me I shall most thank-
fully accept and use. I put myself entirely into your hands, both
as the expounder of the Prince Consort's wishes, and as the Prince
of Wales' s tutor The responsibility is too solemn and too sudden
for me to act in any way upon my own private judgment in
the matter.
"The first question which I have to ask is up to what year in
the i8th century I ought to extend my lectures?"
The class was accordingly formed, and the names selected by
the Rev. W. Mathison, senior Tutor of Trinity, subject to Dr.
Whewell's approval, were sent in to the Professor.*
Early in February the Prince of Wales settled at Madingley, and
rode in three times a week to Mr. Kingsley's house, for lectures,
twice with the class, and every Saturday to go through a resume of
the week's work alone.
During the course of the academical year the Professor carried
the class up to the reign of George IV. ; and at the end of each
term he set questions for the Prince, which were always most satis-
factorily answered. Throughout this year the sense of responsi-
bility which would otherwise have been overpowering, was relieved
not only by the intense interest of the work, in which he was
allowed perfect freedom of speech, but by the attention, courtesy,
and intelligence of his Royal pupil, whose kindness to him then
and in after-life, made him not only H.R.H.'s loyal, but his most
attached servant.
But the year ended sadly, and his intercourse with the Prince of
Wales was brought to an abrupt termination by the death of the
* Mr. Lee Warner, of St. John's College, lately head of Rugby School. Mr.
Stuart, Rugby, of St. John's. Mr. Main, of St. John's, the best mathematL-i a
of his year, in his third year. Mr. Cay, of Cains College, a freshman, who \\\\
just obtained an open scholarship. Lord John Ilervey, Trinity. Hon. C.
Lyttleton, Trinity. Mr. Hamilton, Trinity. Mr. C. Wood, son of Right
Hon. Sir Charles Wood. Hon. Henry Strut t, Trinity. Mr. A. W. Klliott,
freshman of Trinity. And later in the vear, Mr. (ioorge Howard, of Trinity.
316 Charles Kings ley.
Prince Consort, which threw a gloom all over England, and was
felt as a deep personal grief, as well as a national loss, by every one
who had had the privilege of coming in personal contact with His
Royal Highness.
Mr. Kingsley's professional duties with the Prince of Wales
obliged him to keep all the terms at Cambridge, only returning to
Eversley for the long vacation ; and as his curate was in deacon's
orders, his friend, the Rev. Septimus Hansard (now Rector of
Bethnal Green), kindly consented to live at the Rectory during his
absence, to take the lead in the Sunday services, and superintend
the parish work. His able assistance relieved the Rector's anxiety,
while it strengthened their mutual friendship.
About this period " Essays and Reviews " came out, and the
following letter shows Mr. Kingsley's impression of the attitude of
Cambridge at the publication :
TO REV. ARTHUR PENRHYN STANLEY.
CAMBRIDGE, February 19, 1861.
" Cambridge lies in magnificent repose, and shaking lazy ears
stares at her more nervous elder sister and asks what it is all
about.
"She will not persecute the authors of the Essays ; and what is
more, any scraps of the Simeonite party, now moribund here, who
try to get up a persecution, will be let alone and left to persecute
on their own hook. That is the Cambridge danger. Cool indif-
ferentism : not to the doctrines, but to the means of fighting for
them.
" The atmosphere is the most liberal (save ' Bohemia') which I
ever lived in. And it is a liberality (not like that of Bohemia, of
want of principle or creed), but of real scholarly largeness and
lovingness between men who disagree. We ' live and let live ' here,
1 find, to my delight. But with that will come the feeling in which,
I confess, 1 share what the plague had these men to do$ starting
a guerilla raid into the enemy's country, on their own responsibility ?
We are no more answerable for them, than for Garibaldi. If they
fail, they must pay the penalty. They did not ask us they called
no synod of the Broad Church consulted no mass of scholars, as
to what could or could not be done just now. They go and levy
war on their own account, and each man on his own account.
Each one of us might make himself responsible for one essay. But
being published together, one does become responsible for all or
none ; and that I won't be, nor any man in Cambridge. I would
not even be responsible for * * * 's Article, much as 1 trust and
Cambridge and the Essays. 317
respect him. The world, mind, does take one as all, and all as one.
The ' Essays and Reviews ' are one book in the mind of the world,
and it" they were not meant to be, they should not have been pub-
lished in one volume. This is what Cambridge (and I) feel, as far
as I can ascertain.
" Next. There is little or nothing, says Cambridge, in that book
which we have not all of us been through already. Doubts, denials,
destructions we have faced them till we are tired of them. But
we have faced them in silence, hoping to find a positive solution.
Here comes a book which states- all the old doubts and difficulties,
and gives us nothing instead. Here are men still pulling down,
with far weaker hands than the Germans, from whom they borrow,
and building up nothing instead. So we will preserve a stoic calm.
We wish them all well. We will see fair play for them, according
to the forms of English law and public opinion. But they must
fight their own battle. We cannot be responsible for other men's
campaigns.
"This,"! think, is the feeling of Cambridge. I do not expect,
from what I hear, that you will have any manifesto against Essays
and Reviews. * * * of * * * and * * * may get up something, and
cowards and trimmers may sign it, for fear of committing them-
selves ; but I think they will win little but wind by their movement,
and that ' they may bottle if it will help them.'
TO THE LORD BISHOP OF WINCHESTER,
(DR. SUMNER.)
EVERSLEY, 1 86 1.
" MY LORD,
" I have received a circular from the venerable the arch-
deacon, asking me to sign an address to your lordship in reference
to the ' Essays and Reviews,' of miserable notoriety. That address
J declined to sign upon a question of archidiaconal jurisdiction.
T begged that the letter might be sent to the archdeacon. I
hope that your lordship will do me tiie honor of perusing it, if it be
sent on to you. But in justice to your lordship, and to myself, I
must tell you what 1 thought myself bound not to tell the arch-
deacon in his official capacity. I should be sorry that von should
think that I agreed with a book whose publication I have deeply
deplored, and have more reason to deplore every day.
'* I deplore it first, for itself: second, for the storm which I saw
it would raise. For itself. With the exception of Dr. Temple's
essay, in which I can see nothing heterodox, be his theory right or
wrong, all the essays deny but do not affirm.
" The doubts and puzzles which they raise afresh have passed
through the mind of every thinking man in the last twenty-five years,
318 Charles Kings ley.
and it pained me much to see them re-stated in one or two cases
very offensively without any help to a practical solution. I con-
fess to having thrust the book away in disgust, as saying once again,
very weakly, what 1 had long put out of sight and mind, in the
practical realities of parish work. If I may intrude my own doings
on your lordship, when my new curate came back to me after ordi-
nation, having heard your lordship's allusion to these 'Essays and
Reviews,' and asked me whether he should read them, I told him
' By no means. They will disturb your mind with questions which
you are too young to solve. Stick to the old truths and the old
paths, and learn their divineness by sick-beds and in every-day
work, and do not darken your mind with intellectual puzzles, which
may breed disbelief, but can never breed vital religion, or practical
usefulness.' As for my own opinions, my lord, they are sufficiently
known. The volumes of sermons which I have published are, I
am sure, a sufficient guarantee to you as they are to the public,
that 1 keep to the orthodox faith, and the orthodox formulae, without
tormenting my soul, or my hearers, with fruitless argument on
things which we shall never know, save by taking our Bible in hand
like little children, and obeying it. Next, I deplore the publication
of these Essays from the storm which I saw they would raise. As
a fact, they are being sold now by hundreds, where one copy would
have been sold ; and therefore thousands of brains are being put
into an unwholesome ferment, instead of one here and there. The
effect at the Universities will be very bad ; for young men are only
too glad to fly off on intellectual disquisitions, from the plain
requirements of Christian faith and duty, and therefore I could
have wished that the book had been passed by in silence, as what
it is, a very weak and inconsiderable book. But it is too late.
That my curates, and my parish, shall be kept clear, if i can do it,
of all fruitless and unwholesome speculations, and taught to believe
in the plain doctrines of the Prayer-book and Articles, and act up
to them, I promise you with all my heart."
In the spring a set of "Tracts for Priests, and People " were
brought out under the superintendence of Mr. Maurice. Mr.
Kingsley was asked to write, but his time was absorbed with parish
work and Cambridge lectures.
The American war, which was occupying general attention,
decided the Professor to take the History of America as the sub-
ject of his lectures for 1862.
The correspondence of the year, of which little has been recov-
ered, closes with a letter to Sir Charles Bunbury, written on his
return to Eversley, in that time of general mourning in which all
England shared.
The American Question. 319
EVERSLEY, December 31, 1861.
"... As for the American question, on which you do me
the honor to ask my opinion, I have thought of nothing else for
some time ; for I cannot see how I can be a Professor of past
Modern History without the most careful study of the history which
is enacting itself around me. But 1 can come to no conclusion,
save that to which all England seems to have come that the war
will be a gain to us. So strongly do I feel the importance of this
crisis, that I mean to give as my public lectures, next October
term, the History of the American States ; and most thankful to you
should I be, if you could recommend me any books throwing light
on it, particularly on the little known period (strange to say), from
1815 to the present time.
" As for the death of the Prince Consort, I can say nothing.
Words fail me utterly. What little I could say, I put into a sermon
for my own parishioners, which I will send you if you will allow
me I need not say ho\v we regretted not being able
to accept your kind invitation. But the heavy work of last term,
and the frightful catastrophe [Prince Consort's death] with which
it ended, sent us all home to rest, if rest is possible, when, on
coming home, one finds fresh arrears of work waiting for one,
which ought to have been finished off months since. The feel-
ing of being always behind hand, do what one will, is second only
in torment to that of debt.
" I long to find myself once again talking over with you ' the
stones which tell no lies.' "
The opening of 1862 found him once more settled at Eversley,
and enjoying the return to parish work after the heavy duties
and responsibilities of such a year at Cambridge as coirld never
come again.
His mind was particularly vigorous this year, and the refresh-
ment of visits with his wife to the Grange in the winter, and to
Scotland in the summer, giving him change of thought and scene,
prepared him for returning to his professorial work in the
autumn, and to his controversy on the Cotton Famine with Lan-
cashire mill-owners and millionaires.
TO CAPTAIN ALSTON, R.N.
EVERSLEY, March 20, 1862.
"As for the Workmen's Club, Mrs. Kingsley has sent you a list
of books which she recommends. The best periodical for them is
certainly Norman McLeod's ' Good Words,' which is quite admira-
ble, and has now a very large circulation 70,000, 1 believe. I
320 Charles Kingsley.
do not think that I would give them Carlyle yet. If I did, it would
be ' Past and Present.' And yet, things have so mended since it
was written that that would be unfair. The ' French Revolution '
is the book, if they would only understand it.
" I am not the man to give you any practical suggestions as to
the working of such a club. But if when you come to London, you
choose call on my dear friend Tom Hughes (Tom Brown), he would
give you many admirable hints learnt from experience.
"I am truly thankful to hear that I have helped to make a
churchman of you. The longer I live, the more I find the Church
of England the most rational, liberal, and practical form which
Christianity has yet assumed ; and dread as much seeing it assimi-
lated to dissent, as to Popery. Strange to say, Thomas Carlyle
now says that the Church of England is the most rational thing he
sees now going, and that it is the duty of every wise man to support
it to the uttermost."
Sitting at breakfast at the rectory one spring morning this year,
the father was reminded of an old promise, " Rose, Maurice, and
Mary have got their book, and baby must have his." He made
no answer, but got up at once and went into his study, locking the
door. In half an hour he returned with the story of little Tom.
This was the first chapter of " The Water-babies," written off without
a correction. The rest of the book, which appeared monthly in
"Macmillan's Magazine," was composed with the same quickness
and ease as the first chapter if indeed what was so purely an inspi-
ration could be called composing, for the whole thing seemed to
flow naturally out of his brain and heart, lightening both of a
burden -without exhausting either; and the copy went up to the
printer's with scarcely a flaw. He was quite unprepared for the
sensation it would make.
Nothing helped the books and sermons more than the silence
and solitude of a few days' fishing. The Water-babies, especially,
have the freshness and fragrance of the sea breeze and the river-
side in almost every page.
In the summer the Duke of Devonshire was installed at Cam-
bridge as Chancellor of the University, of which he had been so
distinguished a member, taking the place of the lamented Prince
Consort; and the Professor of Modern History, as in duty bound,
wrote an installation ode, which, being set to music by Sir William
Sterndale Bennett, gave him the acquaintance and friendship of
one of the first English musicians.
Catching Salmon. 321
In August, with his wife and his eldest boy Maurice, he went to
Scotland for a month's holiday, whence he writes
TO HIS MOTHER.
MURTHLEY CASTLE, August, 1862.
" Here we are in this delicious place, full of beautiful walks and
plantations with Birnam Wood opposite my window as I write
only all the wood having gone to Dunsinane in Macbeth's time,
the hill alone is left We had reels last night, Lord
John Manners and Sir Hugh Cairns both dancing All
that is said of the grandeur of the Tay I quite agree in. I never
saw such a river, though there are very few salmon up. I got into
one huge fish yesterday ; but he shook his head and shook out the
hook very soon. Maurice caught a good sea trout of 2f Ibs., which
delighted him. Monday we start for inveraray, via Balloch, Loch
Lomond, and Tarbet."
INVERARAY CASTLE, August 21.
"The loveliest spot I ever saw large lawns and enormous tim-
ber on the shores of a salt-water loch, with moor and mountain
before and behind. I gat myself up this morning at four for sal-
mon, yesterday i could kill none ; water too low. To-day the first
cast I hooked a ten pounder, and the hook broke ! The river is
swarming ; they are flopping and smacking about the water every-
where ; but rh. dear ! why did Heaven make midges ? "
The visit to Inveraray was one of the bright memories and green
spots of his life, always looked back upon by himself and those who
were with him with gratitude, combining as it did not only beauti-
ful scenery, but intellectual, scientific, and spiritual communings
on the highest, holiest themes. Such holidays were few and far be-
tween in his life of labor, and when they came he could give him-
self up to them, " thanks," as he would say,
"to my blessed habit of intensity, which has been my greatest help
in life. 1 go at what I am about as it there was nothing else in the
world for the time being. That's the secret of all hard-working
men : but most of them can't carry it into their amusements.
Luckily for me, I can stop from all work, at short notice, and turn
head over heels in the sight of all creation for a spell."
The British Association met at Cambridge on the ist October.
It was the first he had ever attended. The Zoological and Geo-
logical sections were those which naturally attracted him, and the
21
322 Charles Kings ley.
acquaintances he made, the distinguished men he now met, (among
them, the lamented Beete Jukes, and Lucas Barrett, who was
drowned in the survey of the Jamaica coral reefs the next year,)
made this an era in his life, and gave a fresh impetus to his scien-
tific studies. While attending Section D, he was present at the
famous tournament between Professor Owen and Professor Hux-
ley on the Hippocampus question, which led to his writing a little
squib for circulation among his friends. As it will be new to many
it is given at length.
SPEECH OF LORD DUNDREARY IN SECTION D, ON FRIDAY LAST,
ON THE GREAT HIPPOCAMPUS QUESTION.
CAMBRIDGE, October, 1861.
"Mr. President and Gentlemen, I mean ladies and Mr. Presi-
dent, I am sure that all ladies and gentlemen will see the matter
just as I do ; and I am sure we're all very much obliged to these
scientific gentlemen for quarrelling no I don't mean that, that
wouldn't be charitable, and it's a sin to steal a pin : but I mean
for letting us hear them quarrel, and so eloquently, too ; though,
of course, we don't understand what is the matter, and which is in
the right ; but of course we were very much delighted; and, I may
say, quite interested, to find that we had all hippopotamuses in
our brains. Of course they're right, you know, because seeing' s
believing.
" Certainly, I never felt one in mine ; but perhaps it's dead, and
so didn't stir, and then of course, it don't count, you know. A dead
dog is as good as a live lion. Stop no. A live lion is as good
as a dead dog no, that won't do again. There's a mistake some-
where. What was I saying ? Oh, hippopotamuses. Well, I say,
perhaps mine's dead. They say hippopotamuses feed on water.
No, 1 don't think that, because teetotallers feed on water, and they
are always lean ; and the hippo's fat, at least in the Zoo. Live in
water, it must be ; and there's none in my brain. Tnere was when
1 was a baby, my aunt says ; but they tapped me ; so I suppose
t the hippopotamus died of drought. No stop. It wasn't a hip-
popotamus after all, it was hip hip not hip. hip, hurrah, you
know, that comes after dinner, and the section hasn't dined, at
least since last night, and the Cambridge wine is very good, I will
say that. No. 1 recollect now. Hippocampus it was. Hippo-
campus, a sea-horse ; 1 learnt that at Eton ; hippos, sea, and cam-
pus, a horse no campus a sea, and hippos, a horse, that's ri^ht.
Only campus ain't a sea, it's a field, I know that ; Campus Martins
I was swished for. that at Eton ought to be again, 1 believe, if
every dog had his day. But at least it's a sea-horse, 1 know that,
Lord Dundreary. 323
because I saw one alive at Malta with the regiment, and it rang a
bell. No ; it was a canary that rang a bell ; but this had a tail
like a monkey, and made a noise like a bell. I dare say you won't
believe me; but 'pon honor I'm speaking truth noblesse oblige,
you know ; and it hadn't been taught at all, and perhaps if it had it
wouldn't have learnt : but it did, and it was in a monkey's tail. No,
stop, it must have been in its head, because it was in its brain ; and
everyone has brains in his head, unless he's a skeleton ; and it
curled its tail round things like a monkey, that I know, for I saw it
with my own eyes. That was Professor Rolleston's theory, you
know. It was Professor Huxley said it was in his tail not Mr.
Huxley's, of course, but the ape's: only apes have no tails, so I
don't quite see that. And then the other gentleman who gut up
last, Mr. Flower, you know, he said that it was all over the ape,
everywhere. All over hippocampuses, from head to foot, poor
beast, like a dog all over ticks ! I wonder why they don't rub blue-
stone into the back of its neck, as one does to a pointer. Well,
then. Where was I? Oh! and Professor Owen said it wasn't in
apes at all : but only in the order bimana, that's you and me.
Well, he knows best. And they all know best too, for they are
monstrous clever fellows. So one must be right, and all the rest
wrong, or else one of them wrong, and all the rest right you see
that ? I wonder why they don't toss up about it. If they took a
half-crown now, or a shilling, or even a fourpenny-piece would do,
if they magnified it, and tost heads and tails, or Newmarket, if they
wanted to be quite sure, why then there couldn't be any dispute
among gentlemen after that, of course. Well, then, about men
being apes, I say, why shouldn't it be the other way, and the apes
be men? do you see? Because then they might have as many
hippocampuses in their brains as they liked, or hippopotamuses
either, indeed. 1 should be glad indeed if it was so. if it was only
for my aunt's sake ; for she says that her clergyman says, that if
anybody ever finds a hippopotamus in a monkey's head, nothing
will save her great, great, great I can't say how great, you see
it's awful to think of quite enormous grandfather from having been
a monkey too ; and then what is to become of her precious soul ?
So, for my aunt's sake, I should be very glad if it could be settled
that way, really ; and I am sure the scientific gentlemen will take
it into consideration, because they are gentlemen, as every one
knows, and would not hurt a lady's feelings. The man who would
strike a woman, you know everybody knows that, it's in Shake-
speare. And besides, the niggers say that monkeys are men, only
they won't work for fear of being made to talk ; no, won't talk for
fear of being made to work ; that's it (right for once, as I live !)
and put their hands over their eyes at night for fear of seeing the
old gentleman and I'm sure that's just like a reasonable creature,
1 used to when I was a little boy ; and you see the
324 Charles Kings ley.
lived among them for thousands of years, and are monstrous like
them, too, d'ye see, and so they must know best ; and then it
would be all right.
" Well, then, about a gulf. Professor Huxley says there's a gulf
between a man and an ape. I'm sure I'm glad of it, especially if
the ape bit; and Professor Owen says there ain't. What? am I
wrong, eh ? Of course. Yes beg a thousand pardons, really now.
Of course Professor Owen says there is, and Professor Huxley
says there ain't. Well, a fellow can't recollect everything. But I
say, if there's a gulf, the ape might get over it and bite one after
all. I know Quintus Curtius jumped over a gulf at Eton that is,
certainly, he jumped in : but that was his fault, you see : if he'd
put in more powder he might have cleared it, and then there would
have been no gulf between him and an ape. But that don't matter
so much, because Professor Huxley said the gulf was bridged over
by a structure. Now I am sure I don't wish to be personal, espe-
cially after the very handsome way in which Professor Huxley has
drunk all our healths. Stop no. It's we that ought to drink his
health, I'm sure, Highland honors and all ; but at the same time I
should have been obliged to him if he'd told us a little more about
this structure, especially considering what nasty mischievous things
apes are. Tore one of my coat tails off at the Zoological the other
day. He ought no, I don't say that, because it would seem like
dictation, I don't like that; never could do it at school wrote it
down all wrong got swished hate dictation : but I might humbly
express that Professor Huxley might have fold us a little, you see,
about that structure. Was it wood ? Was it iron ? Was it silver
and gold, like London Bridge when Lady Lee danced over it, be-
fore it was washed away by a man with a pipe in his mouth? No,
stop, I say That can't be. A man with a pipe in his mouth wash
away a bridge? Why a fellow can't work hard with a pipe in his
mouth everybody knows that much less wash away a whole
bridge. No, it's quite absurd quite. Only I say, I should like
to know something about this structure, if it was only to quiet my
aunt. And then, if Professor Huxley can see the structure, why
can't Professor Owen ? It can't be invisible, you know, unless it
was painted invisible green, like Ben Hall's new bridge at Chelsea:
only you can see that of course, for you have to pay now when
you go over, so I suppose the green ain't the right color. But
that's another reason why I want them to toss up toss up, you
see, whether they saw it or not, or which of them should see it, or
something of that kind, I'm sure that's the only way to settle ; and
oh, by-the-bye, as 1 said before only I didn't, but I ought to
have if either of the gentlemen havn't half-a-crown about them,
why a two-shilling-piece might do ; though I never carry them my-
self, for fear of giving one to a keeper; and then he sets you down
for a screw, you know. Because, you see, I see, I don't quite see,
A New Volume of Sermons. 325
and no offence to honorable members learned and eloquent
gentlemen, 1 mean; and though I don't wish to dictate, I don't
quite think ladies and gentlemen quite see either. You see that? "
(The noble lord, who had expressed so acurately the general
sense of the meeting, sat down amid loud applause.)
The cotton famine in the North, which occurred now, roused
many thoughts and feelings in his mind and heart, and led to a
correspondence in the " Times " and elsewhere.
A new volume of sermons, " Town and Country Sermons," had
recently been published. They were dedicated to his "most kind
and faithful friend," the Dean of Windsor,* and contained several
preached at Windsor and at Whitehall, with some of the deepest
and most characteristic of his Eversley sermons particularly "The
Rock of Ages," " The Wrath of Love," " Pardon and Peace," and
one most important one on the Athanasian Creed, called " The
Knowledge of God."
* The Hon. and Very Rev. Gerald Wellesley.
CHAPTER XXII.
1863.
AGED 44.
Fellow of the Geological Society Work at Cambridge Prince of Wales's Wed-
ding Wellington College Chapel and Museum Letter from Dr. Benson
Lecture at Wellington Letters to Sir Charles Lyell, Prof. Huxley, Charles
Darwin, James A. Froude, &c. Whitchurch Still-life Toads in Holes
D.C.L. Degree at Oxford Bishop Colenso Sermons on the Pentateuch
. The Water-babies Failing Health.
PROFESSOR KINGSLEY had this year the honor of adding three
letters to his name by being made a Fellow of the Geological
Society. He was proposed by his kind friend Sir Charles Bun-
bury, and seconded by Sir Charles Lyell. "To belong to the
Geological Society," he says in a letter to the former, "has long
been an ambition of mine, but I feel how little I know, and how
unworthy I am to mix with the really great men who belong to it.
So strongly do I feel this, that if you told me plainly that 1 had no
right to expect such an honor, I should placidly acquiesce in what
I already feel to be true." The F.G.S. came as a counter-
balance to his rejection at Oxford for the distinction of D.C.L.,
which his friends there proposed to confer on him.
The year was spent almost entirely at Eversley, for he found
the salary of his Professorship did not admit of his keeping two
houses and of moving his family backwards and forwards to
Cambridge. He was therefore forced to part with his Cambridge
house, and to go up twice a year merely, for the time required for
his lectures (twelve to sixteen in number), and again at the exami-
nation of his class for degrees. He deeply regretted this necessity,
as it prevented his knowing the men in his class personally, which
he had made a point of doing during the first two years of his resi-
dence, when they came to his house, and many charming evenings
were spent in easy intercourse between the Professor and his pupils,
who met them on equal terms. From the first he made it one of
his most important duties to do what he could to bridge over a
The Royal Wedding. 327
gulf which in his own day had been a very wide one between Dons
and Students. That he had succeeded in doing this was proved
by members of his class, writing to consult him after they left
Cambridge on their studies, their professions, and their religious
difficulties, in a way that showed their perfect confidence in his
sympathy ; and had circumstances allowed of his residing at Cam-
bridge, his personal influence would have been still greater.
We now return to his correspondence.
TO REV. E. PITCAIRN CAMPBELL.
EVERSLEY, March 12, 1863.
"We are just from the Royal Wedding at least so I believe.
We had (so 1 seem to remember) excellent places. Mrs. Kingsley
in the temporary gallery in the choir. I in the household gallery,
both within 15 yards of what, I am inclined to think, was really the
Prince and Princess. But I can't swear to it. I am not at all sure
that 1 did not fall asleep in the dear old chapel, with the banners
and stalls fresh in my mind, and dream and dream of Fxlward the
Fourth's time. At least, I saw live Knights of the Garter (myths
to me till then). I saw real Princesses with diamond crowns, and
trains, and fairies holding them up. 1 saw what did I not see ?
And only began to believe my eyes, when 1 met at the dejeuner
certain of the knights whom I knew, clothed and in their right
mind, like other folk ; and of the damsels and fairies many, who, I
believe, were also flesh and blood, for they talked and ate with me,
and vanished not away.
" But seriously, one real thing I did see, and felt too the serious
grace and reverent dignity of my dear young Master, whose manner
was perfect. And one other real thing the Queen's sad face.
I cannot tell you how auspicious I consider this
event, or how happy it has made the little knot of us, the Prince's
household,* who love him because we know him. I hear nothing
but golden reports of the Princess from those who have known her
long. I look forward to some opportunity of judging for myself."
His time this year was divided between his parish work and the
study of science, and in corresponding with scientific men. Mr.
Darwin's "Origin of Species " and his book on the "Fertilization
of Orchids," had opened a new world to him, and made all that he
saw around him, if possible, even more full of divine significance
than before. Wellington College was a continual interest to him.
o o
He lectured to the boys, and helped them to start a Museum. He
* Mr. Kingsley had recently been made one of the Prince's chaplains.
328 Charles Kings ley.
felt bound to do all he could for Wellington College, not only be-
cause his own son was there, and from his warm friendship with Dr.
Benson, then head-master ; but because he looked upon the place
as a memorial of the great Prince under whose fostering care it had
risen into importance, as well as of the great Duke whose name it
bore. The boys were continually at the Rectory, and Mr. Kingsley
was always present at their great days, whether for the speeches or
their athletic sports.
Mr. Kingsley's Lecture on Natural History may well be prefaced
by a letter from Dr. Benson, characteristic alike of the writer and
his subject.
THE CHANCERY, LINCOLN, SUNDAY, July u, 1875.
"My DEAR MRS. KINGSLEY,
" . . . . There was a bold sketch of Mr. Kingsley in the
Spectator in his squire-like aspect, and I think it was true. But I
know that an equally true sketch might be made of him as a parish
priest, who would have delighted George Herbert. The gentle,
warm frankness with which he talked on a summer Sunday among
the grassy and flowery graves. The happy peace in which he
walked, chatting, over to Bramshill chapel-school, and, after reading
the evening service, preached in his surplice with a chair-back for
his pulpit, on the deeps of the Athanasian Creed ; and, after thank-
ing God for words that brought such truths so near, bade the villagers
mark that the very Creed which laid such stress on faith, told them
that ' they who did good would go into everlasting life.' His strid-
ing across the ploughed field to ask a young ploughman in the dis-
tance why he had not been at church on Sunday, and ending his
talk with ' Now, you know, John, your wife don't want you lounging
in bed half a Sunday morning. You get up and come to church,
and let her get your Sunday dinner and make the house tidy, and
then you mind your child in the afternoon while she comes to
church.' These, and many other scenes, are brightly before me.
His never remitted visits to sick and helpless, his knowledge of
their every malady, and every change of their hopes and fears ; the
sternness and the gentleness which he alternated so easily with
foolish people ; the great respectfulness of his tone to old folks,
made the rectory and church at Eversley the centre of the life of
the men as well as their children and wives. Gipsies on Hartford-
bridge flats have told me they considered Eversley their parish
church wherever they went, and for his own parishioners, 'every
man jack of them,' as he said, was a steady church-goer. But it
was no wonder, for I never heard sermons with which more pains
had been taken than those which he made for his poor people.
There was so much, such deep teaching, conveyed in words that
Lectures to Boys. 329
were so plain. One on the conversion of St. Paul, and one on the
Church, I shall never forget. The awe and reverence of his manner
of celebrating the service was striking to any one who knew only
his novels. Strangers several times asked me, who saw him at
service in our own school-chapel, who it was who was so rapt in
manner, who bowed so low at the Gloria and the name of Jesus
Christ ; and so I too was surprised when he asked me, before
preaching in his church, to use only the Invocation of the Trinity ;
and when I observed that he celebrated the communion in the east-
ward position. This he loyally gave up on the Purchas judgment,
' because I mind the law,' but told me with what regret he discon-
tinued what from his ordination he had always done, believing it
the simple direction of the Prayer Book.
" An amusing incident happened once, which, I daresay, he
never heard of. A sub-editor, of a famous religious paper, once
attended a chapel service at Wellington, when Mr. Kingsley
preached, and then withdrew his son's name from our list, and pre-
pared a leading article upon a supposed head-master, whose doc-
trine and manner were so ' high.'
" What always struck me in him was the care and pains which
he took with all that he undertook. Nothing was hurried, or
slurred, or dashing. 'I can tell you, I've spared no trouble upon
it,' he said, when we thanked him for the beautiful sermon on
' Wisdom and her seven pillars,' which he made for one of our
days.*
" In the readiest and yet most modest way he helped us wonder-
fully. His presence looking on, helped our games into shape when
we began with fifty raw little boys, and our football exploits, twelve
years after, were as dear to him as to his son; 'the Kingsley'
steeple-chase was the event of the year. But in far higher ways
lie helped us. He wrote an admirable paper for us, which was
widely circulated, on School Museums; he prevailed on the Royal
College of Surgeons, on Lady Franklin, and other friends, to
present the beys with many exquisite natural history specimens,
and started all our collections.
" His lectures (of which I trust some of his notes exist) on
natural history, and two on geology, were some of the most bril-
liant things 1 ever heard. Facts and theories, and speculations,
and imaginations of what had been and might be, simply riveted
the attention of 200 or 300 boys for an hour and a half or two
hours, and many good' proverbs of life sparkled among these.
Their great effect was that they roused so much interest. At the
same time his classification of facts such as the radiation of plants
(Heather for instance) from geographical centres, gave substantial
grounds for the work which he encouraged. 'Let us make a be-
* Published in " Discipline and other Sermons."
330 Charles Kingsley.
ginning by knowing one little thing well, and getting roused as to
what else, is to be known.'
" Nothing was more delightful too, to our boys, than the way in
which he would come and make a little speech at the end of other
occasional winter lectures, Mr. Lowne's or Mr. Henslow's, or
about balloons, or, above all, when, at the close of a lecture
of Mr. Barnes's, he harangued us in pure Dorset dialect, to the sur-
prise and delight of the Dorsetshire poet.
" In our many happy talks we scarcely ever agreed in our esti-
mate of mediaeval character or literature, but I learnt much from
him. When even St. Bernard was not appreciated by him, it is
not surprising that much of the life of those centuries was repul-
sive, and its religious practice ' pure Buddhism,' as he used to say.
At the same time, I never shall forget how he turned over on
a person who was declaiming against ' idolatry.' ' Let me tell you,
sir,' (he said with that forcible stammer), ' that if you had had
a chance you would have done the same, and worse. The first
idols were black stones, meteoric stones. And if you'd been a
poor naked fellow, scratching up the ground with your nails, when a
great lump of pyrites had suddenly half buried itself in the ground
within three yards of you, with a horrid noise and smell, don't you
think you'd have gone down on your knees to it, and begged it not
to do it again, and smoothed it and oiled it, and anything else ? '
" Greek life and feeling was dear to him in itself, and usually he
was penetrated with thankfulness that it formed so large a part of
education.
" ' From that and from the Bible, -boys learn what must be learnt
among the grandest moral and spiritual reproofs of what is base.
Nothing so fearful as to leave curiosity unslaked to help itself.'
At other times he doubted. Still, if I measure rightly, he doubted
only when he was so possessed with the forest ardor, that he said,
' All politics, all discussions, all philosophies of Europe, are so in-
finitely little in comparison with those trees out there in the West
Indies. Don't you think the brain is a fungoid growth? O ! if I
could only find an artist to 'paint a tree as I see it ! ' In mention-
ing last this keen enjoyment of his in the earth as it is, I seem to
have inverted the due order : but I see it as a solid, truthful back-
ground in his soul of all the tenderness and lovingness, and spiritual
strength in which he walked about ' convinced,' as a friend once
said to me of him, ' that, as a man and as a priest, he had got the
devil under, and that it was his bounden duty to keep him there.' "
LKCTURE AT WELLINGTON COLLEGE.
Jime 25, 1863.
" YOUNG GENTLEMEN,
" Your head-master, Dr. Benson, has done me the honor of
asking me to say a little to you to-night about the Museum which
The Art of Learning. 331
is in contemplation, connected with this College, and how far you
yourselves can help it.
" I assure you I do so gladly. Anything which brings .me in
contact with the boys of Wellington College, much more of help-
ing forward their improvement in the slightest degree, I shall
always look upon as a very great pleasure, and a very serious duty.
' Let me tell you, then, what I think you may do for the
Museum, and how you may improve yourselves by doing it, with-
out interfering with your regular work. Of course, that must
never be interfered with. You are sent here to work. All of you
here, I suppose, depend for your success in life on your own exer-
tions. None of you are born (luckily for you) with a silver spoon
in your mouths, to eat flapdoodle at other people's expense, and
live in luxury and idleness. Work you must, and I don't doubt
that work you will, and let nothing interfere with your work.
" The first thing for a boy to learn, after obedience and moral-
ity, is a habit of observation. A habit of using your eyes. It
matters little what you use them on, provided you do use them.
" They say knowledge is power, and so it is. But only the
knowledge which you get by observation. Many a man is very
learned in books, and has read for years and years, and yet he is
useless. He knows about all sorts of things but he can't do them.
When you set him to do work, he makes a mess of it. He is what
is called a pedant : because he has not used his eyes and ears.
He has lived in books. He knows nothing of the world about
him, or of men and their ways, and therefore he is left behind in
the race of life by many a shrewd fellow who is not half as book-
learned as he: but who is a shrewd fellow who keeps his eyes
open who is always picking up new facts, and turning them to
some particular use.
" Now, I don't mean to undervalue book-learning. No man
less. All ought to have some of it, and the time which you spend
here on it is not a whit too long ; but the great use of a public-
school education to you, is, not so much to teach you things as to
teach you how to learn. To give you the noble art of learning,
which you can use for yourselves in after-life on any matter to
which you choose to turn your mind. And what does the art of
learning consist in? First and foremost, in the nrt of observing.
That is, the boy who uses his eyes best on his book, and obserres
the words and letters of his lesson most accurately and carefully,
that is the boy who learns his lesson best, I presume.
"You know, as well as I, how one fellow will sit staring at his
book for an hour without knowing a word about it, while another
will learn the tiling in a quarter of an hour, and why ? Because
one has actually not seen the words. He has been thinking of
something else, looking out of the window, repeating the words to
himself like a parrot. The other fellow has simply, as we say,
33 2 Charles Kings ley.
' looked sharp.' He has looked at the lesson with his whole mind,
seen it, and seen into it. and therefore knows all about it.
" Therefore, I say, that everything which helps a boy's powers
of observation helps his power of learning ; and I know from ex-
perience that nothing helps that so much as the study of the
world about you, and especially of natural history. To be accus-
tomed to watch for curious objects, to know in a moment when
you have come on anything new which is observation. To be
quick at seeing when things are like, and when unlike which is
classification. All that must, and I well know does, help to make
a boy shrewd, earnest, accurate, ready for whatever may happen.
When we were little and good, a long time ago, we used to have
a jolly old book called ' Evenings at Home,' in which was a great
story called Eyes and No Eyes, and that story was of more use to
me than any dozen other stories I ever read.
"A regular old-fashioned formal story it is, but a right good one,
and thus it begins :
" ' Well, Robert, where have you been walking this afternoon ? '
said Mr. Andrews, to one of his pupils, at the close of a holiday.
Oh, Robert had been to Broom Heath, and round to Campmount,
and home through the meadows. But it was very dull, he hardly
saw a single person. He had rather by half have gone by the
turnpike road.
" But where is William ?
" Oh, William started with him, but he was so tedious, always
stopping to look at this thing and that, that he would rather walk
alone, and so went on.
" Presently in comes Master William, dressed no doubt as we
wretched boys used to be forty years ago, frill collar, and tight
skeleton monkey jacket, and tight trousers buttoned over it, and
not down to his ankles a pair of low shoes- which always came
off if stept into heavy ground and terribly dirty and wet he is,
but he never had such a pleasant walk in his life, and has brought
home a handkerchief full of curiosities.
" He has got a piece of mistletoe, and wants to know what it is,
and seen a woodpecker and a wheat-ear, and got strange flowers
off the heath, and hunted a peewit because he thought its wing was
broken, till of course it led him into a bog and wet he got; but he
did not mind, for in the bog he fell in with an old man cutting
turf, who told him all about turf cutting, and gave him an adder ;
and then he went up a hill, and saw a grand prospect, and wanted
to go again and make out the geography of the county by Carey's
old county map which was our only map in those days ; and be-
cause the place was called Campmounr, he looked for a Roman
camp and found one ; and then he went to the ruin, and saw
twenty things more, and so on. and so on, till he had brought home
curiosities enough and thoughts enough to last him a week.
Eyes and No Eyes. 333
"Whereon Mr. Andrews, who seems a sensible old gentleman
enough, tells him all about his curiosities; and then it turns out
that Master William has been over exactly the same ground as
Master Robert, who saw nothing at all.
" Whereon says Mr. Andrews, wisely enough in his solemn, old-
fashioned way, ' So it is. One man walks through the world with
his eyes open, and another with them shut ; and upon this difference
depends all the superiority of knowledge which one acquires over
the other. I have known sailors who have been in all the quarters
of the world, and could tell you nothing but the signs of the tippling
houses, and the price and quality of the liquor. On the other hand,
Franklin could not cross the Channel without making observations
useful to mankind. While many a vacant thoughtless person is
whirled through Europe without gaining a single idea worth cross-
ing the street for, the observing eye and inquiring mind find matter
of improvement and delight in every ramble. Do you then, William,
continue to make use of your eyes ; and you, Robert, learn that
eyes were given you to use.'
"And when I read that story as a little boy, I said to myself, I
will be Mr. Eyes ; I will not be Mr. No Eyes, and Mr. Eyes I have
tried to be ever since ; and Mr. Eyes, I advise you, every one of
you, to be, if you wish to be happy and successful.
" Ah, my dear boys, if you knew the idle, vacant, useless life
which too many young men lead when their day's work is done,
and done spiritlessly, and therefore done ill, having nothing to fall
back on but the theatre, or billiards, or the gossip at their club, or
if they be out in a hot country, everlasting pale ale ; and con-
tinually tempted to sin, and shame, and ruin by their own idleness,
while they miss opportunities of making valuable discoveries, of
distinguishing themselves, and helping themselves forward in life ;
then you would make it a duty to get a habit of observing, no
matter what you observe, and of having at least some healthy and
rational pursuit with which to fill up your leisure hours.
"The study of natural history, of antiquities, of geography, of
chemistry, any study which will occupy your minds, may be the
means, whether out on some foreign station, or home here at work
in London, of keeping you out of temptation and misery, of which,
thank God, you as yet know nothing. .
" I am happy to hear that there are many of you who don't need
this advice, some who are working well at chemistry, some who
have already begun to use your eyes, and to make collections of
plants, insects, and birds' eggs.
" That is good as far as it goes. As for bird-nesting, I think it a
manly and excellent pursuit;* no one has worked harder at it
* He never allowed his own boys to take nests, or more than one, or at most
two eggs out of a nest where there were several, so that the mother bird might
not miss them.
334 Charles Kings ley.
than I, when I was young, or should like better to go bird-nesting
now, if I was not getting rather too stiff and heavy to bark up to a
hawk's nest.
" But see. Because every boy collects for himself, there is a great
deal of unnecessary destruction of eggs, especially of the small soft-
billed birds, which are easiest got, and are the very ones which
ought to be spared, on account of their .great usefulness to the
farmer in destroying insects ; and next Pray, where will nine-tenths
of those eggs be seen a few days hence? smashed, and in the dust-
hole, and so of the insects and plants.
"Now it seems to me, that if fellows were collecting for a Col-
lege Museum, instead of every one for himself, it would save a great
deal of waste, and save the things themselves likewise.
" As for a fellow liking to say, ' I have got this, and I will keep
it to myself, I like to have a better collection than any one else,'
that is natural enough ; but like a great many natural things, rather
a low feeling, if you will excuse my saying so. Which is better, to
keep a thing to yourselves, locked up in your own drawers, or to
put them into the common stock, for the pleasure of every one?
and which is really more honor to you, to be able to say to two or
three of your friends, ' I have got an egg which you have not,' or to
have the egg, or whatever else it may be, in a public collection, to
be seen by every one, by boys, years hence, after you are grown up ?
For myself, I can't think of a better way of keeping up a corporate
feeling in the college, and binding the different generations, as they
succeed each other, together in one, than a museum of this kind,
in which boys should see the names of those who have gone before
them, as having presented this or that curious object.
" So strongly do I feel it, that I have asked Dr. Benson's leave
to give two prizes every year. One for the most rare and curious
thing of any kind whether in natural history, geology, antiquities,
or anything else fit for a museum, which has been bona fide found
by the boy himself; and a second prize for the most curious thing
contributed by a boy, never mind how he has got it, provided only
that he has not bought it, for against that there are objections.
That would give the boys with plenty of money a chance which the
others had not.
" But there are so many of you who have relations abroad, or in the
country, that you will be able to obtain from them rare and curious
objects which you could not collect yourselves, and I advise you
to turn sturdy beggars, and get hold (by all fair means) of anything
and everything worth putting in the Museum, and out of which you
can coax or beg anybody whatsoever, old or young.
' And, mind, you will have help. I myself am ready to give as
many curious things as I can, out of my own collection ; and if
this Museum had been started ten or twenty years ago, I could
have given you a great deal more, but my collections have been
Holidays and how to Employ Them. 335
too much and often spoilt and broken, and at last the remnant
given away in despair, just because I had no museum to put them
in. If there had been one where I was at school, I could have
saved for it hundreds of different things which are now in dust-
holes in half-a-dozen counties, and also should have had the heart
to collect many things which I have let pass me, simply because
I did not care to keep them, having nowhere to put them, and so
it will be with you.
" I only mention myself as an example of what I have been
saying. But it is not to me merely that you must look for help. I
am happy to say that you will be helped by many (I believe) real
men of science, who will send the Museum such things as are wanted
to start it well. To start it well with ' Typical Forms,' by which
you can arrange and classify what you find. They will as it were
stake out the ground for you, and you must fill up the gaps, and I
don't doubt you will do it, and well.
" I am sure you can, if you will see now here is an opportunity
of making a beginning during the next vacation.
" Dr. Benson has said that he will be ready to receive contribu-
tions from scientific men after the holidays. But he has guaranteed
for you in return, that some of you, at least, will begin collecting
for the museum during the holidays.
" What can you do better ? I am sure your holidays would be
much happier for it. I don't think boys' holidays are in general so
very happy. Mine used to be : but why ? Because the moment
I got home, I went on with the same work in which I employed
every half-holiday : natural history and geology. But many boys
seem to me in the holidays very much like Jack when he is paid
off at Portsmouth. He is suddenly free from the discipline of ship-
board. He has plenty of money in his pocket, and he sets to, to
have a lark, and makes a fool of himself till his money is spent ; and
then he is very poor, and sick, and seedy, and cross, and disgusted
with himself, and longs to get a fresh ship and go to work again
as a great many fellows, I suspect, long for the holidays to be
over. They suddenly change the regular discipline of work for
complete idleness, and after the first burst is over, they get very
often tired, and stupid, and cross, because they have nothing to do,
except eating fruit and tormenting their sisters.
" How much better for them to have something to do like this.
Something which will not tire their minds, because it is quite differ-
ent from their school work, and therefore a true amusement, which
lets them cut the muses for awhile ; and something, too, which
they can take a pride in, because it is done of their own free will,
and they can look forward to putting their gains in the Museum
when they come back, and saying, ' This is my holiday work, this
is what I have won for the College since I have been away.'
" Take this hint for your holidays, and take it too for after-life.
336 Charles Kings ley.
For I am sure if you get up an interest for this Museum here, you
will not lose it when you go away.
" Many of you will go abroad, perhaps spend much of your lives
abroad, and I am sure you will use the opportunities you will then
have to enrich the Museum of the College, and be its benefactors
each according to your powers throughout your lives.
"But there is one interest, young gentlemen, which I have more
at heart even than the interest of Wellington College, much as I
love it, for its own sake and for the sake of that great Prince be-
neath whose fostering shadow it grew up, and to whom this College,
like me myself, owes more than we shall either of us ever repay ;
yet there is an interest which I have still more at heart, and that is
the interest of Science herself.
" Ah, that I could make you understand what an interest that is.
The interest of the health, the wealth, the wisdom of generations
yet unborn. Ah, that I could make you understand what a noble
thing it is to be men of science ; rich with a sound learning which
man can neither give nor take away ; useful to thousands whom
you have never seen, but who may be blessing your name hundreds
of years after you are mouldering in the grave, the equals and the
companions of the noblest and the most powerful. Taking a rank
higher than even Queen Victoria herself can give, by right of that
knowledge which is power.
" But I must not expect you to see that yet. All I can do is to
hope that my fancy may be fulfilled hereafter, that this Museum
may be the starting point of a school of scientific men, few it may
be in number, but strong, because bound together by common
affection for their College, and their Museum, and each other. Scat-
tered perhaps over the world, but communicating their discoveries
to each other without jealousy or dispute, and sending home their
prizes to enrich the stores of their old Museum, and to teach the
generations of lads who will be learning here, while they are grown
men, doing the work of men over the world.
" Ah, that it might so happen. Ah, that even one great man of
science might be bred up in these halls, one man who should
discover a great truth, or do a great deed for the benefit of his
fellow men.
" If this College and Museum could produce but one master of
natural knowledge, like Murchison or Lyell, Owen or Huxley,
Faraday or Grove, or even one great discoverer, like Ross, or
Sturt, or Speke, who has just solved the mystery of ages, the
mystery after which Lucan makes Julius Caesar long, as the highest
summit of his ambition : to leave others to conquer nations, while
he himself sought for the hidden sources of the Nile. Or, if it ever
should produce one man able and learned enough to do such a
deed as that of my friend Clements Markham, who penetrated, in
the face of danger and death, the trackless forests of the Andes, to
Darwin Conquering. 337
bring home thence the plants of Peruvian bark, which, transplanted
into Hindostan, will save the lives of tens of thousands English and
Hindoos then, young gentlemen, all the trouble, all the care,
which shall have been spent on this Museum I had almost said,
upon this whole College, will have been well repaid."
TO SIR CHARLES LYELL, F.G.S., ETC., ETC.
EVERSLEY, April 28, 1863.
" MY DEAR SIR CHARLES,
" I have at last got through your big book* big in all senses,
for it is as full as an egg, and as pregnant. But I have read specially
the chapter on the Analogy of Language and Natural History, and
am delighted. I had no suspicion that so complete a case could
be made out. And it does not seem to me a mere ' illustration ' of
the deceptive kind used in Scotch sermons, whereby * * * * used
to make anything prove anything else ; but a real analogue, of the
same inductive method applied to a set of facts homologous, though
distinct.
" I am very anxious to see a Museum established at the Welling-
ton College, for training the boys in the knowledge of nature, and
in the pursuits of natural science. As most of the boys go abroad
in after-life, it seems to open a great door for your scheme, of hav-
ing educated gentlemen-naturalists spread abroad, and in commu-
nication with each other and with the societies at home, and I shall
soon go shamelessly a-begging for typical forms of every kind, the
intermediate gaps to be filled up by the boys themselves."
TO REV. F. D. MAURICE.
" I am very busy working out points of Natural Theology, by the
strange light of Huxley, Darwin, and Lyell. I think I shall come
to something worth having before 1 have done. But I am not go-
ing to reach into fruit this seven years, for this reason : The state
of the scientific mind is most curious ; Darwin is conquering every-
where, and rushing in like a flood, by the mere force of truth and fact.
The one or two who hold out are forced to try all sorts of subter-
fuges as to fact, or else by evoking the odium theologicutn
" But they find that now they have got rid of an interfering God
a master-magician, as I call it they have to choose between the
absolute empire of accident, and a living, immanent, ever-working
God.
" Grove's truly great mind has seized the latter alternative al-
ready, on the side of chemistry. Ansted, in his Rede Lecture,
is feeling for it in geology ; and so is Lyell ; and I, in my small
* " Antiquity of Man."
22
338 Charles Kings ley.
way of zoology, am urging it on Huxley, Rolleston, and Bates, who
has just discovered facts about certain butterflies in the valley of
the Amazon, which have filled me, and, I trust, others, with utter
astonishment and awe. Verily, God is great, or else there is no
God at all.
" That mystery of generation has been felt in all ages to be the
crux, the meeting point of heaven and earth, of God or no God ;
and it is being felt so now more intensely than ever. All turns on
it So does human thought come round again in cycles
to the same point ; but, thank God, each time with more and
sounder knowledge. All will be well, if we will but remember
what is written : ' He that believeth will not make haste.'
" But I ought to say, that by far the best forward step in Natural
Theology has been made by an American, Dr. Asa Gray,* who
has said better than I can all that I want to say. I send you his
pamphlet, entreating you to read it, especially pp. 28-49, which
are in my eyes unanswerable.
"A passage between me and * * * * (we are most intimate and
confidential, though more utterly opposed in thought than he is to
the general religious or other public), may amuse you. He says
somewhere, ' the ape's brain is almost exactly like the man's, and
so is his throat. See, then, what enormously different results may
be produced by the slightest difference in structure ! ' I tell him.
'not a bit ; you are putting the cart before the horse, like the rest
of the world. If you won't believe my great new doctrine (which,
by the bye, is as old as the Greeks), that souls secrete their bodies,
as snails do shells, you will remain in outer darkness
I know an ape's brain and throat are almost exactly like a man's
and what does that prove ? That the ape is a fool and a muff, who
has tools very nearly as good as a man's, and yet can't use them,
while the man can do the most wonderful thing with tools very
little better than an ape's.
" 'If men had had ape's bodies they would have got on very
tolerably with them, because they had men's souls to work the
bodies with. While an ape's soul in a man's body would be only
a rather more filthy nuisance than he is now. You fancy that the
axe uses the workman, I say that the workman uses the axe, and
that though he can work rather better with a good tool than a bad
one, the great point is, what sort of workman is he an ape-soul or
a human soul ? '
* When in America, in 1874, Mr. Kingsley had the happiness of making ac-
quaintance with Professor Asa Gray, who among many other botanical works
had lately published his admirable little book for the young on "Climbing
Plants." In an important work just published in Boston (1876) on Darwinism,
the Professor has made quotations from Mr. Kingsley's " Westminster Ser-
mons."
Letters to Huxley and Darwin. 339
" Whereby you may perceive that I am not going astray into
materialism as yet."
TO PROFESSOR HUXLEY.
EvERSLEY, June 28, 1863.
" Don't take the trouble to answer this. In re great toes of apes
and men. Have you ever remarked the variableness of the hallux
in our race ?
" The old Greek is remarkable for a small hallux and large second
toe, reaching beyond it, and that is held (and rightly) as the most
perfect form of the human foot. But in all modern Indo-Gothic
races is it the same ? In all children which I have seen (and I
have watched carefully) the hallux is far larger and longer in propor-
tion to the other toes than in the Greek statues. This is not caused
(as commonly supposed) by wearing shoes, for it holds in the Irish
children who have never worn them.
" Now surely such a variation in the size of the hallux gives
probability at least to your deductions from its great variability in
the apes.
" Science owes you the honor of having demonstrated that the
hind hand of the apes is not a hand, but a true foot. Think over
what I have said."
TO CHARLES DARWIN, ESQ., F.R.S., &C.
EVERSLEY, June 14, 1863.
" I have been reading with delight and instruction your paper on
climbing plants.
"Your explanation of an old puzzle of mine Lathyrus Nissolia
is a master-piece. Nothing can be more conclusive. That of
the filament at the petiole-end of the bean is equally satisfactory.
" Ah, that I could begin to study nature anew, now that you
have made it to me a live thing, not a dead collection of names.
But my work lies elsewhere now. Your work, nevertheless, helps
mine at every turn. It is better that the division of labor should
be complete, and that each man should do only one thing, while
he looks on, as he finds time, at what others are doing, and so
gets laws from other sciences which he can apply, as I do, to my
own."
TO H. BATES, ESQ., F.R.S.
EVERSLEY, 1863.
"There is no physical cause discovered by the microscope why
ova should develope each according to its kind. To a philosopher,
a hen bringing forth a crocodile would not be so wonderful, as
the hundred thousands of hens never bringing forth any thing but
hens.
34 Charles Kings ley.
11 To talk of its being done by laws impressed on matter, is to use
mere words. How can a law be impressed on matter? Is it in
the matter? Is it impressed thereon as a seal on wax? Or even
as a polar arrangement of parts on a solid ? If so. it is discoverable
by the microscope. But if ' it ' were found, that would not be a
Law, but only a present and temporary phenomenon an arrange-
ment or formation of particles for the time being not the Law or
formative cause thereof; and we should be just as far from the
'causa causativa' of the development as ever. I hope I am not
boring you by all this. You will see whither it is tending ; and it
is the result of long and painful thought, in which I have been try-
ing to bring my little logic and metaphysic to bear not on physical
science herself, for she stands on her own ground, microscope in
hand, and will allow no intruder, however venerable ; but on the
nomenclature of physical science, which is to me painfully confused,
from a want in our scientific men of that logical training by which
things are rightly named, though they cannot be discovered thereby.
And this common metaphor of ' a Law imprest on matter ' is one
which must be regarded merely as a metaphor, and an approxima-
tive symbol, useless for accurate science, or we shall get into hor-
rible confusions of speech and thought about material causes and
their limits, especially now when Darwin, &c., on one hand, and
Lyell, &c., on another, have shown us what an enormous amount
of the world's work is done by causes strictly material.
" For myself, I agree with Dr. Asa Gray, in his admirable pam-
phlet on Darwin, that the tendency of physical science is ' not
towards the omnipotence of Matter, but to the omnipotence of
Spirit. And I am inclined to regard the development of an ovum
according to kind as the result of a strictly immaterial and spiritual
agency." ....
We now turn from science to fishing, and venture to insert, for
those who never met him in his genial merry moods, a letter or
two written in the joy of his heart when for a short moment all
care was cast away, and he became a boy again.
TO J. A. FROUDE, ESQ.
WHITE HART, WHITCHURCH, May 27, 1863.
" And is this the way you expect to get fishing when you want,
it, axing for it with fierce importunity, and then running away and
leaving your disconsolate partner to terrify himself into fiddlestrings
with fancying what was the matter? .... Well ....
but you have lost a lovely day's fishing. The first was not much,
owing to the furious rain ; but yesterday I went up the side stream
in the Park, and after the rain it was charming. They took first a
Toads in a Hole. 341
little black gnat, and then settled to a red palmer and the conquer-
ing turkey-brown, with which we killed so many here before. My
beloved black alder they did not care for for why ? She was not
out. The stream was not as good as when we fished it last, owing
to extreme drought. But I kept seven brace of good fish, and
threw in twelve. None over i^- Ib. though. After two came a
ferocious storm, and chop of wind to VV., and after that I did noth-
ing. Oh ! I wish you had been with me ; but if you will be good
you shall come down week after next, and Mrs. Alder will be out
then, and perhaps a few drakes on the lower shallow, and oh, won't
we pitch into the fish ? Lord P. is gone to Bath, and Lady P. to
High Clere So I am going home by mid-day train."
TO REV. E. PITCAIRN CAMPBELL.
EVE RS LEY, May 29, 1863.
" By the strangest coincidence, Sir Charles Bunbury, a great
geologist and botanist, and I were talking over this very evening
Sir Alex. Gordon Cumming's toads in a hole. I promised him to
write to Sir A. on the strength of his kind messages to me, for
further information ; and behold, on coming home from a dinner-
party at General Napier's, your letter anent them ! Verily, great
things are in these toads' insides, or so strange a coincidence would
not have happened.
" Now, I say to you what I said to him. Toads are rum brutes.
Like all batrachians, they breathe through their skins, as well as
through their lungs. The instinct (as I have often proved) of the
little beggars an inch long, fresh from water and tadpoledom, is to
creep foolishly into the dirtiest hole they can find, in old walls, etc.,
where 99 out of a 100 are eaten by rats and beetles, as I hold or
else the world would have been toadied to utter disgust and horror
long ago. Some of these may get down into cracks in rocks, and
never get back. The holes may be silted up by mud and sand.
The toad may exist and grow in that hole for Heaven knows how
long, I dare say for centuries, for I don't think he would want food
to grow ; oxygen and water he must have, but a very little would do.
" Accordingly, all the cases of toads in a hole which I have in-
vestigated have been either in old walls or limestone rocks, which
are porous as a sponge, absorb water and air, and give them out
slowly, but enough to keep a cold-blooded batrachian alive.
" Now, Sir Alex. Gordon Cumming's toads have puzzled me. I
have read all that he has written, and thought over it, comparing
it with all 1 know, and I think I know almost every case on record,
and I am confounded. Will you ask him for me what is the nature
of this conglomerate in which the toads are ?
" I said to-night I would not believe in toads anywhere but in
limestone or chalk, i.e., in strongly hydraulic strata. Sir Charles
342 Charles Kingsley.
Bunbury corrected me, by saying that certain volcanic rocks,
amygdaloid basalts, were as full of holes as limestone, and as
strongly hydraulic, and so toads might live in them.
"If Sir A. G. C. would send us a piece of the rock in which the
toads lie, we could tell him more. But that the toads are contem-
poraneous with the rock, or have got there any way save through
cracks now filled up, and so overlooked in the blasting and
cutting, is, I believe, impossible, and cannot be though God
alone knows what cannot be and so I wait for further information.
" Oh, that I could accept Sir Alexander's most kind invitation,
and come and see the toads myself, let alone killing the salmon !
But I cannot.
"We must send up one of our F.G.S.'s to see into the mat-
ter
''Your flies are to me wonderful. I will try them on Itchen
next week. But I have been killing well in burning sun, and
water as clear as air, on flies which are to them as bumble bees."
In the summer of this year the Prince and Princess of Wales
honored the Oxford Commemoration with their presence, and ac-
cording to custom His Royal Highness sent in previously the
names of those on whom he wished the University to bestow the
honorary degree of D.C.L. Among those names was that of
Charles Kingsley, who was one of the Prince's private chaplains.
He had several warm friends in the University, among others
Dean Stanley (then Canon of Christ Church), Max Miiller, &c.,
who would have gladly seen this honor conferred on him ; but
among the extreme High Church party there were dissentient
voices ; and the Professor of Hebrew took the lead in opposing
the degree on the ground of Mr. Kingsley' s published works,
especially "Hypatia," which he considered " an immoral book,"
and one calculated to encourage young men in profligacy and false
doctrine the very charge, in fact, that twelve years before had
been brought against " Yeast " by an Oxford graduate of the same
party. If the vote in Convocation had been carried in Mr. Kings-
ley's favor, it would have been anything but unanimous, and a
threat being made of a " non placet " in the theatre at the time of
conferring the degree, his friends considerately advised him to re-
tire ; and he, in order to avoid disturbing the peace of the Univer-
sity on such an auspicious occasion, as considerately followed their
advice. The following year some of his Oxford friends chival-
rously offered to propose his name again for a distinction which he
Colenso and the Pentateuch. 343
would have valued as much as any man living ; but he declined,
saying that "it was an honor that must be given, not fought for,"
and that till the imputation of immorality was withdrawn from his
book " Hypatia," he could not even in prospect accept the offer.
In 1866 Bishop Wilberforce, then Bishop of Oxford, wrote to ask
him to preach one of a course of sermons in the University in
Lent, but he declined that honor too on the same grounds as the
degree.
" I do not deny," he says in a letter to Dean Stanley, "a great
hankering for years past, after an Oxford D.C.L But
all these things are right, and come with a reason, and a purpose,
and a meaning ; and he who grumbles at them or at worse, be-
lieveth not (for the time being at least) in the Living God."
Again, to one who would have liked to see honor upon honor
showered upon him " Pray, pray take what God does not send as
not good for us, and trust Him to send us what is good "
And so, when a disappointment was over, he would root out the
memory of it before it had time to rankle in his mind and sow any
seed of envy or malice. He lived on a high level, and to keep
there he knew that he must crush down the unforgiving spirit
which springs from egotism in the hearts of less noble men.
Coupled with this, too, was not only his intense faith in the govern-
ment of God, as shown in the smallest as well as the most impor-
tant events of life, and in His education of His creatures, by each
and every one of these events, but a deep sense of his own unwor-
thiness, which made him content (a word he loved) with what he
had already as all too good for him.
Bishop Colenso' s work on the Pentateuch had lately appeared
and was the topic of general discussion, which led to his preaching
a series of sermons * on the subject to his own people at Eversley.
In a letter to Mr. Maurice, he said, in reference to the one on the
Credibility of the Plagues of Egypt and of miracles in general :
vt All this talk about the Pentateuch is making me feel its unique
value and divineness so much more than ever I did, that I burn to
fay something worth hearing about it, and I cannot help hoping
that what I say may be listened to by some of those who know
that I shrink from no lengths in physical science I
* " Sermons on the Pentateuch." Macmillan.
344 Charles Kingsley.
arn sure that science and the creeds will shake hands at last, if only
people will leave both alone, and I pray that by God's grace per-
chance I may help them to do so.
'* My only fear is that people will fancy me a verbal inspiration-
monger, which, as you know, I am not ; and that I shall, in due
time, suffer the fate of most who see both sides, and be considered
by both a hypocrite and a traitor." ....
TO REV. F. D. MAURICE.
September 18, 1863.
" I am very anxious to know what you think of Stanley's
' Lectures on the Jewish Church.' I have read them with the
greatest pleasure and comfort, and look on the book as the best
antidote to Colenso which I have yet seen, because it fights him
on his own ground, and yet ignores him and his negative form of
thought.
" I think the book will give comfort to thousands, and make
them take up their Bibles once more with heart and hope. I do
trust that you feel as I do about it I have been so
' run about ' with parish work and confirmation work, that I have
neglected to tell you how deeply I feel your approval of my ser-
mons. I do hope and trust that they may do a little good. I find
that the Aldershot and Sandhurst mustachios come to hear these
discourses of mine every Sunday and my heart goes out to them
in great yearnings. Dear fellows when I see them in the pews,
and the smock frocks in the open seats, I feel as if I was not quite
useless in the. world, and that I was beginning to fulfil the one idea
of my life, to tell Esau that he has a birthright as well as Jacob. I
do feel very deeply the truth which John Mill has set forth in a one-
sided way in his new book on Liberty pp. 88-90, I think, about
the past morality of Christendom having taken a somewhat abject
tone, and requiring, as a complement, the old Pagan virtues, which
our forefathers learnt from Plutarch's Lives, and of which the
memory still lingers in our classical education. I do not believe,
of course, that the want really exists ; but that it has been created,
principally by the celibate misanthropy of the patristic and mediae-
val church. But I have to preach the divineness of the whole
manhood, and am content to be called a Muscular Christian, or
any other impertinent name, by men who little dream of the weak-
ness of character, sickness of. body, and misery of mind, by which
I have bought what little I know of the. human heart. However,
there is no good in talking about oneself.
" I am so obliged to you for your kindness to our Maurice. I
hope you were satisfied with your godson. He is a very good boy,
and makes us very happy."
The Waterbabies. 345
The " Waterbabies " came out this year, dedicated " To my
youngest son, Grenville Arthur, and to all other good little boys : "
" Come read me my riddle, each good little man,
If you cannot read it, no grown up folk can."
The " 1'envoi," in the first edition, was suppressed in the second,
lest it should be misunderstood and give needless offence :
" Hence unbelieving Sadducees,
And less believing Pharisees,
With dull conventionalities ;
And leave a country muse at ease
To play at leap-frog, if she please,
With children and realities."
Perhaps it was the last book, except his West Indian one, " At
Last," that he wrote with any real ease, and which was purely a
labor of love, for his brain was getting fatigued, his health fluc-
tuated, and the work of the Professorship, which was a constant
weight on his mind, wore him sadly.
CHAPTER XXIII.
1864-5.
AGED 45, 46.
Illness Controversy with Dr. Newman Apologia Journey to the South of
France Biarritz Pau An Earthquake Narbonne Sermons in London
and at Windsor Enclosure of Eversley Common University Sermons at
Cambridge Mr. John Stuart Mill's London Committee Letter on the Trinity
Letter on Subscription Luther and Demonology Visit of Queen Emma
of the Sandwich Islands to Eversley Rectory and Wellington College The
Mammoth on Ivory Death of King Leopold Lines written at Windsor
Castle.
THE severe illness and great physical depression with which this
year began were a bad preparation for the storm of controversy
which burst upon Mr. Kingsley, and which eventually produced
Dr. Newman's famous " Apologia pro vita sua." That controversy
is befort the world, and no allusion would be made to it in these
pages, bait from the fear that silence might be misconstrued into a
tacit acknowledgment of defeat on the main question. This fact,
however, may be mentioned, that information conveyed to Mr.
Kingsley that Dr. Newman was in bad health, depressed, and
averse from polemical discussion, coupled with Dr. Newman's own
words in the early part of the correspondence, in which he seemed
to deprecate controversy, appealed irresistibly to Mr. Kingsley's
consideration, and put him to a great disadvantage in the issue.
Still throughout there were many who held with him among them
some personal friends in the Roman Catholic Church. Many
private letters, too, of generous 'sympathy from strangers came to
cheer him on some from laymen some from clergymen some
even from workingmen, who having come in contact with the teach-
ing of Roman Catholic priests, knew the truth of Mr. Kingsley's
statements. Last but not least, a pamphlet was published by the
Rev. Frederick Meyrick, entitled, " But is not Kingsley right after
all ?" This pamphlet was never answered.
For the right understanding of this controversy, it cannot be too
Going to Spain with Mr. Froude. 347
strongly insisted upon, that it was for truth and truth only that Mr.
Kingsley craved and had fought. The main point at issue was not
the personal integrity of Dr. Newman, but the question whether
the Roman Catholic priesthood are encouraged or discouraged to
pursue "Truth for its own sake." While no one more fully ac-
knowledged the genius and power of his opponent than Mr. Kings-
ley himself, or was more ready to confess that he had " crossed
swords with one who was too strong for him," yet he always felt that
the general position which he had taken up against the policy of
the Roman Catholic Church, remained unshaken.
"It was his righteous indignation," says Dean Stanley, "against
what seemed to him the glorification of a tortuous and ambiguous
policy, which betrayed him into the only personal controversy in
which he was ever entangled, and in which, matched in unequal
conflict with the most subtle and dexterous controversialist of
modern times, it is not surprising that for the moment he was
apparently worsted, whatever we may think of the ultimate issues
that were raised in the struggle, and whatever may be the total
results of our experiences, before and after, on the main question
over which the combat was fought on the relation of the human
conscience to truth or to authority."
For more than a year past Mr. Kingsley had been suffering from
chronic illness increased by overwork of brain, and a thorough
rest and change of air had long been seriously urged upon him by
his kind friend, Sir James Clarke. At this moment, Mr. Froude,
who was going to Spain to look over MSS. in connection with his
Historical work, invited him to go with him, to which he answers :
" This is too delightful. I had meant to offer myself to you, but
my courage failed ; but when you propose what can I do but ac-
cept ? . . . I am ready, for my part, not only to go to Mad-
rid, but on by mail to Alicant, and then by steamer to Gibraltar,
via Carthagena and Malaga, coming home by sea. I have always
felt that one good sea voyage would add ten years to my life. All
my friends say, go, but I must not be the least burden to you.
Remember that I can amuse myself in any hedge, with plants and
insects and a cigar, and that you may leave me anywhere, any
long, certain that I shall be busy and happy. I cannot say how
the thought of going has put fresh life into me."
On the 23rd of March he started with Mr. Froude for Spain, but
being ill at Biarritz he did not go over the border. It was his first
348 Charles Kingsley.
visit to France, of which his impressions are given in his letters to
his wife and children.
PARIS, Sunday, March 25, 3 P.M.
" We went this morning to the Madeleine, where a grand cere-
mony was going on, consisting of a high priest brushing people with
a handkerchief, as far as I could see. Next, to Notre Dame,
where old women were adoring the Sacrament in a ' tombeau '
dressed up with cloth and darkness, two argand burners throwing
light on it above, and over it a fold of white drapery exactly in the
form of the sacrificial vitta on the Greek vases, from which it is
probably unconsciously derived. For the rest, they are all as busy
and gay to-day as on any other. We met John Lubbock in the
street going off to examine the new bone-caves in Dordogne. . . ."
BIARRITZ, April, 1864.
" The Basques speak a lingo utterly different from all European
languages, which has no analogue, and must have come from a dif-
ferent stock from our ancestors. The women are very pretty
brown, aquiline, with low foreheads, and have a quaint fashion of
doing up their back hair in a gaudy silk handkerchief, which is
cunningly twisted till one great triangular tail stands out stiff behind
the left ear. This is a great art. The old ones tie their whole
heads up in the handkerchief and look very pretty, but browner
than apes from wearing no bonnets.
" 1 am quite in love with these Frenchmen. They are so charm-
ingly civil and agreeable. You can talk to any and all classes
as equals. But, alas ! I have fallen among English at the table
d'hote. . . .
" . . . After breakfast we generally lounge the rocks till one.
1 have found some gigantic skate purses, which must belong to a
ray twenty feet broad ; then luncheon ; then lounge again, sitting
about on benches and rocks, watching the grey lizards ( I haven't
seen any green ones yet), and smoking penny Government cigars,
which are very good ; then table d'hote at six Yester-
day we hired a carriage and went to the bar of the Adour, and saw
the place where Hope carried the Guards across and made a bridge
of boats in the face of 15,000 French. When one sees such things
and I shall see more who dare sneer at ' old Peninsular offi-
cers?' To-day I was looking through the glass at the Rhune
mountain, which Soult entrenched from top to bottom, and Well-
ington stormed, yard by yard, with 20,000 men, before he could
cross the Bidassoa ; and to have taken that mountain seemed a
deed of old giants. Behind it were peaks of everlasting snow,
gleaming white in the glorious suji, and beneath it the shore of St.
Sebastian and Fontarabia, and then the Spanish hills, fading away
to the right into infinite space along the Biscayan shore, i shall
To his Youngest Boy. 349
go and sit there the whole afternoon. We drove through Landes
yesterday, too, and saw the pine trees hacked for turpentine, and
a little pot hung to each, with clear turpentine running in, and in
the tops of the young trees great social nests of the pitzocampo
moth-caterpillar, of which I have got some silk, but dared not open
the nest, for their hairs are deadly poison, as the old Romans
knew.
TO HIS YOUNGEST BOY.
PAU.
" MY DEAR LITTLE MAN,
" I was quite delighted to get a letter from you so nicely
written. Yesterday I went by the railway to a most beautiful
place, where I am staying now. A town with an old castle, hun-
dreds of years old, where the great King Henry IV. of France was
born, and his cradle is there still, made of a huge tortoiseshell.
Underneath the castle are beautiful walks and woods all green,
as if it was summer, and roses and flowers, and birds, singing but
different from our English birds. But it is quite summer here be-
cause it is so far south. Under the castle, by the river, are frogs
that make a noise like a rattle, and frogs that bark like toy-dogs,
and frogs that climb up trees, and even up the window-panes
they have suckers on their feet, and are quite green like a leaf.
Far away, before the castle, are the great mountains, ten thousand
feet high, covered with snow, and the clouds crawling about their
tops. 1 am going to see them to-morrow, and when 1 come back
I will tell you. But I have been out to-night, and all the frogs are
croaking still, and making a horrid noise. Mind and be a good
boy and give Baba my love. Tell George I am coming back with
a great beard and shall frighten him out of his wits. There is a
vulture here in the inn, but he is a little Egyptian vulture, not like
the great vulture I saw at Bayonne. Ask mother to show you his
picture in the beginning of the bird book. He is called Neophra
Egyptiacus, and is an ugly fellow, who eats dead horses and sheep.
There is his picture.
" Your own Daddy,
" C. KlNGSLEY."
" I have taken quite a new turn, and my nerve and strength
have come back, from three days in the Pyrenees. What I have
seen I cannot tell you. Things unspeakable and full of glory.
Mountains whose herbage is box, for miles and thousands of feet,
then enormous silver firs and beech, up to the eternal snow. We
went up to Eaux-Chaudes a gigantic Lynmouth, with rivers break-
ing out of limestone caverns hundreds of feet over our heads.
There we were told that we must take horses and guides up to the
Plateau of Bioux Artigues, to see the Pic du Midi, which we had
been seeing for twenty-eight miles. We wouldn't, and drove up to
350 Charles Kings ley.
Gabas to lounge. Cane and I found the mountain air so jolly
that we lounged on for an hour luckily up the right valley, and
behold, after rochers moutonnes, and moraines, showing the enor-
mous glaciers which are extinct, we came to a down, which we
knew by inspiration was the Plateau. We had had a good deal of
snow going up, but a good road cut through it for timber carts.
We climbed three hundred feet of easy down, and there it was
right in front, nine thousand feet high, with the winter snow at the
base the eternal snow holding on by claws and teeth where it
could above. I could have looked for hours. I could not speak.
I cannot understand it yet. Right and left were other eternal
snow-peaks ; but very horrible. Great white sheets with black
points mingling with the clouds, of a dreariness to haunt one's
dreams. ' I don't like snow mountains.
" The Pic above is jolly, and sunlit and honest. The flowers
were not all out only in every meadow below gentiana verna, of
the most heavenly azure, and huge oxslips : but I have got some
beautiful things a primrose, or auricula, among others. To-day we
saw Eaux-Bonnes the rival place, which the Empress is bedizening
with roads and fancy trees and streets at an enormous cost : two great
eternal snow-peaks there, but not so striking. Butterflies glorious,
even now. The common one, the great Camberwell beauty
(almost extinct in England), a huge black butterfly with white
edge ; we couldn't catch one. The day before yesterday, at Eaux-
Chaudes, two bears were fired at, and a wolf seen. With every
flock of sheep and girls are one or two enormous mastiffs, which
could eat one, and do bark nastily. But when the children call
them and introduce them to you formally, they stand to be patted,
and eat out of your hand ; they are great darlings, and necessary
against bear and wolf. So we did everything without the least
mishap nay, with glory for the folk were astonished at our get-
ting to the Plateau on our own hook. The Mossoos can't walk,
you see, and think it an awful thing. A Wellington College boy
would trot there in three-quarters of an hour. Last night, pour
comble, we (or rather I) did something extra a dear little sucking
earthquake, went off crash bang, just under my bed. I thought
something had fallen in the room below, though I wondered why
it hove my bed right up. Got out of bed, hearing a woman
scream, and hearing no more, guessed it, and went to bed. It
shook the whole house and village ; but no one minded. They
said they had lots of young earthquakes there, but they went off
before they had time to grow. Lucky for the place. It was a very
queer sensation, and made a most awful noise."
NARBONNE.
"We were yesterday at Carcassonne, a fortified place, where
walls were built by Roman, Visigoth, Mussulman, Romane (i.e.
Carcassonne and Nismes. 351
Albigense) and then by French kings. Such a remnant of the old
times as I have dreamed of now being all restored by M. Viollet-
le-Duc, at the expense of Government with its wonderful church
of St. Nazaire, where Roman Corinthian capitals are used by the
romance people 9-10 century. We went down into real dun-
geons of the Inquisition, and saw real chains and torture rings,
and breathed more freely when we came up into the air, and the
guide pointed to the Pyrenees and said ' // n'y a point de demons
id:
11 1 shall never forget that place. Narbonne is very curious,
once the old Roman capital, then the Albigense. Towers, Ca-
thedral, Archbishop's palace all wonderful. Whole quarries of
Roman remains. The walls, built by Francis I., who demolished
the old Roman and Gothic walls, are a museum of antiquities in
themselves. If you want to have a souvenir of Narbonne, read in
my lectures Sidonius's account of Theodoric the Visigoth (not
Dietrich the Amal) and his court here. His palace is long gone.
It probably stood where the Archbishop's palace does now oppo-
site my window . . . ."
NISMES.
" . . . . But what a country they have made of it, these
brave French ! For one hundred miles yesterday, what had been
poor limestone plain was a garden. A scrap or two I saw of the
original vegetation a donkey would have starved on. But they
have cleared it all off for ages, ever since the Roman times, and it
is one sea of vines, with olive, fig, and mulberry planted among
them. Where there is a hill it is exactly like the photographs of
the Holy Land and Nazareth limestone walls with nothing but
vineyards and grey olives planted in them, and raised stone paths
about them. The only green thing for the soil is red, and the
vines are only sprouting is here and there a field of the Roman
plant, lucerne, as high as one's knee already. I came by Beziers,
where the Inquisitor cried. ' Kill them all, God will know his own,'
and they shut them into the Madelaine and killed them all
Catholics as well as Albigenses, till there was not a soul alive in
Beziers, and the bones are there to this day.
" But this land is beautiful as they say, ' Si Dieu venait encore
stir la terrc, il vicndrait dcmeurcr a Beziers, 1 and, indeed it is just
like, as I have said, the Holy Land. Then we came to immense
flats still in vine and olive, and then tw sand hills, and then upon
the tideless shore broke the blue Mediterranean, with the long
lateen sails, as in pictures. It was a wonderful feeling to a scholar
to see the 'schoolboy's sea' for the first time, and so perfectly, in
a glory of sunshine and blue ripple. We ran literally through it for
miles between Agde and Cette tall asphodel growing on the sand
hills, and great white iris and vines "
352 Charles Kings ley.
" My first impression of the Pont du Gard was one of simple
fear. ' It was so high that it was dreadful,' as Ezekiel says. Then
I said, again and again, ' A great people and a strong. There
hath been none like before them, nor shall be again, for many
generations.' As, after fifteen miles of the sea of mulberry, olive,
and vine, dreary from its very artificial perfection, we turned the
corner of the limestone glen, and over the deep blue rock- pool,
saw that thing, hanging between earth and heaven, the blue sky
and green woods showing through its bright yellow arches, and all
to carry a cubic yard of water to Nismes, twenty miles off, for
public baths and sham sea-fights (' nau-maeJicas') in the amphi-
theatre, which even Charlemagne, when he burnt the Moors out
of it, could not destroy. Then I felt the brute greatness of that Ro-
man people ; and an awe fell upon me as it may have fallen on poor
Croc, the Rook, king of the Alemans but that is a long story,
when he came down and tried to destroy this city of the seven hills,
and ended in being shown about in an iron cage as The Rook. But
I doubt not when he and his wild Alemans came down to the Pont
du Gard they said it was the work of dwarfs of the devil ? We
walked up to the top, through groves of Ilex, Smilax, and Coronella
(the first time I have seen it growing), and then we walked across
on the top. A false step, and one was a hundred feet down, but
that is not my line. Still, if any one is giddy, he had better not
try it. The masonry is wonderful, and instead of employing the
mountain limestone of the hills, they have brought the most splen-
did Bath oolite from the hills opposite. There are the marks cut
by the old fellows horse-hoofs, hatchets, initials, &c., as fresh as
paint. The Emperor has had it all repaired from the same quarries,
stone for stone. Now, after 1600 years, they are going to bring
the same water into Nismes by it "
"I stopped at Nismes, and begin again at Avignon. We saw-
to-day the most wonderful Roman remains. I have brought back
a little book of photographs. But the remarkable thing was the
Roman ladies' baths in a fountain bursting up out of the rock,
where, under colonnades, they walked about, in or out of the water
as they chose. All is standing, and could be used to-morrow, if
the prudery of the priests allowed it. Honor to those Romans
with all their sins, they were the cleanest people the world has ever
seen. But to tell you all I saw at Nismes would take a book.
Perhaps it will make one some day Good-bye. I
shall write again to-morrow from this, the most wonderful place I
have yet seen."
AVIGNON, Sunday.
"We are still here under the shadow of that terrible fortress
which the Holy Fathers of mankind erected to show men their idea
of paternity. A dreadful dungeon on a rock. The vastest pile of
To his Youngest Daughter. 353
stone I ever saw. Men asked for bread, and they gave a stone,
most literally. Z have seen La Tour de la Glaciere, famous for its
horrors of 1 793, but did not care to enter. The sight here are the
walls very nearly perfect, and being all restored by Viollet-le-Duc,
under government "
TO HIS YOUNGEST DAUGHTER.
BIARRITZ.
" MY DARLING MARY,
" I am going to write you a long letter about all sorts of things.
And first, this place is full of the prettiest children I ever saw, very
like English, but with dark hair and eyes, and none of them look
poor or ragged ; but so nicely dressed, with striped stockings, which
they knit themselves, and Basque shoes, made of canvas, worked
with red and purple worsted. There is a little girl here six years
old, a chemist's daughter, who knits all her own woollen stockings.
Mrs. *.* * * has given her Mademoiselle Lili, and she has learnt
it all by heart, and we have great fun making her say it. All the
children go to a school kept by nuns ; and I am sure the poor nuns
are very kind to them, for they laugh and romp it seems to me all
day long. In summer most of them wear no shoes or stockings,
for they do not want them ; but in winter they are wrapped up
warm ; and I have not seen one ragged child or tramp, or any one
who looks miserable. They never wear any bonnets. The little
babies wear a white cap, and the children a woollen cap with
pretty colors, and the girls a smart handkerchief on their back hair,
and the boys and men wear blue and scarlet caps like Scotchmen,
just the shape of mushrooms, and a red sash.
"The oxen here are quite yellow, and so gentle and wise, the
men make them do exactly what they like. I will draw you an ox
cart when I come home. 'The banks here are covered with enor-
mous canes, as high as the eaves of our house. They tie one of
these to a fir pole, and make a huge long rod, and then go and sit
on the rocks and fish for doradas, which are fish with gilt heads.
There is an old gentleman in a scarlet blouse and blue mushroom
just gone down to fish and I am going to look at him. There are
the most lovely sweet smelling purple pinks on the rocks here, and
the woods are full of asphodel, great lilies, four feet high, with white
and purple flowers. I saw the wood yesterday where the dreadful
fight was between the French and English and over the place
where all the brave men lay buried grew one great flower-bed of
asphodel. So they ' slept in the meads of asphodel,' like the old
Greek heroes in Homer. There were great ' lords and ladies,'
(arums) there, growing in the bank, twice as big as ours, and not
red, but white and primrose most beautiful. But you cannot
think how beautiful the commons are, they are like flower gardens,
golden with furze, and white with potentilla, and crimson with
23
354 Charles Kingsley.
sweet smelling Daphne, and blue with the most wonderful blue
flower which grows everywhere. I have dried them all.
" Tell your darling mother I am quite well, and will write to her
to-morrow. Tell her I met last night at dinner a Comtesse de M.
(nee D ), the most charming old Scotch Frenchwoman, with snow-
white powdered hair, and I drew her portrait for her. There, that
is all I have to say. Tell Grenville they have made a tunnel under
the battle-field, for the railroad to go into Spain, and that on the
top of the tunnel there is a shaft, and a huge wheel, to pump air
into the tunnel, and that I will bring him home a scarlet Basque
cap, and you and Rose Basque shoes ....
" YOUR OWN DADDY."
He now returned to work and letters, and writes to Mr.
Maurice
EVERSLEY, Friday.
" I have just read your letter to the Bishop of London. You
have struck at the root of the matter in every page. For me, I am
startled by hearing a man talk of the eternity of hell-fire, who be-
lieves the Athanasian Creed, that there is but one Eternal. If so,
then this fire is the fire of God yea, is God himself, whom the
Scriptures formally identify with that fire. But if so, it must be a
fire of purification, not of mere useless torment ; it must be a
spiritual and not a physical fire, and its eternity must be a good, a
blessed, an ever useful one ; and amenable to the laws which God
has revealed concerning the rest of his attributes, and especially to
the great law 'when the wicked man turneth he shall save his soul
alive.' This eternal law no metaphors of fire and brimstone can
abrogate. But I have much more to say on all this ; only I am
not well enough to formalise it ; so I must content myself, as I
have for some time past, with preaching Him whom you bid me
preach, sure that if I can show people His light, that of itself will
dissipate their darkness.
" I am come back (from France) better, but not well, and un-
able to take any mental exertion."
Before going abroad he had given a lecture at Aldershot Camp
on the " Study of History," and preached at Whitehall for the Con-
sumptive Hospital, and on his return had preached one of his finest
Eversley sermons, " Ezekiel's Vision," before the Queen at Wind-
sor Castle, and a remarkable one on " the Wages of Sin is Death,"
at the Chapel Royal, St. James's. Those who accused him of
preaching a "soft" gospel and an "indulgent" God, would have
believed otherwise if they had been present and had heard his
University Sermons on David. 355
burning words, and watched the fiery earnestness with which then
and always he addressed a London congregation.
This year the proposal for the enclosure of Eversley Common
land was decided on, and was a real distress to him. He regretted
it not only from a mere aesthetic point of view, feeling that if it
were carried out the characteristic beauty of the parish he loved so
well would be gone : but for the sake of the poor man who kept
his geese and cut his turf at his own will ; the loss too of the
cricket ground where the men and boys had played for years,
vexed him. " Eversley will no longer be the same Eversley to
me." It was a wound to his heart which never healed.
He was busy in the autumn preparing his university sermons on
David, having been selected as one of the preachers at Cambridge
for 1865, and in a letter to Mr. Maurice he speaks of his work :
" I have read with delight your words in ' Macmillan ' on the
Pope's letter. I am sure that you are right, and that the most im-
portant lesson to be drawn from it is the one which you point out. It
is that longing for unity which he has outraged the aspiration which
is working, I verily believe, in all thinking hearts, which one thrusts
away fiercely at times as impossible and a phantom, and finds one-
self at once so much meaner, more worldly, more careless of every-
thing worth having, that one has to go back again to the old
dream.
" But what I feel you have taught me, and which is invaluable to
me in writing these University sermons, from which God send me
good deliverance, is, that we need not make the unity from doctrines
or systems, but preach the fact that the unity is made by and in the
perpetual government of the Living Christ.
" And I do see, that the medieval clergy preached that, con-
fusedly of course, but with a clearness and strength to which neither
we nor the modern Papists have attained. They preach their own
kingdom, we a scheme of salvation. From both I take refuge
more and more where you have taught me to go- -to the plain words
of Scripture, as interpreting the facts about me.
" Wish me well through these sermons. They lie heavy on my
sinful soul."
When the Christmas vacation was over he went up to Cambridge
to give these sermons. St. Mary's was crowded with undergradu-
ates long before the services began, and he felt the responsibility a
heavy one. The subject chosen was " David," and the series was
published under that title.
356 Charles Kings ley.
The letters of 1865 that have been recovered are few. He was
so broken in strength, that to get through the duties of his professor-
ship and his parish was as much, nay, more than he could manage,
and in the summer he was forced to leave home with his family
for three months' rest, and settle quietly on the coast of Norfolk.
TO TOM HUGHES, ESQ.
EVERSLEY, May 2\, 1865.
" I have delayed writing to you. First, I have had a tragedy on
hand ; next, I wanted to tell you the end of it. Henry Erskine, as
you I suppose know, is dead at the age of forty-nine. We buried
him to-day ; the father hardly cold in the ground. His death is to
me a great sorrow a gap in my life which I feel and cannot fill. A
nobler, honester, kindlier man never lived, or one more regretted
by men of all kinds who knew his private worth. Such a death as
his draws one closer to the men of our own age whom one has still
left, and among others to you.
" I. am delighted to see you on Mill's committee at Maurice's
side. You have done a good deal of good work, but never better
than that. I wish I were a Westminster elector for the time, that
I might work for him and with you. I am much struck with his
committee-list in to-day's 'Times,' so many men of different opinions
and classes, whom one knew and valued for different things, finding
a common cause in Mill, R C , and Holyoake, side by side.
I do hope you will succeed. I am just writing to Mill at Avignon
anent this noble book of his on Sir W. Hamilton, and shall tell him
of many things which ought to please him. I answered your good
friend as kindly as I could, but as I have had to answer dozens
that the doctors forbid my preaching. I gave my necessary White-
hall sermon to the Consumptive Hospital as to an old and dear
friend ; but I have refused all others. I am getting better after
fifteen months of illness, and I hope to be of some use again some
day ; a sadder and a wiser man, the former, at least, I grow every
year. I catch a trout now and then out of my ponds (I am too
weak for a day's fishing, and the doctors have absolutely forbidden
me my salmon). I have had one or two this year, of three and two
pounds, and a brace to-day, near one pound each, so I am not left
troutless "
TO REV. F. D. MAURICE.
" Youi letter comforted me, for (strange as it may seem for me
to say so) the only thing I really care for the only thing which
gives me comfort is theology, in the strict sense ; though God
The Doctrine of the Trinity. 357
knows I know little enough about it. I wish one thing that you
would define for me what you mean by being ' baptised into a name.'
The preposition in its transcendental sense puzzles me, and others
likewise. I sometimes seem to grasp it, and sometimes again lose
it, from the very unrealistic turn of mind which 1 have in common
with this generation. I want your definition (or translation of the
formula into words of this generation) that I may tell them some-
what as to what you mean.
" As to the Trinity I do understand you. You first taught me
that the doctrine was a live thing, and not a mere formula to be
swallowed by the undigesting reason, and from the time that I learnt
from you that a Father meant a real Father, a Son a real Son, and
a Holy Spirit a real Spirit, who was really good and holy, I have
been able to draw all sorts of practical lessons from it in the pulpit,
and ground all my morality, and a great deal of my natural philoso-
phy upon it, and shall do so more. The procession of the Spirit
from the Father and the Son, for instance, is most practically im-
portant to me. If the Spirit proceeds only from the Father, the
whole theorem of the Trinity, as well as its practical results, fall
to pieces to my mind. I don't mean that good men in the Greek
Church are not better than I. On the contrary, I believe that
every good man therein believes in the procession from both Father
and Son, whether he thinks that he does or not. But in this case,
as in others, one has extreme difficulty in remembering, and still
more in making others understand, that a man may believe the
facts which the doctrine connotes without believing the doctrine,
just as he may believe that a horse is a horse, for every practical
purpose, though he may have been mistaught to call it a cow. It
is this slavery to formulae this mistaking of words for conceptions,
and then again of conceptions for the facts, which seems our present
curse ; and how much of it do we not owe to the Calvinists, who
laid again on our necks the yoke of conceptions which we were
bursting at the Reformation, because neither we nor our fathers
could bear it. It was this which made me reject Mansell and
Hamilton's 'The Absolute' and 'The Infinite,' and say, 'If these
"men's arguments are good for anything, they prove that either i.
God is not The Absolute and The Infinite, as they assert He is ; or,
2. That there is no God.' What they are meant to prove really
being, that we cannot conceive what we cannot conceive, which is
not new, though true ; and also in Mansell' s, case, that though we
cannot conceive an ^///conditional God, we can easily enough con-
ceive an ///-conditioned one, which, again, though true, is not new.
It was therefore with great comfort that I found Mill, in his chap-
ter iv., take exactly the same line against those words ; only, of
course, with infinitely more force and clearness.
" I am taking a regular course of metaphysic, and so forth, as a
tonic after the long debauchery of fiction-writing. I say to you,
3 58 Charles Kings ley.
once for all, Have patience with me, and 1 will pay thee not all,
but a little, and I know you will not take me by the throat. If you
did, you would break my heart ; which could be much more easily
broken than people think. If a man is intensely in earnest after
truth, be it what it may, and also intensely disgusted with his own
laziness, worldliness, and sensuality, his heart is not difficult to
break.
" Poor Spring Rice ! * That was a noble gentleman, and had
he had health, might have been a noble statesman. I never met a
more single eye. ' Look to the single eye in others,' he once said
to me, ' I judge of every man by the first question I ask him.
Has he an arriere pen see or not ? Does he answer what he knows,
simply, or what he " thinks will do ? " If the former, he is my
friend henceforth ; if the latter, he is nothing to me.'
" I don't quite understand one point in your letter. You say,
'The Articles were not intended to bind men's thoughts or con-
sciences ! ' Now, I can't help feeling that when they assert a
proposition, e.g., the Trinity, they assert that that and nothing
else on that matter is true, and so bind thought ; and that they
require me to swear that I believe it so, and so bind my con-
science.
" In the case where they condemn an error, it seems to me quite
different. There they proscribe one form of thought, and leave all
others open by implication, binding neither thought nor conscience.
Thus the Tract XC. argument was quite fair if its author could
have used it fairly. The Romish doctrine of Purgatory is false ;
but denying that does not forbid me to believe other doctrines of
Purgatory to be true, and to speculate freely on the future state.
So that what you say applies clearly (to me) to the cases in which
the Articles deny. It applies also to all cases in which the Articles
do not affirm, e.g., endless torture.
"Also to all in which it uses words without defining them, e.g.,
the Article on Predestination, which I sign in what I conceive to
be the literal sense not only of it, but of the corresponding passage
in St. Paul, without believing one word of the Calvinistic theory, or
that St. Paul was speaking of the future state at all.
" But how does your theorem apply where the Articles not only
assert, but define ? That I want to understand.
" For myself, I can sign the Articles in their literal sense toto
corde, and subscription is no bondage to me, and so I am sure can
you. But all I demand is, that, in signing the Articles, I shall be
understood to sign them and nothing more ; that I do not sign any-
thing beyond the words, and demand the right to put my construc-
tion on the words, answerable only to God and my conscience,
and refusing to accept any sense of the words, however popular
* The late Right Honoiable Stephen Spring Rice.
Subscription to the Articles. 359
and venerable, unless I choose. In practice, Gorham and Pusey
both do this, and nothing else, whenever it suits them. I demand
that I shall have, just the same liberty as they, and no more.
" But the world at large uses a very powerful, though worthless,
argument. Lord **** answered, when I asked him why the
Articles had not denned inspiration. ' Because they never expected
that men would arise heretics enough to deny it ! ' I had to reply
and I think convinced him that that line of thought would de-
stroy all worth in formula, by making signing mean, ' I sign the
XXXIX. Articles, and as many more as the Church has forgotten
to, or may have need to, put in.'
" But the mob, whose superstitions are the very cosmogony of
their creed, would think that argument conclusive, and say, of
course, you are expected to believe, over and above, such things as
endless torture, verbal dictation, &c., which are more of the es-
sence of Christianity than the creeds themselves, or the Being of a
God.
" Meanwhile, each would make a reservation the ' Evangelical '
of the Calvinist School would say in his heart and of course
(though I daren't say so) every man is expected to believe conver-
sion, even though not mentioned ; and the Romanist, of course
every man must believe in the Pope, though not mentioned ; and
the reigning superstition, not the formulae actually signed, becomes
the test of faith.
" But how we are to better this by doing away with subscription,
I don't see yet.
" As long as the Articles stand, and as long as they are in-
terpreted by lawyers only, who will ask sternly, ' Is it in the
bond ? ' and nothing else, I see hope for freedom and safety. If
subscription was done away, every man would either teach what
was right in his own eyes which would be somewhat confus-
ing or he would have to be controlled by a body, not of written
words, but of thinking men. From whom may my Lord deliver
me !
" For as soon as any body of men, however venerable, have the
power given them to dictate to me what I shall think and preach,
I shall answer my compact with the Church of England is over.
I swore to the Articles, and not to you. I have preached my
last sermon for you There is my living, give it to
whom you will ; I wipe off the dust of my feet against you, and go
free.
" And therefore I do not care for the * * * * and ** ** trying to
make the Articles a tyranny, by making them talk popular super-
stition, because I have faith sufficient in the honesty and dialectic of
an English lay lawyer to protect me against their devices ; and, for
the sake of freedom, cannot cast in my lot with * * * *, dearly as I
love him.
360 Charles Kings ley.
" Now, do tell me whether this seems to you sense or non-
sense. . . ."
That his mind was deeply exercised at times, the following ex-
tract in a letter to Mr. Maurice shows :
" I feel a capacity of drifting to sea in me which makes me cling
nervously to any little anchor, like subscription. I feel glad of
aught that says to me, ' You must teach this and nothing else ; you
must not run riot in your own dreams !'...."
This may be a comfort to troubled souls when they remember the
calm assured faith with which he faced life and death, and when
standing on the very threshold of the next world, was heard repeat-
ing again and again, " It is all right all under rule." Perhaps his
dearly loved George Fox's words best express the habitual attitude
of his heart and mind for thirty years. " And I saw that there was
an Ocean of Darkness and Death : but an infinite Ocean of Light
and Love flowed over the Ocean of Darkness : and in that I saw
the infinite Love of God." (George Fox's Journal.}
TO REV. F. D. MAURICE.
EVERSLEY, Saturday.
" Many thanks for your letter. I am very sorry I differ from you
about Savonarola. It seems to me that his protest for the kingdom
of God and against sin was little worth, and came to nought, just
because it was from the merely negative inhuman monks' stand-
point of the i3th century ; that he would at best have got the world
back to St. Bernard's time, to begin all over again, and end just
where Savonarola had found them. Centuries of teaching such as
his had ended in leaving Italy a hell on earth ; new medicine was
needed, which no monk could give. A similar case, it seems to me,
is that of the poor Port-royalists. They tried to habilitate the monk-
ideal of righteousness. They were civilized off the face of the earth,
as was poor Savonarola, by men worse than themselves, but more
humane, with wider (though shallower) notions of what man and the
universe meant.
"As for Luther, I am very sorry to seem disrespectful to him,
but the outcome of his demonology was, that many a poor woman
died in shame and torture in Protestant Germany, just because
Luther had given his sanction to the old lie, and he needs excusing
solely for that. I do not undervalue his protest against man's true
and real spiritual enemies. I excuse his protest against certain
Queen Emma at Eversley. 361
fancied enemies, which were not spiritual at all, but carnal, phan-
toms of the brain, and suffered to do carnal and material harm.
Ever since the 4th century had this carnal counterfeit of the true
dernonology been interweaving itself with Christianity. It had cost
the lives of thousands. It is so horrible a matter that I (who have
studied it largely) cannot speak of it calmly, and do not wish to.
And of its effects on physical science I say nothing here, disas-
trously retarding as it has been, and therefore costing thousands of
lives more, and preventing the sick from being properly treated, or
sanitary precautions taken. But of this more when I have the very
great pleasure of becoming your guest."
In the autumn Queen Emma of the Sandwich Islands came on a
visit of two days to Eversley Rectory. King Kamehameha, her
husband, had read Mr. Kingsley's books and she was anxious to
know him. She also wished to combine with her visit to Eversley
one to the Wellington College, of which she had heard much, and
where it was said if her little son had lived, he would have been
sent for his education. It was a great pleasure to Mr. Kingsley to
take Queen Emma to the college, and to point out to her all the
arrangements made by the wise and good Prince, of whom she had
heard so much, to make it a first-rate modern school, and which
were so admirably carried out by the Head Master. Dr. Benson
took her all over it, and into its beautiful chapel and museum.
After seeing the boys at dinner in hall, and tasting their pudding
at the high table, she asked for a half-holiday for them, upon which
Ponsonby, then head of the school, called for three cheers for
Queen Emma ; and as they resounded through the dining hall at
the granting of her request, she was startled almost to terror, for it
was the first time in her life that she had heard the cheers of English
public school boys. She went on the playground, and for the first
time saw a game of cricket, examined the bats, balls, wickets, and
pads, looking into everything with her own peculiar intelligence.
After dinner at Eversley Rectory, she drove over again to Welling-
ton to be present at the evening choral service in chapel, fol-
lowed the musical notes of each hymn and chant, and was struck, as
every one was, by the reverent behavior of the boys. In driving
back to the Rectory that night, she said, " It is so strange to me to
be staying with you and to see Mr. Kingsley. My husband read
your husband's ' Waterbabies ' to our little Prince." Queen Emma
wrote soon after an autograph letter to Dr. Benson, which was
362 Charles Kings ley.
read aloud to the boys, expressing her deep gratification with her
visit to Wellington College. At the same time she wrote to Mr.
Kingsley :
November 3, 1865.
" I have the pleasure to fulfil my promise of sending you a Book
of Common Prayer in Hawaiian, together with a preface written by
the Translator of the former, Kamehameha IV., my late husband,
and king of our islands, and a portrait of myself which will, I hope,
sometimes remind you of one who has learnt to esteem you and
Mrs. Kingsley, as friends in whose welfare and happiness she will
always feel the greatest interest. Please remember me kindly to
your daughters,
"And believe me to be,
. " My dear Mr. Kingsley,
" Yours very truly,
" EMMA."
On the pth of November, he went, by royal command, to stay at
Windsor Castle, and on the following day, while preaching before
the Court, a telegram came to the Queen to announce the death
of Leopold, King of the Belgians. Mr. Kingsley had been asked
to write a few lines in the album of the Crown Princess of Prussia,
and with his mind full of this great European event, wrote the fol-
lowing Impromptu, which is inserted here by the kind permission
of her Imperial Highness :
November 10, 1865.
" A king is dead ! Another master mind
Is summoned from the world-wide council-hall
Ah for some seer, to say what lurks behind
To read the mystic writing on the wall !
" Be still, fond man : nor ask thy fate to know.
Face bravely what each God-sent moment brings.
Above thee rules in love, through weal and woe,
Guiding thy kings and thee, the King of kings.
"C. KINGSLEY."
CHAPTER XXIV.
18661867.
AGED 47 48.
Cambridge Death of Dr. Whewell The American Professorship Monotonous
Life of the Country Laboring Class Penny Readings Strange Correspond-
ents Life oi Bewick Letters to Max Miiller The Jews in Cornwall The
Meteor Shower Letter to Professor Adams^The House of Lords A Father's
Education of his Son " Eraser's Magazine" Bird Life, Wood Wrens
Names and Places Darwinism Beauty of Color, its Influence and Attrac-
tionsFlat-Fish Ice Problems St. Andrews and British Association Aber-
geldie Castle Rules for Stammerers.
WHILE the Professor was giving his usual course of lectures in
the Lent term of 1866 at Cambridge, a great blow fell upon the
University in the death of Dr. Whewell, Master of Trinity, and he
writes home :
" I am sorry to say Whewell is beaten by his terrible foe. It is
only a question of hours now. The feeling here is deep and solemn.
Men say he was the leader in progress and reform, when such were
a persecuted minority. He was the regenerator of Trinity ; he is
connected with every step forward that the University has made
for years past.
" Yes. He was a very great man : and men here feel the awful
suddenness of it. He never was better or pleasanter than on the
Thursday, when I dined there, and he was asking me for my ' dear
wife.' His manner with women was always charming. He was
very kind to me, and I was very fond of him.
" Whewell is dead ! I spoke a few solemn words to the lads
before lecture, telling them what a mighty spirit had passed away,
what he had been to Cambridge and science, and how his example
ought to show them that they were in a place where nothing was
required for the most splendid success, but love of knowledge and
indomitable energy. They heard me with very deep attention.
He is to be buried in the College Chapel, Saturday
I am up to the eyes in work, sending round my Harvard ad-
dress."
364 Charles Kings ley.
The Harvard address alluded to here was on the subject of an
American Professorship, which had been proposed for Cambridge.
The following letter to Sir Charles Lyell explains its object :
BARTON HALL, February 18, 1866.
" I take the liberty of enclosing a broadsheet which I have just
issued at Cambridge. It expresses, I am happy to say, the opinions
of all the most educated Cambridge men, on the subject of the
proposed American Lectureship, to be founded by a Mr. Yates
Thompson, of Liverpool, and supplied by the authorities of Har-
vard College, United States. If any of your many American friends
are interested in the matter, you would perhaps kindly show them
this broadsheet."
THE AMERICAN LECTURESHIP.
" I trust that it will not be considered impertinent, if I, as Pro-
fessor of Modern History, address a few words on this matter to the
Masters of Art in this University.
" My own wish is, that the proposal be accepted, as frankly as it
has been made.
" Harvard University an offshoot, practically, of our own Uni-
versity is a body so distinguished, that any proposition coming
from it deserves our most respectful consideration ; and an offer
of this kind, on their part, is to be looked on as a very graceful
compliment.
" The objections are obvious ; but after looking them through
fairly, as they suggested themselves to me, 1 must say that they are
fully met by Mr. Thompson's own conditions ; by the Vice-Chan-
cellor's veto, and by the clause empowering either University to put
an end to the Lectureship when they like.
" But they are best met by the character of Harvard University
itself. Its rulers, learned and high-minded gentlemen, painfully
aware of our general ignorance about them, and honorably anxious
to prove themselves (what they are) our equals in civilization, will
take care to send us the very best man whom they can find. And
more than one person suggests himself to my mind, whom if they
chose (as they would be very likely to choose) I should gladly
welcome as my own instructor in the history of his country.
" When I did myself the honor of lecturing in this University on
the History of the United States, I became painfully aware how
little was known, and how little, then, could be known, on the
subject. This great want has been since supplied by a large addi-
tion to the University Library of American literature. I think it
most important that it should be still further removed by the resi-
dence among us of an American gentleman.
The American Lectureship at Cambridge. 365
" If there should be, in any minds, the fear that this University
should be 'Americanized,' or 'democratized,' they should remem-
ber, that this proposal comes from the representatives of that class
in America, which regards England with most love and respect;
which feels itself in increasing danger of being swamped by the
lower elements of a vast democracy ; which has, of late years,
withdrawn more and more from public life, in order to preserve its
own purity and self-respect; which now holds out the right hand
of fellowship to us, as to one of the most conservative bodies in
this country, because it feels itself a conservative element in its
own country, and looks to us for just recognition in that character.
It is morally impossible that such men should go out of their way,
to become propagandists of those very revolutionary principles,
against which they are honorably struggling at home.
" And if there be (as there is) an attempt going on just now to
' Americanize ' England, on the part of certain Englishmen, no
better defence against such a scheme can be devised, than to teach
the educated young men of England as much as possible about
America ; to let them hear the truth from worthy American lips ;
and judge for themselves.
" But I deprecate the introducing into this question any notions
drawn from general American politics, or manners. We have no
more right to judge of Harvard by our notions of the '
.' or the 'Black Republican' pulpit, than Harvard would have
to judge of Cambridge by Reynolds's 'Mysteries of London,' or,
.' It is simply a question between two dignified and
learned bodies. Let it remain as such. There are as great differ-
ences of civilization, rank, learning, opinions, manners, in America,
as in England ; and if we are not yet convinced of that fact, it
will be good for us that a highly-educated American gentleman
should come hither and prove it.
" Of the general importance of the scheme, of the great necessity
that our young men should know as much as possible of a country
destined to be the greatest in the world, I shall say little. I shall
only ask If in the second century before the Christian era the
Romans had offered to send a lecturer to Athens, that he might
tell Greek gentlemen of what manner of men this new Italian
power was composed, what were their laws and customs, their
intentions, and their notion of their own duty and destiny would
Athens have been wise or foolish in accepting the offer ?
" May I, in conclusion, allude to one argument, which would of
course have no weight with the University in a question of right and
wrong, but which may have weight in one, like the present, of
expediency ?
" If we decline this offer, I fear that we shall give offence, not of
course to gentlemen like the rulers of Harvard, but to thousands
who care as little for Harvard as they do for our own Cambridge.
366 Charles Kings ley.
A sensitive people like the Americans, instinct with national feel-
ing, among whom news is spread far more rapidly than in England,
will be but too likely to take up our refusal as a national insult.
The lower portion of the American press will be but too likely to
misrepresent and vilify our motives ; and a fresh soreness between
us and Americans may be caused (by no real fault of our own) at
the very time when we should be doing all in our power to promote
mutual good will and good understanding.
"C. KINGSLEY. I
"February 9, 1866."
The offer was finally rejected by vote of the Senate, to the great
regret of many leading men in the University.
The death of Dr. Whewell, the appointment of Mr. Maurice to
the chair of Moral Philosophy, the discussion of the American
Professorship, and the happiness of having his eldest son an under-
graduate of Trinity, made this a year of no ordinary interest, as far
as Cambridge was corrcerned, to the Professor.
His yearly residences at Cambridge gave him not only the
advantage of associating with scholars and men of mark in the
University, but of paying visits in the neighborhood to houses where
good pictures and charming society refreshed and helped him
through the toil of his professional work to Wimpole, to Ampthill
Park, and other country houses, where he and his were always
made welcome. While staying at Ampthill he first saw the pictures
at Woburn Abbey and Haynes Park, which were of deep interest
to him, and in reference to this time Mr. George Howard writes
from Naworth Castle in 1876 :
" Once I went over the picture gallery at Woburn with him, it
was a great treat to me, as his talk over the historical portraits was
delightful. He then made a remark which has since seemed to me
quite a key to the criticism of historical portraits: 'That it was for-
merly the habit of portrait painters to flatter their sitters by making
them as like the reigning king or queen as they could.' . . . "
During his heavy parish work, which was done single-handed
the greater part of this year, he was more than ever struck by the
monotonous, coloness life of the English laborer, varied only by
the yearly benefit-club day, and evenings at the public-house. The
absence of all pleasure from their lives weighed heavily on his
heart, more especially in the case of the poor hard-worked wives
Parish Labors. 367
and mothers who, if respectable, were excluded from even the poor
amusements of the men ; and for their sake, as well as for his men
and boys, he began a series of Penny Readings, which now have
become so common. It was characteristic of his chivalrous spirit
that at the first meeting, when the school-room was crowded with
men and boys, he made an appeal to them for their wives and
mothers, dwelling on the life of toil they led, and saying how
anxious he should be to give them a share in this amusement, which
they so sorely needed. It was therefore arranged that, while the
men and boys paid their pennies, the widows and poor overbur-
dened mothers should have free tickets.
These meetings, in which his parishioners would kindly help him,
occurred once a fortnight, and though set on foot for the poor,
brought all classes pleasantly together during the autumn and winter
nights ; they had music (the best that could be got), the best
poetry, the most heroic stories. Sometimes he would give simple
lectures on health ; accounts of his own travels ; and latterly ex-
tracts from his eldest son's letters from abroad, in which stories
expressly for the Penny Readings at home were not forgotten.
Village concerts, too, were given, got up by his daughter and son,
in which friends from London helped for his sake ; and the sight of
the well-lighted and decorated room to people who saw nothing at
home from one year's end to another but a farthing dip candle,
was a pleasure in itself ; the poor mothers were gratified at seeing
their sons in Sunday garments step up on the platform to help in
choruses and part songs, while the young men gained in self-re-
spect and refinement, by the share they took in the preparation as
well as the performance. " It was to him most curious," he used
to say, " to watch the effect of music upon the poor people upon,
alas ! seemingly unimpressionable drudges, in whom one would
expect to find no appreciation for refined sound ; " but yet who
would walk two miles to the village school-room on a wet night and
sit in rapt attention the whole evening, " showing their approba-
tion of good music, not by noisy applause, but by a kindling face
and eye during the piece, and a low hum of approbation after, that
hinted at a deep musical under-current below that rugged exterior."
Penny Readings are common now, but in his own immediate
neighborhood the Rector of Eversley took the lead in inaugurating
these pleasant gatherings.
368 Charles Kings ley.
His literary work this year consisted in two lectures on Science
and Superstition* at the Royal Institution. He preached for the
first time in one of the Great Nave services at Westminster Abbey,f
for the Bishop of London's Fund; to the boys of Wellington Col-
lege ; to the Queen at Clifden ; and his usual Chapel Royal
sermons. In the little congregation at Eversley for some of the
summer months, many distinguished men might be numbered ;
among them were Sir George Hamilton Seymour and General Sir
Win. Codrington.
The correspondence was, as usual, of a varied and singular
character. One day there came a long letter from a London news-
paper reporter, who, in return for some kindly, cheering words,
revealed the inner life of Bohemia with wonderful vividness, and
ended, " I have written you a very long and tedious letter, Mr.
Kingsley, and were I writing to an ordinary man, I should be mad
to address him at this length and in this vein. But you understand
things, and I am almost certain that you will understand me and
my long-windedness. Thank you again. Think gently of Bohemia
and its free Lances." ....
Another from Brighton, thanking him for " Alton Locke," signed
" A Chartist and Cabman."
Again, from a man who had lived abroad, and only signed him-
self " One who can never forget you," who had accidentally read
"Alton Locke" "in a time of overhelming misery" "You were
the means of saving me from ruin and destruction, to which I was
fast drifting."
From South Australia, 1867, a barrister writes, thanking him for
his " Sermons for the Times," " Pentateuch," and " Good News,"
telling him how they were read frequently by the special magistrate,
by his brother barrister, and by himself, in remote places, where
they have no Church clergymen, and the Bishop appoints laymen
to read sermons. "I could not," he says, " write as a stranger to
a man who has so honestly spoken to me of my life and its duties,
presented for the first time in the light in which you portray
them." ....
Letters came from China, from the heart of Africa, from the
other side of the Rocky Mountains all telling the same tale.
* Since republished in " Health and Education."
j- Tluse sermons have since appeared in a volume, " The Water of Life."
A Grateful Beneficiary. 369
One or two found their way to " Charles Kingsley, England,"
many were without any signature simple outpourings of loving
hearts, neither written from egotism or from the desire of getting
an autograph in return. One, also anonymous, dated Glasgow,
May ii, 1867, is so touching in itself and so significant of Mr.
Kingsley's daily acts of mercy unknown to all but himself and
those who received them, that it must be given entire :
"CHARLES KIXGSLEY,
" My dear friend, permit me to engage your kind attention for
a little. I often remember you and ' the kindness of God,' which
you showed towards me some years ago. You found me in the
way near Hartly Row, a poor, homeless, friendless, penniless
stranger. God sent you as an angel of mercy to me, a very un-
worthy creature. You were, indeed, like the good Samaritan to
me. You took me to the Lamb Inn, and there, for your sake, I
was very hospitably cared for. On the walls of a room in that inn
I wrote a prayer, which came from the very depths of my heart.
It was for you, that the Father of the fatherless would make you
most glad with His countenance for ever. That prayer I have
often breathed since then.
" I was not aware, till afterwards, that you were the author of so
many books, and a person of so great note. I rejoice in your hon-
orable fame."
These letters, and many a strange communication that he re-
ceived, not only cheered him in his work, but gave him fresh
knowledge of human nature in all its varied aspects that few men
have, and deepened his own humanity. He little thought they
were treasured up, to give others some small insight into his great
work, by one who feels it is no treachery to disclose them now, or
to mention what he never alluded to in his lifetime !
TO MR. T. DIXON.
EVERSLEY, October 27, 1866.
"The volumes of Bewick are come, and may I beg you to give to
the Misses Bewick the enclosed letter of thanks.
" I am delighted with the new vignettes all showing the genius
which shines from every touch of the truly great man's hand. Of
course, as the happy possessor of a Newcastle copy of 1809, in
which my father literally brought me up, I prefer the old, untouched
plates for softness, richness, and clearness. But we cannot expect
everything to last ; and the volumes which have been sent to me
24
370 Charles Kings ley.
are very valuable as memorials of Bewick, as well as proofs of the
kindfiess of people whom I know not, yet respect.
" I do not quite understand the end of your letter, in which you
are kind enough to compliment me for following Carlyle's advice
about one ' sadly tried.' I have followed the sage of Chelsea's
teaching, about my noble friend, ex-Governor Eyre of Jamaica. I
have been cursed for it, as if I had been a dog, who had never stood
up for the working man when all the world was hounding him (the
working man) down in 1848-9, and imperilled my own prospects
in life in behalf of freedom and justice. Now, men insult me
because I stand up for a man whom I believe ill-used, calumniated,
and hunted to death by fanatics. If you mean Mr. Eyre in what
you say, you indeed will give me pleasure, because I shall see that
one more ' man of the people ' has common sense to appreciate a
brave and good man, doing his best under terrible difficulties : but
if not, I know that 1 am right."
TO THE MISSES BEWICK.
" MY DEAR LADIES,
" I received with great pleasure the present of your father's
works in two volumes. The old edition of 1804 is fresher and
richer in the printing of the wood-cuts, but this is very interesting
to me and to my children, as containing so many new vignettes
which the old edition wants, and which all show the genius which
always accompanied his hand.
" Ladies, it is a great boon from God to have had a great father.
And I had no idea what a noble specimen of an Englishman he was,
till you did me the honor of sending me his ' Life.' The wisdom,
justice, moderation, and energy of his character impressed me with
a moral reverence for him, even greater than that which I already
felt for his artistic honor. Happy are the daughters who have
sprung from such a man, and who will meet him again in heaven.
" I am, my dear Ladies,
" Your obliged Servant,
" CHARLES KINGSLEY."
TO THE SAME.
April, 1867.
" Mrs. Kingsley and I have to thank you very much for your
most valuable present of your father's handwriting, and the sketch
acompanying it. I shall treasure them and pass them on as heir-
looms to my eldest son, who has been brought up on your father's
books, and is going out some day as a naturalist and a settler.
" But, my dear madam, you must not speak of my approving
your father's labors, you must speak of me as one who has been
you father's loving, reverent pupil, as was my father before me.
Jews Tin and Jews Houses. 371
" When your father's book of birds first came out, my father,
then a young hunting squire, in the New Forest, Hampshire, saw
the book in London, and bought at once the beautiful old copy
which has been the text-book of my boyhood. He, a sportsman
and field naturalist, loved it and carried it with him up and down
in days when no scientific knowledge could be had, from 1805-1820,
and when he was laughed at in the New Forest for having bought
a book about ' dicky birdies,' till his fellow squires borrowing his
copy, agreed that it was the most clever book they had ever seen,
and a revelation to them, who had had these phenomena under
their eyes all their lives and never noticed them.
" That my father should have introduced into the south of Eng-
land, first, your father's book, and have known his great pupil,
Yarrell, in person, is to me a great pleasure. Yarrell and my father
were friends from youth till death, and if my father had been alive
now he would have joined me in respect and affection for the
daughters of the great and wise Bewick."
TO PROFESSOR MAX MULLER.
EVERSLEY, November 16, 1866.
" DEAREST MAX,
" Story, bless you, I have none to tell you, save that in Corn-
wall these same old stories, of Jews' tin and Jews' houses, got from
the miners, filled my young brains with unhistoric nonsense, like
Mara-zion, the bitterness of Zion ; which town the old folk, I can't
tell why, call Market Jew still.
" That the Jews came to Cornwall as slaves after the destruction
of Jerusalem is possible and probable enough, but I know of no
evidence. That the old smelting works, and the tin found in them
was immemorially called Jews' tin and Jews' houses is well known ;
also that they are of an awful antiquity. Market Jew, as a town, is a
name you must explain. That is all. I put it in ' Yeast,' into the
mouth of a Cornish ex-miner. But I am glad you are taking the
matter up, and working Carew, Pohvhele, and Borlase. 1 should
expect you to find the root of the myths in that fruitful mother of
wind eggs, the sixteenth century.
" My dear Max, what great things have happened for Germany,
and what great men your Prussians have shown themselves. Much
as I was wroth with them about Schleswig-Holstein, I can only see
in this last campaign a great necessary move for the physical
safety of every North German household, and the honor of every
North German woman. To allow the possibility of a second
1807-1812 to remain, when it could be averted by any amount of
fighting, were sin and shame, and had I been a Prussian 1 would
have gone down to Saclowa as a sacred duty to wife and child and
fatherland.
" I am reading much German now, and shall need to ask you
37 2 Charles Kings ley.
questions, specially about the reaction from 1815-1820, and ihe
alleged treachery of the princes in not granting constitutions.
" Meanwhile, tell me if Gervinus, whom I am studying on that
matter, is worthy of credit, and recommend me a good author,
specially one who has thought before he wrote, and, not like
Gervinus, thought in writing, to the perplexing of himself and
reader." ....
The great meteor shower of November, 1866, was naturally of
intense' and, as he said himself, awful interest to him. In trembling
excitement he paced up and down the church-yard, where he had
a greater sweep of horizon than elsewhere, long before the time
arrived, and when the shower began called his wife and children
out of their beds to watch with him. He preached upon the great
spectacle in his own church and at the Chapel Royal.
TO PROFESSOR ADAMS.
EVERSLEY, November 14, 1866.
"The Jinns* (according to the Mussulman theory of meteors)
must have had a warm time of it about i A.M. this morning, and the
Eastern peoples (if the star shower was visible to them) must be
congratulating themselves that (unless the angels are very bad
shots) there is a very fair chance of the devil being killed at last.
" What I saw may at least amuse you. I presume any local
observations have value, however small.
" I saw the first meteor about 11.50, i.e., as soon as the head of
Leo rose above our rather high horizon. From that time the star
rain increased till about i A.M., and diminished till about 2.30,
when very few passed. They went on, I am told, till 5.30 this
morning. I saw no increase or diminution in the size of the me-
teors from beginning to end. Some of them were larger and more
brilliant than common shooting stars, but not many. The most
brilliant appeared of a reddish color, their tails green and bluish.
They all proceeded from the one point in Leo, only one other star
(as far as I saw) fell at right angles to their course, from the zenith
to the north. I was struck by the fact that they all proceeded in
quasi-straight lines- without any of that wavering and uncertainty
of direction so common in meteors. Any large number became
visible only about the zenith, or in falling towards the western
horizon.
* The Jinns or second order of spirits are supposed by the Mussulman to be
many of them killed by shooting stars, hurled at them from heaven ; wherefore,
the Arabs, when they see a shooting star, often exclaim, " May God transfix
the enemy of the faith !" Notes to Lane's " Thousand and One Nights."
The Star Shower. 373
" But the most striking and (to me) awful phenomenon was the
point of departure in Leo, where, again and again, meteors appeared
and hung for a moment, their tail so much foreshortened as to be
wholly or almost wholly unseen. These must have been coming
straight at us. Surely some may have struck our planet ?
" The seeming generation of these magnificent objects out of a
point of nonentity and void, was to me the most beautiful and strik-
ing sky phenomenon which I ever witnessed. Yet the actual facts
of their course are far more wonderful and awful than even that
appearance. I tried to picture to myself the thought and feelings
of a mediaeval observer, however rational or cool-headed he might
have been, in presence of that star shower ; and when I thought
of the terror with which he had a right to regard it, and the fantastic
explanation which he had a right to put upon it, I thanked your
astronomers for having ' delivered us by science from one more
object of dread.'
" I ought to say that there was here (in North Hants) no sign
of an Aurora Borealis, which is said to have accompanied the star
shower in certain cases.
"By-the-bye, what a lecture one might have given (illustrated by
nature's own diagrams) on the prospective of parallel lines and the
meaning of a vanishing point."
TO PROFESSOR LORIMER OF EDINBURGH.
EVERSLEY, December 17, 1866.
" I received some months since (and I hope duly acknowledged)
your book on ' The Constitutionalism of the Future.'
"I laid it by for study, when I should have time to do it justice.
I now write to express my great pleasure, both in the matter and
the manner of it. The views which you put forth are just those to
which I have been led by twenty years of thought and observa-
tion ; its manner, I wish I could copy. In it, clearness and method
are not merely ornamented, but strengthened by a vein of humor,
which is a sure sign of mastery of the subject, and of that faculty
which no education can give, called genius. I wish that in the
writings of our mutual friend, Mr. Mill, I could see some touch of
that same humor. I wish that there was any chance of your wise
advice being adopted ; but Mr. 's party have let loose that
spirit of envy, which is the counterfeit of your righteous idea of
equality relative, and tempts men to demand that impossible
equality absolute, which must end in making the moneylenders the
only privileged class. To men possessed by envy, your truly
scientific, as well as truly religious method, of looking for the facts
of God's world, and trying to represent them in laws, will be the
plot of a concealed aristocrat. I fear, too, that Mr. Mill and those
who follow him most closely, will hardly support your method, and
374 Charles Kings ley.
for the same reason, Mr. Mill (of whom I speak with real reverence)
seems to me to look on man too much as the creature of circum-
stances. This it is, which makes him disparage, if not totally deny,
the congenial differences of character in individuals, and still more
in races. He has, if I mistake not, openly denounced the doctrine
of difference and superiority in race. And it is this mistake (as it
seems to me) which has led him and others into that theory that
the suffrage ought to be educational and formative, which you have
so ably combated.
" Of course if it is assumed that all men are born into the world
equals, and that their inequality, in intellect or morals, is chargea-
ble entirely to circumstance, that inequality must be regarded as a
wrong done by society to the less favored. Society therefor has no
right to punish them by withholding the suffrage, for an inferiority
which she herself has created ; she is bound to treat them as if
they were actually what they would have been but for her, and if
they misuse their rights, she must pay the penalty of her previous
neglect and cruelty. This seems to me to be the revolutionary doc-
trine of 1793-1848, which convulsed Europe; and from its logic
and morality there is no escape as long as human beings are as-
serted to be congenitally equal, and circumstances the only cause
of subsequent inequality. I have some right to speak on this
subject, as 1 held that doctrine strongly myself in past years,
and was cured of it, in spite of its seeming justice and charity, by
the harsh school of facts. Nearly a quarter of a century spent in
educating my parishioners, and experience with my own and others
children, in fact, that schooling of facts brought home to the heart
which Mr. Mill has never had have taught me that there are
congenital differences and hereditary tendencies which defy all edu-
cation from circumstances, whether for good or evil. Society may
pity those who are born fools or knaves, but she cannot, for her
own sake, allow them power if she can help it. And therefore
in the case of the suffrage, she must demand some practical guar-
antee that the man on whom it is bestowed is not dangerously
knavish or foolish. I have seen, also, that the differences of race
are so great, that certain races, e.g., the Irish Celts, seem quite
unfit for self-government, and almost for the self-administration of
justice involved in trial by jury, because they regard freedom and
law, not as means for preserving what is just and right, but merely
as weapons to be used for their own private interests and passions.
They take the letter of freedom which killeth, without any concep-
tion of its spirit which giveth life. Nay, I go further, and fear
much that no Roman Catholic country will ever be fit for free con-
stitutional government, and for this simple reason, De Tocqueville
and his school (of whom I speak with great respect) say that the
cause of failure of free institutions in the Romance countries has
been, the absence of the primary training in municipal self-govern-
The Right of Suffrage. 375
merit. That I doubt not. But what has been the cause of that
want? the previous want of training in self government of the
individual himself. And as long as the system of education for all
classes in the Romance countries is one of tutelage and espionage
(proceeding from the priestly notions concerning sin), so long will
neither rich nor poor have any power of self-government. Any
one who knows the difference between a French lycee and an
English public school ought to see what I mean, and see one main
cause of the failure of all attempts at self-government in France.
May I without boring you (at least you are not bound to read this long
letter) go on to another subject, which seems to me just now of
great importance ? I think the giving intellect and civilization its
due weight, by means of plurality of votes, as you so well advise,
practically hopeless just now. But is there no body or influence
in the state which may secure them their due weight nevertheless?
I think that there is, namely, the House of Lords. You seem (and
herein alone I differ from you) to regard as the majority do, the Peers,
as standing alone in the state, and representing only themselves.
I, on the contrary, look at them as representing every silver fork
in Great Britain. What I mean is this, a person or body may be
truly representative without being elected by those whom they
represent. You will of course allow this. Now the House of
Lords seem to me to represent all heritable property, real or per-
sonal, and also all heritable products of moral civilization, such as
hereditary independence, chivalry, &c. They represent, in one
word, the hereditary principle. This, no House of Commons, no
elective body, can represent. It can only represent the temporary
wants and opinions of the many, and that portion of their capital
which is temporarily invested in trade, &c. It cannot represent the
hereditary instinct which binds man and the state to the past and
future generations. If you watch the current of American feeling
and society you will see full proof of this. If the family bond
should break up there, soon the bond will break up which makes a
nation responsible in honor for the deeds of its ancestors, and
therefore regardful of the obligation of international treaties. Now
a body is required which represents the past and the future, and
all material or spiritual which has been inherited from the past or
bequeathed to the future. And this body must itself be an hereditary
one. Some one may answer, 'Just as much as, Who drives fat
oxen must himself be fat.' But it seems to me,
" i. That such a body must be non-elected, to keep it safe from
the changes of temporary popular opinion. An elective upper
chamber is a monster which is certain to become a den of dema-
gogues and money-lenders.
" 2. That it must be hereditary, because it is impossible for men
to represent that which they are not themselves. The Peers are
the incarnation of the hereditary principle. I look on them there-
376 Charles Kings ley.
fore as what they are in fact, not a caste, not even a class, but a
certain number of specimens of a class chosen out by the accident
(and a very fair choice, because it prevents quarrels and popular
intrigues) of being eldest sons. I look on them as the representa-
tives, not only of every younger brother, &c., of their own kin, and
of every family which has ever intermarried, or hopes to intermarry
with them (though that would include the great majority of well-
educated Britons), but as the representatives of every man who has
saved up enough to buy a silver fork, a picture, a Yankee clock, or
anything, in fact, which he wishes to hand to his children. I hold
that while Mr. Bright may, if he likes, claim to be represented
merely by the House of Commons, his plate and house is repre-
sented by the House of Lords, and that if the House of Lords were
abolished, Mr. Bright' s children would discover that fact by the
introduction of laws which would injure the value of all heritable
property, would tax (under the name of luxuries) the products of
art and civilization, would try to drive capital into those trades
which afforded most employment for -skilled labor, and supplied
most the temporary necessities of the back and belly, and would
tend to tax the rich for the sake of the poor, with very ugly results
to civilization.
" This picture may seem overdrawn. But I answer, this is already
the tendency in the United States. The next fifty years will prove
whether that tendency can be conquered or not in a pure demo-
cracy, such as they have now for the first time become, since they
have exterminated their southern hereditary aristocracy, and their
northern hereditary aristocracy, the Puritan gentlemen of old
families have retired in disgust from public life. May I ask you to
think over this view of the House of Lords. And may I ask you
how far you think, if it be correct, it can be wisely pressed upon
all classes, and specially upon the titled persons (there is no titled
class in these realms) themselves ?
" Pray excuse the length of this letter. But your book awoke
such an interest in me a solitary country thinker that I could
not resist the temptation of pouring out to you some of the re-
sults of my years of practical observation of, and pondering on,
facts."
In the spring of 1867 he undertook the editorship of " Eraser's
Magazine " for a few months for Mr. Froude, who had to go to
Spain to study the archives of Simancas for his history, and he
seized upon this opportunity to get a few papers on science into its
pages, and wrote to his friends Professor Newton, Sir Charles Bun-
bury, and others, begging for help, to which they kindly responded
Professor Newton writing on the Birds of Norfolk ; Sir Charles
Natural Selection. 377
on the Flora of South America ; he himself contributing one of
his most lovely idylls, " A Charm of Birds."
TO CHARLES DARWIN, ESQ., F.L.S., F.G.S.
EVERSLEY, June 6, 1867.
" I am very anxious to obtain a copy of a pamphlet, which I
unfortunately lost. It came out shortly after your ' Origin of
Species,' and was entitled ' Reasons for believing in Mr. Darwin's
Theory ' or some such words. It contained a list of phenomenal
puzzles, forty or more, which were explicable by you and not
otherwise. If you can recollect it, and tell me where I can get a
copy, I shall be very glad, as I may specially want it in your
defence.
" I advise you to look at a wonderful article in the ' North
British ' about you. It is a pity the man who wrote it had not
studied zoology and botany, before writing about them.
" The Duke of Argyle's book is very fair and manly, although
he cannot agree with you. What he says about the humming birds
is his weakest part. He utterly overlooks sexual selection by the
females, as one great branch of natural selection. Why on earth
are the males only (to use his teleological view) ornamented, save
for the amusement of the females first ? In his earnestness to
press the point (which I think you have really overlooked too
much), that beauty in animals and plants is intended for the res-
thetic education and pleasure of man, and (as I believe in my old-
fashioned way), for the pleasure of a God who rejoices in His
works as a painter in his picture in his hurry, I say, to urge this
truth, he has overlooked that beauty in any animal must surely first
please the animals of that species, and that beauty in males alone
is a broad hint that the females are meant to be charmed thereby
and once allow that any striking new color would attract any
single female, you have an opening for endless variation.
" Altogether, even the 'North British' pleases me, for the writer
is forced to allow some natural selection, and forced to allow some
great duration of the earth ; and so every one who fights you is
forced to allow some of your arguments, as a tub to the whale, if
only he may be allowed to deny others, while very few have the
honesty to confess that they know nothing about the matter, save
what you have put into their heads.
" Remark that the argument of the ' North British,' that geolo-
gical changes were more violent, and the physical energies of the
earth more intense in old times, cuts both ways. For if that
be true, then changes of circumstance in plants and animals must
have been more rapid, and the inclination to vary from ontii..,
Emancipated Women. 417
sexual questions, by the help of woman raised to her proper place.
That you mean to do so I take for granted. That I do, I hope
you take for granted. If not, I should be glad some day to have
the honor of talking over with you this whole matter, on which I
have long thought, and on which I have arrived at conclusions
which I keep to myself as yet, and only utter as Greek ^xavarra
crui-eToicri, the principle of which is, that there will never be a good
world for woman, till the last monk, and therewith the last remnant
of the monastic idea of, and legislation for, woman, i.e., the canon
law, is civilized off the earth.
" Meanwhile, all the most pure and high-minded women in Eng-
land, and in Europe, have been brought up under the shadow of the
canon law, have accepted it, with their usual divine self-sacrifice, as
their destiny by law of God and nature ; and consider their own
womanhood outraged, when it, their tyrant, is meddled with. It is to
them, therefore, if we wish (as I do) for a social revolution, that we
must address ourselves mildly, privately, modestly, rationally. Public
meetings drive them away, for their experiences, difficulties, wrongs,
are too sacred to be detailed even before women of whom they
are not sure, much more before men, most of all before a press, whicli
will report, and next morning cynically comment on, the secrets of
their hearts. A free press with all its innumerable advantages is
the great barrier (I say it to you deliberately) to the moving in this
matter of that great mass of matrons for whom, in the long run, the
movement is set on foot ; and by whom alone it can be carried out.
At least, so it seems to me, who fight, not for the maiden so much
as for the matron, because, if the mother be benefited, the child is
benefited in her. And therefore I deprecate the interference in
this movement of unmarried women But I see with
pain this movement backed up by , and , and by other
men and women who, unknown themselves to the English nation,
and knowing nothing of it, and its actual opinions and habits for
good or evil, in a word, sectarians (whether they know it or not),
seem ready to scramble back into a society which they have in some
cases forfeited, by mixing themselves up with questions which it is
not for such as they to speak of, either in the study or the forum.
I object, also, to the question of woman's right to vote or to labor,
and above all, to woman's right to practise as physicians and sur-
geons, being mixed up with social, i.e., sexual questions. Of
woman's right to be a medical practitioner, I hold (as perhaps you
may do me the honor to be aware) that it is perhaps the most im-
portant social question hanging over us. I believe that if once
women can be allowed to practise as freely as men, the whole
question of the relation of the sexes, according to natural laws, and,
therefore, according to what I believe to be the will and mind of
God, the author of nature [will be made clear] . . . . Hut for
that very reason, I am the more anxious that women should not
27
4i 8 Charles Kings ley.
meddle with these sexual questions, first, before they have acquired
a sound, and also a general, scientific physiological training, which
shall free them from sentiment, and confine them to physical laws
and fact, on these matters. Second, before they have so accustomed
the public to their ministrations, as to show them that they are the
equals of men in scientific knowledge and practical ability (as they
are) ; and more, that they know, as women, a hundred woman's
secrets, which no one but a woman can know truly, and which it is
a disgrace to modern civilization that a man should have the right
of trying to interpret. Therefore I deprecate, most earnestly, all
the meddling, however pure-minded, humane, &c., which women
have brought to bear on certain questions during the last six months.
I do not say that they are wrong. Heaven forbid ! But 1 do say,
that by so doing they are retarding, it may be for generations, the
cause which they are trying to serve. And I do say (for I have
seen it), that they are thereby mixing themselves up with the fanat-
ical of both sexes ; with the vain and ambitious, and worst of all,
with the prurient. Prurience, sir, by which I mean lust, which,
unable to satisfy itself in act, satisfies itself by contemplation, usually
of a negative and seemingly virtuous and Pharisaic character, vilify-
ing, like St. Jerome in his cell at Bethlehem, that which he dare not
do, and which is, after all, only another form of hysteria that is
the evil which we have to guard against, and we shall not do so,
unless we keep about this whole irovement a tone of modesty,
delicacy, lofty purity, which (whatever it knows, and perhaps it
knows all) will not, and dare not, talk aloud about it. That tone
will not be kept, if we allow the matrons, and after them the
maidens (by whom I mean women still under the influence of their
fathers and mothers), or women having by their own property a
recognised social position, to be turned out of sight in this move-
ment by 'emancipated' women.
" I know that the line is very difficult to draw. I see how we
must be tempted to include, nay, to welcome as our best advocates,
women who are smarting under social wrongs, who can speak on
behalf of freedom with an earnestness like that of the escaped slave.
But I feel that we must resist that temptation ; that our strength
lies not in the abnormal, but in the normal type of womanhood.
And i must say, that any sound reformation of the relations between
woman and man, must proceed from women who have fulfilled
well their relations as they now exist, imperfect and unjust as they
are. That only those who have worked well in harness, will be able
to work well out of harness ; and that only those that have been
(as tens of thousands of women are every day) rulers over a few
things will be fit to be rulers over many things ; and I hold this
in justice to myself I must say it not merely on grounds ' theo-
logical' so-called, but on grounds without which the 'theological'
weigh with me very little grounds material and physiological on
Woman the Teacher and Inspirer, 419
that voluntatem Dei in rebus revelatam, to which I try, humbly
though confusedly, to submit all my conclusions.
" Meanwhile, i shall do that which I have been doing for years
past. Try to teach a noble freedom, to those whom I see most
willing, faithful, conscientious in their slavery, through the path of
self-sacrifice ; and to influence their masters likewise, to see in that
self-sacrifice something far more divine than their own self assertion.
To show them that wherever man and wife are really happy
together, it is by ignoring and despising, not by asserting the subordi-
nation of woman to man, which they hold in theory. To set forth
in every book I write (as I have done for twenty-five years) woman
as the teacher, the natural and therefore divine, guide, purifier,
inspirer of the man. And so, perhaps, I may be as useful to the
cause of chivalry, dear equally to you and me, as if I attended
many meetings, and spoke, or caused to be spoken, many
speeches."
TO PROFESSOR MAX MULLER.
EVERSLEY, August 8, 1870.
" Accept my loving congratulations to you and your people.
The day which dear Hunsen used to pray, with tears in his eyes,
might not come till the German people were ready, has come, and
the German people are ready.
" Verily God is just ; and rules, too, whatever the press may
think to the contrary.
" My only fear is, lest the Germans should think of Paris, which
cannot concern them, and turn their eyes away from that which
does concern them, the re-taking Elsass (which is their own), and
leaving the Frenchman no foot of the Rhine-bank. To make the
Rhine a word not to be mentioned by the French henceforth,
ought to be the one object of wise Germans, and that alone. In
any case, with love to dear G , I am yours, full of delight and
hope for Germany."
To another friend he writes :
"As for the war, I dare not give opinion on it. It is the most
important event since the Revolution of 1793, and we are too near
it yet to judge of it fairly. My belief is, that it will work good for
generations to come. But at what an awful price ! "
TO ALFRED WALLACE, ESQ., F.L.S,
EVERSLEY, October 22, 1870.
" I have read your ' Essay on Natural Selection ' with equal de-
light and profit.
420 Charles Kingsley.
" J wish you would re-consider pages 276-285. The facts, of
course, are true, as all yours are sure to be ; but I have never been
able to get rid of the belief, that every grain of sand washed down
by a river by the merest natural laws is designedly put in the
exact place where it will be needed some time or other ; or that
the ugliest beast (though I confess the puzzle here is stranger), and
the most devilish, has been created because it is beautiful and use-
ful to some being or other. In fact, I believe not only in ' special
providences,' but in the whole universe as one infinite complexity
of special providences. I only ask you to extend to all nature the
truth you have so gallantly asserted for man ' That the laws
of organic development have been occasionally used for a special
end, just as man uses them for his special ends.' Page 370.
" Omit 'occasionally,' and say 'always,' and you will complete
your book and its use. In any case, it will be a contribution
equally to science and to natural theology." *
TO MATTHEW ARNOLD.
EVERSLEY, November i, 1870.
" I have at last had time to read carefully your ' Culture and
Anarchy,' and here is my verdict if you care for it. That it is an
exceeding wise and true book ; and likely, as such, to be little
listened to this autumn, f but to sink into the ground and die, and
bear fruit next spring, when the spring comes. For me, born a
barbarian, and bred a Hebrew of the Hebrews, it has been of solid
comfort and teaching. 1 have had for years past an inkling that
in Hellenism was our hope. I have been ashamed of myself, as a
clergyman, when I caught myself saying to myself that I had rather
have been an old Greek than an Englishman. Your book has
justified me to myself, while it showed me where I was ungrateful
to God and wrong. I will not trouble you with more talk, for it
will be far worse than that which you can say to yourself any day ;
but I must thank you for the book, as a moral tonic, as well as an
intellectual purge. Ah, that I could see you, and talk with you.
But here I am, trying to do my quiet work ; and given up, now,
utterly, to physical science which is my business in the Hellenic
direction."
* "Contributions to the Theory of Natural Selection: A Series of Essays,"
by Alfred Russell Wallace. The chapter referred to at pages 276-85 is headed,
"Adaptation brought about by General Laws." The passage is too long to
quote.
f French and Prussian War-time.
CHAPTER XXVII.
1871.
AGED 52.
Lecture on " The Theology of the Future " at Sion College Expeditions of the
Chester Natural Science Society Lectures on Town Geology Race Week
at Chester Letters on Betting Camp at Bramshill The Prince of Wales in
Eversley Prince of Wales's Illness Lecture to Royal Artillery Officers at
Woolwich.
IN January he gave a lecture by request at Sion College. The
subject he chose was "The Theology of the Future,"* in which he
urged on the clergy the necessity of facing the great scientific facts
of the day, and asserted his own belief in final causes.
" I wish to speak," he says, " not on natural religion, but on
natural theology. By the first I understand what can be learnt
from the physical universe of man's duty to God and his neighbor ;
by the latter I understand what can be learned concerning God
Himself. Of natural religion I shall say nothing. I do not even
affirm that a natural religion is possible ; but I do very earnestly
believe that a natural theology is possible ; and I earnestly believe
also that it is most important that natural theology should, in every
age, keep pace with doctrinal or ecclesiastical theology "
He goes on to speak of Bishop Butler, Berkeley, and Paley, the
three greatest of our natural theologians, and of the strong fact,
that the clergy of the Church of England, since the foundation of
the Royal Society in the lyth century, have done more for sound
physical science than the clergy of any other denomination ; and
expresses his belief that if our orthodox thinkers for the last hun-
dred years had followed steadily in their steps, we should not now
be deploring the wide and, as some think, widening gulf between
* This lecture, or rather part of it, is incorporated into the preface of his
" Westminster Sermons," published in 1874.
422 Charles Kingsley.
science and Christianity. He considers Goethe's claims to have
advanced natural theology as very much over-rated, but strongly
recommends to the younger clergy " Herder's Outlines of the
Philosophy of the History of Man >; as a book, in spite of certain
defects, full of sound and precious wisdom.
He speaks of certain popular hymns of the present day as proofs
of an unhealthy view of the natural world, with a savor hanging
about them of the old monastic theory of the earth being the
devil's planet instead of God's, and gives characteristic instances,
contrasting their key-note with that of the io4th, i47th, and 1481)1
Psalms, and the noble Benedicite Omnia Opera of our Prayer-book.
Again, he contrasts the Scriptural doctrine about the earth being
cursed with the popular fancies on the same point. He speaks of
the i39th Psalm as a "marvellous essay on natural theology," and
of its pointing to the important study of embryology, which is now
occupying the attention of Owen, Huxley, and Darwin. Then he
goes on to " Race," and " the painful and tremendous facts " which
it involves, which must all be faced ; believing himself that here, as
elsewhere, Science and Scripture will be ultimately found to coin-
cide. He presses the study of Darwin's Fertilization of Orchids
(whether his main theory be true or not) as a most valuable addi-
tion to natural theology. Then, after an eloquent protest against
the " child-dream of a dead universe governed by an absent God,"
which Carlyle and even Goethe have " treated with noble scorn,"
he speaks of that " nameless, invisible, imponderable," yet seem-
ing'omnipresent, thing which scientific men are finding below all
phenomena, which the scalpel and the microscope can show the
life which shapes and makes that " unknown and truly miraculous
element in nature, the mystery of which for ever engrossing, as it
does, the noblest minded of our students of science, is yet for ever
escaping them while they cannot escape it." He calls on the
clergy to have courage to tell them what will sanctify, while it
need never hamper, their investigations that this perpetual and
omnipresent miracle is no other than the Breath of God : The
Spirit who is The Lord, and The Giver of Life. " Let us only
wait," he says " let us observe let us have patience and faith.
Nominalism, and that ' sensationalism ' which has sprung from
Nominalism, are running fast to seed ; Comtism seems to me its
supreme effort, after which the whirligig of Time may bring round
The Chester Scientific Society. 423
its revenges ; and Realism, and we who hold the Realist creeds,
may have our turn."
" I sometimes dream," he adds, " of a day when it will be con-
sidered necessary that every candidate for ordination should be
required to have passed creditably in at least one branch of physi-
cal science, if it be only to teach him the method of sound scien-
tific thought. And if it be said that the doctrine of evolution, by
doing away with the theory of creation, does away with that of final
causes le't us answer boldly, Not in the least. We might accept
what Mr. Darwin and Professor Huxley have written on physical
science, and yet preserve our natural theology on exactly the same
basis as that on which Butler and Paley left it. That we should
have to develop it, I do not deny. That we should have to relin-
quish it, I do."
Extracts give a poor conception of the lecture, which made a
profound impression, and, as private letters showed, gave hope
and comfort to many among those who heard it delivered, or read
it afterwards in the pages of " Macmillan's Magazine ; " and re-
printing it, as he did, only a year before his death, it may be looked
on as his last words on his favorite topic, and a last confession of
his faith that, If the clergy would only play the great "role" which
is before them, science and the creeds would one day shake hands.
Scientific subjects, and especially the distribution of plants, occu-
pied him much at this time, and the success of his botanical class
at Chester the previous year, decided him to follow it up with
geology. He was busy, too, with the proofs of his West India
book, "At Last."
The work at Chester this year assumed larger proportions, for
the botanical class of 1870 had been the nucleus of a Scientific
Society in 1871; his geological lectures were much more fully
attended, not only the number of members increased, but each
member was allowed to bring a lady friend. Consequently, in
preparation for walks and field lectures, he had to go over the
ground himself a day or two before, to get thoroughly acquainted
with its capabilities for geology and botany, and also to arrange for
a place of rest and refreshment for the class ; and in these re-
searches he was always accompanied by his kind friend, the Pre-
centor, or some member of the Cathedral body, who were always
ready with loyal and intelligent help. Expeditions now were taken
to more distant spots ; the railway authorities had to be consulted
424 Charles Kingslcy.
about trains they, too, gave most willing help ; and, at the ap-
pointed hour at the place of meeting, a happy party, numbering
sometimes from sixty to a hundred, would find the Canon and his
daughters waiting for them on the platform of the railway, he with
geological hammer in hand, botany box slung over his shoulder,
eager as any of his class for the holiday, but feeling the responsi-
bility of providing teaching and amusement (in the highest sense of
that word) for so many, who each and all hung upon his words.
Those were bright afternoons, all classes mingling together ;
people who had lived next door to each other in Chester for years
perhaps without exchanging a word, now met on equal and friendly
terms, in pursuit of one ennobling object, and found themselves all
travelling in second-class carriages together without distinction of
rank or position, to return at the end of the long summer evening
to their old city, refreshed and inspirited, with nosegays of wild
flowers, geological specimens, and happy thoughts of God's earth
and of their fellow creatures. Perhaps the moral gain was as
valuable as the scientific results of these field lectures, uniting
Cathedral and town as they did in closer bonds.
The thought of giving importance to the society by adding honor-
ary members now occurred to the president, and he wrote to Sir
Charles Lyell, Sir Philip Egerton, Dr. Hooker, Professors Huxley,
Tyndall, Hughes, &c., whose distinguished names are all enrolled
in the Chester Natural Science Society.
TO SIR CHARLES LYELL.
CHESTER, June 22, 1871.
" I have a great favor to ask. Whether you decline or not, I am
sure you will not be angry with me for asking. I have just started
here a Natural Science Society the dream of years. And I be-
lieve it will ' march.' But I want a few great scientific names as
honorary members. That will give my plebs, who are men of all
ranks and creeds of course, self-respect ; the feeling that they are
initiated actually into the great freemasonry of science, and that
such men as you acknowledge them as pupils.
" I have put into the hands of my geological class, numbering
about sixty, your new ' Students' Elements.' I shall not be rude
enough to compliment you on it ; but I may say that you seem in
it as great as ever. These good fellows, knowing your name, and
using your book, would have a fresh incentive to work if they but
felt that you were conscious of their existence.
"Let me then beg for your name, to be proposed by me as an
J^own Geology. 425
honorary member. I ask nothing more ; but to give that would
be not only to help them, but to help me, who already feel the
drag of the collar (having to do all myself as far as teaching and
inspiriting go) very heavy
" Your most faithful and loyal pupil,
" C. KINGSLEY."
Sir Charles not only gave his name, but some of his most valu-
able works to the infant society.
The room hitherto used at the City Library had now to be given
up, and by the Dean's kindness the King's School was used as
lecture-room. A preliminary lecture on the subject of physical
science was followed by six, which will never be forgotten in
Chester, on The Soil of the Field, The Pebbles in the Street, The
Stones in the Wall, The Coal in the Fire, the Lime in the Mortar,
The Slates on the Roof.* The black-board was in constant use.
Many of those who were present must recall the look of inspira-
tion with which his burning words were accompanied, as he went
through the various transformations of the coal, till it reached the
diamond, and the poetry he threw into his theme as, with kindling
eyes, he lifted a lump of coal off the table, and held it up to his
breathless listeners.
Never had a man a more appreciative audience intelligent,
enthusiastic, affectionate. "They spring to touch," he would say,
" at every point," and never did he receive such a warm grasp of
the hand as from men of all ranks in the beloved old city. The
Chester residence was one of the dearest episodes of his life, and
when he was transferred to Westminster he could not speak of it
without tears in his eyes.
The following year the expeditions took place, but his lectures
were less frequent. The society, he felt, was well established on a
basis of its own ; and with him, over-work of brain had brought on
a constant lassitude and numbness of the left side, which led him
to apprehend coming paralysis, and forced him to confine his work
more exclusively to preaching and the never-ceasing correspondence.
It so happened that the first week of his residence in Chester,
being always in May, was the race-week, which for the time being
* These lectures, published in 1872 as "Town Geology," were dedicated to
the members of the class he loved so well.
426 Charles Kings ley.
turned the streets of the venerable old city into a sort of Pande-
monium. Trade, except in the public-houses, was stagnant, and
the temptations of the young men in the middle and lower classes
from betting and bad company, with the usual ending of a suicide,
and the ruin of many, weighed heavily on his heart, as on that of
the Dean and many of the residents. Most of the respectable
tradesmen deplored the effect of the race-week, not only on the
higher ground of morality, but because the direct losses to trade
and to the working classes which resulted from it were so serious. A
series of short papers on " Chester Races and their Attendant Evils"
were started, and by the wish of Dean Hovvson, Mr. Kingsley
took the subject of Betting and addressed his letter "To ihe Young
Men of Chester." It is characteristic, and therefore given entire :
" BETTING. A LETTER TO THE YOUNG MEN OF CHESTER."
" MY DEAR YOUNG MEN,
"The human race may, for practical purposes, be divided into
three parts :
" i. Honest men : who mean to do right ; and do it.
" 2. Knaves : who mean to do wrong ; and do it.
" 3. Fools : who mean to do whichever of the two is the pleas-
anter.
"And these last may be divided again into
" Black fools : who would rather do wrong ; but dare not ; unless
it is the fashion.
" White fools : who would rather do right ; but dare not ; unless
it is the fashion.
" Now the honest men do not need my advice ; and the knaves
will not take it ; neither, I fear, will the black fools. They will
agree in their secret hearts, most of them, that every word I say is
true. But they do not wish it to be true ; and therefore they will
tell every one that it is not true, and try to wriggle out from under
it by far-fetched excuses, and go back next races, ' like the dog to
his vomit, and the sow to her wallowing in the mire,' and bet and
gamble boldly, because then that will be the fashion. But of the
white fools I have hope. For they are not half bad fellows : some
of them, indeed, are very near being very good fellows, and would
like so much to do anything which is right and proper only it
takes so much trouble ; and perhaps it might look rather odd now
and then.
" Now let me ask them and really I have so much liking for
them, that 1 fear at times I must be one of them myself in all
friendliness and courtesy Why do you bet and gamble at the
races? Consider well what your answer will be. Certainly it wili
A Letter on Betting. 427
not be that you do so to avoid trouble, which you so much dislike
in general. For you must confess at once that it is more trouble
to bet, more anxiety, and often more grief and sorrow, than it is
not to bet, but to leave the matter alone. And while you are pre-
paring your reasons, I will give you two at least of mine, for leav-
ing the matter alone.
" The first reason (which seems to me the strongest reason which
can be given against any matter whatsoever,) is this that betting,
and gambling of every kind, is in itself wrong and immoral. I do
not say that every man who bets is an immoral man. Far from it :
many really -honest men bet ; but that is because they have not
considered what they are doing. Betting is wrong : because it is
wrong to take your neighbor's money without giving him anything
in return. Earn from him what you will, and as much as you can.
All labor, even the lowest drudgery, is honorable ; but betting is
not laboring nor earning : it is getting money without earning it,
and more, it is getting money, or trying to get it, out of your
neighbor's ignorance.
" If you and'he bet on any event, you think that your horse will
win : he thinks that his will ; in plain English, you think that you
know more about the matter than he : you try to take advantage
of his ignorance, and so to conjure money out of his pocket into
yours A very noble and friendly attitude in which to stand to your
neighbor, truly. That is the plain English of it : and look at it up-
wards, downwards, sideways, inside out, you will never make any-
thing out of betting, save this that it is taking advantage of your
neighbor's supposed ignorance.
" But says some one, ' That is all fair, he is trying to do as much
by me.' Just so : and that again is a very noble and friendly atti-
tude for two men who have no spite against each other ; a state of
mutual distrust and unmercifulness, looking each selfishly to his
own gain, regardless of the interest of the other. I say, regardless.
You know whatever you lose, he will expect you to pay, however
much it may inconvenience you : while if he loses you expect him
to pay, however much it may inconvenience him. Thus betting is
founded on selfishness ; and the consequence is, that men who live
by betting are, and cannot help being, the most selfish of men, and
(I should think) among the most unhappy and pitiable ; for if a
man who is given up to selfishness, distrust, and cunning, who is
tempted every hour to treachery and falsehood, without the possi-
bility of one noble or purifying feeling throughout his whole d,ay's
work, or the consciousness that he has done the slightest good to
a human being not even as much good as an old woman at a stall
has by selling a penny-worth of apples if that man is not a piti-
able object, I do not know what is.
" But some will say, ' It is not the money I care for, but the
amusement.' Excuse me : but if so, why do you bet for money ?
428 Charles Kings ley.
That question I have asked again and again, and have never got
an answer. Why do you bet for money, and not counters, or pins,
or pebbles ? Why, but because you want the money, to buy with it
money's worth ?
" Of course, I know well enough that plenty of bets pass on
every race, which are practically quite harmless. A dozen of kid
gloves to a lady when you know that she will expect you to pay
her, while you are bound not to ask her to pay you he would be
a very strait-laced person who could see any great harm in that ;
any more than in a rubber of sixpenny whist. And yet it would be
better for many a young man, for some of the finest fellows of all,
men of eager temper, high spirit, delicate honor, if they would
make up their mind never to bet, even a shilling ; never to play
cards, except for love. For gambling, like drinking, grows upon
some men, and upon the very finest natures too. And remember,
that in betting and gambling, the more honorable man you are, the
worst chance you have ; gambling is almost the only thing in the
world, in which the bad man is the stronger by very virtue of his
badness, the good man the weaker by very virtue of his goodness.
The man who will not cheat is no match for the man who will.
The honorable man who will pay his debts, is no match for the dis-
honorable man who will not. No match indeed : not even in that
last sad catastrophe, which I have seen too often : when the hon-
orable man, throwing good money after bad to recover his losses,
grows desperate, tries his hand just once at foul play, and sells his
soul for nothing. For when he borrows the knave's tools, he
cannot use them ; he is ashamed of himself, hesitating, clumsy ;
is found out as I have known such found out : and then if he
does not put a pistol to his own head and blow his brains out, it is
not because he does not long, poor wretch, to do so.
" I hold, then, that betting is itself more or less wrong and im-
moral. But I hold, too, that betting, in three cases out of four, is
altogether foolish ; so foolish that I cannot understand why the
very young men who are fondest of it, should be the very men
who are proudest of being considered shrewd, knowing, men of the
world, and what not.
" They stake their money on this horse and on that. Now judg-
ing of a horse's capabilities is an art, and a very delicate and diffi-
cult art, depending first on natural talent, and next on experience,
such as not one man in a thousand has. But how many betting
young men know anything about a horse, save that he has four
legs ? How many of them know at sight whether a horse is sound
or not ? Whether he can stay or not ? Whether he is going in
good form or not ? Whether he is doing his best or not ? Prob-
ably five out of six of them could not sit on a race-horse without
falling off ; and then such a youth pretends to himself that he is a
judge of the capabilities of a noble brute, who is a much better
Tricks in Horse Racing. 429
judge of the young gentleman's capabilities, and would prove him-
self so within five minutes after he had got into the saddle.
" ' But they know what the horse has done already.' Yes ; but
not what the horse might have done. They do not know no one
can, who is not in the secrets of the turf what the horse's engage-
ments really are ; whether he has not been kept back in view of
those engagements ; whether he will not be kept back again ;
whether he has not been used to make play for another horse ; and
in one word whether he is meant to win.
" ' But they have special information : They have heard sport-
ing men on whom they can rely, report to them this and the other
wonderful secret.' Of all the various follies into which vanity,
and the wish to seem knowing, and to keep sporting company lead
young men and mere boys often this I think is about the most
absurd. A young lad hangs about the bar of a sporting public-
house, spending his money in drink, in hopes of over-hearing what
the initiated Mr. This may say to the initiated Mr. That and
goes off with his hearsay, silly fellow, forgetting that Mr. This prob-
ably said it out loud to Mr. That in order that he might overhear ;
that if they have any special information, they will keep it to them-
selves, because it is their stock-in-trade whereby they live, and they
are not going to be foolish enough to give it away to him. Mr.
This and That may not be dishonest men ; but they hold that in
betting, as in love and war, all is fair ; they want to make their
books, not to make his ; and though they very likely tell him a
great deal which is to their own advantage, they are neither simple
enough, nor generous enough, to tell him much that is to his ad-
vantage ; or to prevent him from making the usual greenhorn's
book by which lie stands sure to lose five pounds, and likely to
lose fifty.
" ' Ah, but the young gentleman has sent his money on com-
mission to a prophet in the newspaper, in whom he has the highest
confidence ; he has prophesied the winner two or three times at
least ; and a friend of his sent him money to lay on, and got back
ever so much ; and he has a wonderful Greek name, Lynceus, or
Polyphemus, or Typhlops, or something, and so he must know.' Ah !
fool, fool. You know how often the great Polyphemus prophe-
sied the winner, but you do not know how often he did not. Hits
count of course ; but misses are hushed up. And as for your friend
getting money back, if Polyphemus let no one win, his trade would
stop. The question is, not whether one foolish lad won by him,
but whether five-and-tvventy foolish lads did not lose by him. He
has his book to make, as well as you, and he wants your money
to pay his own debts with if he loses. He has his bread to earn,
and he wants your money to earn it with ; and as for sending
him money, you may as well throw a sovereign down a coal-pit
and expect it to come up again with a ton of coals on its back.
430 Charles Kingsley.
If any young man will not believe me, because I am a parson,
let him read, in the last chapter or two of ' Sponge's Sporting
Tour,' what was thought of the Enoch Wriggles and Infallible
Joes, by a better sportsman and a wiser man, than any Chester
betting young gentleman is likely to be.
"'Ah, but the young gentleman has a private friend. He
knows a boy in Mr. So and So, or Lord the Other's stables, and
he has put him up to a thing or two. He is with the horse day
and night ; feeds him ; knows the jockey who will ride him.' Does
he then ? What a noble and trustworthy source of information !
One on the strength of which it would be really worth a lad's
while to disobey his father, make his mother miserable, and
then rob his master's till, so sure must he be to realize a grand
haul of money ! A needy little stable-boy, even a comfortable big
groom, who either tells you what he does not know, and so lies,
or tells you what he does know, and so is probably a traitor ; and
who in any case, for the sake of boasting and showing off his own
importance, or of getting half a crown and a glass of brandy and
water, will tell you anything which comes uppermost. I had al-
most said he is a fool if he does not. If you are fool enough to
buy his facts, his cheapest and easiest plan must be to invent
sham facts, and sell them you, while he keeps the real facts for
his own use. For he too has his little book to make up ; and like
every one who bets, must take care of himself first, with his hand
against every man, and every man's hand against him.
" I could say much more, and uglier things still. But to what I
have said, I must stand. This used to be the private history of
small bettings at races thirty years ago ; and from all I hear,
things have not grown better, but worse, since that time. Hut
even then, before I took Holy Orders, before even I thought
seriously at all, things were so bad that I found myself forced to
turn my back on race-courses, not because I did not love to see
the horses run in that old English pleasure, taken simply and
alone, I can fully sympathize but because I found that they
tempted me to betting, and that betting tempted me to company,
and to passions, unworthy not merely of a scholar and a gentle-
man, but of an honest and rational bargeman or collier. And I
have seen what comes too often of keeping that company, of in-
dulging those passions. I have known men possessed of many
virtues, and surrounded with every blessing which God could give,
bring bitter shame and ruin, not only on themselves, but on those
they loved, because they were too weak to shake off the one pas-
sion of betting and gambling. And I have known men mixed up
in the wicked ways of the world, and too often yielding to them r
and falling into much wrong doing, who have somehow steered
through at last, and escaped ruin, and settled down into a respect-
able and useful old age, simply because they had strength enough
All Gambling Condemned. 43 r
to say 'Whatever else I may or may not do, bet and gamble I
will not.' And I very seriously advise my good friends the White
Fools, to make the same resolution, and to keep it.
" Your very good friend,
" C. KINGSLEY.
"February ist, 1871."
The local papers, of course, took up the subject, and he again
replied.
The following letter to his eldest son, when quite a boy at a pub-
lic school, on his telling his father he had put into a lottery without
thinking it any harm, will come in appropriately here, though writ-
ten many years before :
" MY DEAREST. BOY,
" There is a matter which gave me much uneasiness when you
mentioned it. You said you had put into some lottery for the
Derby and had hedged to make safe.
" Now all this is bad, bad, nothing but bad. Of all habits
gambling is the one I hate most and have avoided most. Of all
habits it grows most on eager minds. Success and loss alike make
it grow. Of all habits, however much civilised men may give way
to it, it is one of the most intrinsically savage. Historically it has
been the peace excitement of the lowest brutes in human form for
ages past. Morally it is unchivalrous and unchristian.
" i. It gains money by tiie lowest and most unjust means, for it
takes money out of your neighbor's pocket without giving him any-
thing in return.
" 2. It tempts you to use what you fancy your superior knowl-
edge of a horse's merits or anything else to your neighbor's
harm.
" If you know better than your neighbor you are bound to give
him your advice. Instead, you conceal your knowledge to win
from his ignorance ; hence come all sorts of concealments, dodges,
deceits I say the Devil is the only father of it. I'm sure, more-
over, that B. would object seriously to anything like a lottery, betting,
or gambling.
" I hope you have not won. I should not be sorry for you to
lose. If you have won I should not congratulate you. If you wish
to please me, you will give back to its lawful owners the money
you have won. If you are a loser in gross thereby, I will gladly
reimburse your losses this time. As you had put in you could not
in honor draw back till after the event. Now you can give back
your money, saying you understand that Mr. B. and your father
disapprove of such things, and so gain a very great moral influence.
" Recollect always that the stock argument is worthless. It is
432 Charles Kings ley.
this : ' My friend would win from me if he could, therefore I have
an equal right to win from him.' Nonsense. The same argument
would prove that I have a right to maim or kill a man if only J give
him leave to maim or kill me if he can and will.
" I have spoken my mind once and for all on a matter on which
I have held the same views for more than twenty years, and trust
in God you will not forget my words in after life. I have seen many
a good fellow ruined by finding himself one day short of money,
and trying to get a little by play* or betting and then the Lord
have mercy on his simple soul, for simple it will not remain long.
" Mind, I am not the least angry with you. Betting is the way
of the world. So are all the seven deadly sins under certain rules
and pretty names, but to the Devil they lead if indulged in, in spite
of the wise world and its ways.
" Your loving Pater."
A regular member of his congregation this summer was Chief
Justice Bovill, who was living in a neighboring parish, and drove
over on Sunday mornings to Eversley Church. His devoutness
made a great impression on Mr. Kingsley, who was much affected
by his death in 1873. He writes:
" . . . Poor dear Chief Justice Bovill is dead. Happy man !
But what a loss ! How well I remember giving him the Holy Com-
munion at Eversley ; and the face was so devout, though boiling
over with humor."
On his return from Chester the quiet parish of Eversley was
startled into new life by the formation of a camp in Bramshill Park
and on Hartford Bridge Flats, at the opening of the autumn ma-
noeuvres, at which H.R. H. the Prince of Wales was not only
present, but camped out with his regiment, the loth Hussars.
The tumult of enthusiasm and pride of the little parish at such an
event and the remembrance of the Prince's royal presence and
gracious courtesy (which will never be erased from the annals of
Eversley), had scarcely subsided, when the country was electrified
by the news of H.R.H. being struck down with fever and at the
point of death, and rector and parishioners grieved and prayed
and wept together. But Mr. Kingsley's deep personal attachment,
* So strong was his feeling about gambling, that he would never in his own
house allow a game of cards to be played for money. To rest his brain, he
nlvvays played with his children in the evening for an hour or two dominoes,
backgammon, patience, whist, or some other game of cards.
Loyalty and Sanatory Reform. 433
independent of his loyal feelings, made it too painful to him to stay
so far away ; and he started off to Lynn, from whence he could get
hourly news, and could walk over daily to Sandringham, sending
telegrams on to Eversley, which were put up on the church door
and in the window of the village shop. When all danger was over,
and the heart of the whole nation rebounded with joy and thank-
fulness in a way that will stand in history as something unexampled,
he preached at the Chapel Royal, St. James's, a sermon on
Loyalty, which enabled him to press the subject of Sanatory
Reform in connection with what, but for God's mercy, he felt might
have been one of England's greatest disasters.
In the autumn he was invited, through Colonel Strange, then at
Woolwich with the Royal Artillery, to deliver a lecture at the R. A.
Institution there. With some hesitation, but with real pleasure,
he accepted, and was the guest of Colonel Strange, with whom he
spent two deeply interesting days. He chose for his subject " The
Study of Natural History." *
* Since published in a volume of essays " Health and Education."
28
CHAPTER XXVIII.
1872.
AGED 53.
Opening of Chester Cathedral Nave Deaths of Mr. Maurice and Norman
McLeod Letters to Max Miiller Mrs. Luard Lecture at Birmingham
and its Results Lecture on Heroism at Chester A Poem The Athanasian
Creed.
THE year began at Eversley with the usual winter's parish work,
night-schools, Penny Readings, &c., which were only interrupted
by his going to the opening of Chester Cathedral, the nave of which
had been shut up for repairs. He writes on January 24 :
" Scribbling in Deacle's study. Service this afternoon magnifi-
cent. Cathedral quite full. Anthem, 'Send out Thy Light.'
Collection, ^105. Cathedral looks lovely, and I have had a most
happy day. Every one glad to see me, and enquiries after you all.
I do love this place and people, and long to be back here for our
spring residence."
Mr. Maurice's death in March, and Dr. Norman McLeod's,
saddened him, and warned him of the consequences of an over-
worked brain. " Ah," he said, on hearing of the latter, " he is an
instance of a man who has worn his brain away, and he is gone as
I am surely going." Work of all kinds seemed now to redouble ;
and the mere letters refusing sermons, lectures, church openings,
and kind invitations from friends in England and Scotland, who
were eager to give him the rest and refreshment which he so sorely
needed, gave constant employment to his home secretary. He
toiled on, dreaming of that time of "learned leisure" for which a
Canonry he held should provide ; but which did not as yet fall to
his lot ; and those who watched him most closely and loved him
best felt that if rest ever came it would come too late. " Better,
however," he said, " to wear out than rust out."
Death of Mr. Maurice. 435
TO PROFESSOR MAX MtfLLER.
EVERSLEY, Feb. ig, 1872.
" I have read your gallant words about Bishop Patteson in the
Times. I did not know him ; but it is at least a comfort to me to
read words written in such a tone in this base generation.
" By all means let us have a memorial to him. But where ?
In a painted window, or a cross here in England ? Surely not.
But on the very spot where he died. There let the white man,
without anger or revenge, put up some simple and grand monolith,
if you will ; something at least which the dark man cannot make,
and which instead of defacing, he will rather worship as a memorial
to the Melanesian and his children, which they would interpret for
themselves. So, indeed, 'he being dead would yet speak.'
"Think over this. If it please you I will say more on the
matter."
TO MRS. LUARD.
(On Mr. Maurice's Death.)
April 4, 1872.
"Your letter to E. was a comfort to me, as is every word from
any one who loved and appreciated him. You, too, saw that his
work was done. I had seen death in his face for, I may almost say,
two years past, and felt that he needed the great rest of another life.
And now he has it.
"I see that you were conscious of the same extraordinary per-
sonal beauty which I gradually discovered in his face. If I were
asked, Who was the handsomest, and who the most perfectly gen-
tlemanlike man you ever met ? I should answer, without hesitation,
Mr. Maurice."
In the autumn he went to Birmingham, where he had often been
asked to give lectures. It was a town for which he had great
respect, as being one of the best drained in England, and where in
all the cholera visitations there had been the fewest cases of cholera
(in one visitation only one, and that an imported case). He had
been urged, and could not well refuse, to be President of the Mid-
land Institute for the year. As President, he was bound to give
the Inaugural Address. The subject he chose was the Science of
Health, and the noble response given to his lecture, will make it
long remembered in Birmingham. Lord Lyttelton was in the chair,
and received him with marked kindness. It was one of 'his best
and most suggestive lectures. Special reporters were sent down
by leading London newspapers, and the following morning the
436 Charles Kings ley.
" Times " gave him a leading article, which, after speaking of other
Institutes and other speakers, adds :
" But everybody was prepared to expect Canon Kingsley to
exhibit the development of the Institute in a more striking and
picturesque light. Every one of his topics and suggestions appears
to us strictly in the lines of an Inaugural Address to the Institute
of a great manufacturing town like Birmingham. Yet we cculd
fancy that some, even among the most hopeful originators of this
movement, would have opened their eyes upon hearing the acqui-
. sition of the Spanish and Portuguese languages urged as a means
of making one's fortune in South America, and on finding, put in
the first place, nearly to the exclusion of all other subjects, the
necessity of studying the laws of health and strength, of physical suc-
cession, natural selection, and morbid degeneracy, especially as
illustrated in the dwarfed, and enervated population of our large
towns, in unhappy marriages, and expiri-ng families. We feel really
obliged to the Canon for taking the bull by the horns, and telling
these townsfolk some very simple truths, with the further remark
that they have only to use their eyes, their memories, and their
understandings, and then they will learn a great deal more than
he can tell them."
The Lecture bore fruit at once. A gentleman of Birmingham
(a manufacturer), who had been long wishing to promote scientific
knowledge among the working-classes of Birmingham, and had
long deplored the ignorance prevailing on the subject of health,
without the idea occurring to him of making it a distinct object of
study, on hearing the address immediately decided to devote the
sum of 2,5oo/. to found classes and Lectures on Human Physiology
and the Science of Health, believing, with Mr. Kingsley, that if
people's interest could only be excited on the subject, physical
improvement would be followed by moral and mental improvement,
and the hospitals, and even prisons and madhouses, would be
relieved of many cases which have their origin in mere ignorance
of the laws of health and physiology.
The immediate result of this lecture was perhaps the highest
earthly reward ever granted to him, and had he lived to see the still
greater results which Mr. Ryland's letter point to, his soul would
have been satisfied. He may see it now God knows !
The Chester City Library and Reading-room were just now very
low in fund?, and in want of modern books ; and the committee
Lectures on Heroism. 437
applied to the Canon to help them out of their difficulties. He
writes at once to Mr. Shone from Eversley :
" Of course what did I come to Chester for, if not to help in
such a case ? Will you and your friends make all arrangements,
and send me a reminder about the beginning of November, that I
may have time to think over something which may interest our dear
good Chester folk. I should like you and my friends to look
at what I said at the Midland Institute, Birmingham, about the
science of health and physical education. I spoke from long
knowledge ; and be sure we all need to think about the subject
very seriously, else our grandchildren will be by no means such big
men as you are ! "
Some days later he writes : " The subject of my lecture will be
Heroism. I mean it to be a prologue to a set of lectures which I
hope to give at Chester during my next residence "
(in May, 1873). This residence never took place ; but the Lec-
ture on Heroism* was given on November 22, 1872, most success-
fully, as far as its pecuniary object, and doubtless it found a
response in many hearts. The Duke of Westminster, foremost as
usual in giving the lead to all noble thought and noble work in the
old city, was in the chair. The next evening, after attending the
last chapter, at which he .was ever present, the Canon gave a lec-
ture on Deep-Sea Dredging to the Scientific Society, of which he
was still president the last words he spoke to his beloved class.
It was a year of hard work, and owing to this and to the increas-
ing infirmities of his mother, who was in her 851)1 year, and lived
with him, he scarcely left home for more than a few days. The
three months now at Chester and the four yearly sermons at Wind-
sor, Sandringham, Whitehall, and St. James's, made him unwilling
to give up his Eversley people for a single Sunday. So that he had
no intermission of work ; and his only rest this year was four days
in the English Lakes in June, yachting for the inside of a week with
Lord Carnarvon in autumn, and a short visit to his dear friends
General and Mrs. Napier, at Oaklands ; indeed, since he returned
from the West Indies, nearly three years before, he had preached
every Sunday once, if not twice.
The late autumn brought a time of severe anxiety and illness in
his household ; but once again before clouds thickened, his heart
* Republished in " Health and Education."
438 Charles Kings ley.
bubbled up into song, and after the last meet of the foxhounds, at
which he was ever present, in front of Bramshill House a sight he
had loved for years, and to which he always took his children and
friends, he put these lines into his wife's hands :
November 6, 1872.
"THE DELECTABLE DAY.
" The boy on the famous grey pony,
Just bidding goodbye at the door,
Plucking up maiden heart for the fences
Where his brother won honor of yore.
" The walk to ' the Meet ' with fair children,
And women as gentle as gay,
Ah ! how do we male hogs in armor
Deserve such companions as they ?
" The afternoon's wander to windward,
To meet the dear boy coming back ;
And to catch, down the turns of the valley,
The last weary chime of the pack.
" The climb homeward by park and by moorland,
And through the fir forests again,
While the south-west wind roars in the gloaming,
Like an ocean of seething champagne.
"And at night the septette of Beethoven,
And the grandmother by in her chair,
And the foot of all feet on the sofa
Beating delicate time to the air.
"Ah, God ! a poor soul can but thank Thee
For such a delectable day !
Though the fury, the fool, and the swindler,
To-morrow again have their way ! "
He was asked and consented this year to join the Committee for
the Defence of the Athanasian Creed. He had previously signed
addresses suggesting a modification or explanation of the damna-
tory clauses from the Provinces of Canterbury and York, when the
Creed seemed most in danger. This apparent ambiguity of pur-
pose created some surprise, but in reality his views had not changed
materially on this point since he took holy orders.
While paying a visit in Weybridge in 1873, ne was asked to write
A Character Album. 439
some answers to the following questions in a book kept for the
Autographs of literary men. The answers are characteristic, and
therefore interesting :
" Favorite character in history? David.
" Favorite kind of literature ? Physical science.
" Favorite author ? Spenser.
" Favorite male and female character in fiction ? (No answer
given.)
" Favorite artist? Leonardo da Vinci.
" Favorite composer ? Beethoven.
" Favorite dramatic performance ? A pantomime.
" Favorite public character ? (No answer given.)
" Favorite kind of scenery ? Wide flats or open sea.
" Place at home and abroad you most admired ? Clovelly.
" Favorite reminiscence ? July, 1839.
"Favorite occupation ? Doing nothing.
" Favorite amusement ? Sleeping.
" What you dislike most ? Any sort of work.
" Favorite topics of conversation ? Whatever my companion
happens to be talking about.
" And those you dislike most ? My own thoughts.
" What you like most in woman ? Womanliness.
" What you dislike most? Unwomanliness.
" What you like most in man ? Modesty.
" What you dislike most ? Vanity.
" The character you most dislike ? Myself.
" Your ambition ? To die.
" Your ideal ? The One ideal.
" Your hobby ? Fancying I know anything.
" The virtue you most admire ? Truth.
" The vice to which you are most lenient ? All except lying.
" Your favorite motto or proverb ? ' Be strong.'
"CHARLES KINGSLEY."
His year closed at Eversley with his three children round him,
his eldest daughter having returned safe from a long visit to her
brother in Colorado, and a perilous journey with him and some
American friends through Mexico, who were " prospecting" for the
carrying on of the narrow gauge railway which her brother had as-
sisted in building from Denver down to Colorado Springs, and
which the company hoped to take through the heart of Mexico
down to the city itself. The Report made by his son on the survey
had been a great source of pride and joy to his father, and seemed
44-Q Charles Kingsley.
to open great prospects for his own future, and for that of civiliza-
tion, which, however, were finally frustrated by the Mexican Gov-
ernment. During the last six months the Rectory had the pleasant
addition of a young German tutor, who was preparing the youngest
boy for a public school. Dr. Karl Schulze had been all through the
Franco-Prussian war, and had come to England to learn the lan-
guage before settling in his professorship in Berlin. His society
was a great pleasure to Mr. Kingsley, who in return had the same
magnetic attraction for him, as for all young men who came within
his influence.
CHAPTER XXIX.
1873-4.
AGED 54-5.
Harrow-on-the-Hill Canonry of Westminster His Son's Return His Mother's
Death Parting from Chester Congratulations Sermon and Letters on Tem-
perance Preaching in Westminster Abbey Voyage to America Eastern
Cities and Western Plains Canada Niagara The Prairie Salt Lake City
Yo Semite Valley and Big Trees San Francisco Illness Rocky Moun-
tains and Colorado Springs Last Poem Return Home Letter from John
G. Whittier.
SOME months of this year were spent at Harrow, where his youngest
son was at school, a change to higher ground having been recom-
mended for some of his family, to secure which the Bishop gave
him leave of non-residence : but he went regularly for his Sundays
to Eversley, and himself helped to prepare the candidates for the
first confirmation that, thanks to the kindness of Bishop Wilber-
force, had ever been held in his own parish church. The letters
are few this year.
While at Harrow it was with mingled feelings that he received on
Lady Day a letter from the Prime Minister.
" I have to propose to you, with the sanction of her Majesty,
that in lieu of your canonry at Chester, you should accept the va-
cant stall in Westminster Abbey. I am sorry to injure the people
of Chester ; but I must sincerely hope your voice will be heard
within the Abbey, and in your own right."
There was a strong battle in his heart between the grief of giving
up Chester and the joy of belonging to the great Abbey, a position
which included among many advantages the blessing he had long
craved for, of laying down his pen as a compulsory source of income,
at once and for all, and devoting his remaining writing powers and
strength to sermons alone. His feelings are best told in his own
letters. The day before he received Mr. Gladstone's letter, he
442 -. Charles Kings ley.
had been writing to a member of his scientific class, his friend and
coadjutor, Mr. Shepheard of Bridge Street Row, Chester, on some
point connected with his work there, which ends thus. " Give my
love that is the broadest and honestest word to all the dear
Chester folk, men, women, and children, and say that I long for
May i, to be back again among them." But on the 27th he wrote
in lower spirits :
" A thousand thanks for the MSS., which have been invaluable
to me. The programme of your Society for the year makes me at
once proud and envious. For now I have to tell you that I have
just accepted the vacant stall at Westminster, and shall, in a week
or two, be Canon of Chester no more. Of course, I had to take
it for my children's sake. Had I been an old bachelor, I would
never have left Chester. Meanwhile I would sooner be Canon of
Westminster than either dean or bishop. But I look back longingly
to Chester. Shall we ever go up Hope Mountain, or the Halkin
together again, with all those dear, courteous, sensible people ?
My eyes fill with tears when I think of it.
" Give them all my love. I must find some means, by the
papers or otherwise, of telling them all at once what I owe to their
goodness of heart
" Ever yours,
"C. KINGSLEY."
His eldest son, to his father's great joy, had just returned from a
railway survey in Mexico for a holiday ; and his aged mother, now
in her 86th year, and so long the inmate of his home, just lived to
know of, and rejoice in, her son's appointment, and to see her
grandson once more before her death on the i6th of April.
Letters of mourning and congratulation poured in from Chester.
Canon Blomfield, the first canon who welcomed him there in 1869,
writes :
" Of course one might expect that such an event would occur,
and before very long. It was quite clear that you ought to be
lifted up to a higher degree in the scale of ecclesiastical preferment,
and to find a larger sphere for your powers. But yet, when the
time comes to lose you from Chester, it comes as a blow on one's
feelings. I don't know how the Chester people will get over it.
They will be like the schools of the prophets when Elijah was taken
from them. We shall no less miss you in the cathedral, and in the
chapter, and in the matter, especially of the King's School. And
then whom shall we have to replace you ?"....
Canon of Westminster. . 443
Such words from a man so much his senior, and whom he so deeply
respected, are a strong testimony, and as Canon Blomfield gene-
rously writes :
" A sincere one, to a man, whom, to know, was to love and to rev-
erence as one who indefatigably employed his great powers in the
good of his fellow men and for the glory of God."
"It will be pleasant," says Canon Hildyard, another valued
member of the Chapter, also his senior, " among the regrets felt by
the Chapter, to remember what we had. I say we, because I think
each member of the Chapter will say and think the same of you in
all your bearings to us. The whole of Chester mourns."
" I ought, my dear Mr. Kingsley," writes the Archbishop of
Canterbury, on April 9, " to have written before now to welcome
you to the great Abbey, which I do very heartily. It is a great
sphere for a man who, like you, knows how to use it." ....
While from his own diocese Bishop VVilberforce wrote :
"Mv DEAR KINGSLEY,
" I have just seen an authoritative statement of your appoint-
ment to the Canonry at Westminster, and I must tell you the
pleasure that it gives me. It is so just an acknowledgment of your
merits : it gives so much better a pedestal from which you may
enlighten many, that I rejoice unfeignedly at it ; and then it is a
great personal pleasure to me. I am proud to have you in my old
Collegiate Church ; and I hope it may favor more of that personal
intercourse between us which has been so much increased since I
came to this diocese (Winchester), and which has given me such
great pleasure.
" I am, my dear Kingsley,
"Yours most sincerely, and let me add affectionately,
" S. WINTON."
The new Canon of Westminster little thought when he read this
letter, that his first sermon in the Abbey after his installation would
be one among many public lamentations for the sudden death of
his diocesan.
The page of his Chester life fitly closes with a letter from Dean
Howson, whose never-failing kindness and friendship he valued so
truly.
FROM THE DEAN OF CHESTER.
" I have been asked to write a brief notice of that part of Charles
Kingsley' s life which was spent in close connection with the city
444 Charles Kingsley.
and cathedral of Chester ; and it is a request considering from
whom it comes concerning which I feel, not only that I cannot
refuse it, but that it must be a true pleasure to me to act upon it to
the best of my power. I should be sorry, indeed, if this task had
been assigned to any one else ; for my own relations with him here
were of the happiest kind, and I have a lively sense of the good
he has left behind, as the result of three short official residences in
Chester, and a few occasional visits to the place.
" Since the remarks in this paper are necessarily of a personal
character, and since they must relate particularly to the religious
side of the subject, it seems to me natural to begin with the first
meeting which, so far as I remember, I ever had with Canon
Kingsley. This took place at Cambridge. I must confess that at
that time I had a strong prejudice against him. I had read 'Alton
Locke,' on its first appearance, and had thought it very unjust .to
the University of which both he and I were members. It seemed
to me quite out of harmony with my recollections of a place, from
which I was conscious of having received the utmost benefit. I
must say here, in passing, that the passages to which I refer have
been so modified by notes in the last edition, that warm commen-
dation has taken the place of blame ; and I am not sure that the
pendulum of his strong feeling did not, on this last occasion, swing
too far in its new direction. This, however, belongs to a subse-
quent period. At the time to which I refer the book remained
unchanged. Besides the impression which it made upon me, I had
acquired a general notion of Mr. Kingsley's tone of mind, through
conversation and through casual reading : and the notion amounted
to this ; that 1 regarded him as the advocate of a self-confident,
self-asserting Christianity, whereas the view I had been led to take
of the religion which has been revealed to us, and which is to
save us here and hereafter, was extremely different. Under these
circumstances I happened to be appointed Hulsean Lecturer at
Cambridge, he being then Professor of Modern History. I had
taken for my subject the Character of St. Paul ; and being, in one
of my sermons, about to preach on the Apostle's ' tenderness and
sympathy,' which, to my mind, involved a sense of utter weakness,
and a continual self-distrust, I was very uncomfortable. I thought
that I should be understood to be preaching against Professor
Kingsley. Such a' course would have been, to the utmost degree,
foreign to my feelings ; and yet I was bound to do justice to my
convictions concerning, not only St. Paul's character, but Chris-
tianity itself, in this respect. My surprise, therefore, was great,
when, at the close of the service, and after the dispersion of the
congregation, I met Canon Kingsley at the south door of St. Mary's.
He was waiting for me there, that he might express his sympathy
with what I had said in the sermon ; and this he did, not merely
with extraordinary cordiality, but literally, I may say, with tears of
Dean Howsoris Memories. 445
approval. It was a moment of my life which made a deep impres-
sion on me. It not only caused me to be conscious that I had
made a mistake, but it formed in me a warm personal regard for
Mr. Kingsley, though, at that time, I had no expectation of any
frequent opportunities of seeing him.
" For some time afterwards our meetings were only casual, and
our acquaintance was very slight : and I must confess that when a
letter came to me from him to tell me that he had been appointed a
Canon of Chester, in succession to Dr. Moberly, who had been
made Bishop of Salisbury, 1 was full of fear. There seemed to me
an incongruity in the appointment. I fancied that there was no
natural affinity between the author of 'Alton Locke' and cathe-
dral life. Here again I soon found that I had made a mistake. I
might, indeed, have reflected that cathedral institutions, even under
their present restricted conditions, have great capacity for varied
adaptation, and that 1 myself had been diligent in giving expression
to an opinion of this kind. And here-I may remark that the cathe-
dral stall in question has had a very curious recent history, illus-
trative of the correctness of this remark. It has been held in suc-
cession by three men of eminence Dr. M'Neile, Dr. Moberly,
and Mr. Kingsley differing from one another as much as possible
in habits of thought, but in each case with beneficial results to the
city of Chester, though in very various ways.
"Now, to describe particularly Canon Kingsley's work and use-
fulness in Chester, I must note first the extraordinary enthusiasm
with which he entered upon his connection with the place. Ches-
ter has certainly a very great charm for an imaginative mind, and
for any one who is fond of the picturesque aspects of history ; and
upon him it told immediately, giving him from the first a greater
delight than he would have felt elsewhere in the work which he
found here to do. And with this enthusiasm I must note his old-
fashioned courtesy, loyalty, and respect for official position. I
suppose his political and social views would have been termed
'liberal ; ' but his liberalism was not at all of the conventional type.
I should have described him as a mixture of the Radical and the
Tory, the aspect of character which is denoted by the latter word
being, to my apprehension, quite as conspicuous as that which is
denoted by the former. Certainly he was very different from
the traditional Whig. I have spoken of his respect for official
position. I believe that to have caused inconvenience to me, to
have done what I did not like, to have impeded me in my efforts
to be useful, would have given him the utmost pain. That he was
far my superior in ability and knowledge made no difference. I
happened to be Dean, and he happened to be Canon ; and this was
quite enough. From the first letter which he wrote to me announ-
cing his appointment, till the time when, to our great regret, he
left Chester for Westminster, he showed to me the utmost consid-
446 Charles Kings ley.
eration. I record this, that I may express my gratitude ; but I
note it also as a mark of character.
"The opportunities of usefulness, which he found and employed
at Chester, were not altogether limited to the city. He had a
beneficial relation to the diocese at large, the mention of which
ought not to be entirely omitted. Mere popularity in a canon of
a cathedral, who is eminent for literary and scientific attainments,
and who is known to take a large and kindly interest in his fellow-
men, is no slight benefit to a diocese. But Canon Kingsley did
useful work in Chester and South Lancashire by preaching at
choral festivals, taking part in the proceedings of scientific societies,
promoting the restoration of the cathedral to which he belonged,
and the like. Under the present system, indeed, of capitular insti-
tutions, a cathedral cannot do as much as might be desired for the
diocese in which it is placed ; but such general work as was done
here by Canon Kingsley, and more especially, the spirit in which
he did it, aided to diffuse through the neighborhood the idea that
cathedral institutions have inherently a capacity for diocesan ex-
pansion.
" In the cathedral city itself, with which he is connected, it is
desirable that a canon should do some definite thing, and one which
is not likely to be spoilt and broken by intermittent residence. This
one thing, suitable to his own tastes, and easily within the range of
his powers, Canon Kingsley perceived at Chester as desirable to be
done ; and he definitely did it with all his heart and with complete
success. By establishing a Society for the study of Natural Science,
he brought to view much latent knowledge, promoted co-operation
among those who had been isolated, encouraged those who knew
little to learn more, and those who knew nothing to learn some-
thing. . He promoted these studies by excellent lectures; and his
personal help, readily rendered on every side, was invaluable. For
the making of such assistance effectual, he had many high qualities
a quiet and kindly sympathy, a genial humor combined with
intense earnestness, and a disdain of the silly social distinctions
which separate those who ought to be acquainted with one another.
He had a quick eye for vegetable forms, and a large experience in
judging of geological facts. Others may have known more than he
did of many sciences ; but he could teach what he knew ; and he
had another most important faculty he could make others work.
"All this enthusiasm for Natural Science to revert to a point
which was touched before might at first seem out of harmony with
the grave and formal traditions of cathedral life. Even if it were
so, there could be no objection to this, but rather a great advantage
in it. The clerical office ought to touch human interests on every
side ; an ancient institution ought to diffuse light into fresh places ;
the meeting of the old and the new never occurs more properly
or more usefully, than in a cathedral. But precedents for what has
Religious Life in Chester. 447
happened to us, to our great benefit, in Chester, are supplied by
the connection of Buckland and Sedgwick and Mozeley with West-
minster and Norwich and Bristol. In our own cathedral, too, there
seems a special invitation to associations of this kind. For not
only do our Gurgoyles and Corbels betray the general mediaeval
interest felt of old in animal and vegetable forms, but carvings in
wood and stone, even in the interior of the church, show that here
there was a lavish enjoyment of such observation and imitation.
As an illustration of what I mean at this moment, I may say that
in this building there are monkeys in the midst of the crockets of
some canopies, and that Canon Kingsley, in the midst of Divine
Service, was once observed to start, when his eye caught the sight
of this strange creature in an unexpected place.
" But it is time now to turn to the religious and most serious side
of his life in Chester ; and this I must say, he was most careful and
conscientious in attendance at the cathedral services, most reveren-
tial in public worship, most diligent in preaching. There is a
remarkable passage in the statutes of this cathedral, which charges
the Dean and Canons and even pleads with them 'by the mercies
of God,' that inasmuch as the Divine Word is 'a light to our feet
and a lamp to our path,' they be diligent in preaching ; and though
the number of sermons prescribed in the year is so small, as almost,
after such a preamble, to provoke a smile, yet the spirit of the in-
junction is excellent ; and in this spirit Canon Kingsley acted. He
is remembered here as a preacher of great power ; he had always
large congregations, and they tended, towards the end of his time,
to increase rather than to diminish. Through his preaching in
consequence of his known interest in science, and his large sym-
pathy with humanity religious truth found its way to many hearts,
which otherwise might have been nearly closed to such influence.
As to the sermons themselves, several of those which have been
published in his volume of ' Westminster Abbey Sermons ' were
first preached here at Chester. I will make mention of two, the
delivery of which I remember very distinctly. One was preached
from the io4th Psalm, and dealt with the subject of the physical
suffering of the animals around us, caused by their preying on one
another. ' The lions roaring after their prey do seek their meat
from God.' He felt keenly all the mystery of pain in those creat-
ures that had not deserved it by sin ; and yet he had an undis-
turbed belief that God is good. The other was a sermon on
Prayer : ' Thou that nearest prayer, unto Thee shall all flesh come.'
Some had doubted, in consequence of certain discussions then
recent, whether the preacher did not so limit the use of prayer, as
to cause it really to be no comfort to us at all. But those who
heard this sermon found their doubts on this subject removed.
Speaking from my own point of view, I by no means say that I
always agreed with Canon Kingsley' s mode of presenting Divine
448 Charles Kingsley.
Truth, and of arranging its proportions ; but there was far less
divergence between us than I had expected to find ; and he ex-
hibited, with more force than any one else that I have ever heard,
certain aspects of Christianity, which to both of us seemed of the
utmost importance.
" In connection with his efforts for the moral and religious bene-
fit of the people of this place I must mention one subject, which
to me is of overwhelming interest, and which no reasonable man
can say is unimportant. I refer to the Chester Races, which, to
speak in plain English and in simple words, hinder here everything
that is good, and promote everything that is bad. It is not my
business, in this place, to say much of my own strong convictions
upon this subject ; but I may record, with grateful satisfaction, the
harmony which subsisted regarding it between Canon Kingsley and
myself. He was well acquainted with the whole subject of modern
Horse-racing ; and he deserved to be listened to when he main-
tained that, instead of being a manly sport, it had become a selfish
and fraudulent trade. Among the efforts which were made during
his connection with Chester, to give a right direction to public
opinion in, this matter, and to diminish the mischief caused here
by the system, some small pamphlets were published, exhibiting
its evils on various sides. Canon Kingsley wrote one on ' Betting.'
It was very short, but it was admirable ; and I think an account
of his life would be incomplete without a notice of this small pub-
lication.
" Before I conclude, I must refer to the good done here by Can-
on Kingsley, through remarks made in the course of casual con-
versations. Great effects are produced in this way by certain men ;
and he produced them without being aware of it. I will simply
give two slight illustrations, each having reference to Science. On
being asked how he reconciled Science and Christianity, he said,
' By believing that God is love.' On another occasion, when the
slow and steady variation of Mollusca, traced from stratum to stra-
tum, was pointed out by a friend, with the remark that Darwin's
explanation would hardly be considered orthodox, he observed,
' My friend, God's orthodoxy is truth if Darwin speaks the truth,
he is orthodox.' I may remark here that Kingsley's bent was, in
his own opinion, more towards Science than towards Literature.
He once said something to this effect, that he would rather be low
on the roll of Science than high on that of Literature.
" This is a poor and inadequate account of a passage in Canon
Kingsley's life, which was productive of great good in one particu-
lar city and neighborhood, and which has left among us here, in
one sense indeed, a very sorrowful, but, in a higher sense, a very
cheerful, recollection. Various facts and incidents, for which room
cannot here be found, might have been mentioned, as, for instance,
his warm and practical interest in the development of our Cathedral
Farewell to Chester. 449
School, which, under its new conditions, has already entered upon
a successful career ; or, again, the general lectures which he deliv-
ered in Chester to audiences far larger than can commonly be as-
sembled here for such a purpose. But my aim has been simply to
give a truthful impression of the life, and character, and work,
which we observed, and from which we have derived advantage. It
- must be added, in conclusion, that three permanent memorials of
Charles Kingsley have been established in Chester. On his scien-
tific side he is commemorated by a prize founded in connection
with the Natural History Society which he established : on his lit-
erary side by a marble bust, executed by Mr. Belt, which is to be
placed in the Cathedral Chapter-house ; while the religious aspect
of his life and work are suitably recorded, in the midst of the beau-
tiful tabernacle-work of the cathedral, by a restored stall which
bears his name. His best and most faithful memory, however,
remains in the seeds of good which he has sown in the minds and
hearts of those over whom his influence was exerted."
In July he went to Chester to say good-bye, and to join the
Nave Choir and Scientific Society in an excursion into Wales.
His kind friends insisted on his still keeping the office of Presi-
dent to the Scientific Society. Professor Hughes is his distin-
guished successor, who closed his Inaugural Lecture in 1874 with
these words :
'' Let us then try to carry on our Society in the spirit that per-
vaded all the work of him to whom this Society owes everything
whose loss, when last 1 came among you we had so recently to de-
plore ; a spirit of fearless and manly grappling with difficulties a
spirit of vigorous, prompt, and rigorous carrying out of whatever
was taken in hand a spirit of generous and hearty co-operation
with fellow-workers a wide range of interests not meaning by
this, scattered desultory thought but thought, like Napoleon's,
ready to be concentrated at once where the battle must be fought."
Some of Canon Kingsley's friends in their congratulations' ex-
pressed the hope that this distinction might be a stepping stone to
a higher post, but he had no ambition beyond a stall at Westmin-
ster and the Rectory of Eversley.
" A thousand thanks," he says to Sir Charles Bunbury, " for
your congratulations, and Lady Bunbury's. Let me assure you
that your view of my preferment, as to its giving me freer access to
scientific society, libraries, &c., is just mine, with this addition,
that it will give me freer access to you. So far from looking on it
29
450 Charles Kingsley.
as an earnest of future preferment, I acquiesce in it as all I want,
and more than I deserve. What better fate than to spend one's
old age under the shadow of that Abbey, and close to the highest
mental activities of England, with leisure to cultivate myself, and
write, if I will, deliberately, but not for daily bread ? A deanery
or bishopric would never give me that power. It cannot be better
than it is ; and most thankful to God am I for His goodness."
To him in his great humility the outburst of sympathy on all
sides was only a surprise : while to those who knew the history of
his life it was a triumph, which wiped out many bitter passages in
the past, but a triumph tempered by the fear that it came too late
to save the overstrained brain. The candle had already burnt
down, and though light and flame still flared up, it flared as from
the socket. His eldest son returning at the moment to share in
the joy of his father's elevation, was so much struck with his
broken appearance, that he urged upon him rest and change and a
sea voyage before he entered on a position of fresh responsibility.
This, however, he refused, though it was strongly recommended by
medical advisers, and decided not to go to America till the follow-
ing year, when the repairs of both homes at Eversley and the
house in the Cloisters, would oblige him to take a holiday.
He preached in the Abbey for the Temperance Society * in
April, for which at once he put himself under the orders of his
Dean. To it this letter refers.
EVERSLEY, April 23, 1873.
" MY DEAR DEAN,
" Many thanks for your letter and its instructions, which I will
follow. Kindly answer me this to me important question.
" Have you any objection to my speaking, in my sermon, in
favor of opening the British Museum, &c., to the public on Sunday
afternoons ? Of course I shall do so without saying anything vio-
lent or uncharitable. But I have held very strong and deliberate
opinions about this matter for many years ; and think that the
opening of these Public Institutions would not only stop a great
deal of Sunday, and therefore of Monday drunkenness, but would
if advocated by the clergy enable the Church to take the wind
out of the sails of the well-meaning, but ignorant, Sunday League,
* This sermon was the foundation of a valuable article in " Good Words,"
called the " Tree of Knowledge," since published in the volume, " Health and
Education."
The Question of Total Abstinence. 451
and prove herself what she can prove herself in other matters if
she has courage the most liberal religious body in these isles.
But if you, with your superior savoir-faire, think it better for me to
be silent as yet, I obey."
On the same subject he writes to J. Barfleet, Esq., J.P., of
Worcester :
" I am not a ' total abstainer ; ' but that does not prevent my
wishing the temperance movement all success, and wishing success.
also, to your endeavor to make people eat oatmeal. I am sorry to
say that they will not touch it in our southern counties ; and that
their food is consequently deficient in phosphates and they in bone,
in comparison with the northern oatmeal eating folk, who are still
a big-boned race.
" I have told them this ; and shall again. For growing children
oatmeal is invaluable. Meanwhile, we must not forget to supply
the system with hydro-carbons (especially if we lessen the quantity
of beer) in order to keep the fire alight, or we get a consumptive
tendency, as in many oatmeal eating Scotch, who, with tall and
noble frames, die of consumption, because they will not eat bacon, or
any fats in sufficient quantity. Hence not only weakness of tissue,
but want of vital heat, and consequent craving for whiskey. The
adjustment of the elements of food in their right proportions is almost
the most important element in ensuring temperance." ....
His first residence at Westminster was in September, during a
time in which London was considered " empty." He preferred
these quiet months, as the congregations were composed chiefly of
men of the middle and lower class, whose ear he wished to gain, and
preached during September and November to vast congregations
twice a day. Speaking of this, he says :
" I got through the sermons without any bodily fatigue, and
certainly there were large congregations worth speaking to. But
the responsibility is too great for me, and I am glad I have only two
months' residence, and that in a quiet time. What must it be in
May and June?"
To his wife, who was ill in the country, he writes from the Clois-
ters in November :
" I ought to have written yesterday, but I was very busy with two
sermons and early communion. The sermons, I am assured, were
heard, and R. says, the attention of the congregation was great. If
I find I can get the ear of that congregation, it will be a work to
452 Charles Kings ley.
live for, for the rest of my life. What more can a man want?
And as for this house, the feeling of room in it is most pleasant, and
the beauty outside under this delicious gleamy weather, quite lifts
my poor heart up a-while I regret much that I am
leaving just as I seemed to be getting hold of people. But I do
not think I could have stood the intense excitement of the Sundays
much longer."
His last sermon in 1873 m tne Abbey was on "The Beatific
Vision," and those who heard him were impressed by the deep
solemnity of his words and manner as he, in prospect of leaving
Europe, bade farewell to a congregation which he had already begun
to love.*
In the autumn he wrote three articles on Health, Physical Edu-
cation, and Sanitary subjects, to which and to his sermons he
proposed to devote the remaining years of his life, and made prepa-
rations for his American journey ; and in December he returned to
Eversley with his family, and remained till the end of January, when
he and his eldest daughter sailed for New York, taking with him a
few lectures, to meet his expenses.
This Poem, written, but not corrected for the press, is the only
one he composed this year :
JUVENTUS MUNDI.
List a tale a fairy sent us
Fresh from dear Mundi Juventus.
When Love and all the world was young,
And birds conversed as well as sung ;
And men still faced this fair creation
With humor, heart, imagination.
Who come hither from Morocco
Every spring on the Sirocco ?
In russet she, and he in yellow,
Singing ever clear and mellow,
Sweet, sweet, sweet, sweet, sweet you, sweet you.
Did he beat you ? Did he beat you ?
Phyllopneustes wise folk call them,
But don't know what did befal them,
Why they ever thought of coming
All that way to hear gnats humming,
* This sermon, with others, form the volume of " Westminster Sermons,"
which appeared in 1874, published by Messrs. Macmillan.
Juventus Mundi. 453
Why they build not nests but houses,
Like the bumble-bees and mousies.
Nor how little birds got wings,
Nor what 'tis the small cock sings
How should they know stupid fogies ?
They daren' t even believe in bogies.
Once they were a girl and boy,
Each the other's life and joy.
He a Daphnis, she a Chloe,
Only they were brown, not snowy,
Till an Arab found them playing
Far beyond the Atlas straying,
Tied the helpless things together,
Drove them in the burning weather,
In his slave-gang many a league,
Till they dropped from wild fatigue.
Up he caught his whip of hide,
Lashed each soft brown back and side
Till their little brains were burst
With sharp pain, and heat, and thirst.
Over her the poor boy lay,
Tried to keep the blows away,
Till they stiffened into clay,
And the ruffian rode away :
Swooping o'er the tainted ground,
Carrion vultures gathered round,
And the gaunt hyenas ran
Tracking up the caravan.
But Ah, wonder ! that was gone
Which they meant to feast upon.
And, for each, a yellow wren,
One a cock, and one a hen,
Sweetly warbling, flitted forth
O'er the desert toward the north.
But a shade of bygone sorrow,
Like a dream upon the morrow,
Round his tiny brainlet clinging,
Sets the wee cock ever singing
Sweet, sweet, sweet, sweet, sweet you, sweet you,
Did he beat you ? Did he beat you ?
Vultures croaked, and hopped and flopped,
But their evening meal was stopped.
And the gaunt hyenas foul,
Sat down on their tails to howl.
Northward towards the cool spring weather,
Those two wrens fled on together,
454 Charles Kings ley.
On to England o'er the sea,
Where all folks alike are free.
There they built a cabin, wattled
Like the huts where first they prattled,
Hatched and fed, as safe as may be,
Many a tiny feathered baby.
But in autumn south they go
Pass the Straits, and Atlas' snow,
Over desert, over mountain,
To the palms beside the fountain,
Where, when once they lived before, he
Told her first the old, old story.
What do the doves say ? Curuck-Coo,
You love me and I love you.
EvERSLEY, January 7, 1874.
" . . . . We sail on the 29th," he writes to Professor New-
ton ; " we go in April or May (when the prairie is in flower) to
San Francisco, and then back to Denver and the Rocky Moun-
tains south of Denver, and then straight home.
" Tell us if we can do anything for you. ... I think you
have ordered a pair of Asahta sheep-horns already, we will do our
best, . . . and have friends who will do their best for you
after we are gone."
The notes of the journey are made by his daughter, and form the
connecting thread between his own letters home :
"We arrived at Sandy Hook late on the loth Feb., and on the
morning of the nth landed at New York ; and here, before my
father set foot on American soil, he ha.d a foretaste of the cordial
welcome and generous hospitality which he experienced everywhere,
without a single exception, throughout the six months he spent in
the United States and Canada. The moment the ship warped into
her dock a deputation from a literary club came on board, took
possession of us and our baggage, and the custom-house authorities
passed all our trunks without looking at them. We went out later
in the day to stay at Staten Island with Mr. F. G. Shaw, where we
stayed till the i4th, going to New York on that day for a dinner
and reception given in my father's honor by the Lotus Club."
STATEN ISLAND, February 12.
" I have, thank God, nothing to write but what is pleasant and
hopeful. We got here yesterday afternoon, and I am now writing
Arrival in the United States. 455
in a blazing, sunny, south window, in a luxurious little room, in a
luxurious house, redolent of good tobacco and sweet walnut-wood
smoke, looking out on a snow-covered lawn, and trees, which
like the people, are all English, with a difference. I have met
with none but pleasant, clever people as yet, afloat or ashore, and
Mr. Curtis (Mr. Shaw's son-in-law, and an old friend of Thack-
eray's,) a very handsome, cultivated man.
" As for health, this air, as poor Thackeray said of it, is like
champagne. Sea-air and mountain air combined, days already
an hour longer than in England, and a blazing hot sun and blue
sky. It is a glorious country, and I don't wonder at the people
being proud of it.
To-day R. and I go into New York by steamer to see various
people and do business ; and out again before dinner, to meet a
very gentleman-like clergyman of this place, once rector of San
Francisco. I enclose a log and chart of the voyage which should
interest and teach Grenville, for whom it is intended. I dine
with the Lotus Club on Saturday night, and then start for Boston
with R. to stay with Fields next week."
" On Monday evening, after a busy day in Boston, we went out
to Salem, fifteen miles by train, and my father was particularly
struck and interested by the recurrence of the old Fen names, with
which he was familiar from his early childhood, on that side of the
Atlantic, and made me notice, with tears in his eyes, the difference
between the New World and Old World Lynn, etc., etc. Through
the whole of his stay in America the recurrence of the Old World
names of places and people were a never-failing source of interest
and pleasure to him.
" On the 1 8th we went out to Cambridge, and spent the next
few days there with some friends, my father going in and out to
Boston, and spending one night at Andover and another at George-
town. At Georgetown, the lady with whom he was to stay being
ill, he went to the village inn, and told me that the great question
of hard money v. paper had been quaintly brought to his notice by
the landlord's little child of six or seven, who sat on his knee play-
ing with his watch chain, and finding among his seals an old Span-
ish gold doubloon, cried, ' See, father, the gentleman has got a
cent on his chain ! ' never having seen a gold coin before. He
took the greatest interest in the Agassiz Museum at Cambridge,
his only regret being that he had come to America two months too
late to make the acquaintance of its founder. The joyous young
456 Charles Kings ley.
life of the university with which he was surrounded, together with
the many distinguished Americans with whom he made or renewed
acquaintance, made these days exceedingly pleasant to my father,
and it was with real regret that he left Cambridge on the 25th.
" We broke our journey at Springfield, staying there one night
as the guests of Mr. Samuel Bowles, of the celebrated Springfield
Republican newspaper, and reached New York again, to stay with
our kind friends Professor and Mrs. Botta."
DR. WHARTON'S, CAMBRIDGE, MASS., February 19, 1874.
" Here is a little haven of rest, where we arrived last night.
Longfellow came to dinner, and we dine with him to-night. Yester-
day, in Boston, dear old Whittier called on me and we had a most
loving and like-minded talk about the other world. He is an old
saint. This morning I have spent chiefly with Asa Gray and his
plants, so that we are in good company.
"New York was a great rattle, dining, and speechifying, and
being received, and so has Boston been ; and the courtesy, and
generosity, and compliments would really turn any one's head who
was not as disgusted with himself, as I always (thank God,) am.
The Westminster lecture is the only one I have given as yet.
Salem was very interesting, being next to Plymouth, the Pilgrim
Fathers' town. People most intelligent, gentle, and animated.
They gave me a reception supper, with speeches after, and want us
to come again in the summer to their Field Naturalists' Club. New
England is, in winter at least, the saddest country, all brown grass,
ice-polished rocks, sticking up through the copses, cedar scrub, low,
swampy shores ; an iron land which only iron people could have
settled in. The people must have been heroes to make what they
have of it. Now, under deep snow, it is dreadful. But the sum-
mer, they say, is semi-tropic, and that has kept them alive. And,
indeed already, though it is hard frost under foot, the sun is bright,
and hot, and high, for we are in the latitude of Naples ! I cannot
tell you a thousandth part of all I've seen, or of all the kindness
we have received, but this I can say, that R. is well, and that I
feel better than I have felt for years ; but Mr. Longfellow and
others warn me not to let this over-stimulating climate tempt me
to over-work. One feels ready to do anything, and then suddenly
very tired. But I am at rest now. . . ."
NEW YORK, March i, 1874.
" . . . . We made great friends with Asa Gray and are
going to stay with him when we return. Moreover, dear Colonel
John Hay, with his beautiful wife, has been here, and many more,
and here, as at Boston, we have been seeing all the best people.
In Washington. 457
Mr. Winthrop was most agreeable, a friend of the Cramvorths,
Bunbnrys, Charles Howard, and all the Whig set in England, and
such a fine old gentleman. Nothing can exceed the courtesy and
hospitality everywhere. . . . On Thursday we are off to Phila-
delphia, then Washington, where we have introductions to the
President, etc., and then back here to these kind friends. From
Professor Botta I am learning a lot of Italian history and politics,
which is most useful.
" Here the streets are full of melting snow. We had a huge
snow-storm on Wednesday after dreadful cold, and overhead a sky
like Italy or south of France, and a sun who takes care to remind
us that we are in the latitude of Rome. But it is infinitely healthy,
at least to me. R. looks quite blooming, and I am suddenly quite
well. ... I never want medicine or tonic, and very little
stimulant. But one cannot do as much here as at home. All say
so and I find it. One can go faster for awhile but gets exhausted
sooner. As for the people they are quite charming, and I long to
see the New Englanders again when the humming birds and mock-
ing birds get there and the country is less like Greenland.
I have been assisting Bishop Potter at an ordination. The old
man was very cordial, especially when he found I was of the re-
spectful and orthodox class. So that is well, but I will not preach,
at least not yet."
" During our stay among our many friends in New York, renew-
ing old friendships and making fresh acquaintances, my father par-
ticularly rejoiced at an opportunity of meeting Mr. William Cullen
Bryant, whose poetry had been his delight from his boyhood.
From New York we went to Philadelphia, staying there for two
nights with Mr. C. J. Peterson. On the evening of our arrival my
father lectured in the Opera House to an audience of nearly 4,000
every seat being occupied, and the aisles and steps crowded with
people, who stood the whole time. Here, as in New York and
Boston, we were overwhelmed with kindness, our hosts and other
friends gathering together at their houses everyone in the city
whose acquaintance was most likely to give us pleasure.
" On the 7th of March we went on to Washington, where Presi-
dent Grant welcomed my father most cordially. The loth we
spent among the scientific men of Washington, Dr. Henry at the
Smithsonian Institute, and Professor Hayden at the office of the
Geological Survey of the Territories. In the latter my father took
a keen interest, and was struck by the admirable work displayed in
the geological maps and photographs made by the surveying parties
45 8 Charles Kingsley.
in the field in Colorado, Nebraska, Utah, and Wyoming during the
summer months, which are worked up at Washington during the
winter.
" We also went to the Senate House though rather weary with
continual sightseeing : but my father often said afterwards that he
would not have missed that visit for any consideration, for in the
Senate he was introduced to Mr. Charles Sumner. They had cor-
responded a good deal in former years, though personally unac-
quainted, and for some time the correspondence had ceased owing
to the different views they had held on sonie American matters.
But the moment the two came face to face all mistrust vanished, as
each instinctively recognized the manly honesty of the other, and
they had a long and friendly talk. An hour after, Mr. Sumner was
seized with an attack of Angina Pectoris, from which he had long
suffered, and when we reached New York the next day we were
shocked to find that the news of his death had preceded us by
telegraph."
WASHINGTON, March 8.
" . . . . We are received with open arms, and heaped with
hospitality. I hardly like to talk of it. and of our reception by
Mr. Childs and all Philadelphia. We went just now and left our
introductions at the White House, and in walked dear Rothery,
who is here settling the International Fisheries question, and he is
going to take me round to make all our calls, on Fish, and
Dr. Henry, &c., and then to dine, and go with him to the White
House in the evening, and go to Baltimore on Tuesday. . . .
" Railway travelling is very cheap and most luxurious. Mean-
while we are promised free passes on the Chicago lines and also to
California. I have not been so well for years. My digestion is
perfect, and I am in high spirits. But 1 am homesick at times,
and would give a finger to be one hour with you, and G., and M.
But I dream of you all every night, and my dreams are more
pleasant now I sleep with my window open to counteract the
hideous heat of these hot-air pipes. R. is very well and is the best
of secretaries. Tell G. I was delighted with his letter.
" On Monday the pth, I was asked by the Speaker of the House
of Representatives to open the Session of the House with prayer,*
and I simply repeated two collects from the English Prayer-book,
mentioning, as is the custom, the President of tne United States,
* This was considered a most unusual distinction, and the deep solemnity of
manner and simplicity with which it was done struck every one present.
In New England. 459
the Senate, and the House of Representatives, and ended with the
Lord's Prayer."
" From New York my father went up the Hudson to Pough-
keepsie and Troy, joining me at Hartford (Conn.) on the i4th, to
pay a long-promised visit to Mr. Samuel Clemens (Mark Twain).
From Troy to Hartford he came through the wooded passes of
Berkshire County, and was enthusiastic about the beauty of the
pine forests, and rocky trout streams, just breaking free from the
winter snow which was beginning to melt, comparing it to the best
parts of the Eifel and Black Forest.
"On Monday the i6th, we returned to Boston to stay with my
father's old friend Mr. James T. Field, in whose hospitable house
we were able to see many whose acquaintance we had long wished
to make, and whose friendship was a lasting pleasure to my father.
During this week my father spent one night at New Haven, stay-
ing with his namesake and distant kinsman, Dr. William Kingsley,
of Yale College."
BOSTOX, March 23.
". . . . We are housed and feasted every where. I do not tire
the least. Sleep at night, and rise in the morning as fresh as
a lark, to eat a great breakfast, my digestion always in perfect
order, while my nerye is like a bull's. This is a marvellous cli-
mate. The Americans make themselves ill by hot-air, and foul air,
and want of exercise ; I, who sleep with my window open and get
all fresh air I can by day, am always well. To-morrow morning we
start for Montreal, and then on to Quebec to good Col. Strange.
" Simmer's death has been an awful blow here. I do not won-
der, for he was a magnificent man. He and I were introduced to
each other in the Senate an hour before his attack. He was most
cordial, and we had much talk about Gladstone, and the A.'s.
His last words to me were, that he was going to write to the
Duchess of Argyle the next day. Alas ! I wrote to her for him, to
tell her particulars of the end.
" Oh, dear, I wish spring would come, the winter here is awful.
The grass as brown with frost as a table. But the blue-bird and
the robin (as they call a great particolored thrush,) are just begin-
ning to come, to my intense delight However, when we go north
to-morrow we shall run into Arctic weather again. Don't frighten
yourself at our railroads, they seem utterly safe, and I believe one
is far safer, humanly speaking, here than at home. As for the
people, they are fine, generous, kindly, wholesome folk, all classes
of them. Now good-bye, and love to M., and my blessing to
G.
460 Charles Kingsley.
WASHINGTON, April 9.
" Here we are safe and sound, having run 500 miles in thirty
hours to Baltimore, from the delightful Dufferins. . . . The
long journeys do not in the least tire me, so have no fears for me.
The safety of these rails is wonderful, as is their comfort. We have
come out of intense winter into damp spring. The birds (such beau-
ties) are coming fast from the Bahamas and Floridas ; the maples
are in crimson clouds of little flowers ; the flowers are coming out
in the gardens. I have seen two wasps like West India ones, an
inch and a half long, and heard a tree toad, and am warm once
more. All goes well. We have a dinner-party to-night ; we are
staying with Senator Potter, and to-morrow a dinner-party with the
President. So we shall have seen quasi-royalty, British and Ameri-
can both in one week. . . . Thank God for our English letters. I
cannot but hope that there is a time of rest and refreshing for us
after I return. ... To me the absence of labor and anxiety is
most healthy. I am quite idle now for days together, and the rail
itself is most pleasant idleness."
" At Baltimore my father yielded to the entreaties of the friends
with whom we were staying, and preached on the 1 2th in the princi-
pal church of Baltimore to a large congregation. On Easter day he
had preached in the little church close to Rideau, for the first time
since he landed in America, on ' The Peace of God.' On the aoth
of April, we left New York to begin working our way slowly west-
ward, so as to be at Omaha early in May to meet a large party of
friends who had invited us to join them in a trip to California.
Our first halting place was Ithaca (Cornell University), which we
should have reached on the evening of the 2oth, but on the Erie
railroad we were stopped for six hours by a huge rock falling on the
track as a coal train was coming towards us, round sharp curves,
and we should have had a frightful accident but for the presence of
mind of the engineer, as his engine ran over the rock, jamming itself
and the tender across both lines of rail ; he being unhurt, and remem-
bering our train was due at that moment, ran down the line seeing us
coming, and we pulled up within 100 yards of the disaster. It hap-
pened in the midst of the finest scenery on the Delaware, above Port
Jervis, where the railway follows the windings of the river, and is in
many places blasted out of the cliffs. And as there was no possi-
bility of getting on till the disabled train and broken trucks were
removed, my father and I spent the hours of waiting in wandering
about the rocky woods above the railway, botanizing and geologizing.
At Niagara. 461
" On Tuesday we reached Ithaca, and went on the next day to
Niagara. After one night at Niagara we went on the 2jrd (St.
George's day) forty miles to Hamilton (Ontario), where my father
had an enthusiastic reception at his lecture. After lecturing he
went to the dinner of the St. George's Society We
returned next day to Niagara, staying at Clark's Hill with an old
English friend, with whom we spent the next three days, my father
preaching on Sunday, the 26th, in the morning, at Clifton, and in the
afternoon at Chippewa. He thoroughly enjoyed being once more
in the country, and the walks on country roads, after three months
of cities and pavements. The spring birds were just beginning to
make their appearance, and the spring flowers to try and push their
leaves through the melting snow. On the 27th we went on to
Toronto for one night, and on the 28th we finally bade farewell to
Canada, and set our faces westward, reaching Detroit (Mich.) late
that night.
"At Detroit, where we stayed three days with the rector of one
of the Episcopal churches, the weather was still bitter, and my father
could not shake off a cold which he had caught at Niagara. But as we
neared St. Louis, on the afternoon of the 2nd of May, after a railway
journey of twenty hours, we began to be warm once more, and
realize what spring time in the West really was. All the fruit trees
were in blossom ; the ground on either side of the railway, where
any was left unfilled, was carpeted with beautiful flowers utterly
unknown to us, and the air was mild and balmy."
NIAGARA, April 23.
" At last we are here, safe and well, thank God, in the most
glorious air, filled with the soft thunder of this lovely phantom, for
such, and not stupendous, it seems as yet to me. I know it could
and would destroy me pitilessly, like other lovely phantoms, but I
do not feel awed by it. After all, it is not a quarter of the size of
an average thunderstorm, and the continuous roar, and steady
flow, makes it less terrible than either a thunderstorm or a real
Atlantic surf. But I long for you to sit with me, and simply look
on in silence whole days at the exquisite beauty of form and
color.
" After a delightful time in the Prince's old quarters at Hamilton,
we are here again in another old quarter of his, the loveliest house
in the loveliest grounds, and as I write the whole rapids of Niagara
462 Charles Kings ley.
roaring past 100 yards off, between the Irige arbor vitae, forty feet
high, like a tremendous grey Atlantic surf rushing down-hill instead
of up. I could not describe the beauty of this place in a week. I
can see the smoke of the horse-shoe through a vista on my left, not
half a mile off as I sit (sketch enclosed). We are above, under-
stand, and the river is running from right to left. To-day we are
going to Des Veaux College to see the lower rapids."
ST. Louis, May 4. .
" At St. Louis safe and well, thank God, in the capital of the
West, and across the huge rushing muddy ditch, the Mississippi.
Having come here over vast prairies, mostly tilled, hundreds of
miles like the Norfolk fens, without the ditches, a fat, dreary, aguish,
brutalizing land, but with a fine strong people in it, and here is a
city of 470,000 souls growing rapidly. It is all very wonderful, and
like a dream. But there is material civilization and comfort every-
where (except at the stations where the food is bad), and all goes
well. Only I wish already that our heads were homeward, and
that we had done the great tour, and had it not to do. However,
we shall go west in comfort. The Cyrus Fields, the Grays, and
probably the dear Rotherys, will make up a good party. And I
cannot but feel that I have gained much if only in the vast experi-
ence of new people and new facts. I shall come home 1 hope a
wider-hearted and wider-headed man ; and have time, I trust, to read
and think as I have not done for many years. At least so runs my
dream. We had a glorious thunderstorm last night after I had
helped at the communion in the morning, and preached in the
afternoon for good Mr. Schuyler
" We start to-morrow for California, after receiving here every
civility. The heat is tremendous, all of a sudden, but it will be
cooler as we rise the prairies out of the Mississippi Valley. We
have free passes here to Kansas City, and the directors offered to
take us on with them to Denver. We shall also have free passes
to California and back from Omaha a great gain."
"We stayed for a week in St. Louis, where the hot weather
came on so suddenly and fiercely that we were both made quite ill
by it, and were thankful on Saturday, the pth of May, to leave the
city on our way to Omaha, where we were to join our friends from
New York.
" The journey was intensely hot. A perfect sirocco blowing
away everything in the cars if the windows were opened ; but the
country was so lovely as almost to make amends for our discomfort.
The trees were bursting into a tender green ; the woods were here
At Salt Lake City. 463
snowy with the pure white dogwood and wild plum blossoms, there,
purple pink with the Judas tree, and down below grew countless
wild flowers, making us long every moment that it were possible to
stop the train and gather them.
" We reached Omaha on Sunday morning, the loth, and had
hardly been there an hour before we felt the renovating effect of
the glorious air rushing down, down, in a gale 500 miles from the
Rocky Mountains, to cool and refresh the panting Missouri Valley ;
and we were able once more to eat and sleep, which in the heat of
the last three days at St. Louis had become impossible."
OMAHA, May n.
" And we are at Omaha ! a city of 20,000, five years old, made
by the railway, and opposite to us is Council Bluffs ! ! Thirty
years ago the palavering ground of trappers and Indians (now all
gone), and to that very spot, which I had known of from a boy,
and all about it, I meant to go in despair .... as soon as
I took my degree, and throw myself into the wild life, to sink or
swim, escaping from a civilization which only tempted me and
maddened me with the envy of a poor man ! Oh ! how good God
has been to me. Oh ! how when I saw those Bluffs yesterday
morning I thanked God for you for everything, and stared at
them till I cried "
" On the i4th the party of friends we were awaiting arrived at
Omaha, and on the following day we left with them for the first
stage of the Californian journey. Mr. Cyrus Field and Mr. J. A.
C. Gray, of New York, were the organizers of the expedition, and
with them, besides several of their own relations and friends, were
Mr. and Mrs. H. C. Rothery, making a party of eleven Americans
and five English, which quite filled, but did not crowd, the magnifi-
cent Pullman car which was our home for the next fortnight.
" Our first halt was at Salt Lake City, where we arrived on
Friday, the i5th May, one day too late, unfortunately, for my
father to take part in the consecration of St. Mark's, the first
Episcopal church which has been built in Utah. On Sunday, the
1 7th, however, he preached the evening sermon at the church, to
such a crowded congregation that there was not standing room in
the little building, and numbers had to go away. The steps -out-
side, and even the pavement, being crowded with listeners, among
whom were many Mormons as well as ' Gentiles.' Brigham Young
464 Charles Kingsley.
sent to offer my father the tabernacle to lecture or preach in, but
of this offer he of course took no notice whatever, a course strongly
approved by the excellent Bishop, Dr. Tuttle.
" On Monday, the i8th, we left Salt Lake City, after a visit to
General Moreau at Camp Douglas, the United States camp, on the
hill-side above the city, who had one of the Gatling guns fired for
our amusement. On our remonstrating against such a waste of
ammunition he said that 'he was glad sometimes to show those ras-
cals in the city how straight his guns fired, and that if they gave
him any trouble he could blow the city to pieces in an hour.' "
WALKER HOUSE, SALT LAKE CITY, UTAH, May 17.
"Here we are after such a journey of luxury through a thou-
sand miles of desert, plain, and mountain, treeless, waterless
almost, sage brush and alkali. Then canons and gorges, the last
just like Llanberris Pass, into this enormous green plain, with its
great salt lake ; and such a mountain ring, 300 to 400 miles in cir-
cumference ! The loveliest scene I ever saw. As I sit, the snow-
peaks of the Wasatch tower above the opposite houses five miles
off, while the heat is utterly tropical in the streets. Yesterday we
were running through great snowdrifts, at from 5,000 to 7.000 feet
above the sea (we are 5,000 here) and all along by our side the old
trail, where every mile is fat with Mormon bones. Sadness and
astonishment overpower me at it all. The ' city ' is thriving
enough, putting one in mind, with its swift streams in all streets,
and mountain background, of Tarbes, or some other Pyrenean
town. But, ah ! what horrors this place has seen. Thank God it
is all breaking up fast. The tyrant is 70, and must soon go to his
account, and what an awful one. I am deeply interested in the
good bishop here, and his mission among the poor little children,
whose parents are principally Cornish, Worcestershire, and South
Welsh ; and if I can do aught for him when I come home, I will
do it with a will. Meanwhile our kind hosts insist on R. and me
being their guests right through, and let us pay for nothing. It is
fin enormous help, for they control both railways and telegraphs,
and do and go exactly as they like. The gentlemen and R. are
gone down to-day to see a silver mine, by special engine, and she
and Rothery (F.L.S.) are going to botanize. The flowers are ex-
quisite, yellow ribes over all the cliffs, &c., and make one long to
jump off the train every five minutes. While the geology makes
me stand aghast; geologizing in England is child's play to this.
R. is quite well, and the life of everything, and I am all right, but
don't like a dry air at 95, with a sirocco.
" Interrupted by a most interesting and painful talk with a man
who has been United States Governor here. It is all very dread
Off for the Yosemite. 465
ful. Thank God we (in England) at least know what love and
purity is. I preach to-morrow evening, and the Bishop of Colorado
in the morning."
" On the 2oth our car was slipped during the night at Reno, and
when we woke at 5 A.M., we found ourselves on a branch line at
Carson City. After breakfast, with Californian strawberries heaped
on dishes on every table, we left our car for a special train, the
Pullman being too long for the sharp curves of the railroad, and
with Mr. D. O. Mills, of San Francisco, who had joined our train in
his directors' car, the day before, at Ogden, we went up to Virginia
city, and spent the day among silver mines and stamp mills, and
dust, and drought, my dear father finding, even in the out of the
way spot, a warm and hearty welcome from many. We returned
to Carson in the afternoon, and were picked up in the night by the
Western train at Reno, breakfasting at Summit, on the top of the
Sierra Nevada next morning, and arrived at Sacramento at midday
on the 2 1 st.
" My father was delighted at finding himself once more in almost
tropical heat, and spent all the afternoon driving with our friends
about the city, and revelling in the gorgeous subtropical flowers
which hung over every garden fence. In the evening he lectured
to a very pleasant audience, and that night we left Sacramento in
our car, with a special engine, for Merced, which we reached
before dawn.
"Next morning, the 22nd, we were all up about four, and before
starting on our Yosemite trip, Mr. Cyrus Field sent off a telegram
to the Dean of Westminster, to my mother, and various friends in
England : ' We are, with Canon Kingsley and his daughter and
other friends, just entering Yosemite Valley, all in excellent health
and spirits. Mr. Kingsley is to preach for us in Yosemite on
Sunday.'
"We started at 6 A.M., in two open stages with five horses, and
drove 54 miles that day through exquisite country, botanizing all the
way to Skeltons, a ranch in the forest, and some of our party made
their first acquaintance with a real western shanty. On the 23rd we
were all up betimes, my father, the earliest of all, came up with his
hands full of new and beautiful flowers, after a chat with the guides,
who had driven the mules and ponies in from their grazing ground,
and were beginning to saddle them for our day's ride. At 6 we
30
466 Charles Kingsley.
started, and my father said he felt a boy again, and thoroughly
enjoyed the long day in the saddle, which many of our friends found
so tiring. We chose a new and unfrequented route, and having to
climb two mountains and ride along precipices, and ford four rivers
in flood in 29 miles, we were not sorry to reach the Valley at sun-
set. But rough as the ride was, it surpassed in beauty anything we
had ever seen before, as we followed the windings of the Merced
river between pine-clad mountains, still white with snow on their
highest points, till we reached the mouth of the Valley itself, and,
emerging from a thicket of dogwood, pines, and azaleas, ' El
Capitan,' just tipped with the rosy setting sun on one side, and the
Bridal Veil Fall rushing in a white torrent, 900 feet high, over the
gloomy rocks, on the other side, revealed themselves to us in a glow
of golden rosy light.
"The next day (Whit Sunday) most of our party rested from
their fatigues, and we walked about and feasted our eyes on the
almost overpowering scene around us, which seemed, if possible, to
increase in beauty in every fresh phase of light or shade, sunlight
or moonlight. At 5 P.M. the visitors of both hotels assembled in
the little parlor at Black's, and my father gave a short service, after
which we sang the icoth Psalm, and he preached a short sermon
on verses 10-14, 16-18 of the io4th Psalm, which happily was the
Psalm for the day.*
* In his sermon, in Westminster Abbey, on Whit-Sunday, the Dean of West-
minster referred to Mr. Field's telegram. His text, too, was on Psalm civ., 2,
14, 15, 24 : " On this very day," he says, " (so I learnt yesterday by that elec-
tric flash which unites the old and new worlds together), a gifted member of this
Collegiate Church, whose discourses on this and like Psalms have rivetted the
attention of vast congregations in this Abbey, and who is able to combine the
religious and scientific aspects of Nature better than any man living, is on this
very day, and perhaps at this very hour, preaching in the most beautiful spot on
the face of the earth, where the glories of Nature are revealed on the most gigan-
tic scale in that wonderful Californian Valley, to whose trees, the cedars of Leba-
non are but as the hyssop that groweth out of the wall where water and forest
and sky conjoin to make up, if anywhere on this globe, an earthly paradise. Let
me, from this pulpit, faintly echo the enthusiasm which I doubt not inspires his
burning words. Let us feel that in this splendid Psalm and this splendid festival,
the old and the new, the east and the west, are indeed united in one."
"On May 26th Mrs. Kingsley received the following telegraphic message from
Mr. Cyrus Field, through the Secretary of the Anglo-American Telegraph Com-
pany : " Yosemite Valley, California, Sunday, May 24th. We arrived here
Mariposa Grove. 467
" On Monday we spent the day in riding all over the Valley,
and on Tuesday, 26th, we left it at 6 A.M., and rode 24 miles to
Clark's Ranch, near the Mariposa Grove. It was bitterly cold,
for the snow had not melted on some of the high passes, which
were 7,000 feet above the sea ; but we found blazing fires and a
good supper at Clark's, and after a good night rode out six miles
the next day to the Mariposa Grove of Sequoias (Wellingtonias).
My father and I agreed to see the first one together, and riding on
ahead of our party a little, we suddenly came upon the first, a huge
cinnamon-red stem standing up pillar-like, with its head of delicate
green foliage among the black sugar pines and Douglas spruce,
and I shall never forget the emotion with which he gazed silently
and as he said ' awe struck ' on this glorious work of God.
" It was very cold, and we rode over snow for sojne two miles
under the ' big trees,' and were glad to camp in Mr. Clark's litttle
empty shanty under a group of some of the largest of the sequoias.
Mr. Clark, who is the guardian of the Grove, had come with us as
well as our own guide, Jim Cathy, and they soon lighted a roaring
fire, and seated on a bed of fragrant hemlock twigs, we warmed
ourselves and ate our luncheon of bread and meat and excellent
beer, and then rode on and back to the Ranch, with a collection
of flowers that took our whole evening to dry. Next day, the
28th, we drove down to Merced, 65 miles, and there joined the
railroad again, and left on the 2gth at dawn, arriving that afternoon
in San Francisco."
SAN FRANCISCO, May 31.
" Here we are safe after such adventures and such wonders in
the Yosemite and the Big Trees, and found the dear English let-
ters waiting for us Tell G. I will write to him all about
the sea lions which I saw this morning. All is more beautiful and
wonderful than I expected, and California the finest country in the
world and oh ! the flowers."
June 9.
" The next letter you get from me will, I hope, be from Denver.
We start east to-morrow, thank God, and run the Sierras, and the
desert back again, and beautiful as California is, I think destined
safely Saturday evening, all delighted with the magnificent scenery. Canon
Kingsley preached in the Valley this Sunday afternoon. We leave here Tuesday
for the Big Trees. Arrive in San Francisco, Friday. Remain there till the
following Wednesday."
468 Charles Kings ley.
to be the finest country in the world, I want to be nearer and
nearer home. We have been so heaped with kindness that this
trip will cost us almost nothing. I have got cones from the big
trees, with seeds in them, for Lord Eversley and Sir Charles Bun-
bury ; and we have collected heaps of most exquisite plants. I
think we shall bring home many pretty and curious things."
" We stayed in San Francisco about ten days, my father making
excursions to different places in the neighborhood. The most
notable of these was to the Berkeley University at Oakland,
whither he was invited by the president, Mr. D. C. Oilman. This
day he most thoroughly enjoyed ; and he made an address to the
students full of vigor and enthusiasm, on Culture, a subject always
very near to his heart.
" During the last few days of my father's stay in San Francisco,
he caught a severe cold from the damp sea fog which makes the
city and parts of the coast of California extremely unhealthy, while
a few miles inland the climate is the finest in the world. This
cold became rapidly worse, and the doctors in San Francisco or-
dered him to leave the city as quickly as possible ; so on Wednes-
day, June 10, we set off eastward once more, with Mr. J. A. C.
Gray, and part of our original party; and after a very trying
journey of four days, we reached Denver. Here most providen-
tially my father met his brother, Dr. Kingsley, who found that he
was suffering from a severe attack of pleurisy, and advised our
going south on the next day, 75 miles, to Colorado Springs, by the
narrow gauge railway, which my brother had helped to build four
years before. Here Dr. and Mrs. W. A. Bell received us, and
nursed my father with the most devoted attention in their charm-
ing English house, at the foot of Pike's Peak.
" As soon as my father had recovered sufficiently to be moved,
we all drove up twenty-two miles to Bergun's Park for change of
,air, and stayed at Mr. Cholmondely Thornton's Ranch, for a week.
My father's chief amusement during these weeks of illness was
botany, and though he was not able to get many specimens himself,
he took a keen delight in naming those we brought him in every
day.
" On Sunday, the 5th July, he had recovered enough to be able
to read a short service in the large dining-room of the Ranch, and
he often reverted to that service with pleasure and emotion.
In Colorado. 469
" On the 6th we went down again to Manitou, and spent a few
days with General and Mrs. Palmer, at Glen Eyrie, whose care
and kindness helped on his recovery ; and on the following Sunday,
July 1 2, my father preached in the Episcopal Church at Colorado
Springs, which was barely finished, and in which only one service
had been held. The church was crowded, many men, young Eng-
lishmen chiefly, having ridden in twenty miles and more from dis-
tant Ranches to hear my father preach. The next week, before
leaving Colorado Springs for the homeward journey, he gave a
lecture in Colorado Springs for the benefit of the church, where he
also had a crowd to listen to him. The place was very dear to
him from the fact of my brother having been one of the first
pioneers there."
MANITOU, COLORADO, June 18.
" We are here in perfect peace, at last, after the running and
raging of the last three weeks, and safe back over those horrid
deserts, in a lovely glen, with red rocks, running and tinkling burn,
whispering cotton woods, and all that is delicious, with Pike's Peak
and his snow seemingly in the back garden, but 8,000 feet over our
heads. Oh, it is a delicious place, and the more so, because we
have just got a telegram from Maurice, to say he and his wife are
safe in New York from Mexico. Thank God ! The heat is tre-
mendous, but not unwholesome. God's goodness since I have been
out, no tongue can tell. . . . Please God I shall get safe and
well home, and never leave you again, but settle down into the
quietest old theologian, serving God, I hope, and doing nothing
else, in humility and peace."
yune 29.
" A delightful party has clustered here, not only the Rotherys,
but Dudley Fortescue and Lord Ebrington, who has just got his
Trinity scholarship, and is a charming lad ; and we all go up to
Bell's Ranch in Bergun's Park to-morrow, for a few days, to get
cool, for the heat here is tropic, and we cannot move by day. That
has given me rest though, and a time for reading. God has been
so gracious that I cannot think that He means to send my grej
hairs down in sorrow to the grave, but will, perhaps, give me time
to reconsider myself, and sit quietly with you, preaching and work-
ing, and writing no more. Oh ! how I pray for that. Tell the
Dean 1 have been thinking much of him as I read Arnold's life and
letters. Ah, happy and noble man ; happy life, and happy death.
But I must live, please God, a little longer, for all your sakes.
Love to G. and M."
47 Charles Kingsley.
BERGUN'S PARK, July 2.
" Oh, my Love, Your birthday-letter was such a comfort to me,
for I am very home-sick, and counting the days till I can get back
to you. Ah, few and evil would have been the days of my pilgrim-
age had I not met you ; and now 1 do look forward to something
like a peaceful old age with you. . . Tell John Martineau his
letter was a great comfort to me. This place is like an ugly High-
land strath, bordered with pine woods. Air almost too fine to
breathe, 7,200 feet high. Pike's Peak 7,000 feet more at one end,
fifteen miles off ; and, alas ! a great forest-fire burning for three days
between us and it ; and at the other end wonderful ragged peaks,
ten to twenty miles off. Flowers most lovely and wonderful.
Plenty of the dear common hare-bell, and several Scotch and Eng-
lish plants, mixed with the strangest forms. We are (or rather
Rose is) making a splendid collection. She and the local botanist
got more than fifty new sorts one morning. Her strength and ac-
tivity and happiness are wonderful ; and M.'s letters make me very
happy. Yes ; I have much to thank God for, and will try and
show my thankfulness by deeds. Love to G. Tell him there are
lots of trout here ; but it is too hot to catch them."
GLEN EYRIE, July n.
" Thank God our time draws nigh. I preach at Colorado Springs
to-morrow, and lecture for the Church on Wednesday ; * Denver,
* CANON KINGSLEY AND A BEETLE. (From a Denver letter.) I will
relate a little anecdote of Canon Kingsley, which I heard at Colorado Springs,
the other day. On a recent evening he read his lecture on " Westminster
Abbey " to the people of Colorado Springs, right under the shadow of Pike's
Peak. In the midst of his lecture a bug of some species of Coleoptera, new and
strange to the eminent lecturer, alighted on his manuscript and attracted his
attention at once. Mr. Bug sat still a moment or two, during which space the
speaker "improved the occasion " to study his peculiarities of form and struct-
ure perhaps determining in his mind certain obscure or doubtful questions ; but
while these investigations were in progress, and his language rolling right along
to the delight of his hearers, the insect began to expand his wings as if anxious
to fly away. The reverend speaker saw the motion, and deftly caught it in his
hand. Going right on with his line of argument, he continued his examination
for several moments, until, having settled everything to his own satisfaction, he
let it buzz away about its own business perhaps mentally repeating the parting
injunction of " My Uncle Toby " to the fly. To any ordinary man the presence
of such an intruder would have been unwelcome, and he would have been brushed
aside, but the great English divine, trained to such close habits of observation
and thought, could not forego the opportunity, even in the midst of his lecture,
to study the points in a new species of beetle, his mental discipline enabling him
to carry along in his mind two trains of ideas at the same time.
Lorraine, a Ballad. 471
Friday, and then right away to New York, and embark on the 25th.
Letters from M., who has gone to Tennessee. . . .
" This is a wonderful spot : such crags, pillars, caves red and
grey a perfect thing in a stage scene ; and the Flora, such a
jumble cactus, yucca, poison sumach, and lovely strange flowers,
mixed with Douglas's and Menzies' pine, and eatable pinon, and
those again with our own harebells and roses, and all sorts of
English flowers. Tell G. I have seen no rattlesnakes ; but they
killed twenty-five here a year or two ago, and little Nat. M., twelve .
years old, killed five. Tell him that there are ' painted lady
butterflies, and white admirals here, just like our English, and a
locust, which, when he opens his wings, is exactly like a white
admiral butterfly ! and with them enormous tropic butterflies, all
colors, and as big as bats. We are trying to get a horned toad to
bring home alive. There is a cave opposite my window which
must have been full of bears once, and a real eagle's nest close by,
full of real young eagles. It is as big as a cart-load of bavins.
Tell G. that I will write again before we start over the plains. Oh !
happy day ! "
GLEN EYRIE, July 14.
" I cannot believe that I shall see you within twenty-one days ,
and never longed so for home. I count the hours till I can cross
the Great Valley, on this side of which God" has been so good to
me. But, oh ! for the first rise of the eastern hills, to make me sure
that the Mississippi is not still between me and beloved Eversley.
I am so glad you like Westminster. Yes ! we- shall rest our weary
bones there for a while before kind death comes, and, perhaps, see
our grandchildren round us there.* Ah ! please God that ! I
look forward to a blessed quiet autumn, if God so will, having had
a change of scene, which will last me my whole life, and has taught
me many things The collection of plants grows
magnificent "
During his severe illness in Colorado, he composed these lines ;
they were the last he ever wrote :
i.
" 'Are you ready for your steeple-chase, Lorraine, Lorraine, Lorree?
Barum, Barum, Barum, Barum, Barum, Barum, Baree.
You're booked to ride your capping race to day at Coulterlee,
You're booked to ride Vindictive, for all the world to see,
To keep him straight, and keep him first, and win the. run for me.
Barum, Barum, &c.'
* His first grandchild passed away at its birth just before he himself went into
the unseen world, and happily he never knew it.
47 2 Charles Kings ley.
2.
" She clasped her new-born baby, poor Lorraine, Lorraine, Lorree,
Barum, Barum, &c. *
' I cannot ride Vindictive, as any man might see,
And I will not ride Vindictive, with this baby on my knee ;
He's killed a boy, he's killed a man, and why must he kill me ? '
3-
'" Unless you ride Vindictive, Lorraine, Lorraine, Lorree,
Unless you ride Vindictive to-day at Coulterlee,
And land him safe across the brook, and win the blank for me,
It's you may keep your baby, for you'll get no keep from me.'
4-
" ' That husbands could be cruel,' said Lorraine, Lorraine, Lorree,
' That husbands could be cruel, I have known for seasons three ;
But oh ! to ride Vindictive while a baby cries for me,
And be killed across a fence at last for all the world to see ! "
5-
" She mastered young Vindictive Oh ! the gallant lass was she,
And kept him straight and won the race as near as near could be ;
But he killed her at the brook against a pollard willow tree,
Oh ! he killed her at the brook, the brute, for all the world to see.
And no one but the baby cried for poor Lorraine, Lorree."
The American chapter may be fitly closed by the following letter
from Mr. John Whittier, whose poetry and whose acquaintance,
made in Boston, had given him such especial pleasure.
BEARCAMP HOUSE, W., N. H., 8th Mo. 30, 1876.
"DEAR FRIEND,
" I am glad to learn from a letter received from an American
clergyman just returned from England that thou art engaged in
preparing a biography of thy lamented husband. It seems to me
very fitting that the life of such a man as Charles Kingsley should
be written by one so fully acquainted with the noble and generous
* The meaning of this strange refrain is not known. Some were doubtful
whether, as no explanation was given by Mr. Kingsley, it would not be better to
omit it ; but Mr. Froude, who thought this poem one of the finest of his ballads, on
being consulted, wrote : "I am in favor of keeping the refrain. The music of
the song will be incomplete without it : and as the words went humming
through his head, the refrain went along with them. It presses like an inex-
orable destiny, and makes you feel the iron force with which poor Lorraine was
swept to her fate." ....
Letter from Whittier. 473
personal qualities of the reformer, poet, and theologian. In this
country his memory is cherished by thousands, who, after long ad-
miring the genius of the successful author, have learned, in his
brief visit, to love him as a man.
" I shall never forget my first meeting with him in Boston. I
began, naturally enough, to speak of his literary work, when he
somewhat abruptly turned the conversation upon the great themes
of life and duty. The solemn questions of a future life, and the
final destiny of the race, seemed pressing upon him, not so much
for an answer (for he had solved them all by simple faith in the
Divine Goodness), as for the sympathetic response of one whose
views he believed to be, in a great degree, coincident with his own.
' I sometimes doubt and distrust myself,' he said, ; but I see some
hope for everybody else. To me the Gospel of Christ seems in-
deed Good Tidings of great joy to all people ; and 1 think we may
safely trust the mercy which endureth/#r ever.' It impressed me
strongly to find the world-known author ignoring his literary fame,
unobservant of the strange city whose streets he was treading for
the first time, and engaged only with ' thoughts that wander through
eternity.' All I saw of him left upon me the feeling that I was in
contact with a profoundly earnest and reverent spirit. His heart
seemed overcharged with interest in the welfare, physical, moral,
and spiritual, of his race. I was conscious in his presence of the
bracing atmosphere of a noble nature. He seemed to me one of
the manliest of men.
" I forbear to speak of the high estimate which, in common with
all English-speaking people, I place upon his literary life-work.
My copy of his ' Hypatia ' is worn by frequent perusal, and the
echoes of his rare and beautiful lyrics never die out of my memory.
But since I have seen him, the man seems greater than the author.
With profound respect and sympathy,
"I am truly thy friend,
"JOHN G. WHITTIER."
To Mrs. Kingsley.
CHAPTER XXX.
1874-5.
AGED 55.
Return from America Work at Eversley Illness at Westminster New Anxiety
Last Sermons in the Abbey Leaves the Cloisters for Ever Last Return
to Eversley The Valley of the Shadow of Death Last Illness and Depart-
ure The Victory of Life over Death and Time.
IT was sultry August weather when he returned to Eversley from
America ; there was much sickness and a great mortality in the
parish, and he was out among his people twice and three times
a day in the burning sun and dry easterly wind. His curate, the
Rev. Elis Price, was away for his well-earned holiday ; and
his great joy at being with his poor people again made him
plunge too eagerly and suddenly into work, and Sunday services,
before he had regained his strength after his illness in Colorado.
When he went up to Westminster in September, a severe attack
of congestion of the liver came on, which alarmed his friends, and
prevented his preaching in the Abbey on the first Sunday of his
residence. This attack shook him terribly, and from that time he
was unable to preach more than once a day during his residence ;
but, though altered and emaciated, he seemed recovering strength,
when, early in October, a shadow came over his home, in the
dangerous illness of his wife, touching him in his tenderest point,
and filling him with fears for the future. When all immediate dan-
ger was over, it was with difficulty he was persuaded to leave her
and take a few days' change of air and scene, before his Novem-
ber work commenced, at Lord John Thynne's, in Bedfordshire,
and with his friend Mr. Fuller Maitland, in Essex.* From these
visits, however, he returned invigorated in health and spirits, and
got through his sermons in the Abbey with less difficulty. The
congregations were enormous the sermons powerful as ever,
* At Stanstead, during this visit, the friend with whom he was conversing on
the deepest doctrines of Christianity said she could never forget his look and
voice, as he folded his arms, and bowing his head, said, " I cannot cannot live
without the MAN CHRIST JESUS."
The last Sermon. 475
though their preparation was an increasing labor. The change in
his appearance was observed by many. " I went back," said an
old correspondent, who had gone to hear him preach in West-
minster Abbey, " sad at the remembrance of the bent back and
shrunken figure, and while hoping the weakness was but tempo-
rary, I grieved to see one who had carried himself so nobly, broken
down by illness.
His sermon on All Saints' Day will never be forgotten by those
who heard it. It was like a note of preparation for the life of
eternal blessedness in the vision of God upon which he was so
soon to enter. It was a revealing too of his own deepest belief
as to what that blessedness meant, with back glances into the
darker passages and bitter struggles of his own earthly life .and
warfare with evil.
On Advent Sunday, November 29, he preached his last sermon
in the Abbey, with intense fervor. It was the winding up of his
work in the Abbey, but neither he nor those who hung upon his
words thought that it was the winding-up of his public ministrations
and the last time he would enter the pulpit. The text was Luke
xix. 41, Christ weeping over Jerusalem. A great storm was raging
over London that afternoon, and the gale seemed almost to shake
the Abbey, which made the service to one who was keenly sensi-
tive, as he was, to all changes of weather, especially those which
would affect the fate of ships at sea, most exciting.
The sermon was a characteristic one. " Advent," he said,
" should be a season not merely of warning, awe, repentance, but
a season of trust and hope and content." He sketched the lead-
ing features of his past teaching in the Abbey dwelling on the
Kingship and Divine Government of Christ over races, nations, in-
dividuals His infinite rigor and yet infinite tenderness of pity
the divine humanity which possessed Him as he wept over the
doomed city, and cried out, " How often would I have gathered
thee as a hen gathereth her chickens under her wings," and closed
with these words :
"And what is true of nations and of institutions is it not true
of individuals, of each separate human brother of the Son of Man ?
" Ah and is there a young life ruined by its own folly a young
heart broken by its own wilfulness an elder man or woman too,
who is fast losing the finer instincts, the nobler aims, of youth in
the restlessness of covetousness, of fashion, of ambition ? Is there
476 Charles Kingsley.
one such poor soul over whom Christ does not grieve ?-To whom,
at some supreme crisis of their lives, He does not whisper ' Ah,
beautiful organism thou, too, art a thought of God thou, too, if
thou wert but in harmony with thyself and God, a microcosmic
City of God ! Ah ! that thou hadst known even thou at least in
this thy day the things which belong to thy peace ? '
" Shall I go on ? shall I add to the words of doom ? ' But now
they are hid from thine eyes ? Thou hast gambled with thine own
destiny too long. Thou hast fixed thy habits. Thou hast formed
thy character. It is too late to mend. Thou art left henceforth
to the perpetual unrest which thou hast chosen to thine own lusts
and passions ; and the angels of peace depart from thy doomed
heart, as they did in the old legend, from the doomed Temple of
Jerusalem sighing ' Let us go hence ' shall I say that ? God
forbid it is not for me to finish the sentence or to pronounce the
doom of any soul.
" But it is for me to say as I say now to each of you Oh that
you each may know the time of your visitation and may listen to
the voice of Christ, whenever and however He may whisper to you,
' Come unto Me, thou weary and heavy-laden heart, and I will give
thee Rest:
" He may come to you in many ways. In ways in which the
world would never recognize Him in which perhaps neither you
nor I shall recognize Him ; but it will be enough, I hope, if we
but hear His message, and obey His gracious inspiration, let Him
speak through whatever means He will.
" He may come to us, by some crisis in our life, either for sorrow
or for bliss. He may come to us by a great failure ; by a great
disappointment to teach the wilful and ambitious soul, that not in
that direction lies the path of peace. He may come in some un-
expected happiness to teach that same soul that He is able and
willing to give abundantly beyond all that we can ask or think.
He may come to us, when our thoughts are cleaving to the ground,
and ready to grow earthy of the earth through noble poetry, noble
music, noble art through aught which awakens once more in us
the instinct of the true, the beautiful, and the good. He may come
to us when our souls are restless and weary, through the repose of
Nature the repose of the lonely snow-peak, and of the sleeping
forest, of the clouds of sunset and of the summer sea, and whisper
Peace. Or He may come, as He may come this very night to
many a gallant soul not in the repose of Nature, but in her rage
in howling storm, and blinding foam, and ruthless rocks, and
whelming surge and whisper to them even so as the sea swallows
all of them which it can take of calm beyond, which this world
cannot give and cannot take away.
" He may come to us when we are fierce and prejudiced, with
that still small voice so sweet and yet so keen. ' Understand
Last Illness. 477
those who misunderstand thee. Be fair to those who are unfair to
thee. Be just and merciful to those whom thou wouldst like to
hate. Forgive and thou shall be forgiven ; for with what measure
thou measures! unto others, it shall be measured to thee again.'
He comes to us surely, when we are selfish and luxurious, in every
sufferer who needs our help, and says, ' If you do good to one of
these, my brethren, you do it unto Me.'
" But most surely does Christ come to us, and often most hap-
pily, and most clearly does he speak to us in the face of a little
child, fresh out of heaven. Ah, let us take heed that we despise
not one of these little ones, lest we despise our Lord Himself.
For as often as we enter into communion with little children, so
often does Christ come to us. So often, as in Judea of old, does
He take a little child and set him in the midst of us, that from its
simplicity, docility, and trust the restless, the mutinous, and the
ambitious may learn the things which belong to their peace so
often does He say to us, ' Except ye be changed and become as
this little child, ye shall in no wise enter into the Kingdom of
Heaven. Take my yoke upon you and learn of Me. For I am
meek and lowly of heart, and ye shall find rest untp your souls.'
" AND THEREFORE LET US SAY, IN UTTER FAITH/' COME AS THOU
SF.EST BEST BUT IN WHATSOEVER WAY THOU COMEST EVEN SO
COME, LORD JESUS.' "
As soon as the Abbey service was over, he came home much
exhausted, and went straight up to his wife's room. " And now
my work here is done, thank God ! and .... I finished
with your favorite text."
The next day he dined at the Deanery to meet Dr. Caird, before
attending his lecture in the Abbey at the special evening service.
The night was damp, and coming out into the cold cloister he
caught a fresh cold, and coughed all through the night ; but he
made light of it, for he could think of nothing but the joy of return-
ing with his wife to Eversley for Christmas and the quiet winter's
work. And on the 3rd of December, full of spirits and thankful-
ness, he left the cloisters forever, and took her with tenderest care
to Eversley. But his happiness was shortlived ; the journey down
had had serious consequences for her, and that night the Angel of
Death for the first time for thirty-one years seemed hovering over
the little rectory. He had been engaged by the Queen's command
to go to Windsor Castle the following Saturday for two days.
Telegrams were sent there, and to his children who were absent.
Still he could not believe there was danger, till he was told
47 8 Charles Kingsley.
that there was no hope, and then " My own death-warrant was
signed," he said, " with those words." Children and friends col-
lected round him, while he gathered himself up with a noble self-
repression to give comfort where it was needed. His ministrations
in the sick room showed the intensity of his own faith, as he
strengthened the weak, encouraged the fearful, and in the light of
the Cross of Christ and the love of God, spoke of an eternal
reunion and the indestructibility of that married love which, if
genuine on earth, can only be severed for a brief moment. When
asked if he thought it cowardly for a poor soul, who had been
encompassed with such protecting love as his, to tremble on the
brink of the dark river which all must cross alone to shrink from
leaving husband, children the love that had made life blessed and
real and full for so many years and to go alone into the unknown :
"Cowardly!" he said. "Don't you think I would rather some
one put a pistol to my head than lie on that bed there waiting?
But, " he added, "it is not darkness you are going to, for God is
light. It is not lonely, for Christ is with you. It is not an un-
known country, for Christ is there." And when the dreary interval
before reunion was mentioned, he spoke of the possibility of all
consciousness of time being so abolished that what would be long
years to the survivor might be only a moment to the separated soul
that had passed over the River of Death. And so, with words of
strong consolation and hope, with daily prayer and reading from the
Gospel and Epistles of St. John and the Psalms, he preached
peace and forgiveness till all was calm ; and dwelling on the border-
land together for weeks of deep communion, every chapter of the
past was gone over once more, and " life was all re-touched again,"
favorite poetry was read for the last time, Wordsworth's "Ode
to Immortality," Milton's magnificent Ode to "Time," again and
again, Matthew Arnold's "Buried Life," and certain passages from
Shakspeare. Once more he himself administered the Holy Com-
munion to his wife, children, and servants ; and once again, before
he himself lay down to die, he received it with them from the hands
of Mr. Harrison. But though his own iron will and utter submis-
sion to the Will of God enabled him to be outwardly calm in the
sick room, and even to speak there of the lonely years which he
feared were before him, of the grave where, he said, he would allow
no one but himself to do the last office, where he would place the
The Valley of the Shadow of Death. 479
three Latin words in which the life of his life, past, present, and
future, are gathered up, the charm of life for him was over, and
he spoke the truth when he said his " heart was broken," for so it
was. He was ill himself, and became careless of his own health,
reckless of cold and snow; his cough became bronchitic. On the
28th of December he took to his bed, and pneumonia, with its
terrible symptoms, came on rapidly. He had promised his wife to
"fight for life" for his children's sake, and he did so for a time ;
but the enemy, or, as he would have said himself, " kindly Death,"
was too strong for him, and in a few weeks the battle was over and
he was at rest. The weather was bitter, and he had been warned
that his recovery depended on the same temperature being kept
up in his room, and on his never leaving it ; but one day he leapt
out of bed, came into his wife's room for a few moments, and tak-
ing her hand in his, said, "This is heaven, don't speak ;" but, after
a short silence, a severe fit of coughing came on, he could say no
more, and they never met again. When told that another move
would be fatal, he replied, " We have said all to each other, we
have made up our accounts ; " and often repeated, " It is all right,
all as it should be." For a few days a correspondence was kept up
in pencil ; and on December 30 he wrote of this " terrible trial,"
the fiery trial of separation, to both so bitter at such a moment.
" But," he adds, " I am somewhat past fretting almost past feel-
ing I know it must be right, because it is so strange
and painful." Again, on New Year's Eve, " I am much better in
all ways. Thank God for the gleam of sun and the frost on the
window-pane " And again, in the last letter he ever
wrote, on January 3rd, a bright morning, the first Sunday in the
year : " Ah ! what a good omen for the coming year this lovely
Sunday morning. May it mean light and peace and blessing in
both worlds for us all ! . . . ." But, to use his own words, it
then became " too painful, too tantalising," and the letters ceased.
He was now kept constantly under the influence of opiates to
quiet the cough and keep off haemorrhage, and his dreams were
always of his travels in the West Indies, the Rocky Mountains, and
California. These scenes he would describe night after night to the
trained nurse from Westminster Hospital who sat up with him, and
whose unwearied care and skill can never be forgotten. He would
tell her. too. of the travels of his eldest son in America, of whom
480 Charles Kingsley.
he continually spoke with love and pride, and to whose success in
life he so eagerly looked. His own physical experiences were
very singular to him, for he sat as a spectator outside himself, and
said if he recovered he would write a book about them. Early in
January, when the alarming symptoms came on, his devoted medi-
cal attendant, Mr. Heynes, of Eversley, who was day and night at
the Rectory, begged for further advice ; and Dr. Hawkesley, who
twice came down from London, did not despair of Mr Kingsley ;
he said he never saw a " more splendid fight for life," and was
struck with his brilliancy in describing his symptoms.
He spoke but little latterly, and the fear of exciting him made
those around afraid of telling him anything that would xouse him
to the sense of his great loneliness. But one morning before his
condition became hopeless, when some little letters, enclosing
some drawings to amuse him, had come from the young Princes at
Sandringham, who loved him well and were sorry for his illness
and his grief, his doctor said they might be shown him. They
touched him deeply ; and his messages in answer were among the
last he sent. On Sunday, the lyth, he sat up for a few moments,
where he could see from the bedroom window which looked into
the churchyard his dear people go into church, and spoke of their
" goodness " to him and how he loved them. He reiterated the
words, " It is all right." "All under rule" One morning early
he asked the nurse, if it was light, to open the shutters, for he loved
light. It was still dark. "Ah ! well," he said, " the light is good
and the darkness is good it is all good." From sleeping so much
he was unconscious of the lapse of time. " How long have I been
in bed ? " he said one day, and on being told three weeks, he said,
" It does not seem three days. Ah, I live in fairyland, or I should
go mad ! "
On the 2oth of January the Prince of Wales, whose regard and
affection had never failed for fourteen years, requested Sir William
Gull to go down to Eversley. He, too, thought recovery possible ;
but immediately after his visit haemorrhage returned the end
seemed near, and then the full truth and not a painful one burst
upon him. " Heynes," he said, " I am hit ; this last shot has told
did F. tell you about the funeral ? We settled it all," and then
he repeated, in the very words used to himself, the arrangements
that had been made in view of the event he had been dreading,
Rest at Last. 481
which God mercifully spared him ; and after mentioning the names
of the bearers selected (laboring men endeared by old parish
memories), " Let there be no paraphernalia, no hatbands, no car-
riages . . . ." He was calm and content. He had no need
to put his mind into a fresh attitude, for his life had long been
" hid with Christ in God." Twenty-rive years before, in speaking
of a friend who did not accept Christianity, he had said, "The
more I see of him, the more I learn to love the true doctrines of
the Gospel, because I see more and more that only in faith and
love to the Incarnate God, our Saviour, can the cleverest, as well
as the simplest, find the Peace of God which passes understanding."
In this faith he had lived and as he had lived, so he died
humble, confident, unbewildered. That night he was heard mur-
muring, " No more fighting no more fighting ; " and then followed
intense, earnest prayers, which were his habit when alone, too
sacred for any listener. Yes, his warfare was accomplished, he
had fought the good fight, and never grounded his arms till God
took them mercifully out of his brave hands and gave him rest.
It was on one of those, his last nights on earth, his daughter
heard him exclaim, " How beautiful God is." For the last two
days before he departed, he asked no questions, and sent no mes-
sages to his wife, thinking all was over, and hoping that at last the
dream of his life was fulfilled of their dying together ; and under
this impression, it is thought, when the faithful nurse who had been
with his children since their birth, left his wife for a moment to
come to her dying master the day before he went, " Ah," he said,
" dear nurse, and I, too, am come to an end ; it is all right all as
it should &e," and closed his eyes again. On that same morning
from his bed he had looked out over the beloved glebe once more.
The snow, which had been deep for weeks, had cleared a little, the
grass of the pasture was green, and he said, " Tell Grenville (his
youngest son, who had just left him after helping to arrange his
bed) I am looking at the most beautiful scene I ever saw," adding
some words of love and approval, that were scarcely audible.
The last morning, at five o'clock, just after his eldest daughter,
who, with his medical man and Mr. Harrison, had sat up all night,
had left him, and he thought himself alone, he was heard, in a
clear voice, repeating the words of the Burial Service :
3 1
482 Charles Kings ley.
" Thou knowest, O Lord, the secrets of our hearts ; shut not
Thy merciful ears to our prayer, but spare us, O Lord most holy,
O God most mighty, O holy and merciful Saviour, Thou most
worthy Judge Eternal, suffer us not, at our last hour, from any
pains of death, to fall from Thee."
He turned on his side after this, and never spoke again, and be-
fore midday, on the 2jrd of January without sigh or struggle
breathed his last breath, so gently that his eldest daughter and the
family nurse, who were watching him, could scarcely tell that all
was over. Twenty years before, and how often since, he had
expressed his longing for that moment : " God forgive me if I am
wrong, but I look forward to it with an intense and reverent curi-
osity." And now the great secret that he had longed to know was
revealed to him, and he was satisfied.
On the afternoon of his departure a telegram was sent to Ches-
ter, where the daily bulletins had been watched for so eagerly,
" Canon Kingsley peacefully expired ; " and on the Sunday morn-
ing the tolling of the Cathedral bell, and the omission of his name
in the daily prayer for the sick, confirmed the worst fears of
many loving hearts. For many weeks the prayers of the congrega-
tion had been asked for " Charles and Fanny Kingsley." Not
only in Chester Cathedral and Westminster Abbey, but in other
churches and chapels, at prayer-meetings too, in London, Sheffield,
and elsewhere, his life was prayed for, and God in His great mercy,
had answered by giving him immortal life.
As soon as the news reached Westminster, a telegram from the
Dean brought these words to his children : " Bear up under the
blow. You will perhaps choose Eversley, but the Abbey is open
to the Canon and the Poet."
DEANERY, WESTMINSTER, Jan. 24, 1875.
" I cannot let the day pass without a word in addition to the
brief telegram I sent last night.
" It seems but a few years, though it is many, since I first saw
your dear father at Oxford, and again still fewer, though that is also
long ago, since I for the first time was at Eversley and our meet-
ings have been but few and far between but I always felt that he
was a faithful friend, and a brave champion for much and many
that I loved ; and when he was transplanted among us, my dear
wife and I both looked forward to the multiplication of these meet-
ings to long years of labor together.
Honored in his Death. 483
" God has ordered it otherwise. He had done his work. He had
earned his rest. You had seen all that was highest and best in him.
" The short stay amongst us here had given him a new life, and
had endeared him to a new world. He has gone in the fulness of his
strength, like one of his own tropical suns no twilight no fading.
Be of good heart, for you have much for which to be thankful.
" 1 ventured to say something about the place of burial. It is
far the most probable (from what I have heard that he had said)
that Eversley will have been the place chosen by him and by you
most natural that it should be so. Had his days ended here,
then I should have pressed that the right which we have acquired
in him should have the chief claim, and you know that should the
other not be paramount, here we should be too glad to lay him,
not by that official right which I try to discourage, but by the natu-
ral inheritance of genius and character. Any way, let me know
the day and hour of the funeral. If none nearer or more suitable
should be thought of, I, as the chief of his last earthly sphere, would
ask to render the last honors.
" Yours sincerely,
"A. P. STANLEY."
There was no hesitation with those who knew his own feelings,
and at Eversley he was buried on the 28th of January ; no one was
invited to come, but early in the day the churchyard was full.
There had been deep snow and bitter cold for many weeks. But
the day was kindly, soft, and mild, with now and then gleams of
sunshine. He was carried to the grave by villagers who had
known, loved, and trusted him for years. The coffin, covered with
flowers, was met at the garden-gate by the Bishop of Winchester,
the Dean of Westminster, Mr. Powles, his oldest friend, his two
last curates, Rev. William Harrison, and Rev. Elis Price, and his
churchwarden Sir William Cope, and was laid before the altar,
where for thirty-two years he had ministered so faithfully, before the
service was finished at the grave. Roman Catholic and Protes-
tant, Churchman and Dissenter, American and English, met at that
grave ; every profession, every rank, every school of thought, was
represented. Soldiers* and sailors were there ; among them three
Victoria Cross Officers, men whom he had loved, and who honored
him. The Master of Fox Hounds, with the huntsman and the
whip, were there also, and from his beloved Chester came the Dean
* Gen. Sir William Codrington ; Col. Sir Charles Russell, V.C. ; CoL Alfred
Jones, V.C. ; Col. Evelyn Wood, V. C. ; Captain F. Maurice, Sec.
484 Charles Kings ley.
and a deputation from the Natural Science Society he had founded.*
" I have been at many state funerals," said a naval officer who was
present, " but never did I see such a sight as Charles Kingsley's."
" Who," says Max Miiller, " can forget that funeral on the 28th
of January, 1875, and the large sad throng that gathered round his
grave ? There was the representative of the Prince of Wales, and,
close by, the gipsies of Eversley Common, who used to call him
their ' Patrico-rai ' (their Priest King). There was the squire of
his village, and the laborers young and old, to whom he had been
a friend and a father. There were governors of distant colonies,!
officers, and sailors, the bishop of his diocese, and the dean of his
abbey ; there were the leading Nonconformists of the neighbor-
hood, and his own devoted curates, peers and members of the
House of Commons, authors and publishers, and the huntsmen in
pink ; and, outside the churchyard, the horses and the hounds, for
though as good a clergyman as any, Charles Kingsley had been a
good sportsman, and had taken in his life many a fence as bravely
as he took the last fence of all, without fear or trembling. All that
he had loved and all that had loved him was there, and few eyes
were dry when he was laid in his own gravel bed, the old trees,
which he had planted and cared for, waving their branches to him
for the last time, and the grey sunny sky looking down with calm
pity on the deserted rectory, and on the short joys and the shorter
sufferings of mortal man.
" All '.vent home feeling that life was poorer, and everyone knew
that he had lost a friend who had been, in some peculiar sense, his
own. Charles Kingsley will be missed in England, in the English
colonies, in America, where he spent his last happy year ; aye,
wherever Saxon speech and Saxon thought is understood. He will
be mourned for, yearned for, in every place in which he passed
some days of his busy life. As to myself, I feel as if another cable
had snapped that tied me to this hospitable shore."
Such was the scene at Eversley, while at Chester and at West-
minster the cathedral bell tolled for the well-beloved Canon, whom
they should see no more.
The Sunday following his funeral, sermons on his life and death
were numerous. Dean Stanley in London, Dean Howson at
Chester, Churchmen, Baptists, and other Nonconformists, both in
* Dr. Stolterforth, Mr. Shepheard, Mr. Manning, Mr. Griffith.
f His Excellency Sir Arthur Gordon ; Col. Sir Thomas Gore Browne.
A Memorial Fund. 485
London, Chester, and elsewhere, while his own pulpit at Eversley
Church was occupied by Sir William Cope in the morning, and by
his devoted and attached curate, the Rev. Elis Price, in the afternoon.
Telegrams and letters, full of reverent love for him and of sym-
pathy for those whom he had left, poured in from the highest to the
lowest in this land, and from many in other lands, where his words
had brought light in darkness, comfort in sorrow, hope in despair
from the heart of Africa, from Australia, from California, as well
as from America, where thousands had loved him before they had
seen him face to face so recently.
Never had mourners over an unspeakable loss more exultant
consolation, lifting them above their own selfish sorrow, to the
thought of what they had possessed in him, and that, if misunder-
stood by some in his lifetime, he was honored by all in his death
that among men of all parties, there was the unanimous feeling
that the great presence which had passed away had left a blank
which no one could exactly fill.
A Kingsley Memorial Fund was set on foot immediately after
the funeral, in London, Chester, and at Eversley. The call was
responded to in America as well as in England. The church at
Eversley has been enlarged and improved. The Chester memorials
have been described by the Dean ; and on. the 23rd of September
the London memorial was placed in Westminster Abbey, of which
the following account appeared in the Times of the next morning :
The bust of Canon Kingsley, which has been executed in marble
by Mr. Woolner, was unveiled yesterday afternoon in Westminster
Abbey. The ceremony was extremely simple, but interesting and
touching. At 2 o'clock Canon Duckworth, who succeeded the
late Mr. Kingsley in his canonry, and is now in residence, attended
by the Rev. W. Harrison (Mr. Kingsley's son-in-law) and the Rev.
J. Troutbeck, Minor Canons, proceeded in surplices to the Bap-
tistery, accompanied by the two sons and two daughters and
daughter-in-law of the late Canon, and a small number of intimate
friends. Canon Farrar was also present, but took no official part.
After the bust had been unveiled by Mr. Maurice Kingsley,
Canon Duckworth delivered an address, at the close of which the
ladies laid wreaths of choice flowers below the bust.
The bust itself is one of Mr. Woolner"s finest works, and, to those
who knew Charles Kingsley well, represents with marvellous
fidelity the character which had so stamped itself upon his expres-
sive features. The mingled sternness and tender sympathy, the
486 Charles Kingsley.
earnestness and playful humor are all in the living marble. To
those who knew Mr. Kingsley but slightly, the likeness is at first
less striking. The sculptor holding that either the beard or the
smooth face may be legitimately treated in sculpture, but that the
whisker is a temporary fashion of no artistic worth, has (since Mr.
Kingsley wore no beard) entirely divested the face of hair, and
this, while it increases the grandeur of the work, renders the like-
ness less immediately apparent. But we believe that Mr. Kings-
ley's own family, and all those who knew him well, are entirely
satisfied that Mr. Woolner is not only right in his idea, but most
thoroughly successful in his treatment.
The Baptistery in which the bust is placed, is rapidly becoming,
as the Dean has said, " a new Poets' Corner." On the same wall
with the bust of Charles Kingsley stands_that of Mr. Maurice,
whom he delighted to call his " dear master ;/' Keble and Words-
worth find a place in the same chapel, anxha stained window pre-
sented to the Abbey by an American gentleman contains figures
of George Herbert and Cowper.
It was a matter of regret to all that Mrs. Kingsley's extremely
delicate health prevented her presence, but we may mention, that
so soon as the bust was completed and ready for the position
it now occupies, Mr. Woolner sent it down to Byfleet for her in-
spection. Those who know the danger of moving heavy works of
art will appreciate the sculptor's kindness, which was, we know,
deeply felt by Mrs. Kingsley.
In Eversley Churchyard his wife has placed a white marble
cross, on which, under a spray of his favorite passion-flower, are
the words of his choice, the story of his life :
"AMAVIMUS, AMAMUS, AMABIMUS."
And above them, circling round the Cross, " God is Love," the
keynote of his faith.
The green turf round the grave was soon worn by the tread of
many footsteps ; for months a day seldom passed without strangers
being seen in the churchyard. On Bank holidays numbers would
come to see his last resting-place little children, who had loved
the " Waterbabies," and the " Heroes," would kneel down rever-
ently and look at the beautiful wreaths of flowers, which kind
hands had placed there, while the gipsies never passed the gate
without turning in to stand over the grave in silence, sometimes
scattering wild flowers there, believing, as they do, to use their
The " True and Perfect Knight" 487
own strange words, that "he went to heaven on the prayers of the
gipsies."
******
And now these scattered memories, connected by a feeble
thread all unworthy of its great subject, draw to a close. To some
it may have seemed a treachery to lift the veil from the inner life
of a man, who while here hated the notoriety which he could not
escape, and shrunk from every approach to egotism ; but these
private letters, showing, as they do, the steps by which he arrived
at many of his most startling conclusions through years of troubled
thought, are a commentary on much that seemed contradictory in
his teaching, and may justify him, while they teach and strengthen
others. Those alone who knew him intimately and they not
wholly best understood his many-sided mind, and could interpret
the apparent contradictions which puzzled others. Those who
knew him little, but loved him much, could trust where they could
not interpret. But to the public, some explanation, if not due,
may yet be welcome ; and in that invisible state where perhaps he
now watches with intensest interest the education of the human
race, he would not shrink, as he would have shrunk here, from a
publicity which, in revealing the workings of his own mind, may
make his teaching of the truths which were most precious to him
on earth more intelligible, if such a revelation should only help
one poor struggling soul to light, and strength, and comfort, in the
sore dark battle of life.
Some, again, may be inclined to say that this character is drawn
in too fair colors to be absolutely truthful. But " we speak that we
do know, and testify to that we have seen." The outside world
must judge him as an author, a preacher, a member of society ; but
those only who lived with him in the intimacy of everyday life at
home can tell what he was as a man. Over the real romance of
his life, and over the tenderest, loveliest passages in his private let-
ters, a veil must be thrown ; but it will not be lifting it too far to
say, that if in the highest, closest of earthly relationships, a love
that never failed pure, patient, passionate, for six-and-thirty years
a love which never stooped from its own lofty level to a hasty
word, an impatient gesture, or a selfish act, in sickness or in health,
in sunshine or in storm, by day or by night, could prove that the
Charles Kingsley.
age of chivalry has not passed away for ever, then Charles Kingsley
fulfilled the ideal of a " most true and perfect knight " to the one
woman blest with that love in time and to eternity. To eter-
nityfor such love is eternal ; and he is not dead. He himself,
the man, lover, husband, father, friend, he still lives in God, who is
not the God of the dead, but of the living.
CHARLES KINGSLEY'S GRAVE, EVERSLEY CHURCHYARD.
APPENDIX.
i.
THE KINGSLEY MEMORIAL FUND.
THE Kingsley Memorial Fund, set on foot in February, 1875, resulted
at Eversley in the enlargement of the Church, and in the carrying out
of a plan of their late Rector for turning the old vestry in the tower into
a baptistery, opening out the roof, and substituting open benches for
the remaining pews. The Committee included the following names :
The Duke of Westminster. Rev. R. C. Powles.
Lord Eversley. Rev. Elis Price.
Lord Calthorpe. Mr. Martineau.
Rt. Hon. W. Cowper Temple. Mr. Stapleton.
General Sir William Codrington. Mr. Tindal.
Sir William Cope. Mr. Dew.
Mr. Beresford Hope, M.P. Mr. Wyeth.
Mr. Raikes Currie. Mr. Seymour.
On a Brass Plate in the Baptistery these words are inscribed :
IN PIAM MEMORIAM
CAROLI KINGSLEY
S. PETRI WESTMONASTERIENSIS
CANONICI
HVIVSCE ECCLESI^E
PER XXXI ANNOS
RECTORIS DILECTISSIMI
HANC /EDEM SACROSANCTAM
QVAM DOCTRINA ILLVSTRAVIT SVA
INSTAVRANDAM CVRAVERVNT
PAROCHIANI ET AMICI
DESIDERANTES
A.D.
MDCCCLXXV.
At Chester, a Committee with which the Wrexham Society of Natu-
ral Science joined, was formed, and it was decided that a Marble Bust
should be placed in the Chapter House ; a Medal struck for successful
students in the Natural Science Society ; and the ladies of Chester
undertook to restore one of the Cathedral Stalls in memory of the
Canon.
490
Appendix.
In London the following Prospectus was issued by Mr. John Thynne,
and responded to most generously, both in England and America.
KINGSLEY MEMORIAL FUND.
WESTMINSTER.
Independently of the proposed Restoration of Eversley Church, it is
proposed that a Bust should be made of the Rev. Charles Kingsley,
and that one copy be presented to the Chapter of Westminster, to be
placed in the Abbey, and another to Cambridge, of which University
Mr. Kingsley was so distinguished a member.
Mr. Woolner, R. A., has expressed his willingness to undertake the
execution of the bust.
The following have already sent in their names in support of the
Memorial :
The Archbishop of Dublin.
The Dean of Chester.
Alfred Tennyson, Esq.
Tom Taylor, Esq.
The Master of Trinity College,
Cambridge.
The Rev. H. Montagu Butler,
D.D.
Professor Max Miiller.
A. Macmillan, Esq.
The Bishop of Chester.
The Marquis of Lansdowne.
The Hon. J. L. Motley.
The Rev. Chancellor Benson, D.D.
The Duke of St. Alban's.
John Walter, Esq., M.P.
The Duke of Bedford.
The Marquis of Lome, K.T.
The Right Hon.W.E. Forster,M.P.
The Right Hon. G. Hardy, M.P.
The Hon. C. L. Wood.
Professor Tyndall.
Lord Clinton.
Lord Penrhyn.
Sir Arthur Helps, K.C.B.
Anthony Trollope, Esq.
Thomas Hughes, Esq.
The Dean of Windsor.
John Martineau, Esq.
Prescott Hewett, Esq.
G. W. Smalley, Esq., New York.
The Rev. C. Powles.
The Rt. Hon. Lord John Manners,
M.P.
Matthew Arnold, Esq.
Lord Houghton.
The Rev. S. Flood Jones.
The Duke of Argyll, K.T.
The Bishop of Winchester.
The Earl of Ellesmere.
Sir Thomas Watson, Bart.
Sir Charles Russell, Bart., M.P.
Lord Carlingford.
The Rev. Lord John Thynne.
Lord Henniker.
The Rev. Stopford Brooke.
The Earl of Clarendon.
The Rev. Canon Prothero.
Treasurer :
JOHN C. THYNNE, ESQ.
LITTLE CLOISTERS, WESTMINSTER, Feb. 19, 1875.
The list of Subscribers, which is too large to be inserted here,
includes many names, dear to one who loved Art as he did : among
them, George Macfarren, Alma Tadema, James Burn ; besides those
of American friends who had welcomed him so warmly and so lately to
their homes across the Atlantic. Mr. Charles Peterson, of Phila-
delphia ; Mr. J. A. C. Gray, of New York ; Mr. G. W. Childs, of
Philadelphia; Mr. D. O. Mills, of California, &c., &c.
Appendix. 49 1
II.
CHRONOLOGICAL LIST OF
THE REVEREND CHARLES KINGSLEY'S WORKS.
1848 Saint's Tragedy.
1849 Alton Locke.
1849 Yeast. '
1849 Twenty-five Village Sermons.
1852 Phaeton.
1852 Sermons on National Subjects, ist Series.
1853 Hypatia.
1854 Sermons on National Subjects, 2nd Series.
1854 Alexandria and her Schools.
1855 Westward Ho!
1855 Sermons for the Times.
1856 The Heroes.
1857 Two Years Ago.
1858 Andromeda and other Poems.
1859 The Good News of God Sermons.
1859 Miscellanies.
1860 Limits of Exact Science applied to History (Inaugural Lectures).
1861 Town and Country Sermons.
1863 Sermons on the Pentateuch.
1863 Waterbabies.
1864 The Roman and the Teuton.
1866 David and other Sermons.
1866 Hereward the Wake.
1867 The Ancien Regime (Lectures at the Royal Institution).
1867 Water of Life and other Sermons.
1869 The Hermits.
1869 Madam How and Lady Why.
1871 At Last.
1872 Town Geology.
1872 Discipline and other Sermons.
1873 Prose Idylls.
1873 Plays and Puritans.
1874 Health and Education.
1874 Westminster Sermons.
1875 Lectures delivered in America.
INDEX.
ABBOT, Archbishop, portrait of, by
Vandyke, 59.
Abergeldie, Castle of, 380, 381.
Abou Zennab and his horse, story of, 214.
" Advanced thinker " rebuked by Kings-
ley, 280.
Agassiz Museum, 455.
Aldershot, camp at, 233 ; lecture to
troops in camp at, 279 ; lecture on
study of history at, 354, 411.
Alston, Capt. A. H. , friendship between
Kingsley and, 239.
''Alton Locke, Autobiography of a Cock-
ney Poet," origin of, in ; finished,
127 ; published by Chapman & Hall,
128; published, 132 ; Carlyle on, 132;
how received, 136.
America, Kingsley sails for, with daugh-
ter, 452.
American Lectureship at Cambridge,
address on by Kingsley, 364 ; offer
to establish rejected, 366.
American States, Kingsley proposes to
lecture on history of, 319.
Andover, 455.
Animals, love of, 263.
Archaeological Society of Chester, Kings-
ley presides at, 413.
Argyle, Duke of, book by, 377.
Aristocrat, Kingsley repels charge that
he is, 109.
Arnold, Matthew, " Culture and Anar-
chy," 420.
Arnold's Life and Letters, 469.
Art of Learning (the), lecture by Kings-
ley on, 330.
" At Last," 406.
Articles (the), force of subscription to,
358. 359-
Athanasian Creed, 325, 354 ; asked to
join committee in defence of, 438.
Atheist editor, correspondence with, 288.
Attacks on Kingsley 's teachings by
press, 386.
" Autobiography of a Cockney Poet,"
in.
Avignon, 352.
BALTIMORE, Kingsley preaches in,
460.
Baptism, infant, F. D. Maurice on, 84.
Baptists, F. D. Maurice on, 83.
Barnack, living of, presented to Charles
Kingsley, Sr., for son Herbert, 24;
living surrendered, 28.
Bateson, Master of St. John's College,
recollections by, 52.
Bates, H., letter to, 339.
Bath and Wells, Lord Arthur Harvey,
Bishop of, 311.
Beatific Vision, sermon on, 452.
Beetle, incident connected with, 470.
Bell, Dr., and Mrs. W. A., 468.
Bennett, Sir William Sterndale, 320.
Bennett, Charles Henry, consults Kings-
ley about illustrating " Pilgrim's
Progress," 289.
Benson, Dr., memories of Kingsley by,
328.
Berkeley University, at Oakland, visited,
468.
Betting, letter to young men of Chester
on, 426 ; letter on, to son, 431.
Bewick's works, 369.
Biarritz, 348, 353.
Bible politics, 135.
Birmingham, lectures on Human Physi-
ology, 43 6 -
Blackwell, Dr. Elizabeth, 405.
Blandford, Kingsley curate of, 69.
Bloomfield, Dr., Bishop of London, for-
bids Kingsley to preach in London,
147; prohibition withdrawn, 147.
Bloomfield, Canon of Chester, letter
from, 442, 443.
Body and Soul, 235.
Boston, 455, 459.
Botta, Prof, and Mrs., 456, 457.
Bovill, Chief Justice, death of, 432.
Bowles, Samuel, 456.
Boys, teaching of, Kingsley's views on,
226.
Bramshill Park Camp, 432.
" Brave Words to Brave Soldiers," by
Kingsley, 215.
Bremer, Frederika, 135 ; visits Evers-
494
Index.
ley Rectory, 170 ; letter to Kings-
ley, 171.
Bright, Mynors, letter from, 42.
Brimley, George, letters to, 136, 276.
Bristol riots, 31, 159.
British Association meets at Cambridge,
321 ; meeting of, at St. Andrews, 379.
British Museum, paper on, by " Parson
Lot," 102.
Bronte, Miss, Life and Works of, 269.
Brooke, Rajah, Sir Tames, letter from
on " Westward Ho ! " 221.
Brotherhoods and societies, letter from
Kingsley on, 211.
Brother's love illustrated by story of
Dover coachmen, 60.
Brown, Rev. Baldwin, on keeping Crys-
tal Palace open on Sundays, 171.
Bryant, W. C., 457.
Bullar, John, letters from Kingsley to,
237, 267, 268, 275.
Bunbury, Sir Charles Fox, letter from
Kingsley on rain sermon, 309; Kings-
ley's friendship with, 311 ; memories
of Kingsley, 312 ; proposes Kings-
ley as Fellow of Geological Society,
326 ; letter from Kingsley to, on ap-
pointment to Westminster, 449.
Bunsen, Chevalier, 62 ; on " Hypatia,"
178, 180; letter from, to Kingsley
about preface to " Deutsche Theolo-
gie," 208.
Bunsen, Henry de, paper by, on " How
can the State best help in the Edu-
cation of the Working Classes,"
403 ; recollections of Kingsley, 403.
Button Cap at Barnack, 24.
/CALVINISM, ruinous influence of,
\-s 237.
Cambridge, incident of examination
at, 53 ; inaugural lectures at, by
Kingsley, 311, 455.
Campbell, Rev. E. Pitcairn, letter from,
44 ; letter to, on Royal Wedding,
327 ; on toads in a hole, 341.
Canterbury, Archbishop of, congratu-
lates Kingsley on appointment to
Westminster, 443.
Carcassonne, 350.
Carlyle's works, effects of, on Kingsley,
49 ; writings, bright views of life,
given by, 75, 118 ; recommends
"Alton Locke" to Chapman and
Hall, 128; opinion of "Alton
Locke," 132 ; Kingsley not follower
of in theology, 269 ; views on Church
of England, 320.
Carnarvon, Lord, 287.
Catholics, justice to, 285.
Character Album, as filled out by
Kingsley, 439.
Chartist outbieak, 94 ; Kingsley preach-
es on, 97 ; sketch of, by Thomas
Hughes, 98 ; Kingsley attends
Chartist meeting, 117.
" Cheap Clothes, and Nasty," by Parson
Lot, 129 ; preface to, by Thomas
Hughes, 97.
Chester, Kingsley takes up residence at,
411 ; botanical class at, 423 ; Lyell
made member of Natural Science
Society, 424.
Chevallier Mons, 117.
Childs, G. W., 458.
Cholera in England, 120 ; three sermons
preached on, 120.
Christ weeping over Jerusalem, subject
of sermon in Westminster Abbey,
475-
Christian Socialist, 135 ; attacked in
Edinburgh and Quarterly, 137 ;
stopped, 164.
Chronological-list of Kingsley's works,
491-^
Church of Rome, letter from Kingsley
to young man going over to, 114.
Civil Service Volunteers, Kingsley made
chaplain of, 308.
Clemens, Samuel (Mark Twain), 459.
Colenso on Pentateuch, 343.
Coleridge, Derwent, Kingsley's teacher
at Helston, 32 ; reminiscences by,
33-
Colorado Springs, 469.
Congreve, Capt. , memories by, 283.
Conington, Prof., reviews " The Saint's
Tragedy," 92.
Conscience, incident of Maurice's lec-
ture on, 387.
" Constitutionalism of the Future," let-
ter to Prof. Lorimer on, 373.
Comte, lectures on, at Cambridge, 400.
Cooper, Thomas, acquaintance with,
begins, 108 ; letters to, 108, 187-
200.
Cornell University, 460.
Cotton famine, controversy about with
Lancashire mill-owners, 319.
Cranworth, Lord, 287.
" Crime and its Punishment," pamphlet
on, by Henry Taylor, 388.
Crimean war, 207, 215.
Crystal Palace, question of opening on
Sunday, 171 ; letter from Kingsley
on, 172.
"Culture and Anarchy," Matthew Ar-
nold's, 420.
Culture, address on, at Berkeley Uni-
versity, C.il., 468.
Curtis, G. W., 455.
DARWIN, 210; ''Originof Species"
and " Fertilization of Orchids,"
327 ; conquering, 337 ; letters to,
on " Natural Selection," 339, 377,
378 ; Kingsley on progress of Dar
winism, 378.
Index.
495
David, sermons on, 355.
Death of Kingsley, 482.
" Delectable Day, The," verses on,
438.
Detroit, 461.
" Deutsche Theologie " by Bunsen, Miss
Winkworth translates, and Kingsley
writes preface to, 207, 209.
Development theory, letter to H. Bates
on, 339.
Devonshire, Duke of, installed as Chan-
cellor of Cambridge, 320.
Diphtheria appears at Eversley, 278.
Disestablishment discussed in letter to
Thomas Cooper, 199.
Drummond, Henry, letters from, on
" Westward Ho ! " 220.
Dunn, Henry, memories by, 390.
pBRINGTON, Lord, 469.
Edinburgh, Kingsley lectures on
"Schools of Alexandria " at, 205.
'' Education of the Working Classes,
how can the State best help in,"
paper by Henry de Bunsen, 403.
Education League, Kingsley joins, 404.
"Egotism," article on, by Lionel Tolle-
mache, 402.
Elegiacs composed on Morte Sands,
112.
Emancipated Women, letter from Kings-
ley to John Stuart Mill on, 417.
Emma, Queen of Sandwich Islands,
visits Eversley, 361 ; writes letter to
Dr. Benson of Wellington College,
361 ; letter from, to Kingsley, 362
Endless Torment, letter to Thomas
Cooper on, 194.
Epicedium, 165.
Erie Railroad, narrow escape from acci-
dent on, 460.
Erskine, Henry, death of, 356.
Erskine, Rt. Hon. Thomas, settles at
Eversley, 164.
" Essays and Reviews," letter' from
Kingsley to Dean Stanley on, 316 ;
letter on, to Bishop of Winchester
(Dr. Sumner), 367.
Eversley, Kingsley made Curate of, 54 ;
parish described, 58 ; life at, de-
scribed by mother, 67 ; Kingsley
settles as Rector of, 76 ; parish work
at, 77 ; first confirmation, 79 ; low
contagious fever breaks out in, 118;
flood in, 129 ; study window of rec-
tory, 396; life at rectory described
by Rev. Wm. Harrison, 395 ; Kings-
ley's grave in church-yard at, 488.
Eyre, Ex-Gov. of Jamaica, Kingsley's
defence of, 370.
" Ezekiel's Vision," sermon before
the Queen, 354.
T^AME and Praise, Kingsley on, 229.
Farley Court, winter at, 233.
Field, Cyrus W., 463,465, 466.
Field, James T., 459.
4< Firmley Murder," 135.
Fishing for trout at Salisbury, 74 ; de-
scription of fishing excursion, 107 ;
on the Torridge, 119 ; Notes on,
to Thomas Hughes, 139 ; expedition
to Snowdon with Tom Hughes and
Tom Taylor, 235 ; lines to wife on,
241 ; letter to Tom Hughes on, 242 ;
in Strathficidsaye, 272 ; kills first
salmon at Markree Castle, 308 ;
catching salmon in Scotland, 321 ;
letter to Kroude on, 340.
Forster, Rt. Hon. E. , 284.
Fortesque, Dudley, 469.
Eraser's Magazine, edited by Kingsley,
376.
Freedmen's Aid Union, letter to T.
Hughes inquiring about, 382.
" Frithiof's Saga" presented to Kings-
ley by Fredrika Bremer, 170.
Froude, on Oxford and Cambridge Re-
view 86, 93, 94 ; becomes ac-
quainted with his future wife, Mrs.
Kingsley's sister, in ; at Clovelly
met Kingsley, 114, 117 ; quoted as
an authority on natural phenomena
of Snowdon, 276; letter to, 340;
foes to Spain to examine Simancas
1SS., 347, 376; letter to, from
Kingsley on settlement at Chester,
413 ; opinion of ballad of Lorraine,
472.
Froude, Mrs. J. A., death of, 306.
Funeral of Kingsley, 484.
f ASKELL, Mrs., letter from Kings-
vJ ley vindicating her from attack,
180 ; letter from Kingsley to, on
Miss Bronte's " Life," 269.
Oilman, D. C., 468.
Geological Society, Kingsley made Fel-
low of, 326.
Gladstone nominates Kingsley to Can-
onry of Chester, 404 ; letter from,
appointing Kingsley Canon of
Westminster, 441.
" Glaucus," origin of, 203.
Glyder, melodrama on the, 276.
Good Words, 319.
Gordon, Sir Arthur, invites Kingsley to
visit Trinidad, 309.
Gosse, H. P., Kingsley sends specimens
to, 202 ; letter to, 203 ; meeting
with, 210.
Grant, U. S. President, 457.
Gray, Dr. Asa, 338, 4^6.
Gray, J. A. C., 463, 468.
" Great Cities, their influence for Good
and Evil," 275.
496
Index.
Great Exhibition, 135 ; sermon on open-
ing of, 140 ; question of opening
on Sunday, 172, 173.
Grenfell, Fanny, Kingsley married to,
74-
Grenfell, Charlotte, wife of J. A. Froude,
death of, 306.
Grenfell, Charles, death of, 306.
Grove, George, letter to, from Kings-
ley on keeping Crystal Palace open
on Sunday, 170.
Gull, Sir William, 480.
HANSARD, Rev. Septimus, assists
Kingsley at Eversley, 316.
Hants and Wilts Education Society,
lectures before, 278.
Hare, Archdeacon, 94 ; consulted about
protest against dismissal of Maurice
from King's College, 185 ; letter
from, touching dismissal, 185 ; wor-
ried about Maurice's affairs, 206.
Harrison, Rev. William, memories by,
391, 482.
Harrow-on-the-Hill, 441.
Harvard, address on American Lecture-
ship in Cambridge, 364.
Harvey, Lord Arthur, Bishop of Bath
and Wells, 311.
Hay, Col. John, 456.
Hayden, Prof., 457.
Helps, Sir Arthur, Kingsley writes to,
on sanitary matters, 205.
Henry, Dr., 457.
Henslowe, Rev. Geo. .letter from Kings-
ley to, on sense of humor in Crea-
tor, 274.
" Hermits" for Sunday Library, 387,398.
" Heroes, The,'' book of Greek fairy
tales, by Kingsley, 228.
" Heroism," lectures on, 437.
Hildyard, Canon of Chester, letter from,
443-
Hereward the Wake," seeds of, 29.
" High Church Parson " (Rev. Baldwin
Brown), on keeping Crystal Palace
open on Sunday, 173.
Hippocampus Question, controversy on,
between Owen and Huxley, 322 ;
burlesque speech of Lord Dun-
dreary on, by Kingsley, 322.
Holiest, clergyman of Frimley, murder-
ed, 130.
Hooker, Dr. Joseph, 311.
Housebreaking and robbery in Hamp-
shire, Surrey, and Sussex, 130.
Howard, George, letter from, 366.
Howson, Dean, memories of Kingsley
by, 445 ; preaches sermon on Kings-
ley's life, 484.
Hughes, Prof., President of Chester
Scientific Society, 449.
Hughes, Thomas, Kingsley becomes
acquainted with, 94 ; preface by, to
'' Cheap Clothes, and Nasty," 97 ;
recollections of Kingsley by, 97 ;
defends Kingsley from charge of
being a Chartist, 101 ; letter from
Kingsley to, 138; letter from
Kingsley to, on Iron lockout, 160 ;
on the Crimean War, 214, 215 ; on
fishing excursion to Snowdon, 234-
246, 247 ; invitation in verse to visit
Snowdon, 248 ; gossip about fish-
ing, 242 ; letter to, on '' Two Years
Ago," 265 ; on occasion of Kings-
ley's thirty-eighth birthday, 270 ; on
" Tom Brown," 271 ; on fortieth
birthday, 288 ; letter to, about Mill
and Maurice, 356 ; letter to, inquir-
ing about Freedmen's Aid Union,
382.
Human Physiology and Science of
Health, lectures on, founded at
Birmingham, 436."
Humor, sense of, in the Creator, letter
on, 274.
" Hypatia," reference to " Oxford
Tracts '' in introduction to, 43 ; be-
gun as serial in Fraser's, 135 ; letter
to J. M. Ludlow, 165 ; published as
a book, 178 ; condemned as immor-
al by Professor of Hebrew in Cam-
bridge, 342 ; Whittier's opinion of,
473-
Huxley, letter to, 339.
Huxley and Owen, on Hippocampus
Question, 322.
" Hypotheses Hypochondriacs, '' 36.
" Hyppolytus," Baron Bunsen's, 178,
180.
TGNATIUS and Hyppolytus, Baron
-* Bunsen's, 178,- 180.
Ilfracombe, Kingsley recruiting at, HI.
Indians of N. America, Kingsley's views
of, 387-
Indian Mutiny, news of, received, 267 ;
Kingsley's distress over, 275.
Invitation, in verse, to fishing trip on
Snowdon, to Tom Hughes and Tom
Taylor. 248.
Iron trade lockout, letter from Kingsley
on, 160.
Ithaca, 464.
TAMIESON'S (Mrs.) "Sacred and
J Legendary Art,'' article on, in Fra-
ser, ill.
'' Jane Eyre,'' 266.
Jews' tin and Jews' houses, 371.
inns, The, 372.
owett, Prof., 380.
ustice of God, letter to Thomas Coo-
per on, 189.
" Juventus Mundi," poem by Kingsley,
452-
Index.
497
KINGSLEY, CHARLES, birth of,
21 ; descent, 21 ; account of his
father, 21 ; mother, 22 ; account of i
maternal grandfather, 23 ; letter j
about Button Cap, 25 ; sermon
and poems at four years of age, 25,
26 ; juvenile reminiscences, 28 ; be-
gins study of conchology, 30 ; life
at Clovelly, Devonshire, 30, 31 ; at
Helston Grammar School under Der-
went Coleridge, 32, 34, 36 ; entered
at King's College, 38 ; entered at
Magdalene College and gains schol-
larship, 41 ; first meets future wife,
42 ; thinks of going to the Far West,
44; difficulties about Trinity, 46;
pedestrian feats, 48 ; decides on the
Church as a profession, 51 ; leaves
Cambridge, 53 ; Curate of Eversley,
54 ; ordained at Farnham, 56 ; first
day of public ministration at Evers-
ley, 59 ; engagement to future wife,
69 ; Curate of Blandford, 69 ; do-
mestic arrangements at Pimperne,
72 ; married to Fanny Grenfell, 74 ;
presented to living of Eversley, 76 ;
settled as Rector of Eversley, 76 ;
first confirmation at, 79 ; first per-
sonal acquaintance with Maurice,
80; Honorary Canon of Middleham,
85 ; eldest son born, 91 ; lionized at
Oxford, 92 ; Professor of English
Literature in Queen's College, 93 ;
proposed for professorship in Kings'
College, 107 ; breaks down while
writing " Yeast," 109 ; in ill-health at
Ilfracombe, in ; decides to take
pupils, 113 ; letter to a young man
going over to Church of Rome, 114 ;
breaks down nursing sick at Evers-
ley, 118 ; resigns office of Clerk in
Orders at Chelsea, 127 ; finishes "Al-
ton Locke," 127; letter in reply to
attack on "Yeast" in the Guar-
dian, 142 ; publicly rebuked by In-
cumbent of a London church for
sermon to working men, 146; visits
Germany, 148 ; correspondence with
Maurice touching dismissal from
King's College, 181-185 I classed as
unorthodox, 202 ; lectures at Edin-
burgh on " Schools of Alexandria,"
205 ; writes preface to Bunsen's
" Deutsche Theologie," 207 ; con-
ference with Palmerston on sanitary
matters, 207 ; letter from, to a lady
on joining a sisterhood, 210 ; lectures
on Fine Arts at Bideford,22i; facility
in sketching, 223 ; address on work of
ladies in country parish, 223 writes
the " Heroes," book of Greek fairy
tales, 228 ; winter at Farley Court,
233 ; " Two Years Ago," 234 ; fishing
excursion to Snowdon with Tom
Hughes and Tom Taylor, 254 ; invi-
32
tation to, 248 ; verses in visitors'
book at Pen-y-gwryd, 252 ; fall from
a horse, 255 ; writes preface to life
of Tauler, 256; completes " Two
Years Ago," 265 ; made Fellow of
Linnoean Society, 265 ; views on
marriage, 267 ; fights diphtheria at
Eversley, 278; rebuke to an "ad-
vanced thinker," 280 ; poems pub-
lished, 280 ; preaches before Queen
and made a Chaplain in Ordinary,
286 ; preaches sermon at marriage
of niece to Max Muller, 287 ; address
to Ladies' Sanitary Association,
291 ; appointed Regius Professor of
Modern History at Cambridge, 303 ;
takes his degree of M. A, 307 ; made
chaplain of Civil Service Volunteers,
308 ; preaches sermon for Trinity
House, by command of Prince Con-
sort, 308 ; sermon on '' Why should
we Pray for fair Weather ? " 309 ;
inaugural lecture at Cambridge on
"The Limits of Exact Science
applied to History," 311 ; lectures
on " The Roman and the Teuton,"
311 ; lectures before Prince of
Wales on Modern History, 314 ;
letter to Dean Stanley on " Essays
and Reviews," 316 ; lectures on
history of American States, 319;
writes installation ode for Duke of
Devonshire as Chancellor of Cam-
bridge, 320 ; visits Scotland, 321 ;
burlesque speech of Lord Dundrea-
ry on Hippocampus question, 322 ;
made Fellow of Geological Society,
326 ; Chaplain to Prince of Wales,
327 ; lecture on " Art of Learning,"
330 ; proposed by Prince of Wales to
Oxford for degree of D.C.L., 342 ;
name withdrawn, 342 ; sermon on
Pentateuch, 343 ; publishes "Water-
babies," 345 ; controversy over New-
man's " Apologia pro vita sua," 346 ;
starts for Spain with Froude, 347 ;
preaches before Queen on " Ezeki-
el's Vision " in Chapel Royal, 354 ;
sermons on David, 355 ; visited by
Queen Emma of Sandwich Islands,
361 ; lines on death of King Leo-
pold, 362 ; address on proposed
American Lectureship in Cam-
bridge, 364 ; lectures at Royal In-
stitution on Science and Supersti-
tion, 368 ; defence of ex-Gov. Eyre,
370 ; edits Eraser's Magazine for
Froude, 376; on Darwinism, 378;
visils Scotland, 379; how to cure
stammering, 383 ; lectures on i6th
Century, 386 ; incident in Maurice's
lecture room, 387 ; " Hermits," 387 ;
" Madam How and Lady Why,"
387 ; resigns Cambridge professor-
ship, 398, 400; attends Women's
' 49 8
Index.
Suffrage meeting with J. Stuart Mill,
398 ; made Canon of Chester, 402 ;
presides over educational section
of Social Science Congress, 403 ;
joins Education League, 404 ; in-
stalled Canon at Chester, 406 ; sails
for West Indies, 406; arrival at
Trinidad, 408 ; return from West
Indies, 410 ; lectures at Sion College
on theology of the future, 422 ; presi-
dent of Midland Institute, 435 ; ap-
pointed Canon of Westminster, 414;
farewell to Chester, 442 ; death of
mother, 442 ; first residence in
Westminster, 449, 451 ; sermon in,
452 ; sails for America, 452 ; ar-
rival at New York, 454 ; Boston and
Cambridge, 455 ; Philadelphia, 457 ;
Washington, 457 ; opens Session of
House with prayer, 458 ; Western
trip, 461-470 ; severely ill in Colora-
do, 468; returns to Eversley, 474;
attack of congestion of liver, 474 ;
last illness, 477 ; death, 482 ; burial
at Eversley, 483 ; grave, 488 ; memo-
rial fund, 489 ; chronological list of
works, 491.
Kingsley ancestry, 413.
Kingsley, Charles, father. Rector of
Holne, 21 ; Rector of Barnack, 24;
Rector of Clovelly and St. Luke's,
30, 38 ; death of, 304 ; epitaph on,
34-
Kingsley, Gen., Governor of Fort Wil-
liam, 279.
Kingsley, Herbert, living of Barnack
held for, 24 ; death of, 35.
Kingsley, Mrs., description of future
husband, when she first met him, 42 ;
marriage, 74 ; narrow escape of, 237 ;
serious illness of, 477.
Kingsley, Lieut. , death of, 84.
Kingsley, Miss Rose, letter from father
to, 107 ; account of travels in United
States, 454 et seq.
Kingsley, Maurice, memories of father
by, 261 ; at home from Mexico, 442.
Kingsley, Grenville Arthur, second son
born, 283.
Kingsley, Mrs., mother of Charles,
death of, 442.
Kingsley, Dr., 468.
Kingsley, Dr. William, of New Haven,
459-
Knowledge of God, letter to Thomas
Cooper on, 193.
LABORING Man, Message of Church
to, sermon by Kingsley, 145.
Ladies' Sanitary Association, address
to, 291.
Ladies, work of, in country parish, ad-
dress o.i by Kingsley, 223.
Land Colo uzation question, 117.
Last illness of Kingsley, 477-482.
" Levana," by Jean Paul, quotations
from, 257.
Lees, Mr., reads for Holy Orders with
Kingsley, 129.
Leopold, King of Belgium, death of,
362.
"Limits of Exact Science applied to
History," Kingsley 's inaugural lec-
ture at Cambridge, 311.
Linnasan Society, Kingsley made Fellow
of, 265.
London Quarterly Review, favorable
notice of Krogsjey's works in, 269.
Long Game (The), 135.
Longfellow, H. W. t 388 ; dines with, at
Cambridge, Mass., 456.
Lorimer, Prof., letter to on " Constitu-
tionalism of the Future," 373.
" Lorraine," ballad of, 471.
Lotos Club, reception by, 454.
Loyalty and Sanatory Reform, sermon
on, 433.
Ludlow, John Malcolm, 94 ; letters to,
105, 128, 131, 165, 168, 228, 232.
Lyell, Sir Charles, letter from, to Kings-
ley on rain sermon, 309, 311 ; sec-
onds Kingsley's nomination as
Fellow of Geological Society, 326 ;
letter from Kingsley to, 337 ; made
member of Natural Science Society
at Chester, 424.
A/TACLEOD, Dr. Norman, death of,
1V1
434-
" Madam How," written, 283.
''Madam How and Lady Why," 387,
398.
Mallet, Sir Charles, 311.
Man and woman, intellectual relations
between, 55.
Mansfield, Charles B., 118 ; death of,
216 ; sketch of, by Kingsley, 217.
Manchester Exhibition, 267.
Mariposa Grove, 467.
Mark Twain, 459.
Marriage, Kingsley's views on, 267 ;
eternity of, 299 ; views on second
marriage, 302.
Martineau, John, recollections of Kings-
ley by, 149.
Martyn, Henry, life of, 74.
Massacre of Innocents, 286.
Maurice, "Kingdom of Christ" first
read, 61 ; Kingsley's first personal
acquaintance with, 80 ; letter from,
81 ; sponsor to Kingsley's eldest
son, 91 ; writes preface to Kingsley's
life of St. Elizabeth, 91 ; trying to
control Chartist outbreak, 95 ; ex-
cursion to Crowland Abbey with,
107 ; letter from, to Prof. Thompson
commending Kingsley as tutor, 113;
letters from Kingsley to, 131, 135,
Index.
499
236; on Kingsley's reply to review
of ''Yeast" in Guardian, 142;
anecdote of, by John Martineau ,
153 ; " Theological Essays," 181 ;
dismissed from King's College for
sermon on Eternal Life and Death,
181 ; letters from Kingsley on dis-
missal, 181, 184 ; Kingsley visits, in
London, 206; views on Kingsley
writing preface to " Deutsche The-
ologie," 208 ; letter to, from Kings-
ley on Sabbath question, 243 ; let-
ter to, from Kingsley on father's
death, 305 ; superintends issue of
" Tracts for Priests and People,"
318 ; letter to, on Darwinism, 337 ;
letter to, on Pentateuch, 343 ; letter
to, on Stanley's lectures on Jewish
Church, 344 ; letter to, on Athana-
sian Creed, 354 ; letter to, on ser-
mons on David, 355 ; letter to, on
Doctrine of the Trinity, and Sub-
scription to Articles, 359 ; letter to,
on Savonarola, 360 ; appointed to
Chair of Moral Philosophy at Cam-
bridge, 366 ; incident of lecture on
Conscience, 387 ; at dinner to Long-
fellow, 388 ; letter to, on overwork,
399; death of, 434, 435.
Medical Education of Women, 404.
Memorial Fund to Kingsley, 485, 489,
49.
Meteor shower, 372.
Middleham, Kingsley Honorary Canon
of, 85.
Mills, D. O., 465.
Mill, John Stuart, letter from, 297; let-
ters to, from Kingsley on Woman
question, 401 ; Kingsley's personal
impressions of, 401 ; letter from
Kingsley to, on Womans' Rights.
416
Mitford, Miss, mistakes his curate for
Kingsley, 125, 135.
Montagu, Rev. James, letter from, 50.
Montagu, Col. Geo. and Montagu's
Chirodota, 203.
Montagu, Lord Robert, letter to, on re-
vivals, 299.
Money difficulties, Kingsley on, 206.
Monsell, Rev. Dr., letter from, about
" Santa Maura,' 1 281.
Muller, Max, criticism on " Saga," 165 ;
on Kingsley at sea-shore, 204; visits
Kingsley, 265 ; marriage of, to
Kingsley's neice, 287 ; letter to, on
Jews' Tin, Jews' Houses, and Ger-
many, 371 ; on funeral of Kingsley,
484.
NAPIER, Sir W., description of. an-
swering to that of Kingsley, 260.
Napier, Mrs. Wm , asks Kingsley to
bless new regimental colors, 279.
Napier, Sir Charles, on the 22nd Regt.,
279.
Narbonne, 350.
National Subjects, sermons on, 174.
" Nature's Melodrama," 277.
"Natural Selection," Wallace's Essay
on, 419.
New Haven, 459.
Newman's (Dr.) Apologia pro vita sua,
controversy over, 346.
Newman, F., 117.
Niagara visited, 461.
Nismes, 351.
" North-East Wind, Ode to," 310.
Novel writing, Kingsley on, 105.
"Nun's Pool, The," 135.
ODE to the North-East Wind, by
Kingsley, 310.
Omaha, 463.
Owen and Huxley on Hippocampus
question, 322.
Owen, Prof., 118.
Oxford and Cambridge Review, 85, 86.
"Oxford Tracts," Kingsley's first im-
pressions of, 43.
PALESTINE, questions about geo-
* logy of, 310.
Palmer, Gen. and Mrs. , 469.
Parker, John, publisher, 94.
Parson Lot, origin of nom de plume , 98 ;
on British Museum, 105 ; last words
in " Christian Socialist," 164.
Patteson, Bishop, letter to Max Muller
on, 435.
Pau, 349.
Paul, Rev. C. Kegan, Memories of
Kingsley by, 121 ; letter to, 130; let-
ter to, about Justice to Catholics,
285.
Pen-y-gwryd, lines in visitors' book at,
by Tom Hughes, Tom Taylor, and
Kingsley, 252.
Penny Readings, 367.
Pentateuch, Kingsley's sermons on, 343.
Penrose, Frank, letter from, 50.
" Pepys's Diary " expurgated, 402.
Periodical proposed, 89.
Perkins, Mrs., sister of Mrs. H. B.
Stowe, visits Eversley, 234.
Peterson, C. J., 457.
Philadelphia visited, 457.
"Pilgrim's Progress" illustrated, 289,
298.
"Pilgrimage of Grace," unfinished
novel, 284.
Plucknett, Mr., memories by, 222.
Poems published, 280.
Poetry, advice to an Oxford friend on
writing and publishing, 109.
Poetic faculty, Kingsley's opinion of his
own, 169.
500
Index.
'' Politics for People," appearance of
first number, 99.
Popery and Protestantism, struggle be-
tween, 88.
Popery, article on, in Fraser's Magazine,
93-
Potter, U. S. Senator, 460.
Poverty, views of, 60.
Powles, Rev. R. C., reminiscences of
Kingsley at Helston Grammar
School, 34 ; letter to, 88.
Price, Rev. Elis, 474.
Prince Consort, 286 ; by command of,
Kingsley delivers annual sermon at
Trinity House, 308 ; delivers lec-
tures before Prince of Wales on
Modern History, 314 ; death of, 316,
3I9-
Prince of Wales, Kingsley lectures
before, on Modern History, 314 ;
marriage of, 327; proposes Kings-
ley's name to Oxford for degree of
D.C.L., 342; in Bramshill Park
Camp, 432 ; attacked with fever,
432 ; sends Sir William Gull to at-
tend Kingsley, 480.
Pulliblank, Rev. J. , memories by, 386.
Punishment, corporal, Kingsley 's views
of, 389.
Punishment of children, Kingsley's
views of, 258.
" Purgatory of Suicides," by Thomas
Cooper, 108.
/QUEEN'S Chaplain, Kingsley ap-
\ pointed, 286.
Queen, sermon before on ''Ezekiel's
Vision, "354.
RABELAIS, Kingsley learns from,
119.
Ragged School, Kingsley on, 226.
Rain, sermon by Kingsley on, 309.
Reading for Orders, advice on, to C.
Kegan Paul, 130.
Regius Professor of Modern History at
Cambridge, 303.
Revivals and revivalists, 299.
Richter, Jean Paul, 259.
Rigg, Rev. Dr., letter to, 269.
" Roman and the Teuton, The," lectures
on, by Kingsley at Cambridge,
3"-
Rome, Church of, Kingsley's advice to
young man about going over to,
114.
Romilly, spot where drowned, 284.
Rothery, Mr. and Mrs. H. C., 458, 463,
469.
Royal Wedding, Prince of Wales, 327.
Russell, Francis, letter from Kingsley
to, 255.
CAB BATH question, letter to Maurice
*J on, 244.
Sacramento, 465.
" Saint's Tragedy," published, 92.
Salt Lake City, 464.
Sanitary Matters, conference with Lord
Palmerston on, 207 ; gives evidence
on before House of Commons, 210 ;
clergy urged to attend to, 205.
Sanitary Science, lectures on, 286.
Sanitary Reform, connection of women
with, 291.
"Santa Maura," 135; publication of,
280 ; Kingsley to Maurice on letter
from Dr. Monsell on, 281 ; Kingsley's
reply, 282.
Savonarola, letter to Maurice on, 360.
Schools of Alexandria, Kingsley lectures
on, at Edinburgh, 205.
Schulze, Dr. Karl, 440.
Science and Superstition, lectures on at
Royal Institution, 368.
Science Congress, 404.
Science of Health, classes and lectures
on, founded at Birmingham, 436.
Scriptures, study ot, letter from F. D.
Maurice on, 81.
Self-improvement, Kingsley's views on,
70.
Sermons for the Times, 227 ; good
worked by, 240 ; letter to Kingsley
on, from chaplain, 272.
Seymour, Sir Michael, 238.
Shaw, F. G., 454.
Shairp, Prof., memories of Kingsley by,
381.
Shields, Frederic, letter to, on illustrat-
ing " Pilgrim's Progress," 298.
Shirley, 269.
Sisterhood, letter from Kingsley to a
lady on joining, 211.
Sixteenth Century, lectures on, 386.
Sketching, Kingsley's facility in, 223.
Smith, Rev. H. Percy, Curate of Evers-
ley, 118.
Smoking, Kingsley defends his habit of,
129.
Snowdon, expedition to, with Tom
Hughes and Tom Taylor proposed,
234 ; invitation, 248 ; starting, 251 ;
lines in visitors' book, 252.
Social Science Congress at Bristol, 403.
Sorrow and its lessons, 167.
St. Louis, 461, 462.
" St. Elizabeth of Hungary," Life of,
commenced by Kingsley, 56 ; opin-
ion of Coleridge on, 90 ; drama of,
published by Parker, 91.
Stammering, how to cure, 383.
Stanley, Bishop of Norwich, 94.
Stanley's " Sinai," 214; Kingsley's views
of lectures on Ecclesiastical History,
282 ; first visit to Eversley, 287 ; pn
Kingsley's controversy with Dr.
Newman, 347 ; letter from Kingsley
Index.
501
to, on '* Essays and Reviews," 316 ;
" Lectures on the Jewish Church,"
letter to Maurice on, 344 ; letter
from, on Kingsley's death, 482;
preaches sermon on, 483.
Stowe, Mrs. Beecher, visits Eversley,
234-
Strauss's "Leben Jesu," 129.
Strettell, Rev. Alfred, succeeds Kings-
ley at Queen's College, 114.
Study of History, 354.
Subjection of Women, J. Stuart Mill's
work on, 400.
Suffering working out perfection, 227.
Sumner, Charles, Kingsley introduced
to, 458 ; sudden death of, 458.
'T'AULER'S Life, Kingsley writes pre-
J- face to, 255.
Taylor, Tom, fishing excursion to Snow-
don with Kingsley, 234.
Taylor, Henry, on crime and its punish-
ment, 388.
Taylor, Mrs. Peter, letter from Kingsley
to, on women's suffrage, 415.
Teaching, Kingsley's plan of, 113.
Teetotalism, 137.
Temperance question, 451.
Tennyson's poems first mentioned, 56 ;
Tennyson collecting Arthurian le-
gends at Torridge Moors, 119 ; King-
sley visits Mr. and Mrs. Tennyson
at Isle of Wight, 287.
Thackeray's " Vanity Fair," Kingsley's
judgment of, 269.
" T hology of the Future," lecture on,
by Kingsley, 421.
Thompson, Yates, of Liverpool, pro-
poses to establish American Lec-
tureship at Cambridge, 364 ; offer
rejected, 366.
" Thoughts in a Gravel Pit," lecture on,
275-
"Three Fishers," circumstances under
which written, 157.
Times, London, on Woolner's bust of
Kingsley, 485.
Toads in a hole, letter to Rev. E. Pit-
cairn Campbell on, 341.
Tollemache, Lionel, Kingsley's views of
article on Egotism by, 402.
"Tom Brown," Kingsley's opinion of,
271.
Torquay described, 201.
Total abstinence. 451.
"Town and Country Sermons," 325.
" Town Geology," lectures by Kingsley,
425-
Tractarians, 9.
"Tracts for the Times," Kingsley's
opinion of characterization by Ed-
inburgh Rcvieiv, 51
" Tracts for Priests and People," issued
under superintendence of Mr. Mau-
rice, 318.
Trades Unions, letter from Kingsley on,
239-
Transmutation Theory, 203.
Treves, visit to, 148.
Trinidad, arrival at, 408.
Trinity, letter to Thomas Cooper on,
.198.
Trinity, doctrine of, letter to Maurice
on, 357.
Tulloch, Principal, 379.
" Twenty-five Village Sermons," 174.
" Two Years Ago," completed, 265; fa-
vorable opinion of, 268 ; letter from
a naval chaplain about, 273; influ-
ence of, 272.
UNITED STATES, Kingsley and
daughter sail for, 452.
V
AN DE WEYER, M., 379.
Verses by Kingsley, 120.
" Vestiges of Creation, The," 203.
Vicars, Capt. Hedley, death of, 216.
"Village Sermons," 117.
Visitors' book at Pen-y-gwryd, lines in,
by Kingsley, Hughes, and Taylor,
252.
Tl 7AGES of sin is death ; sermon at
Chapel Royal St. James's, 354.
Wallace, Alfred " Essay on Natural Se-
lection," 419.
Warre, John Ashley, death of, 306.
Washington visited, 457-460.
" Waterbabies, The," written, 283, 320,
345-
Wellington College, Kingsley's interest
in, 328 ; lecture on Natural History,
before, 330.
Westminster, Kingsley made Canon of,
441 ; first residence at, 451 ; sermon
in Abbey, before sailing for Ameri-
ca, 452 ; allusion in sermon to tele-
gram from Kingsley by Dean of
Westminster, 466 ; Kingsley's last
sermon in, 475 ; Dean of Westmins-
ter at Kingsley's funeral, 483 ; Wool-
ner's bust of Kingsley unveiled in
Westminster Abbey, 485.
"Westward Ho!" commenced, 210;
correspondence about, 220, 221 ;
letter from naval officer on, 238.
West Indies, Kingsley sails for, 406 ; re-
turn from, 410.
Wharton, Dr., 456.
Whewell, Dr., 303 ; directs formation of
class on Modern History under
Kingsley's instruction, for Prince
of Wales, 315 ; death of, 363.
502
Index.
Whittier, J. G. , letter from, 472.
" Why should we pray for fair wea-
ther? " sermon, 309.
Wilberforce, Bishop of Oxford, congrat-
ulatory note from, on appointment to
Chester, 403 ; congratulates Kings-
ley on appointment to Westminster,
443-
Winchester, Bishop of, letter from
Kingsley to, on " Essays and Re-
views," 317 ; at Kingsley's funeral,
483-
Winkworth, Miss, translates Bunsen's
" Deutsche Theologie," 207 ; letter
to, from Kingsley about preface to
" Life of Tauler," 255.
Winthrop, J. C. , 457.
Women, and Sanitary reform, 293.
Women, medical education of, discussed
at Social Science Congress at Bris-
tol, 404.
Women's Suffrage, letter to Mrs. Peter
Taylor on, 415 ; letter to John Stu-
art Mill on, 416.
" Wonders of the Shore," 202, 203.
Wood, Dean of Middleham, appoints
Kingsley Honorary Canon, 85.
Wood, Peter A. L. H. , Rector of Cop-
ford, letter to, 67 ; visits Eversley
68.
Woolner's bust of Kingsley unveiled in
Westminster Abbey, 485.
Wordsworth's " Excursion," 75.
Work of ladies in a country parish,
address on by Kingsley, 223.
" Working parson, A," 96.
Working men, sermons to, 145.
Workmen's Club, literature recom-
mended for, 319.
Workmen, Kingsley's address to, 95.
yALE College, 459.
" Yeast," published as serial in Fraser's
Magazine, 92 ; Kingsley breaks
down while writing, 109 ; publica-
tion of, provokes enemies, 133 ; re-
viewed unfairly in Guardian, 141 ;
testimony to good influence of, 143,
266.
Yosemite Valley, Kingsley preaches in,
465-
Young, Brigham, 463.
Young men, Kingsley's sympathy with,
163.
.Authorized Edition printed from duplicate plates of the complete English
Edition, with all the illustrations.]
MEMOIR OF
NORMAN MACLEOD, D.D.,
Minister of Barony Parish, Glasgow ; one of her Majesty's
Chaplains, Dean of the Chapel Royal, etc.
BY HIS BROTHER, REV. DONALD MACLEOD, B.A.,
One of Her Majesty's Chaplains, Editor of
" Good Words," etc.
WITH STEEL PORTRAIT AND NUMEROUS ILLUSTRATIONS.
New and Cheaper Edition. Two volumes in one. Crown 8vo. Cloth, $2.50.
In less than a month after publication this Memoir reached a sale of
SEVEN THOUSAND copies in Great Britain. It is one of the liveliest, most
amusing, and at the same time most profitable of recent biographies.
The volume overflows with racy and characteristic Scotch anecdotes,
while Dr. Macleod's irrepressible buoyancy of spirits sparkles on every page
and now and then breaks out in pen and ink caricatures, suggestive of
THACKER AY in his best vein.
CRITICAL NOTICES.
From the Atlantic Monthly.
"The life of Dr. Macleod is one of the most interesting and affecting biographies of a
year singularly prolific in important memoirs. It is written by his brother, the Rev. Donald
Macleod, and is beautifully written, with great tenderness, and at the same time a most
dignified restraint of eulogy."
From the Nem York Observer.
"To a remarkable list of interesting memoirs of prominent men that have appeared
within the last twelve months is now added the one of which the title is given above. The
relations of Dr. Macleod, not only to the religious and literary public, but to the royal
household, his prominence as a man of talent and influence, and his gcnia! character, have
awakened expectations in regard to his biography that will not be disappointed.
From the Advance.
" A very enjoyable and instructive book we have found it to be, in the variety of its
contents, and in the insight which it has given us unto the heart of a very noble Christian."
From the Christian Union.
" We would commend the book as one in which no person whose heart is in the right
place can fail to be greatly interested."
From the Christian Intelligencer.
" There is something very refreshing and invigorating in the memoirs of such a man as
Dr. Macleod."
From the Neiv York " Evening Post"
"The work is one of uncommon interest."
Sent fost paid on receipt of price by the publishers,
SCRIBNER, ARMSTRONG & CO.,
743 & 745 BROADWAY, NEW YORK.
The Life and Waitings of
Saint John.
BY THE
Rev. JAMES M. MACDONALD, D.D.,
PRINCETON, NEW JERSEY.
Edited, with an INTRODUCTION, by the
Very Rev. J. S. HOWSON, D.D., Dean of Chester,
Joint Author of CONYBEARE AND HOWSON'S ST. PAUL.
In one large handsome volume 8vo. Cloth. Price, $5.00.
LIST OF FULL-PAGE ILLUSTRATIONS AND MAPS, ENGRAVED EXPRESSLY FOR THIS WORK.
Bust of Augustus. Shechem. Bust of Nero. Sardis.
Bust of Tiberius Caesar. Caesarea Philippi. Thyatira. Sit? of Capernaum.
Bethsaida, Site of. Garden of Gethsemane. Philadelphia. . Jacob's Well.
Jerusalem. Bethany. Laodicea, Tiberias.
Cana of Galilee. Samaria. Bust of Julius Caesar. Pool of Siluam.
Road from Jerusalem Bust of Caligula. Old Tyre, Bust of Vespasian.
to Jericho. Ephesus. Bust of Titus. Smyrna.
Jerusalem, Walls of St. John. Pergamos.
Imperium Romanorum Latissime Palestine in Time of Christ Patmos.
Patens. Asia Minor, showing the Seven St. John's Travels.
Churches
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
I. The Place in History, and character of the period in which the Apostle John appeared.
II. Parentage, early life, and natural traits of the Apostle.
III. St. John in his early stage of preparation for the Apostleship as a disciple of John the
Baptist.
IV. St. John under the training of the Great Master Himself from the beginning of His public
ministry.
V. Preparation for his work from intercourse and instruction in private ; especially from the
great sacrifice offered by Jesus, as witnessed by the Apostle himself.
VI. Crowning proof of the Messiahship of Jesus, as witnessed by St. John.
VII. History of St. John in the Acts of the Apostles.
VIII. Later History from traditionary sources, till his arrival at Ephesus, and banishment to
Patmos.
IX. St. John writes the Apocalypse. Its Date and Design.
X. Analysis of the Apocalypse, with brief explanatory Notes.
XI. Traditionary History of the Apostle continued.
XII. St. John writes the Fourth Gospel. Date, Design, and Contents.
XIII. Analysis of the Gospel, with brief explanatory Notes.
XIV. Last days and concluding Writings of the Apostle.
XV. Analysis of the Epistles, with brief explanatory Notes.
%* The above work for sale by all booksellers, or will be sent, post or express chargtt
paid, upon receipt of advertised price by the publishers,
SCRIBNER, ARMSTRONG & CO.,
743 & 745 BROADWAY, NEW YORK.
UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LIBRARY, LOS ANGELES
COLLEGE LIBRARY
This book is due on the last date stamped below.
Book Slip-25m-7,'61(Cl437s4)4280
UCLA-College Library
PR 4843 A4K51
L 005 713 611 1
College
Library
PR
..... ., 1 1 1 i i i ii | | | || i
001 168282 o